The Project Gutenberg eBook of The private journal of Judge-Advocate Larpent
    
This ebook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this ebook or online
at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States,
you will have to check the laws of the country where you are located
before using this eBook.

Title: The private journal of Judge-Advocate Larpent
        attached to the head-quarters of Lord Wellington during the Peninsular War, from 1812 to its close

Author: F. Seymour Larpent

Editor: George Gerard de Hochepied Larpent

Release date: February 19, 2025 [eBook #75413]

Language: English

Original publication: London: Richard Bentley, 1854

Credits: Bob Taylor, MWS and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.)


*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PRIVATE JOURNAL OF JUDGE-ADVOCATE LARPENT ***





  Transcriber’s Note
  Italic text displayed as: _italic_




  THE

  PRIVATE JOURNAL

  OF

  JUDGE-ADVOCATE LARPENT,

  ATTACHED TO THE HEAD-QUARTERS OF

  LORD WELLINGTON DURING THE PENINSULAR WAR,

  FROM 1812 TO ITS CLOSE.

  EDITED

  BY SIR GEORGE LARPENT, BART.

  _THIRD EDITION._

  LONDON:
  RICHARD BENTLEY, NEW BURLINGTON STREET,
  Publisher in Ordinary to Her Majesty.

  MDCCCLIV.

  _The Author and Publisher reserve to themselves the right of
  Translating this Work._




LONDON: W. CLOWES AND SONS, STAMFORD STREET AND CHARING CROSS.




PREFACE

TO THE SECOND EDITION.


It has been very gratifying to me to witness the flattering manner
in which this Journal has been received by the Public, and, with one
exception, by the several writers who have noticed it.

As my own part in the Work is so small, the risk I ran in publishing it
was small in proportion; but I confess that I did feel anxious not to
damage the fair fame of my late brother.

The exception to which I allude is that of the Reviewer in the
“Athenæum,” a paper which (having been a subscriber to it for many
years) I hold in high estimation.

The writer must pardon me for observing (whilst fully admitting his
right to state his conscientious opinion of the work itself), that the
sneers at Mr. Larpent’s having been Fifth Wrangler, and at his _slow_
progress at the Bar, are strangely misplaced. Surely a person attached
to literature cannot seriously deprecate academic honours, or deny
their _primâ facie_ evidence of ability. And as for the _slow_ progress
in the laborious pursuit of the law, the Reviewer must have been
aware that such has been the fortune of many eminent Lawyers who have
afterwards risen to the highest honours of the profession. Legal or
political connexions, or a fortunate opportunity of displaying latent
talents, are in truth the chief causes of rapid success at the Bar.
None of these did my brother possess or obtain.

Is it not, therefore, somewhat severe to argue from this admission
of mine, that he was a person not above mediocrity, and to represent
him as merely a respectable sort of second-rate plodding official?
The writer in the “Athenæum” may have had peculiar opportunities of
judging, and it is not for me to contest the opinion he may have
thus formed, but it certainly was not the opinion of my brother’s
contemporaries. The observations of the writer in the “Athenæum”
involve also charges of more importance than his remarks upon my
brother’s abilities—

“We see,” he says, “in the sweeping and unqualified charges against the
soldiers of England, Scotland, and Ireland, the censorious habits of
one who filled the post of Judge-Advocate General, and the passage,” he
adds, “comes with bad grace from one who narrates his own discomforts
_ad nauseam_.”

I had allowed every passage to stand which expressed the opinion of
the Author upon public matters, nor did I expunge those complaints of
personal inconveniences which a man, for the first time placed in my
brother’s situation, naturally feels, and as naturally describes in his
letters to his family.

It has been too much the fashion to garble such Journals to suit the
public taste; but my aim was to give the truth, and the whole truth, of
all that my brother witnessed and described in his Journal.

This rather uncommon fidelity is, I believe, one of the chief merits of
the work, and one of the chief causes of its success.

If my brother, in commenting upon the want of selfcontrol and
irregular habits and propensities of the British soldiery (defects
which the Duke’s own Despatches, his proclamation upon the retreat from
Burgos, and the uniform testimony of the writers upon the Peninsular
War unfortunately confirm), had omitted to notice their many redeeming
qualities, he might have been partly open to the rebuke of the writer
alluded to; but throughout his narrative Mr. Larpent bears the
strongest testimony to the undaunted courage, the immoveable steadiness
of the British soldiers under the severest fire, and the perfect
reliance the Duke always placed upon the bravery of his army.

The truth is, that the conscription in France forced into the ranks of
its army a more intelligent and more intellectual class of persons than
those who volunteered into our service.

Thus the moral conduct of the French soldier was perhaps more correct;
but the stubborn courage, the _pluck_, if I may use such an expression,
of the British soldier, guided by officers taken from the _élite_ of
our gentry, and almost fastidiously alive to the sense of honour and of
duty, enabled them in the Peninsula, at Waterloo, and wherever British
troops have been called into action, to maintain a decided superiority
over their opponents.

It has been remarked, that I have never mentioned the lady to whom
these Letters were addressed.

She was my much honoured and loved mother; but I deprived myself of the
pleasure of noticing her many excellent qualities, lest it should be
thought that, in praising her, I sought to confer credit upon myself,
or to gratify my own vanity.

She was the daughter of Sir James Porter, in his day a distinguished
diplomatist, successively employed in the Netherlands and Germany,
and for many years ambassador to the Ottoman Porte. She married my
father when my brother was very young, and became a second mother
to him. There never was the slightest distinction between him and
her own children, and had we not been told that we were by different
mothers, we should never have known the fact from her conduct. That she
possessed my brother’s warmest affections, these letters would have
abundantly shown, had I not thought it better to omit many passages,
which, however gratifying to her to whom they were addressed, could be
of no interest to the public.

  GEORGE LARPENT.

 LONDON, JUNE, 1853.




PREFACE

TO THE FIRST EDITION.


The Letters now laid before the Public were addressed by my brother to
Mrs. Larpent, his step-mother, and my mother.

They came into my possession as Executor to my mother, and being also
the sole Executor to my brother, I consider myself at liberty to use my
own discretion in publishing them. With the exception of some matters
exclusively private, and connected with family affairs, the letters are
published as they were written, and not one word has been added.

Until the lamented death of the Duke of Wellington I did not feel
myself justified in making these letters public. Not that they contain
anything in the slightest degree derogating from the exalted estimate
so universally entertained of the character of that great man; for, on
the contrary, they tend to confirm the unanimous opinion entertained of
his admirable qualities; but motives of delicacy forbad my offering to
the world, during his Grace’s lifetime, the many personal anecdotes and
opinions with which they abound.

The reader will naturally expect to know who and what the Author was,
and give credit accordingly to the statements and observations in his
Letters.

Francis Seymour Larpent was the eldest son of John Larpent, Esq.,
of East Sheen, Surrey, by his first wife, Frances, daughter of
Maximilian Western, Esq., of Cokethorpe Park, Oxfordshire. His father,
from his earliest youth, was employed in the public service. In
1763 he was Secretary to the Duke of Bedford at the Peace of Paris,
and subsequently Secretary to the first Marquess of Hertford, when
Lord-Lieutenant of Ireland. For many years he was in the office of the
Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs, and at his death in 1824, at a
very advanced age, held the appointments of Secretary to the Lord Privy
Seal, and of Examiner of all Theatrical Entertainments.

Francis Seymour was born in 1776. He was educated at Cheam School,
under the Rev. W. Gilpin, well known and esteemed as a scholar and
man of letters. From school he went to St. John’s College, Cambridge,
where he distinguished himself, and took his degree as Fifth Wrangler,
and was elected Fellow of that College. After studying the law under
an eminent special pleader, Mr. Bayley, he was called to the Bar, and
went the Western Circuit. Here he formed friendships with several
eminent persons, among others with Lord Gifford, the Right Hon. C.
Manners Sutton, afterwards Lord Canterbury, Mr. W. Adam, son of Lord
Commissioner Adam, and the lamented Francis Horner—friendships which
were extinguished only by death. His success upon the Circuit was slow,
but his character as an able man and a sound lawyer stood high.

In 1812 he was tempted by the Right Hon. C. Manners Sutton, then
Judge-Advocate General, to leave his profession, and to accept the
situation of Judge-Advocate General to the armies in Spain under the
command of the late Duke of Wellington, to remain at head-quarters with
his Grace, and to manage the Courts-martial throughout the army.

At the close of the war in 1814, Mr. Larpent returned home with the
last detachment of the British army from Bordeaux.

Upon his arrival in England he was appointed Judge-Advocate at
Gibraltar; and a new Charter of Justice for that dependency having
been framed, various civil, admiralty, and judicial duties were
annexed to the appointment of Judge-Advocate. Whilst the new Charter
was preparing, Mr. Larpent was appointed to carry on the proceedings
of the Court-martial on General Sir John Murray, at Winchester; and
was subsequently joined with Mr. King, on behalf of the Government
of the United States of America, in the inquiry into the unfortunate
transactions which had taken place in the prison at Dartmoor.

These several proceedings having been satisfactorily terminated, Mr.
Larpent in the spring of 1815 was, at the recommendation of Lord
Commissioner Adam, selected by His Royal Highness the Prince Regent
to undertake the delicate and confidential duty of inquiring into
the allegations of improper conduct abroad, on the part of the then
Princess of Wales, afterwards Queen Caroline. This confidential mission
was accepted by Mr. Larpent, upon the express condition that his
appointment should emanate directly from the Administration, and that
his duties (to use his own words) “should consist not in acting a spy
upon the actions of Her Royal Highness the Princess of Wales, but in
examining and sifting the facts of the case, as stated and discovered
by others.”

On this understanding, and after interviews with Lords Liverpool,
Castlereagh, and Bathurst, and also with the approval of Lord Chief
Justice Ellenborough, Mr. Larpent proceeded ostensibly to his
appointment at Gibraltar, but really overland by Vienna, to see
and consult with Count Munster, to whom he was accredited by the
British Government “as its regularly-authorized, though secret and
confidential, agent.”

However strong might be his own persuasion of the worse than improper
conduct of the Princess, he felt the extreme difficulty of obtaining
respectable parties to come forward with such evidence as would satisfy
an English Court of Justice; and he never hesitated to represent the
danger of taking public proceedings against her. Having conducted
his mission with such prudence and discretion that its object was
never known except to his employers, he proceeded to Gibraltar, and
there executed his arduous civil and judicial duties to the entire
satisfaction of the Governor, Sir George Don, and of the Secretary of
State for the Colonies.

In 1820, upon leaving Gibraltar, he was again employed by the
Government professionally in Italy upon matters connected with the
unfortunate trial of Queen Caroline; and he communicated direct with
the late Lord Gifford, upon whom, as Attorney-General, the management
of the proceedings against Her Majesty officially devolved.

In 1821 Mr. Larpent was appointed by Lord Liverpool, one of the
Commissioners of the Board of Audit of the Public Accounts. In 1824 he
was transferred to the Board of Customs; and, in 1826, was appointed
to the situation of Chairman of the Audit Board, in which he remained
until his retirement, in 1843, from ill health.

He enjoyed his release from active official duties only about two
years, dying in May, 1845. He was twice married; first, to Catharine,
daughter of the late Frederick Reeves, Esq., of the East India
Company’s Civil Service; and, secondly, to Charlotte, daughter to
George Arnold Arnold, Esq., of Halsted Park, Kent, who survived him,
but he left no issue by either.

The favourable opinion entertained of Mr. Larpent’s public services
will be evident from the following testimonials which he received when
he applied to Her Majesty’s Government for his retirement, viz.:—

  (Copy.)      No. 1.

  _Treasury Chambers,
  23rd March, 1843._

  SIR,

 I am commanded by the Lords Commissioners of Her Majesty’s Treasury
 to acquaint you that, the First Lord of the Treasury having
 communicated to the Board your wish to retire from the Board of Audit,
 their Lordships have been pleased to accede thereto, and will give
 directions for placing you on a retired allowance of 900_l._ per
 annum, to be paid to you in the same manner as the retired allowances
 of the Audit Office are paid.

 In thus acceding to your wishes, my Lords desire me to state, that
 they feel themselves called upon to express the high sense which they
 entertain of the integrity, zeal, and ability with which you have
 discharged the duties of the important situations which you have
 successively filled, and the deep regret which they feel for the cause
 which now compels you to retire from the Chair of the Board of Audit.

  I am, Sir,
  Your most obedient Servant,
  (Signed)      G. CLERK.

  _To F. S. Larpent, Esq._

  (Extract.)      No. 2.

  _Downing Street,
  March 3rd, 1843._

  MY DEAR SIR,

 I have learnt with great regret that we are about to lose your
 services in the Audit Board, over which you have so long presided,
 with equal advantage to the public and satisfaction to the Treasury.
 I only hope that you will reap in the improvement of your health a
 benefit equal to that which your retirement will deprive you of.

  (Signed)      HENRY GOULBURN.

  _To F. S. Larpent, Esq._

  (Copy.)      No. 3.

  _London, February 28th, 1843._

 F. M. the Duke of Wellington presents his compliments to Mr. Larpent,
 and has received his letter, and sends him a copy of a letter he has
 received from Sir Robert Peel. The Duke regrets much to learn that the
 state of Mr. Larpent’s health compels him to resign the office which
 he holds. If referred to, he will state his opinion of the services
 performed by him, while under his command.

  _To F. S. Larpent, Esq._

  _Enclosure in the above Letter._

 (Copy.)

  _Whitehall, February 27th, 1843._

  MY DEAR DUKE OF WELLINGTON,

 I return the enclosed letter addressed to you by Mr. Larpent.

 I am sorry to hear that the state of Mr. Larpent’s health induced him
 to contemplate his retirement from the public service.

  (Signed)      ROBERT PEEL.

  _To the Duke of Wellington_,
  _&c._    _&c._

  (Copy.)      No. 4.

  _Whitehall, March 3rd, 1843._

  DEAR SIR,

 From my high sense of your public services, I have heard with very
 sincere regret, on public as well as on private grounds, that the
 state of your health compels you to contemplate the immediate
 retirement from the important appointment which you hold, the duties
 of which you have discharged with great ability and integrity, and
 with unremitting zeal.

 I have been so incessantly occupied by important public business, that
 I have been unable, since the receipt of your letter, to confer with
 the Chancellor of the Exchequer on the subject to which the enclosure
 in your letter refers, but I will do so without delay, and with every
 desire to take as favourable a view of it as the state of the law and
 the usage in similar cases may permit,

  I have the honour to be,
  Dear Sir,
  Your obedient and faithful Servant,
  (Signed)     ROBERT PEEL.

  _To F. S. Larpent, Esq._

  (Extract.)      No. 5.

  _March 22nd, 1845._

  _60, Lower Belgrade Street._

 I shall feel it due to Mr. Larpent to say at what rate I placed his
 services.

 Never public servant deserved better his hard-earned retirement by
 honest, zealous, and able services.

  (Signed)       F. BARING.

       *       *       *       *       *

I rejoice in having the opportunity afforded me by the publication of
these Letters, of recording the public services of an affectionate
brother, and of indulging in the remembrance of the many private
virtues which were conspicuous in his upright and honourable career.

I have thought it objectionable to alter the language of the narrative,
although aware of the many inaccuracies in letters written in the hurry
of a campaign (a mode of life foreign to the writer’s habits), and not
intended for publication.

I therefore determined to leave the Letters as I found them, thinking
that the simplicity of the style and the minute details threw over the
Journal a charm of truth and reality which a more studied composition
would not have possessed. I have a confident reliance that my brother
has related nothing that he did not himself believe to be true, for
he was a man of scrupulous veracity, and one not given hastily to
record what he had not at the time sufficient warranty to believe to be
correct.

The Journal carries the reader, as it were, behind the scenes in the
great drama of War. The sufferings of individuals, the hardships
endured in a campaign, are scarcely ever recorded by the historian—they
are lost in the blaze of glory which surrounds such narratives. In
this Journal not only will be seen the miseries which are endured in
the attainment of military glory by the soldier, but the still greater
miseries of the unfortunate people whose country is the scene of
military operations.

Such vivid paintings as are here exhibited must, it is to be hoped,
make the most reckless politician and the most ambitious soldier aware
of the deep responsibility incurred by all who encourage the passion
for military glory, except when war becomes absolutely necessary for
the defence of our country, its liberties, and institutions, and for
the preservation of the independence of Europe.

It was for these objects that the two great wars in which the Duke of
Wellington was so pre-eminent were carried on, and the results—the
recovery of their national independence by Spain and Portugal, and a
peace of thirty-eight years’ duration—fully warranted the sacrifices
made by Great Britain, exalted her national character, and justified
her admiration of the Commander, who, under Providence, was the great
instrument of her success.

  GEORGE LARPENT.

 LONDON, DECEMBER, 1852.




CONTENTS.


  PAGE

  CHAPTER I.

  Departure from England—Exercises on Ship-board—Off the Coast—Arrival
  at Lisbon—Residence there—Journey to head-quarters
  commenced—Abrantes—General features of the march—Salamanca           1


  CHAPTER II.

  Arrival at head-quarters—Ciudad Rodrigo—The Retreat—Its
  disasters—Capture of General Paget—Personal Anecdotes—Scarcity of
  Provisions—Courts-martial in the army—Business of a
  Judge-Advocate—Wellington                                           21


  CHAPTER III.

  Arrival of the Gazette—More Courts-martial—The Mad
  Commissary—Intentions of Lord Wellington—Social
  Amusements—Sporting—Wellington’s fox-hounds—His stud—A dinner at
  the Commander-in-Chief’s—Number of Courts-martial—Anecdotes of
  Wellington                                                          37


  CHAPTER IV.

  More Courts-martial—Bal Masqué—Anecdotes of Wellington—Songs in
  his praise—Spanish banditti—Excesses of the Army—Carnival—More
  Anecdotes of the Duke—The staff—Grand entertainment at
  head-quarters—Wellington’s opinion of affairs at home—Murder of an
  officer—General Craufurd                                            54


  CHAPTER V.

  News of the French—Castilian costume—Equipment of the army—Melancholy
  Court-martial case—Wellington in the battle of Fuentes
  d’Onore—The chances of war—Anecdotes of Wellington—His opinions
  of the war—The new Mutiny Act—Wellington on “Vetus”—General
  Murray—Advance of the French                                        87


  CHAPTER VI.

  Newspaper complaints—Wellington’s comments—Review of the
  Portuguese—Gatherings at head-quarters—Reviews—Recommencement of
  the march—The route                                                106


  CHAPTER VII.

  The march commenced—Scenes on the road—Villa Dalla—Toro—Castro
  Monte—Palencia—Prospects of a general action—Skirmishing—Massa     121


  CHAPTER VIII.

  March continued—Quintana—Anecdote of Wellington—Morillas—Vittoria—The
  battle—Its results—Plunder—Kindness to the enemy—Madame
  de Gazan—The hospital—Sufferings of the wounded—Estimated
  loss                                                               150


  CHAPTER IX.

  Pamplona—Pursuit of Clausel—Wellington on the march—Prospects of
  more Fighting—Effects of the war—The French position turned—Anecdote
  of Wellington—Ernani—St. Sebastian—Wellington’s movements          166


  CHAPTER X.

  Movements of the army—Wellington on the Portuguese—His personal
  habits—St. Sebastian—The siege—Miseries of war—Wounded officers—The
  Prince of Orange—Vestiges of the retreat—English papers—False
  accounts of the campaign—Incidents of the war                      195


  CHAPTER XI.

  Rejoicings for the victory—Sufferings of Cole’s division—Complaints
  of the French—Statements of a French prisoner—Decay of
  Spain—Characteristics of Wellington—His opinion of
  Bonaparte—Prospects of a renewal of the attack—Exchange of
  Prisoners—Wellington’s Spanish estate—His opinion of
  Picton—Disposition of the army                                     220


  CHAPTER XII.

  Reported renewal of operations against St. Sebastian—Effects of the
  war on Spain and Portugal—Wellington’s account of recent
  proceedings—Courts-martial—Prisoners shot—Discussions on war between
  Wellington and a French deserter—The siege resumed—Work of the heavy
  batteries—Trial of General O’Halloran—Volunteers for the storming
  parties                                                            238


  CHAPTER XIII.

  The Author taken prisoner—Kind treatment by the French General—Life
  of a prisoner—Release—Details of the Author’s captivity—Curious
  scene at General Pakenham’s—A Basque squire                        250


  CHAPTER XIV.

  Picturesque quarters—Spanish reverses—A strange adventure—Spanish
  jealousy—Distribution of the army—A pleasant companion—News
  from the North—Morale of the French army—The artillery             276


  CHAPTER XV.

  Fall of Pamplona—Deterioration of the army—Duke of York’s
  orders—Orders of merit—Church service—Capture of French
  redoubts—March of the army—Incidents of foreign service—Frequency
  of desertion—Wellington and the lawyers                            289


  CHAPTER XVI.

  News from France—Lord Fitzroy Somerset—Departure of the Prince of
  Orange—Exchange of prisoners—Proximity of the two armies—Wellington’s
  cooks—Warlike movements—French attack—The Guards—Deserters—More
  fighting                                                           308


  CHAPTER XVII.

  French attack—Plan of desertion—Excesses of the French—A Basque
  witness—Sir John Hope—Movements of the army—Sale of
  effects—Wellington’s simplicity of character—A French emigré—Return
  of Soult to Bayonne                                                323


  CHAPTER XVIII.

  Reports from France—More desertion—Anecdote of General
  Stewart—Wellington and his casualty returns—The courtesies of
  war—Scarcity of transports—Wellington and the trial-papers—Sir
  G. Collier                                                         339


  CHAPTER XIX.

  Rumours of war—The rival dinner tables—“Slender Billy”—Bonaparte’s
  trickery—Spanish violence—Wellington with the hounds—French
  and English aspects—The outsides of the nations                    352


  CHAPTER XX.

  State of feeling in France—Rocket practice—The Prince Regent’s
  hobby—The Mayor’s ball—The flag-of-truce                           362


  CHAPTER XXI.

  Army supplies—Offending villages—Symptoms of work—Arrival of the
  Duke d’Angoulême—The bridge across the Adour—Wellington and
  his Chief Engineer—His activity                                    377


  CHAPTER XXII.

  Movements of the army—Narrow escape of Wellington—Anecdote of
  Wellington at Rodrigo—Novel scaling ladders—Sir Alexander
  Dickson—Wellington’s vanity—Operations resumed—Spanish officers—The
  passage of the Adour—The road to Bayonne—Death of Captain Pitts    400


  CHAPTER XXIII.

  Passage of the river—Start for Orthes—Effect of the battle—Feelings
  of the French—Wellington wounded—St. Sever—Church and
  School—Aire—Wellington on the conduct of the Allies—Indurating
  effects of War                                                     417


  CHAPTER XXIV.

  Reports from the seat of war—The Duke d’Angoulême—The German
  cavalry—Misconduct of the Spaniards—Attacks on our grazing
  parties—Movement of head-quarters—Death of Colonel Sturgeon—Visit to
  the hospital—New quarters—Skirmishes—Wellington and the mayor      436


  CHAPTER XXV.

  Difficulties of the march—Failure of the bridge of boats—The
  Garonne—Excesses of Murillo’s corps—Bad news—Exchange of
  prisoners—Arrival before Toulouse—A prisoner of war—Anecdote of
  Wellington                                                         452


  CHAPTER XXVI.

  Uncertain intelligence—Capture of Toulouse—Wellington at the
  theatre—The “Liberator”—Ball at the Prefecture—The feelings of the
  French—Soult and Suchet—Ball at the Capitole                       478


  CHAPTER XXVII.

  Toulouse—Its churches—Protestant service—Libraries—Reception of the
  Duke d’Angoulême—The French Generals—Popularity of Wellington      501


  CHAPTER XXVIII.

  Toulouse—Mr. Macarthy’s Library—The Marquess of Buckingham—General
  Hope—Wellington’s dukedom—The theatre—A romantic
  story—Feeling towards the English—The Duke on the Russian
  cavalry                                                            523


  CHAPTER XXIX.

  Preparations for departure—Bordeaux—Imposition on the
  English—Greetings from the Women—Mausoleum of Louis XVI.           541


  CHAPTER XXX.

  The opera-house—The cathedral—The synagogue—A Jewish wedding—Strange
  show-house—Wellington and King Ferdinand                           553


  CHAPTER XXXI.

  Country Fêtes—Brawls with the French—The Duke
  d’Angoulême—Mademoiselle Georges—The Actress and the Emperor—French
  acting and French audiences—Presentation of a sword to Lord
  Dalhousie—Georges’ benefit—Departure                               566


  APPENDIX                                                           579




PRIVATE JOURNAL,

&c. &c.




CHAPTER I.

 Departure from England—Exercises on Ship-board—Off the
 Coast—Arrival at Lisbon—Residence there—Journey to Head-quarters
 commenced—Abrantes—General features of the March—Salamanca.


  H. M. S. _Vautour_, off Mondego Bay,
  Sept. 14, 1812. Monday.

  MY DEAR M——,

It was very fortunate that I kept to my post at the George Inn, at
Portsmouth; for at seven in the morning of Saturday the 5th I was
called from my bed by the Admiral, who told me that, in consequence
of the news from Madrid, he had received orders to send a ship of war
after the _Pylades_, to endeavour to prevent her landing the money
she had carried out to Oporto, and to direct her captain to take it
on to Lisbon. He told me that, if I could get ready and on board
immediately, I might accompany him. Accordingly, soon after nine
o’clock I was on board His Majesty’s ship the _Vauteur_, or _Vautour_,
or _Vulture_, a fast-sailing brig of sixteen guns—fourteen carronades,
twenty-four pounders, and two long nines; the only remaining trophy
in our Navy of the glorious expedition to the Scheldt! The Captain, a
most open-hearted, friendly man, by name Lawless, is a native of the
south of Ireland. The vessel is an excellent sailer, and the whole
in good order, with a fine crew of a hundred and five men; but the
accommodations are very small, as all is made for use, and nothing for
convenience or ornament. The Captain’s cabin, about ten feet by twelve,
he shared with me. One of us hung up a cot on each side at night, and
we lived there when these cots were removed in the daytime; there was
no opening but the hatches at top, no windows at all. I had, however,
what was most material, a most friendly, kind reception, and shared
every comfort the Captain was possessed of. This consisted of a joint
daily, generally fresh, good wine and brandy, vegetables, and, up to
this day, good bread, great attention, and a thorough welcome.

_Friday the 11th._—At eleven o’clock precisely, as our timepieces and
observations had indicated, we sighted Spain; and had the additional
amusement of good charts, and maps, and telescopes, to examine the
coasts, besides assisting in the observations on deck, and watching all
that was going on. The scene was one of constant activity during the
voyage, not a moment’s idleness; the sails were mended; the masts were
repaired; the deck was caulked, and made water-tight for the winter;
the winter rigging was made ready; the sides of the ship painted. All
this, besides the usual routine duty of the ship, was done whenever
there was smooth water. One fine calm evening the Captain amused me
with a sham-fight, and put the men through their exercises; first at
one set of the guns, then at the other; marines and all were at work.
He showed me also the effect of a long shot and a grape shot from the
carronades in the water. These occupations, with a little reading and
writing, preparatory to my land journey, filled up the days until dark,
when we took to our cots. We first made the land off Cape Adrian, half
way between Cape Ortegal and Cape Finisterre, and got in close to the
Sisarga Island, about one o’clock on Friday the 11th. We then coasted
close in shore all the way to Cape Finisterre, which we reached at
dark: the shore is very bold and fine, but with a barren aspect, and
the appearance of an inhospitable and almost uninhabited land. The
high tracts towards Corunna, and perhaps about Ferrol, were only just
visible at first; but from Sisarga to Finisterre we saw them about as
plainly as we should have done on shore.

_Saturday 12th._—This morning we found ourselves close off Cape
Saliers, having passed Vigo Bay in the night. Thence we slowly crept
along shore all that day in sight of the country, buildings, &c., until
we arrived at dark within about twelve miles of Oporto, off Villa de
Condé. The country is very beautiful and picturesque, nearly as bold
as the former, but very much built over, dotted with many villages
and detached houses, and verdant with much wood; all externally very
loveable and delightful. Monte Santa Tecla, at the entrance of Minho,
is an imposing object, and the whole coast interesting, especially
from Viana to Oporto, and most of all about Villa de Condé and Oporto.
Condé is a handsome-looking town, well situated, with several large
good-looking houses, and an aqueduct, reaching nearly three miles I
should think, parallel to the shore, through two villages to the hills.
The hills were well wooded, and many houses, villas, &c., covered their
sides: whether the aqueduct was still in use we could not discover; but
I saw no breaks in it as I viewed it through the glass. We made signals
to the pilots to come out from Oporto on Saturday evening, but were too
far off to be observed; and from the fear of an accident, though within
ten miles, were obliged to stand off all night, and try to keep our
place.

_Sunday the 13th._—Still abreast of Condé, and having no wind, the
whole day getting near to Oporto. Several fishermen came on board from
the boats around. They all agreed that the _Pylades_ had not been at
Oporto—tidings which delighted the Captain; but upon the Consul’s boat
coming off at a signal, when we got near the bar in the evening, we
found that the _Pylades_ had been off the bar three nights before, just
the time she sailed before us at Portsmouth, and had landed General
Oswald, the medical men, and the money at nine o’clock at night,
and had gone on; and that the money was on its way to the army. We,
therefore, put right about again, and got about ten miles from the bar
of Oporto, which we had heard roaring many miles off, before dark. Last
night we were again becalmed, and at twelve to-day (the 14th) we were
only in Mondego Bay, near the spot where the _Apollo_, and forty of her
convoy, were lost in 1804. Here we met a wind right a-head, and have
been beating out ever since. At three it shifted a little, and we are
now returning, and hope to clear Mondego Point and get in sight of the
Burlingas before dark to-night. From about ten miles below Oporto, near
Aveiro, to the Mondego highlands, the coast is flat, and we have only
seen in Mondego Bay sand-hills and a few huts, and have only heard the
surf roaring at a distance of nearly ten miles. We are now about fifty
miles from the Burlingas and about ninety from Lisbon, and hope to be
there to-morrow.

Our officers are, the Captain, Lawless; first lieutenant, Soper; the
second lieutenant, a fine, stout Irishman, who has amused me much, by
recounting the escapes of his past life.

_Tuesday 15th, 12 o’clock._—Still about twenty miles from Mondego
Point. Marshal Beresford, who is lying at Oporto badly wounded, sent
out to ask for a passage to Lisbon on board our vessel; and it was
arranged that we were to fire two guns if we could accommodate him:
but the Captain was not able to do so in his small cabin, even if we
had both given up our berths, which we would cheerfully have done. It
was fortunate, however, he did not come on board, as he would have
passed three miserable nights if he had made trial of our scanty
accommodation.

_Lisbon, September 17th._—Two more nights out becalmed—one, off Mondego
Bay; and another, off the rock of Lisbon. We got in here this morning
at seven o’clock, and have been all the morning running about the
town. The view at the entrance into the harbour is very beautiful. We
anchored at dusk off Cascaes Fort last night. The General, Peacock, has
given me quarters at the Marquis d’Abrantes’, and to-day I dine with
the General. It is said that there is a great mortality in the army;
the officers sickly, and a great want of money.

_Lisbon, September 20th, 1812._—I have now been three days in this
town, which resembles the description of certain ladies whom I have
a right to suppose to be within your knowledge, for I think they are
described in the Bible, and in other good books which you study—all
outside show, except in the state apartments of a few individuals,
which are certainly very magnificent. Streets very offensive, palaces
by the side of ruins, and sometimes even the palaces in a state of
partial decay, though in other parts stately and magnificent in their
architectural proportions. Everywhere there is an aspect of extreme
poverty side by side with some showy indications of wealth; and it
is evident that among the lower classes impostors are as plentiful
as mosquitos. The heat is extreme—worse than I found it at Paris in
August 1802. The evenings, however, are cool, and near the water
the breezes are refreshing. They congratulate me, indeed, on the
comparative mildness of the season, which is favourable for my journey
to head-quarters, which are at Dulmas, in advance of Valladolid.

On landing, I proceeded immediately to General Peacock, the commanding
officer, who received me with great civility, and I dined with him that
day. As to forwarding me to the army, it appears all that he can do is
to give me a route, which will procure me at different stations (though
at times two or three days distant from each other), rations for bread
and forage, as there are depôts at intervals of from one to three days’
journey all the way. I shall have to purchase two mules and two horses.
The price of horses is high; on an average, two hundred and twenty
dollars each. Captain C——, of the staff here, has offered to go to the
fair with me on Tuesday to buy cattle and all other necessaries for my
journey. There is no route except by Ciudad Rodrigo, and, therefore,
though it is said that head-quarters may be at Madrid before my
arrival, I shall be compelled to go that way. Baron Quintilla was not
in town. The Envoy asked me to dinner immediately to his country-house
at Benefica, and was extremely civil to me, remarking that mine was
not a common letter of introduction. He asked me again yesterday, but
being unwell, I declined the flattering invitation. He also offered to
carry me in his suite to a bull-fight, twelve miles off; but as this
would detain me from Sunday to Tuesday, and interfere with my whole
plan, I am obliged reluctantly to forego the amusement. I am not here
for my pleasure. When I arrived at the Envoy’s he was absent, and I had
a _tête-à-tête_ with General Abadia, who is here on his way to Cadiz,
where he is to take a high official position. He appeared a clever man,
but I understand his loyalty to Ferdinand is doubtful, for a letter
addressed to him by his wife, who is with the French, inquiring when he
would fulfil his promise of joining their party, has been intercepted.

This may be all a trick, but there is something suspicious about it. He
blamed us very much, charging us with having made two great blunders,
in not seizing Santona, by troops from England, and securing that river
communication and post to land all our men in, instead of Lisbon; and
also in not allowing the Sicilian expedition to seize Tortosa, and
maintain a post on that river, the most important and most annoying to
Soult. He spoke in high terms of Lord Wellington, but seemed to think
that the fate of Europe depends upon the conduct of Russia in this
conjuncture.

The idea seems now to be, that Soult, Suchet, and Joseph have formed
a junction. They have above sixty thousand effective men; and it is
added, that the French now have their old position on the Ebro always
in their power. General Carrier was brought in here a prisoner on
Thursday, from Salamanca: he had five wounds, which are nearly healed,
but he thought he should lose a finger. He came in to the General
whilst I dined there. He seemed to be out of spirits, but said that
Marmont was nearly well, and would resume his command. The French, I
hear, are intrenched near Burgos.

I have obtained quarters at the _casa_ of the Marquesa d’Abrantes, a
good situation, and a lieutenant-colonel’s quarters. Her husband is a
prisoner in France. I have a separate door, which leads away to four
small rooms to the street; bare walls, painted with military trophies,
and the whole kept as quarters. In these I have two tables, a dozen
chairs, a bedstead, a mattress, a worked flounced quilt, some fine
sheets, but, of course, no blankets. At first we had nothing else;
but I have now got a silver basin and ewer, some knives and forks,
and a supply of water. These apartments might easily be made very
comfortable. The state rooms of this house, looking over about an acre
of garden (which is open to the public), are very handsome. As the
marquesa lost her mother last week, about twenty cabriolets a-day have
brought visitors to pay respects, &c., and about a hundred and fifty
beggars to receive their alms. By the way, the English have caused
everything here to become very dear. The churches are gaudy, and in
some respects not a little ridiculous, but still, to my mind, nothing
like so trumpery, absurd, and indeed indecorous in every respect as
those in Flanders, and in some parts of Switzerland and Piedmont. The
Roman Catholics here certainly have the appearance of devotion, and
seem more in earnest, much more so than in France, and more so than in
any country I have seen.

_Lisbon, September 23rd, 1812._—I was at the fair, in the heat of the
sun, all yesterday, and have bought two small mules, one small horse,
and have agreed for another, a small pony, to carry me. The fair has
knocked me up as well as my man Henry. I have been all this day with
Captain C——, almost my only friend here, at market, bargaining for
travelling necessaries. Commissary P—— will lend me one public mule;
so now I hope I am equipped as far as that goes. The General offers
to send me with the next treasure, which goes nobody knows when; but
refuses me two soldiers to go with me, though it is said that it is
really dangerous to go without them.

_Lisbon, September 26th, 1812, Saturday._—Though in a constant fever
from fleas and mosquitos, we should have started yesterday with some
treasure, but my servant Henry could not stir, and my Portuguese
servant took himself off at eight in the morning. I have now got a
German deserter as servant instead of the Portuguese; and trust he will
not carry on the old game, and desert with my baggage. He is said to
speak a little English and Portuguese, and know the country well.

_Sunday._—For one day more I have postponed my journey, intending to
start with some treasure and two officers on Tuesday. The Opera-house
here is a dull, heavy building, about the size of the Haymarket
Opera-house; but the dancing more like Sadler’s Wells than the Opera
in England: great activity and force in the buffo style like comic
masks—this appears to be the favourite style here. Macbeth was turned
into a pantomine; the death and dagger scene very fine, but the whole
effect marred by the mummery of fantastic dancing and skipping witches.
I have not had time to see any thing except Lisbon, and the aqueduct:
the latter work certainly fine, but not of an attractive shape. Round
arches would have had a better effect, and the piers want evenness and
regularity; nevertheless it is a work worthy of the Romans. I contrived
to-day to go to Belem church, a very fine specimen of arabesque, the
best thing I have seen here; in style it is between the Saxon and
Antique, with a little Gothic intermixed, the ornaments beautiful and
in high preservation.

_Abrantes, October 6th, 1812._—A day’s halt here enables me to write to
you. I left Lisbon on the 30th September, by two o’clock, with my sick
party, and thence eight miles to Saccavem in about three hours. The
road to Saccavem and nearly to Villa Franca is fine; and, except that
there are no trees besides olive-trees, which appear like apple-trees
at a distance, and no verdure, the river and country are picturesque.

On the second night we reached Villa Franca, sixteen miles; the third
night, Agembiga twelve; the fourth, Santarem sixteen. The positions
and accounts in our gazettes made this route interesting, but the road
itself is dull and sandy. Suppose a few olive-trees and firs on Bagshot
Heath, and you have the scene. Saccavem and Santarem are both fine
positions for appearance, and the latter for defence. All the towns are
half in ruins, as well as almost all the single houses on the road to
this place. On the fifth day we reached Galegao, sixteen miles; on the
sixth, Punhete, twelve miles; on the seventh, Abrantes, eight miles.
I am now eighty-eight miles from Lisbon. From Galegao to Abrantes
the road runs near the river, the verdure increases, there are a few
chestnut, oranges, and larger firs, and in the spring the scenery must
be very picturesque. Abrantes, on a commanding eminence, is in a very
fine situation, and looks over much fine country. Finding my sick men
unequal to the fatigue, I applied to the officer of the treasure, and
got a soldier, a fine active Tyrolese, who does more work in an hour
than my poor creatures in a day. He cleans down the animals, waters
them, loads, &c., and as I carry his baggage for him, and give him
rather better fare, he seems to be very well pleased with the post. He
leads a mule on the road, walking at his ease: by this means I now get
off about six o’clock every morning.

The treasure-party, finding the heat made the men ill, now start at
five o’clock; still I am much better than I was when I started, and
when on the march I go quicker than the treasure, as I have easy loads.
Henry leads the first mule on horseback, the soldier walking by the
side to keep everything right, whilst I bring up the rear myself,
always on the watch, and thus have but few accidents. One of my mules
is a nice fat round fellow, who eats so much they cannot keep the
baggage from rolling off him without holding it on; another mule had a
troublesome propensity of lying down with the baggage. My Tyrolese only
speaks German, French, and a little Portuguese.

So many of the men of another treasure-party were ill, that they
halted, and then went on with us; this crowded the road and made it
more uncomfortable. Here at Abrantes we separate—they go to General
Hill. On arriving at a place, the first thing is to hunt for the _Juge
de Fores_, to procure quarters, but if there is an English commandant,
he must first be beaten up for an order, then the quarters are to be
found; sometimes those allotted are full; then another billet must be
obtained: sometimes the stables are full of kicking mules, and other
stables must be found elsewhere. At length we unload, all in one room
with four walls, a table, and a chair. Then at every third place we
have to go to the Commissary to draw rations, straw, and barley for the
animals to eat—spirits, meat, and bread for ourselves, and wood for
firing. These must sometimes be fetched from half a mile to a mile and
a half off, and be procured from roguish Portuguese under-commissaries.
Sometimes great pieces of green wood are allotted to us, which will
not burn, and we have nothing to cut it with. This, which we often
leave as not worth carriage, costs Government a large sum: a third of
the quantity, if good, would serve better. As the wood and straw we
cannot manage to take with us, we carry on barley, and buy a little
straw, or Sadran corn straw, which is the best when fresh. At first the
Portuguese were very civil at quarters, but we are now too numerous,
and many behave ill from disgust and weariness. They are now very
backward to supply anything, even when they have it, which often is
not the case. They provide a room, a lamp, water, a basin, a towel by
night, a table, a chair, and something to lie upon; some furnish very
decent beds.

Two days ago the scene changed, and it has since rained almost
incessantly. We got wet yesterday, halted to-day, and to-morrow I
probably shall start, to be soaked to the very bones. My mode of living
may interest you. I rise, then, at half-past four, take some bread,
spirits and water, and a raw egg when I can get one, or sometimes a
few grapes. When we stop to water, I eat some bread and cheese, a dear
luxury on the road, a very little country wine and water, and now and
then coffee or chocolate. In the evening, a stew (when we can get it)
comes as a treat, and then we lie down on the floor at eight o’clock in
hope of sleep—a hope more frequently fulfilled than it was at Lisbon.
Stores are all now at double price, and will soon not be procurable at
any cost.

The Commissary says we shall have six hours’ walk in the rain instead
of the sun now; and after two or three days we shall find only deserted
ruins where the French came, and we after them, last year. I hope this
is exaggeration. Windows in this great town are not to be seen even
in Colonels’ quarters, or in the best shops. This is an active, busy
place—thoroughly military. The vintage was going on as we proceeded on
the road, and we had abundance of grapes. The poor soldiers, having
three days’ rations served out at once, consume all the drink on the
first day, sell the meat to save carriage and the trouble of cooking
it, and live upon bread and grapes and water, till their next supply
comes to hand. At Santarem and here, hospitals are established as well
as at Lisbon; many fine-looking fellows, reduced to skeletons, are in
them. I have a new route to-morrow round about: first day, Garvao;
second, Nisa; third, Villa Velha; fourth, Cernados; fifth, Castello
Branco: sixteen miles, twenty miles, twelve miles, eight, and eighty.

_Sunday, Castello Branco, October 11th, 1812._—Here am I thus far
safe on my pilgrimage, and tolerably well considering all things,
for I seldom get above two or three hours’ sleep, and many nights
none at all, from noises, fleas, gnats, mosquitos, bad accommodation,
and anxiety. From Abrantes I got safely to Garvao, which is finely
situated, and the walk to it wildly beautiful. The next day I warned my
people to rise by half-past four; we loaded in the dark, but started by
daylight, and got in before the treasure to Niga. A good mattress and
clean sheets, &c., on the floor, without fleas, are genuine luxuries.
For the first time in Portugal I got six hours’ sleep. In the same
manner I started again from Niga by five o’clock, and got through two
treasure days’ journey in one to Cernados. Understanding that at Villa
Velha there were only desolate ruins, scarcely supplying a dry cover,
by starting again early yesterday from Cernados (which consists only of
one house, half of it a ruin, with a nest of ruined cottages round it),
I reached this place by ten yesterday, and thus had all the remainder
of the day to rest, and this in addition (Sunday), for the treasure
arrived only to-day.

I have thus avoided the common piggery of being all in one house at
Cernados, and a bad night at Villa Velha. By calculating distances and
time also, I have kept my men and myself dry. As the rains generally
come on hitherto after twelve in the day, and in the night, we have
only been caught in two English showers. It rained all the time we
were at Abrantes, from twelve on the day we arrived, entirely through
the following day, to about an hour before we started. All the rest
of the day was fine, rain again all the evening—the same at Niga, and
the same here also. And such rain! it would saturate anything in ten
minutes. As it is now cooler, I walk half the way, which also saves my
pony. I have here assigned to me the quarters of the Generals who pass
through. These consist of the ruin of a fine house for quarters, and a
large room with four great windows without glass, and four doors in it;
gold frames around without their looking-glasses in them, fine chairs
without bottoms, &c., &c. The house belongs to the _Illustrissimo
Signor Barao_. I have a mattress on the floor with fleas innumerable.
I have my route, and here it is: first day, Eschalas de Cimo; second,
San Miguel; third, Menoa; fourth, Sabugal; fifth, perhaps a halt;
sixth, Aldea da Ponte; seventh, Sturno; eighth, Ciudad Rodrigo. We are
to carry provisions for four days with us, then provide for three,
and start to-morrow or next day as the treasure mules are able; then
go on to Fuentes de Castelegos, Forgadilla, Calçade de Don Diego,
Salamanca. Few of these places are in Faden’s map. Nothing can be had
on the road, it is said, not even dry stabling or a dry room; and much
wet is expected. The place is finely situated on the east side of a
hill which is crowned by an old Moorish castle and walls, and a modern
monastery in ruins! It is one of the best towns we have seen, and there
are the ruins of some good houses; provisions and necessaries are to be
bought here, but at a high price. There is part of the fine episcopal
palace (where a Portuguese General is quartered), with a garden in
tolerable order, a good church, and several picturesque-looking ruined
monasteries, with crosses at every step. I have taken a few sketches
where we stop on the road, though too much occupied with business to
think much of the picturesque. Niga is also picturesque.

My adventures are all much alike. The only variety is an arrival wet
through to the skin. No one can say where we shall go to at last. I
suppose I must now proceed to Salamanca, and then something must be
determined upon. Things do not go on well at Burgos, I fear; there is
much delay, more than was expected. Lord Wellington is, it is said, not
satisfied. At Cernados a cobbler was the _Juge de Fores_, and gave us
our billets. On the walls was an excellent likeness in chalk of Lord
George Lennox, done by the shadow, I suppose from the lamp which is
allowed us. I hear of sickness everywhere; much at head-quarters. The
general orders have many more on the list of absent from sickness, than
on that of arrivals at the army. Soult is very strong. General Hill, I
believe, is still at Toledo.

Near the mountains on the other side of the Tagus is an old castle or
two, and some pleasant glimpses of fine valleys, and the deep banks
of the river which is hidden from the view. The sandy commons like
Bagshot, over which the road passes, are more bold, the hills higher,
and covered almost entirely with the gum cistus, which has a sweet
scent, but, being out of bloom in that state, is not so pleasing as our
heaths with their various colours. There is a little heath like the
Devonshire heath, and some parts of the road rather like Dartmoor. Near
Niga are seen the mountains about Elvas, and in the line to Badajoz,
and the Spanish mountains of Estremadura, The country proved to me the
merit of some of Rubens’ Spanish views, which are, like his Flemish
pictures, most correct in the character of the scenery. From Niga,
after proceeding a league, you wind down a wild Devonshire or Welsh
sort of road; first cross a small river, then the Tagus again, almost
down steps—not so bad as some wild parts of Ireland, to be sure, though
very bad for the loaded mules. Here is very little oak, underwood, some
fir, but chiefly and perpetually the gum cistus, which grows to about
four feet high. Villa Velha is a village in ruins, finely situated on
the side of a hill looking over the river. It is now nearly deserted.
The soldiers with baggage pitched a tent below the office in the
cellar. From the hills above the river, before we crossed the Tagus, we
saw Castello Branco standing high on the hill, and the Moorish ruins.
Cernados is like a Welsh village of the worst sort: rocks for streets,
ruined stone houses inhabited in part, and used for quarters. Their few
architectural large buildings alone constitute the difference between
these and the worst Welsh or Irish villages. From Cernados to this
place we again crossed a country like a large Bagshot Heath, but by a
very tolerable good road; adieu.

P.S.—The Captain has just sent me word we must start to-morrow instead
of the day after; he says that the treasure is not safe without the
serjeants. Our detachments are all foreigners; many are drunk, and have
quarrelled with the inhabitants!

_Salamanca, October, 1812._—The first day after leaving Castello
Branco, we reached Eschalo de Cimo, a pretty, and once a thriving
village, with a good church, not so much destroyed as damaged; one
handsome large house in the vicinity belonging to the Squiress, Donna
Joanna, the best rooms in which were gutted and used as quarters, the
rest inhabited by two or three families of the better kind, with some
smart misses among them. The other houses mostly in ruins, but still
some of them occupied. In this place bread was not to be bought, nor
even an onion! but we fared well, in good rooms, with good fires. On
our road thither we kept Castello Branco in sight nearly all the way;
we also saw the distant mountains in Spain and Portugal. The road was
over a sort of Dartmoor, stones, rock, sand, with fern oak a foot
high, and abundance of apples. The second day we reached San Miguel de
Cima. The same sort of village as Eschalo de Cimo, one good house for
quarters, the rest small, and generally, like the church, in ruins;
but the inhabitants were fast returning to it. Here we obtained bread,
onions, and some hay. The appearance on entering the village, with the
trees about it, very pleasant. The third day’s route was to Memoa, five
long leagues. At first a good road and picturesque country, with a very
fine view of Monsanto, with its town and castle on the right, and of
the other hills grouped with it in the distance. Pennamacor, which is
almost destroyed, we left on our right, about a mile, with its castle,
standing boldly on the side of a hill, with rock and wood around it,
and a rich-looking valley below. This is a fine situation, backed, as
we left it, by Monsanto. We also passed Pedrigoa, a large village,
nearly destroyed and deserted, and at last, after passing over a hill
by a horrible road, through an oak copse, where we had nearly lost our
way, we arrived at the heap of ruins called Memoa. This was the worst
place we had stopped at all the way. There was only one room in the
town, that only water-tight, and there were no stables. I took the
driest corner in a large common room, because there was a stable under
it.

I could see and hear everything in the stables, for the floor was
still less tight than the roof. The leg of a chair or a table, in
spite of all possible care, went two or three times through it. I got
a little hay, and slept behind a great chest, in my blanket. Three of
the natives were in the room at night. The fourth day we had three
leagues of fine road, though bad travelling, through a hilly wood of
arbutuses in bearing, and Portugal laurels in flower, heath in bloom,
a plant like the lignum vitæ, and broom. This day’s route brought us
to Sabugal, where there is generally a halt, but this our captain
declined. Sabugal stands on a hill, very finely situated, but commanded
by other hills; the way is over a bridge and river, and with a winding
road up to it. The situation is not unlike that of Ludlow; the town
very inferior in size and beauty, but picturesque. The castle itself
with its square Moorish towers, more so than Ludlow. The town is all
in ruins; not even a weather-tight room in it. I got a large sort
of barn, open in the roof in several places, with no doors, and two
large windows, without even shutters, and four others half closed. On
our road thither from Memoa we found half the body of a man, nearly a
skeleton, but with flesh and nails on the toes. It was lying on the
road, as if to scare travellers.

The market-place at Sabugal is, I think, very pretty, and everything
in it very cheap: this, indeed, was the cheapest place through which
we had passed. The fifth day we reached Aldea da Ponte, the last
Portuguese village. The road was interesting, as we passed near Fuente
Guinaldos, so long head-quarters, and Alfayetes, also head-quarters.
We passed just under Alfayetes, and saw Lord Wellington’s house on
the side of the hill, with the old castle. This place is now in
ruins, like the rest. We then passed over the plain where our cavalry
distinguished themselves in a sharp affair with the French. Aldea da
Ponte is much cleaner than the other villages.

Here we saw more pots, pans, basins, &c., than usual; these the people
desired us to make use of instead of hiding them from us, as was
generally done in Portugal. On the sixth day, we came, after a short
league, to a small village on the side of a hill, the first in Spain,
then on to two or three more, and in less than six leagues we reached
Ciudad Rodrigo. This town stands on a rise, in an undulating sort
of rough Salisbury Plain. It is two-thirds in ruins, but the public
buildings appear to have suffered comparatively little, and might,
most of them, be restored. The entrance to the town is striking. We
got an indifferent quarter in the suburbs, immediately opposite the
place where the light battalions entered. The main breach was round
the corner of our abode. The Spaniards had nearly restored these two
breaches, but from ill luck or neglect both had entirely given way,
and there must still be some months’ work before they can undo and
clear enough away to begin to rebuild again. Everything was scarce in
the town, and the people imposing and uncivil. On the seventh day we
proceeded to Brondillo, where we were obliged to stop, as there were
only two houses in Castel Legos, to which the route sent us. This was
by far our worst day’s journey; the distance was seven leagues, that
is, twenty-eight miles. It took us to accomplish this from six in the
morning to past three, of which time it rained eight hours and a half,
nearly all that time like a bad English thunder-shower of ten minutes’
duration. No coats could keep out the wet, and it was accompanied by
a strong, cold November wind, for the weather for the last week has
been as cold as an English November. We all suffered, and I have been
chilly and aguish ever since. We then, for the first time, entered a
Spanish cabin; and oh! how superior to those of Portugal! of Ireland!
of Scotland! and if I did not consider these cottages as farms and
not as cottages, I should say of England too! All neat and clean; with
pots, dishes, boilers in abundance.

The people are proud, but if treated with civility, courteous and
kind, though they are turned away from their own firesides by us
and the Portuguese three or four nights in the seven. They made us
a great fire, and did all they could for us. The women seem chatty
and merry—the men, the handsomest and best-grown, with the finest
countenances I ever saw, except perhaps in Switzerland. We met with
the same sort of treatment and kindness at the next village. The house
belonged to the priest, with whom, through the medium of some mongrel
Latin and Spanish, I managed to converse a little. These quarters are
some of the best I have had since leaving Lisbon; at Togadillo, where
the route sent us, there was only one good house.

At Robedila, a place out of the road, where we got by accident, finding
we had passed Togadillo without knowing it, all was comfort again.
This place the French occupied for some time with ten thousand men.
We arrived yesterday at Salamanca. After the first five leagues from
Ciudad Rodrigo, which were as rough as Dartmoor, we have passed through
a country like the neighbourhood of Salisbury Plain, only that the
villages were much more numerous, though several only of three or four
houses, now nearly all repaired. Not a single large, or, I believe,
two-storied house, from Ciudad Rodrigo to this place. Much of the
country now quite a fine green, but a very large part in cultivation.
The land looked good; about midway it consisted of, for five or six
leagues, clay, and knee-deep: in some places a light soil, or reddish
sand; with water up to the mules’ bellies, from the heavy rain, though
it had ceased twenty-four hours. The people have plenty of bread and
straw, but there are no shops in the villages. They only sell to oblige
each his own lodger for the night. Bread was threepence a pound—it had
been fourpence. All along this country, from St. Martin de Rio hither,
are abundance of acorns, almost as good as chestnuts; quite sweet.
The muleteers and men halt to eat them. This also gives good fires
everywhere. Horses and bones are strewed more or less along the whole
way from Lisbon. In one place, about seven leagues from Salamanca, were
thirteen heads arranged in a row, as stepping-blocks for passengers
through the water. I believe there was a little cavalry brush there.
Salamanca stands well, but in a sort of Salisbury Plain. The colleges
are destroyed, but the church is most beautiful, and the entrances much
finer than those of our cathedrals—the figures and heads very fine
indeed.

The altered Roman bridge is striking. The town is so full, principally
of sick, that I have got bad quarters, half a mile out of the town; my
direction l’Ultima Casa.

_Later, same day._—I have been again looking at the town. The great
church is very fine, and not damaged, but there are many miserable
ruins of noble colleges, some gutted, some nearly razed. The public
library has a fair supply of books, but too exclusively of sacred, or
rather ecclesiastical literature; there are, however, good classics,
French, and modern learned works, mathematics, and others: it is about
two-thirds of the size of Trinity College, Cambridge. I hope to proceed
the day after to-morrow, to Valladolid, which it is proposed to reach
in seven days. There are good shops here, and articles not dear. It is
curious to see the same effect of ages and of tastes as in England.
Below and behind the great altar of the church was some old English,
or, as we should say, Saxon architecture, that is, a rude imitation of
Greek. Then came a florid sample of Gothic, not in the best taste, but
beautifully ornamented, with screens, &c., in the style of King Charles
and King William; forced Grecian again, of two centuries back.




CHAPTER II.

 Arrival at Head-quarters—Ciudad Rodrigo—The Retreat—Its
 Disasters—Capture of General Paget—Personal Anecdotes—Scarcity
 of Provisions—Courts-martial in the Army—Business of a
 Judge-Advocate—Wellington.


  Head-quarters, Rueda, Nov. 5, 1812.

  MY DEAR M——,

At last I have arrived safely at head-quarters, as they have been kind
enough to come half-way to meet me. From Salamanca, we proceeded on
the first day to Alba de Tormes, a town in a fine situation on the
Tormes, with the remains of a castle of various dates, extensive and
picturesque; part of it, particularly the entrance staircase, very
richly ornamented. The whole was striking, and the vicinity of the town
was interesting, for here it was that the French so completely beat the
unhappy Spaniards, and put them to death by thousands, almost in cold
blood. We saw where General del Parques’ cavalry were posted, and the
positions of the French. On our road near Salamanca we also observed at
a distance, on the other side of the river, the hills where the battle
of Salamanca was fought; and our route lay in that of the pursuit
through Alba, then on to Peneranda, another good old town, and so,
through villages, to Arevalo, where we arrived in four days, tracing
men’s bones and bits of soldiers’ dress, as well as horse bones and
carcasses, on the route thither.

This country resembles Salisbury Plain, in open cultivation of
corn, and is covered very thick with neat villages, with a general
appearance of comfort. Arevalo is a large place in ruins. There are
many remains of fine richly-wooded brickwork, convents, churches,
many good houses, and the town standing very finely on a hill, nearly
surrounded by the river, which runs in a deep hollow round it, with
four or five substantial and rather picturesque bridges. Our route was
by Valladolid, where we should have been in three days, and which I
regret much not to have seen, for I hear it is second only to Madrid,
and very little damaged. Had I proceeded on the route I should have
reached Valladolid the day before the French entered it. Hearing that
the army was rapidly retiring, the road became unsafe. No one knew
where head-quarters were to be; the treasure, and my mules with it,
were consequently halted, and instructions were written for. For four
days we remained at Arevalo. The treasure party were then ordered to
Olmedo to deliver their cargo, and head-quarters were here at Rueda.
I proceeded with them to Olmedo, rather a handsome and a large town,
where I was housed in the good quarters which had been occupied by the
Prince of Orange. When I arrived here, my beasts were kept standing
loaded in the streets, and all of us without anything to eat until
past six, before I could get a quarter. The people were civil, but
I had to go to the Quarter-Master-general, Adjutant-general, to the
billet-manager, to the Military Secretary, &c. One said, “go here;”
another, “go there;” a third sent a serjeant to inquire, and then
thought no more about it.

At last I procured an indifferent quarter vacated by a Commissary, only
a shed, and holes through the floor into the cellar below. My animals,
therefore, stood all night in the entrance of the passage.

This morning, 5th, I heard of a Spanish aide-de-camp of Castanos’, who
is here, and who had three small stables close to me. I found him in
bed at nine o’clock, but he could speak French, and I persuaded him
to give me one of the stables for my four animals. Thus we are better
off to-day, and, as a favour, I have got them something to eat. I was
introduced to Lord Wellington this morning, and delivered my letters.
He was very courteous. We conversed for half an hour, and I am to dine
with him at six to-day, in full uniform. He is to send me fifty cases
against officers, to examine, in order to ascertain whether any can
be made out on evidence, which is the great difficulty. There is a
caricature here of Johnny Newcome, who makes it out till sent to the
rear rolled up in a blanket in an ox-car, creeping on at the rate of
two miles an hour to Lisbon. We are in hourly expectation of moving.
The bridges are repaired, and the French within three leagues, and able
to cross if they choose. General Hill is expected here to-day. His
forces are at Arevalo. Soult is in Madrid; whether they push on further
is to be seen.

Few reinforcements have arrived; eighteen thousand Spaniards (such
as they are) are with us. The lower classes of the people are a very
fine race in person, talents, and feelings, and vastly superior to the
Portuguese. It is very provoking that rank and prejudice render this
of no avail. The inhabitants of the town seem half French. About six
hundred French crossed over to us last night, but retired again. The
cavalry were off in the middle of the night from head-quarters. I was
alarmed for a moment, but all seems quiet this morning. The last five
days have been very fine; cold dewy mornings, but clear sunny days,
damp cold evenings, but for the time of the year here very fine. There
are very queer-looking military figures here, some English, a few
Portuguese, many more Spanish. The whole scene presents an odd medley.

_Ciudad Rodrigo, November 19, 1812._—To continue my diary from Rueda.
Two days afterwards, the 7th, an order to march at four in the morning
came, as soon as Hill’s army was within reach. I then first saw what
it was to put seventy thousand men in motion, about ten thousand
public, and a greater number of private mules, horses, &c. At five we
started, and about two that day I reached head-quarters. Torricello
by four o’clock. At five next morning started again for Petueja. Here
the head-quarters had only thirty houses for one hundred and fifty
officers. Lord Wellington and the Prince of Orange had only one room
each. I was ordered a league in advance, where I found Castanos, who
had come in for better quarters. He sent me on another half-league, but
when a mile on the road he passed me, as he had heard that the next
was the best quarter. So I returned, and at three o’clock got a little
hole and a stable. About five came in about three thousand Spanish
troops. Half my house was down in a moment for firing, and nearly all
the owner’s property, pans, dishes, straw, &c., stolen. I secured mine,
which was attacked, by swallowing a mouthful and packing up and keeping
guard. The remainder of the house was also saved; and, by the help of
a Spanish officer, who took a fancy to the kitchen fire, the house
was cleared with fist and foot. My animals were not safe, as my man
heard one soldier say he would have one before morning. I saved them
by putting them in a row in the passage close to me, where they stood
for the night. Fires all round us; noises of all kinds; people breaking
in. There were only about six civilians, English, in the village. At
five next day off again, and at daylight joined the general train on
the road to Salamanca. It was easily found, for it extended five or six
miles.

The day before we again started three cases were laid before me on
which to draw charges. Upon these I was to report to Lord Wellington
next day. I drew them up, but he was too busy to receive them. When I
went home and sent for a paper, the answer was, “All packed up;” and
it seemed that I ought to be so too, as our position was turned, and
we were all ordered to be loaded and ready to start. After much hurry,
I was ready soon after twelve. My beasts stood loaded at the door till
seven in the evening; then came orders to unload, but to be loaded by
four next morning, and to start for a hill a league off, and there wait
for orders. There was only one long bridge to pass the whole army, and
it was near seven before we were all over.

It rained hard. We stood on the hill loaded and waiting for orders
till one o’clock. Nearly the whole of our army was in sight round
us, cooking their dinners in the rain, in their new position. The
French were all around, about a league off, their fires visible in
the woods, and the heads of their columns visible with a glass. They
would not attack us, as they might, but manœuvred to turn our right
wing. Had there been a battle we should have had a fine view of the
beginning at least. At one o’clock we saw our whole army break up and
put itself in motion; and orders came to us to march and keep with the
second column. This we did, marching in the rain, in a fine confusion,
till five o’clock, when Lord Wellington halted at a miserable place
for head-quarters, and the men bivouacked on the swampy ground. I
was ordered on a league further. Darkness soon came on, and the rain
descended in torrents. Misdirected by some Spanish muleteers, I lost my
way, and did not reach any village for three leagues, and not till nine
at night, wet and starved, as the Salamanca people, in our confusion,
stole my bread, &c.

I was the only English officer there, and got the best quarter at the
parish priest’s, the best house there. Here I procured a loaf of bread,
fire, and a bed, which were no small comforts. I got, however, but
little sleep, not knowing how to proceed next day, and being aware
that the French were close at hand. By my map I found that I was in the
nearest road to Ciudad Rodrigo, and, taking a retreat to be the object,
I determined to wait till eight or nine o’clock next day, and observe
whether any one passed. By that time half the army was on the road
through the village, and Sir Edward Paget took my quarter for the last
night’s rest he had before he was taken prisoner. I then had a short
march in the rain again this day to Aldea Quella and to Boleado. In two
hours’ time I got a quarter through Colonel Campbell’s influence; and
because the stables would not hold a large horse, all the mules, half
the servants, all the soldiers, and most of the officers, were out in
the wet. Three Spanish officers burst into my quarters at night, and
the people were hammering at the door every moment for straw, shelter,
&c., sick and all sorts. In spite of my vigilance, either the Spanish
officers or the people of the house stole my pistols out of my room,
and finished by purloining the bread and rum of my men. Honesty is not
a Spanish virtue. We all of us lose things daily. At two next day we
loaded, and at three started for this place, twenty miles, four hours
before daylight. Luckily we had some moon. I stuck to Lord Wellington’s
carriage and baggage, thinking the people in charge of them would be
best informed, though my own inquiries elicited other intelligence than
theirs.

I was told the rivers that way were not passable, and we found the
whole road almost under water for miles, ankle, and even knee deep,
and three rivers to pass. Many mules were upset or stuck fast, and
much baggage damaged or lost. I had only one load overset, and that
at the edge, and we saved all, and not much damage done. By daylight
there was a general halt; no one knew the ford or the road. At last we
passed the river a mile above; but then, finding the French had been
in the village three miles off the last night, we all turned off by a
by-road six miles round, and at last arrived here at Ciudad Rodrigo,
miserably cold, with animals knocked up, sore backs, &c., about two
o’clock. In the confusion here, at last I got a bad quarter in the same
house with Colonel Gordon, Lord Wellington’s aide-de-camp. But I have
a place for my animals, and hundreds have no room for animals, or even
for themselves. We halt to-day, whether for a longer time I know not.
The army is mostly passing the river to-day. We lost many men in the
retreat, but a very little money is missing. The sick are numerous.
Two officers have died of fatigue on the road, in which dead mules are
to be met with in plenty, and some men. To-day we are relating our
adventures. We get but little barley for our horses, no hay or straw.
The cavalry have been without it for some days; but this is considered
a very orderly retreat. Sir Edward Paget accidentally fell into the
enemy’s hands near his own division, within six hundred yards of it,
between that and another. The French are said to have ninety thousand
men, with nine thousand cavalry. They pressed hard until yesterday;
they then relaxed when they might have done us most mischief. The
roads and weather, I suppose, and the want of food and forage, impeded
them. I hope they will now leave us quiet. I am very sorry for Sir
Edward Paget on the public account and on my own, as I found him most
friendly, civil, and good-natured. This capture is also a triumph to
the French.

_Malliarda de Sorda, November 26th, 1812._—We are now in our winter
quarters, and fill all the villages and places for twenty miles round
on the Portugal side of Ciudad Rodrigo, the works of which are still
quite out of repair where our trenches were made, as the Spanish new
work has all fallen in. Wellington’s head-quarters are at Frenada, an
old station; the doctors are all at Castello Bom; and the other civil
departments, in which I am included, all at this place, Malliarda
de Sorda. We are distant four miles of most infamous rocky road from
Frenada, and eight from Castello Bom. This I fear must shut me off from
nearly all society, as it would be paying most dear for a dinner at
Frenada or Castello Bom, to return in the dark, along roads compared
with which those of Ireland or Cornwall are bowling-greens. We are in
three wretched villages, in a country like Dartmoor, but more wood
near, all rocks around, and stone-wall enclosures, and rocky roads;
then woods, with open wastes for twenty miles round. I have a room
opening to the street, without ceiling, only open loose pantiles, with
holes to let out the smoke of a fireplace without a chimney; a window
tinned up by last year’s occupier, except four small panes, two of
which are broken; there is a hole in the floor to look through at my
five animals and three servants, who all sleep on the straw below me.

The weather for the last three days has been a complete English
December, cutting easterly winds; and on the 23rd I will vouch for
ice three-quarters of an inch thick. All the Sierras are white with
snow. I found Lord Wellington’s secretaries sitting with candles at
twelve o’clock in the day, in order to stop their holes and windows
with curtains, and burning charcoal fires. We have had every variety
of weather here in six weeks: I never remember it colder in England
for the time of the year. Here are no books, no women but ladies of a
certain description; and as to living, you would be surprised what good
living is here, except at Lord Wellington’s table, and about two more,
and even at those no port wine, only thin claret, and the country wines
and brandy.

At Ciudad Rodrigo there was starvation: no corn, no hay, no straw,
no bread, no rum, for three days, only beef and biscuit; at last we
got some mouldy biscuit for the animals, which I mixed with carrot,
cabbage, and potatoes; everything was devoured. Tea, 22_s._ and 25_s._
a pound; butter, 4_s._; bread, 1_s._ 6_d._ a pound, above 6_s._ the
loaf; no wine or brandy; gin, 12_s._ the bottle; straw, a dollar for a
small bundle, and all sold in a scramble. The truth was, the troops,
poor fellows! came through the town quite starving; during the retreat
supplies had been mismanaged—regiments were three and four days without
rations, and numbers died of absolute starvation, besides the sick.
Lord Wellington is, I hear, very angry. Till I saw B—’s mess, &c., I
had no notion of the loss in this retreat, and the great suffering
of the men and horses. From what I hear, not merely were about one
thousand made prisoners, but five or six thousand put for some time
_hors de combat_, by sickness, starvation, and want of horses, &c. The
cavalry were too weak to act, mainly from want of food. A great many
animals were killed. A treasure-party had a narrow escape: the French
were in sight while they were loading, and much baggage was lost. Lord
Dalhousie lost almost all; five horses and thirteen loaded mules,
with his name at full length upon his baggage—another French triumph!
Colonel Delancey lost three horses, taken at Salamanca; and the men
suffered shockingly from the wet. The whole was so unlucky; as had the
three days’ rain begun at Salamanca, in all probability the French
would not have crossed the Tormes and turned our position, and we might
still have been there; and had they come three days later, we should
have saved our three or four thousand sick. We should, moreover, have
had good roads and dry nights, no floods and torrents to wade through
by day, nor swamps to sleep on by night; in fact, we should only have
lost drunken stragglers. The distress at Madrid, after all the joy and
gaiety, was dreadful. When we left the town sixty thousand poor were
contending for the remains of our stores—the worst objects had the
preference given them. King Joseph’s Palace was left by him entirely
furnished; and as Lord Wellington made a point that he should find it
again the same, nothing was touched by our army.

_The 26th._—To-day is a cheerful, frosty, Christmas-day, and within an
English farm-house the whole would do very well: but I go, like others,
to bed at seven o’clock, to keep myself warm. General Castanos and his
troops are gone back to Gallicia, which is one grievance removed at
least. Ballasteros is in disgrace at Ceuta, for disobedience. I fear,
upon the whole, the Spanish cause has suffered much by our advance to
Madrid and Burgos. The people find we cannot support them, and will be
very shy in future; and the misery of the peasantry and townspeople
all the time is extreme. There are few deceptions in England like that
about the life in Spain.

_Frenada, Head-Quarters, December 8th, 1812._—I will now tell you
one day’s adventure and how I came here. Two days after writing from
Malliarda de Sorda, where I was lonely and heard nothing, I determined
to walk over to see how things went on here, and put my papers into my
pocket in case I should be able to see Lord Wellington. On my arrival
I met the Quarter-Master who managed quarters: he told me he had kept
a miserable hole for me, if I chose to move; it was much worse than
even my old one, but I instantly said “YES.” The next person I met was
Lord Wellington, and I asked him when he wished to see me, and whether
he had any objection to my moving here? He said I might take my choice
and take the best of the bad. He then asked whether I had my papers
about me? I said, “All.” “Come up,” said he then; and in ten minutes he
looked over my papers, which consisted of four sets of charges against
officers. These were all settled with a few judicious alterations, in
which I entirely agreed. I then came out and wrote them fair in the
Adjutant-general’s office, and two were sent off to Lisbon that day.

On my way home I found a Portuguese half drunk, killing his wife.
He had bruised her, and laid her head open with a large stone; this
occurred on the open road. As I was not in full strength from the
effects of a recent accident, I could only gently interfere, and the
brute persisted in his cruelty. A servant then came by on horseback who
struck him with a good stout stick; but the fellow turned on him, and
hit him with a great stone on the head. Thereupon two dragoons, who saw
the whole affair, came up, and were going to cut the Portuguese down,
when I begged them only to use the backs of their sabres, which they
did sharply, and brought him into the village.

I have dined again with Lord Wellington, and at Castello Bom with Dr.
Macgregor, whence I walked home with Colonel Colin Campbell at ten at
night with a lantern, over rocks and streams. I have also seen Lord
Wellington again, twice, about charges; but I understand I am not to
go over to some Courts-martial which he has just fixed to take place
in ten days, at two divisions, about forty miles from hence, but to
stay here. He is shortly, as general report says, going to Cadiz
or somewhere. At Lord Wellington’s we had a curious conversation,
about himself, Canning and his speeches, and Vetus’s letters in the
_Times_.[1] He joined in and indeed led the conversation, as if talking
of persons and things he was not connected with, but seemed not
satisfied with the Ministry, though he did not favour the opposition.
He said he took in the _Courier_ to know what government meant to do,
&c., and as a decent paper to show General Castanos.

It has not lately been very cold; indeed, we had four or five charming
days, but the rain has now begun again; but want of all books and
society is the worst. The little conversation here beyond the topics of
the day is of a review a year old, or a pamphlet. The dress here is a
cap made of velvet, cloth, and fur, with a peak over the eyes (that is
a foraging cap); the handsomest are all of fur, dark or grey fur, the
former the best, with a broad gold band and tassel on the top. With
this is worn a dress great coat, or plain, with military buttons, grey
pantaloons; this is the costume for dinners. Morning dress—overalls,
boots, and white or more generally fancy waistcoats; in winter blue
and black velvet, or cloth, with fancy buttons of gold, and narrow
stripes of gold as an edging. There are four suttlers here, who sell
everything, and we are, all things considered, well supplied. We have
one little Exeter-Change shop, but all very dear; pepper and mustard
dear, a small sauce bottle 7_s._, tea three dollars a pound, cheese
4_s._ a pound, porter 5_s._ a bottle, gin and brandy 7_s._ 6_d._,
port wine 6_s._ 6_d._, milk 1_s._ a quart, salt-butter 3_s._ a pound,
sugar 1_s._ 8_d._, pork (no other meat) 1_s._ 8_d._ a pound, oil 5_s._
a quart. These are the prices here at _head-quarters_. Remember that
distinction; not the national prices.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, December 31st, 1812._—For the last month I
have really been too busy to write. During the last week, before Lord
Wellington went away, he kept me hard at work, and left directions
to endeavour to get rid of all the cases pending for Courts-martial.
About thirty-two cases were made over to me, some of nearly two years’
standing. We have now a Court sitting at Lisbon, one in the second
division at Coria, one in the seventh at Govea, and another here which
I attend myself four miles off at Fuentes d’Onore. I have sent six to
Lisbon, five to the seventh division, five to the second, and intended
taking seven myself to Fuentes d’Onore; the rest have in some way been
arranged. Hitherto we have made little progress from the sickness,
which keeps back witnesses. I have only myself tried one, and hope to
finish to-morrow. One charge is of that of a mad Commissary, whose
trial was put off last week, on account of his being raving. He wrote
to the Adjutant-general a mad letter, amongst other things telling him
that he had ten thousand men, that he might drive all head-quarters to
“Nebuchadnezzar’s fiery furnace, where,” he added, “Lord Wellington and
you may sit at the head of the table.” I served him myself with his
notice of trial; he appeared very wild, and I have great doubts how he
will behave.

I have had long instructions to write to the three other
Judge-Advocates and summonses for witnesses to send to every regiment
and to the Commandants about here, and that over and over again. As
fast as one prisoner or witness got well, another became sick, and
half the cases are now pending in this way. Then comes a long case to
abstract for Lord Wellington; then an opinion for the Adjutant-general
by return of post. For these three weeks I have been writing nearly
seven hours a day, circulating copies of the charges to prisoners, to
the Courts, and to the prosecutors, and much of my labour is thrown
away by the sickness of the prisoners and witnesses. I have nine here
in the Provost’s hands for trial, and five are in the hospital—one
just dead. There is one comfort, the reflection that such a press of
business is never likely to recur. The _Gazette_ and newspapers you
sent me afforded me considerable amusement and comfort. Since Lord
Wellington has been absent, Colonel Colin Campbell remains to do the
honours and invite at the great house. I spent Christmas-day there, and
have dined several times. Besides a good dinner and the best society, I
there hear the latest news and get honour. The party is now very small.

After ten days of horrible damp, cold, rainy weather, we have now a
thoroughly good genuine English frost, with an east wind, quite like an
old friend in England; but the sun has some power, so that it is like
our frosts in February rather than Christmas. We see here very few of
the officers. Just before Lord Wellington went he was angry at all the
applications for leave of absence, observing, “A pretty army I have
here! They all want to go home: but no more shall go except the sick.”
As the sick are now fast recovering, I may mention what I did not like
to do a month ago, that the returns of the sick were then between
nineteen and twenty thousand! You would have no idea of this. I have
dined here with Major and Mrs. Scobell, the only lady here. I have also
dined with Lord Aylmer, the acting Adjutant-general here, who is very
civil. The Commissary, Mr. H——, keeps a good table, and often asks me.
Dr. H—— is our doctor now at head-quarters—a sensible man. Lord March
has lent me two volumes of Goldsmith’s works.

Castanos’ army went back in an orderly manner. Our Commissary reports
well of them, and of the country, where, he says (that is, in the Tras
os Montes), there is an abundance of bread, poultry, turkeys, &c.,
and of many things we have no notion of here. They have procured two
turkeys at head-quarters this Christmas, and have had mince-meat in
tins by the post from Lisbon.

We send to the woods for firing, and bring it home on the mules, and
send out from four to six leagues, that is, from sixteen to twenty-four
miles, for hay or straw. Ten pounds of straw a-day is the allowance for
the animals, but I fear it will not hold out, as the villages are now
nearly all emptied. We shall soon have to get little bundles of dry
grass, which are already brought to our splendid market for sale. The
Lamego wine is the only wine which I can drink with comfort,—it is a
sort of port. The Sierra di Francia is the next best,—a much lighter
wine, from the Sierras towards Madrid, from hence between thirty and
forty miles off.

Lord Wellington, whom I saw every day for the last three or four days
before he went, I like much in business affairs. He is very ready, and
decisive, and civil, though some complain a little of him at times,
and are much afraid of him. Going up with my charges and papers for
instructions, I feel something like a boy going to school. I expect to
have a long report to make on his return.

I hear a good account of Ballasteros’s army: that it is better
equipped than that of Castanos’. I wish it had done more. The French
are supposed still to have about a hundred and eighty thousand men
in the Peninsula. I do not believe their force in this neighbourhood
has increased or diminished. Some have receded to Vittoria, but have
been traced by the spies (of whom we have one constantly at Burgos) no
further, nor have many supplies of men to any amount been discovered, I
believe. We have some difficulty in getting fed; bread in the markets
is about 9_d._ a pound; barley for the horses very scarce: we often go
without for two days. A commissary-agent is now in Salamanca buying
bread. The villages between Rodrigo and Salamanca, described in my
journey, are, it is said, quite destroyed. We did much, the French the
rest. Pork is the only thing abundant, about 1_s._ 6_d._ per pound,
very rich but too fat, and the fat not firm; the flesh sweeter and
richer than that of our pork, from the acorns on which the swine feed,
and which are like chestnuts.

I was a little nervous at the first Court-martial, but it went off
pretty well, and I got the whole over and brought away eight sides of
notes in three hours. To-morrow I take my fair copy to be signed, &c.
In my way to this Court-martial, Henry and I were puzzled by a river
which seemed to be over our necks,—a deep hole off a rock. At last I
made out a way zigzag, only about three feet deep; there was no one
near or on either side; I should have had a swim, I am told, as people
are sometimes drowned there. A ducking the first time of my appearance
in public would have been awkward.

Two cases have just been brought in to me; they are for shooting
natives, one an alcalde. Adieu.


FOOTNOTES:

[1] It was generally supposed that these celebrated letters, often
compared to those of Junius, were written by Lord Wellesley.




CHAPTER III.

 Arrival of the Gazette—More Courts-martial—The Mad
 Commissary—Intentions of Lord Wellington—Social
 Amusements—Sporting—Wellington’s Fox-hounds—His Stud—A Dinner at the
 Commander-in-Chief’s—Number of Courts-martial—Anecdotes of Wellington.


  Head-quarters, Frenada, Jan. 3, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

In hopes of giving you letters every week, I must seize every odd
half-hour to write in, and you must not be nice as to my writing, &c.,
as my hand is quite tired of the regular official style, and my fingers
cold, for we still have fine, clear, frosty weather; but in the middle
of the day it is very pleasant.

Pray thank John very much for his parcel of newspapers, and especially
for that of the 17th December, with the _Gazette_, &c., and the
glorious news. I was the only person here with a paper of the 17th.
Head-quarters had only that of the evening of the 16th with the
_Gazette_; and though this was, in fact, much the same, this was an
event—and I sent mine up to Colonel Campbell, by his desire, for his
dinner-party at head-quarters. It has been in constant request ever
since.

All the Guerilla party reports here state, that a body of French
cavalry has left Spain for France, for some purpose. They say that from
three to four thousand men are gone; this agrees with your story; but
our Portuguese Quarter-Master, from his spies, reports otherwise. The
forces in this neighbourhood are now but small; about four hundred
men in Salamanca, which, by-the-by, has been much plundered; and the
English dollars, which they extorted from the hungry troops by their
high prices, pretty well squeezed out of them. At Segovia there are
only one thousand men, more at Valladolid, and a force at Madrid, and
thus dispersed about; but as to their being starved, their country is
much better, I believe, than ours; and as I have already told you, our
Commissary goes to Salamanca for bread. The light division near this
place, and troop of Horse Artillery, have had scarcely any corn for
their horses for the three last weeks, and the cavalry will not be fit
to act much before April and May.

Yesterday a great event occurred here—the arrival of a Guerilla chief,
who was formerly a sort of smuggler or robber. This man, whose name,
I believe, is Sumeil, attacked a French party, carrying despatches
from King Joseph to France, at a village near Valladolid, at twelve
o’clock at night. He came in upon the French by surprise, and the plan
succeeded. The despatches were seized, some of them on the person of
the courier, but the most material in a secret place in the pummel of a
saddle. A little spring in the buckle of the brass ornament discovered
a keyhole, and in the saddle was the pocket to conceal the papers.
They are principally in cipher, but some have been made out, and are,
I understand, important. I have heard the contents of only one letter
from King Joseph to the family in France, full of complaints of want of
money and much distress; he states that he cannot get a dollar. From
eighty to a hundred prisoners were taken by the party. These prisoners
were French, and two English officers were released. The French were
much irritated, and sent eleven squadrons of cavalry after the Guerilla
chief, but he got off with most of his prisoners, booty, despatches,
and party. Only one or two of the officers, and a few of the Guerilla
privates, have yet arrived here, but more, with the prisoners, are
expected shortly. Sumeil expects to be made a General for this. He was
at first very shy of suffering the aide-de-camp and Colonel Campbell
to look at his despatches, desiring to show them to Lord Wellington
in person; nor could he consent to give up the most important, until
General O’Lalor, who was at Ciudad Rodrigo, was sent for, and explained
matters to him. I was to have met them at head-quarters at dinner the
day of their arrival, but they were busily engaged at cards when sent
for; and said they were tired, and declined going out to dinner. I was
very sorry for this, as it would have been curious to see their manners
at a formal dinner.

I have sent out my mules and Portuguese to forage. They now are obliged
to go so far for it that they cannot get home by night, and soon, I
fear, must stay out some days. I must get another horse; Colonel C——
has a handsome Spanish horse to sell, strong, showy, and, considering
the price of horses here, not very dear, two hundred and fifty dollars;
it is a sort of a Rubens, sleek, black, manège horse, with a fine,
thick, curved, sleek, black neck.

I take my morning walk daily, from eight till nine, to secure some
exercise, whilst Henry lights my fire and gets breakfast ready. Instead
of the gravel walk at Sheen or in Lincoln’s Inn gardens, it is a stroll
over the rocks, down towards the Coa river, which is almost two miles
from hence, and in parts is wild and picturesque; large masses of
rock, rounded by the weather, stunted trees, stone-wall enclosures, a
succession of ravines, and ruined fortified villages on the hills at a
distance; for Castello Bom, Castello Mendas, Castello Rodrigues, and
Almeyda, which, as well as Guarda, are in sight from the rocky hill,
half a mile from hence. Behind the whole, the sierras of Portugal and
Spain, now generally covered with snow. By these means, and with a
hasty ride or walk now and then in the middle of the day, my health
is certainly better. The work, except on account of health, I have no
sort of objection to: I only lament the delay in the proceedings, on
account of the sickness of the prisoners and witnesses. However, I may
have been of some use in law lecturing, and helping the other Deputy
Judge-Advocates; and no trouble has been spared by me in facilitating
matters.

If the news from Russia be good to the extent supposed, it is thought
here that the French will withdraw from hence this spring, at least
behind the Ebro. This, however, I much doubt; though it seems agreed
that, at any rate, we are not in a state to follow, without very great
disadvantage, and almost destruction to our cavalry.

_January the 4th._—There are strong reports, as I have said, that the
French are retiring; but General O’Lalor, whom I have just seen, tells
me his accounts are otherwise, and that no French have left, or are
leaving Spain; on the contrary, he assured me that the intercepted
letters from Soult state that the contest will, in the next campaign,
be between the Douro and the Tagus. D’Aranda de Duero is therefore
to be fortified, and made a good depôt, until the Emperor can send
reinforcements enough to enable them to enter Portugal. The French
head-quarters are at Madrid, nor does it appear that there is any
intention at present to give it up, though the Spaniards thought
otherwise from some letters of Soult, who ordered some of his men,
detachments of his corps, and letters, to be sent to him from Valencia,
but this seems to be only to complete his own corps. General O’Lalor
told me that a muleteer of Paget’s had just arrived from Bayonne,
with a pass, which he showed me, for him to return to Portugal as Sir
Edward Paget’s muleteer. This man says the French on the frontiers were
told that our retreat was a rout, our loss immense, and that sixteen
thousand prisoners had been taken, who were said to be on the road; he
added that many were fools enough to go several leagues to see them,
and found they were about two thousand five hundred; they also reported
that the Commander-in-Chief, Lord Paget, was taken.[2]

We are trying to send French gazettes of the Russian business to the
French army, to give some of them a better notion of affairs in that
quarter, as it seems the armies hear little or nothing from France, and
at long intervals.

_January the 6th._—I am just setting out for Fuentes to try my mad
Commissary, and from the fear of not having time before post on my
return, I must now close my letter.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, January 16th, 1813._—I was so much occupied
last week that I could not find time to give you one of my usual
scrawls before the post-day. The business of the mad Commissary’s was
finished in two long days last week, but I have had a long job in
copying it fair, as he put in a half-mad defence of five sheets in
folio. He is now off for Lisbon. I have bought Colonel C——’s horse for
two hundred and fifty dollars.

Our last accounts from Lord Wellington are Cadiz, the 8th. He was
going to Lisbon on the 9th or 10th. He has taken the command of the
Spaniards; and is expected here on the 23rd. Lord Fitzroy Somerset
seems much pleased with Cadiz; I do not know whether Lord Wellington
is. The Prince of Orange is not yet returned from Oporto. He has been
very much fêted and entertained; there is dancing every night, and he
is much pleased. Lord March is just returned from thence; Colonel G——
from Seville; so we all begin to reassemble here. I have just been
making out on a large sheet the states of the Courts-martial for Lord
Wellington. They are thirty-one in number, which are now going on, just
finished, or which are to proceed when witnesses can be collected. At
present my place is no sinecure.

The French, they say, have been for some time in motion here, but I
believe only to forage, &c.; their last movements are southward of
Madrid and towards Seville again, but this is thought to be either a
feint or to be for the sake of supplies.

Doctor M’Gregor has been a tour to visit the sick; of whom I am sorry
to say many have died; more than I was aware of. He has been as far as
Oporto.

I have gone on very smoothly with my Courts-martial. General V—— is the
President, and has been very civil. They are all light infantry, and
have been very attentive, orderly, and obedient.

_January 17th._—The house which I now occupy belongs to the Portuguese
lad who is in my service, and who is about eighteen. It is a droll
circumstance to live in the house of your own servant, who receives six
dollars a month, and is a tolerable groom. These reverses are here very
frequent in the fortunes of this class of people. He owns three houses
here, such as they are—stone barns; and his family had sheep, goats,
and land.

There is plenty of game about, and we now get woodcocks frequently,
shot by the officers, very good hares, better, I think, than in
England, a few good snipes and plovers, and a very few partridges; the
latter are very wild. We have had, off and on, frost for this month and
more, and some very fine days, others like a London November fog, a
little snow, and now and then a day’s rain; but in eight hours again,
from a sudden change of wind, all dry and frost. The sun, when out,
makes the mid-day very pleasant; and though the winds are very cold,
and produce very hard ground and thick ice for the time in a very short
period, yet the ice does not continue, as in England, and accumulate.
It never gets much thicker than it is in one night with a cold wind,
and in the daytime the ground is soft; the cold, therefore, though for
a time very sharp, certainly cannot be near so intense in reality as in
England. We go to bed sometimes with the ground entirely wet at eleven
o’clock, and at six in the morning find there has been a very hard
frost, which is then going off again.

The population here is very considerably thinned, and there is much
less land in cultivation than formerly; the people remaining have
generally lost their flocks and their animals for agriculture. Few
have now means of ploughing and manuring. The vineyards are generally
in a very neglected state also; not manured or in any way attended to,
and eaten close down by our hungry animals. Yet the labour required is
so moderate, and the light soil seems so productive, that the country
might very soon recover itself; but we take the oxen over the whole
country, buy up, and eat up everything. Out of our reach, in the Tras
os Montes, are plenty of poultry, sheep, turkeys, &c. The Portuguese,
naturally lazy, never repair the damages of war, never rebuild, clean
out, or set to work to bring things round. They despair, and only just
work to supply our market with onions, 4_d._ each; eggs, 3_d._ each;
potatoes alone rather cheap at 2_d._ the pound; pork, 1_s._ 6_d._ the
pound, and good. The Spaniards, on the contrary, begin, very soon
after the armies go, to restore; they put on their tiles, rebuild
their walls, and especially whitewash the inside of their houses;
they collect their cooking-vessels, and get to work on their farms.
The peasantry recover themselves much more and much faster than the
Portuguese, but yet they have not in any one place suffered so much and
so often as this part of Portugal has; and in this town they are pretty
much as lazy as the other.

_The 20th._—A very interesting case of a poor deserter whom we tried
yesterday at Fuentes, I must copy out fair to carry over to the general
president for his signature to-morrow. The deserter, poor fellow!
deserted for love to the Spaniards, with a Spanish girl from the
neighbourhood of Madrid whom he had brought away with him. She had been
most honest and faithful in very trying scenes during the retreat. On
being ordered to send her off by his Captain, he appeared to have had
no intention of going over to the French. I was not aware of the merit
of his story till I copied the whole out fairly. It was translated in
broken bits, by a not very skilful interpreter. Three deserters came in
here yesterday; they are Flemings. They report that part of the French
cavalry are gone to France, and that all the cars round Salamanca have
been put in requisition to carry off the sick from the hospital there.
But this does not prove much, as it would at any rate be an unsafe
place, and out of their line of defence next campaign. They state that
the sick have been very numerous, and Salamanca well plundered.

I have been one morning over to Almeyda to breakfast with the governor
and see the town. At breakfast I met a sawny Spanish signora, with a
crying, poor-looking child: she breakfasted on beefsteaks, onions,
partridges, and wine, and did nothing all day. Almeyda is twelve miles
off. I rode thither on my new horse. He is just such a horse as you
would admire, prancing, showy, sleek, like a Flemish picture of a
horse, rather clumsy and heavy; but he went well and quietly. Almeyda
is in ruins; a mere heap of rubbish! The works are being repaired, and
much is already done; but there is yet a great deal to do, and the
workmen, though well watched, seem very lazy. There are very good shops
among the ruins for the materials of all articles of wearing apparel;
these from Oporto, and not dear; cloth and baize of all sorts, linen,
stockings, but not a cup and saucer to be had, or a drinking-glass.
Most of the new work at Almeyda is at present only earth—slanting so
that you might run up in a storm, I think; but the masonry is going on,
and it would cost some men to storm it, if we defend it. At present
there is only a Portuguese garrison.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, January 23rd, 1813._—I do not quite feel as
I did in England, nor can I make out that others do either. There
is a languor and laziness which seem in some degree catching from
the natives, as they have it in such perfection. We have had almost
constant frost or cold, fog and sleet, but in general clear cold days
ever since Christmas. It seems that we are likely to have some snow,
which hitherto we have only on the sierras and hills (where it lies
almost constantly), except a very few storms of snow which melted as
it fell; and then rain in February; then some warm days in March and
in April, with very cold mornings and nights, and some very cold days
again, even so late as in May at times. By-the-by, our English post
from all the different parts of the army, to each other, and to Lisbon,
is now in general in very good order, which saves me much trouble in
my extensive correspondence relative to the Courts-martial. I have
now also got through the great worry of the number of cases which
came upon me at once, and, though fully employed, business comes more
regularly. I have persevered in being civil and useful as far as I
could to every one, never objecting to anything, answering all queries,
and taking everything upon myself. I endeavour to model the whole as
it was arranged in England, before the Adjutant-general’s offices did
two-thirds of the business of Judge-Advocate. As I have no clerk,
and am not allowed a soldier, this at times presses me hard, but the
greatest stress is now over, though new cases come in regularly. I
yesterday sent in one against a Lieutenant-colonel, with six charges
and thirty-seven witnesses. I have another Commissary just come in
here as a prisoner, for purposely burning down a house, a mischievous
freak, when drunk.

I now dine out about three or four times in the week, generally once or
twice at head-quarters—and occasionally with Major and Mrs. Scobell,
who give very pleasant little dinners, and tender meat, and a loo
party afterwards. He is a clever man, in the Quarter-Master-general’s
department, and has the command of the corps of guides, and the
arrangement of the English post through the country.

The report current now is, that next campaign is to be in camp, and not
in towns and villages, as Lord Wellington wants to keep the army more
together than he can do in quarters; and unless he goes into camp, the
other Generals also leave their divisions and come into the towns. At
any rate, it will not be as it was last year, when the men went into
camp in February and March, as, from general rumour, the army will not
be in a state to move much before the end of April; nearly one-third
are still sick, and this state of things mends now but slowly; this I
observe from the general daily state of the whole army made for Lord
Wellington, which is kept most perfectly. The horses will not be ready
till they have had a month’s green food in March and April; straw, bad
hay, and a little Indian corn do not suit them for very active service.

I want a neat lantern sent out, to go out after dark in these horrible
villages, where if you go only a hundred yards in the dark you step
from a rock half up your legs in mud.

There is a shocking set of servants at head-quarters; idle, drunken
English servants and soldiers, almost all bad, and the Portuguese are
every day running off with something or other from their masters and
others. There has been no chaplain here for these last eight or nine
months, or any notice taken in any manner of Sunday! It used to be,
I hear, a very regular and imposing thing to attend divine service
performed out of doors with hats off, but the people must now think
we have no religion at all, as almost every public business goes on
nearly the same as on ordinary days. The English soldiers, however,
keep it as a holiday, though the Portuguese will many of them work,
particularly after three o’clock. We have had a glee or two with the
aides-de-camp of the Prince of Orange and some others. There is also
a Spanish Commissary who sings and plays the guitar very well. I wish
my violoncello were more portable, and, with a flute or two, we should
have a little music now and then here, in the evenings. They have asked
me to send for a collection of glees.

People here are all very sore about the Americans and our taken
frigates. I think we deserve it a little. Our contempt for our old
descendants and half brothers has always rather disgusted me, and with
some English is carried so far as not to be bearable. This reverse may
set matters right. The Americans have faults enough; we should allow
them their merits. Our sailors all thought the Americans would not dare
to look them in the face. I think the army rather rejoice, and laugh
aside at all this falling on the navy, as they bullied so much before.
I will not write to you of northern or English news, for it would be
absurd; you would, if I did, receive comments and observations on
what was nearly forgotten, or entirely altered, by the time my letter
reached you. I keep this paper under my business heap, and take it out
and scribble when anything occurs. Lord Wellington is to arrive to-day;
and I must get up my lesson for to-morrow, so adieu!

_Tuesday._—Lord Wellington arrived last night at six o’clock. I saw him
with the rest who happened to be in the market-place when he came. He
was looking well.

There is a great quantity of game around us, and the sportsmen supply
their tables. It is not mere sport here, but more like the case of
Robinson Crusoe, a matter of necessity. Nearly all our luxuries are
thus obtained. Commissary H——, two days since, went across the Coa
for about five hours, and brought home five hares, four couple of
cocks, three snipes, one partridge, and a rabbit. All these animals
are remarkably good here, except the partridges, which are nothing
in comparison to ours, and I think not so good as the French. Lord
Wellington, except presents now and then, buys up all we can get—gives
8_s._ for a hare, and so on. Turkeys are only to be had thirty miles
off: the price, which has been 25_s._, is now 14_s._ Powder and shot
are very scarce, only a little to be had now and then at Almeyda.
This you will think at the head-quarters of sixty thousand men rather
strange, but the same stuff which kills men will not bring down birds.
We have three odd sorts of packs of hounds here, and the men hunt
desperately: firstly, Lord Wellington’s, or, as he is called here, the
Peer’s; these are fox-hounds, about sixteen couple; they have only
killed one fox this year, and that was what is called mobbed. These
hounds, for want of a huntsman, straggle about and run very ill, and
the foxes run off to their holes in the rocks on the Coa. Captain
W—— goes out, stops the holes over-night, halloos, and rides away
violently. The ground is a light gravel and rock all over the country.
From a hard rock sometimes the horse gets up to his belly in wet
gravelly sand; thus we have many horses lamed, and some bad falls. The
next set of hounds are numerous,—greyhounds. The Commissary-general,
Sir R. Kennedy, is a great man in this way, and several others. And
thirdly, the Capitan Mor here, that is the principal man of the place,
has an old poacher in his establishment, with a dozen terriers,
mongrels, and ferrets, and he goes out with the officers to get
rabbits. Lord Wellington has a good stud of about eight hunters; he
rides hard, and only wants a good gallop, but I understand knows
nothing of the sport, though very fond of it in his own way. There will
soon, I hear, be good trout-fishing in the Coa and in the streams in
the ravines near it.

_Wednesday, January 27th._—It has happened just as I expected; I have
no time to add more, for I have three new cases to draw charges in,
and most troublesome ones too: one of four fellows, old commissariat
clerks I suppose turned off, who have been about the country living
by their wits, extorting provisions, forage, &c., from the Spaniards,
by frauds, false passports, &c., under pretence of acting for the
English and Portuguese Commissariat. There are thirty-seven enclosures
sent to me, papers taken upon them, all in Spanish, in general badly
written, and no translation. The case, it is to be feared, will never
be proved. I have got General O’Lalor to help me in this case. In
short, my hands are full again; and my report of the old stories
not made out. We occupy from Coria, Guinaldo, Vizeu, Covilhaon,
and even almost to Coimbra; hospitals at Celerico, Vizu, Coimbra a
few, Abrantes, and Santarem. I fear my Court-martial will be moved
farther off. Some additional attached Spaniards are to have their
head-quarters at Fuentes d’Onore to be about his Excellency, now that
he takes the command of the whole generals, &c., and General Vandeleur
and the famous Caçadores are to move from thence in consequence; the
arrangements, however, are not yet completed.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, February 2nd, 1813._—Lord Wellington is
returned in high spirits and great good-humour with every one; and, in
spite of the number of deaths here, which are very formidable (between
four and five hundred every week for the last six), declares that he
shall take the field this year with nearly forty thousand British,
and, on the whole, with a hundred and fifty thousand of one sort or
other.

General Vandeleur is to go to Fuente Guinaldo, and the Courts-martial
will in future be there. It is about twenty-four miles off. I must
sleep out always, and shall thus lose one or two days’ post; this will
be inconvenient to me, and just now to the service, but it cannot
be avoided. The General is very good-humoured, and we are very good
friends; he has offered me a quarter, and a dinner, if I will bring my
bed. At present our weather is colder than ever, but generally clear
frost; the wind is excessively sharp. The ice yesterday on the road
would bear my horse; and the thermometer, at seven in the evening, was
four degrees below the freezing point; at night sometimes it is much
colder.

Two packets have just arrived; the last brought Lord Wellington the
last good news from Wilna. I have dined once at head-quarters since
Lord Wellington’s return, with Sumeil the Guerilla chief, looking
like a dirty German private dragoon, in a smart new cavalry jacket,
on one side of me, and Dr. Curtis, the Catholic head of the Salamanca
college (who has been sent off from Salamanca very lately), opposite
to me. The Spanish General O’Lalor treated Sumeil like a child, told
him what to do and eat; but he had, I conclude, dined long before, for
he ate little or nothing. Dr. Curtis seemed to be a clever, sensible,
gentleman-like priest. He said the French knew immediately of Lord
Wellington’s absence, but were not clear about it, and very anxious in
their inquiries to ascertain the fact. General Hill’s corps, who did
not share in the early siege of Rodrigo last year in January, nor the
wet bad work at Badajoz, are by far the most healthy part of the army,
and, next to them, the light division here. The fifth and seventh,
near Lamego, are the worst, and the Guards (the new comers) very
bad. General Hill has only about fourteen hundred in the hospital,
and about seven thousand fit for service. I suppose we shall have an
active campaign next year, if the whole be not put an end to by peace,
which is not improbable, if the Allies are not too unreasonable in
consequence of their successes. If Austria will join in dictating the
terms with Russia, Prussia, and Great Britain, they should be very
good for Europe; but if the devil Bonaparte be driven hard, he will
rouse himself, appeal to the vanity of the French, and recoil upon
us stronger than ever. The Gil Blas set of swindlers who went about
Spain with false papers and passes, raising the wind under pretence of
getting supplies for the British and Portuguese commissariat service
(one was a German, two Spaniards, and the fourth a Portuguese), I much
fear it will not be easy to convict.

_February the 3rd._—You must excuse my writing, for it is done at all
odd moments, as a relaxation from all my formal letters of business,
which require a good deal of method and order in a small compass not to
get into scrapes, such as sending witnesses to wrong places, &c. As I
have Courts sitting here at Fuente Guinaldo in the light division; at
Lamego, in the fifth; at Maimento, in the seventh; at Alter de Chaon;
at Coria, in the second division; at Maimento de Biera, in the third;
and at Lisbon; letters coming at all hours of the day about each, a
witness wanted here, a difficulty arising there, and so on; I can only
get on by keeping a book, in which I instantly put down the exact state
of everything, and keep copies of all my letters till the business is
over; and I make it a rule, if possible, to answer every letter by
return of post, as the only way not to get in arrear. I am very glad
that I persuaded my Court at Fuentes d’Onore to have patience, and let
me take down all the long love story I told you of, of the deserter
Prang Neigabauer. It was quite a pretty story. Lord Wellington
pardoned him, from the good character of his regiment, and that which
the Colonel gave him. The Prince of Orange is returned, and we are all
here again assembled in this magnificent town!

_5 o’clock._—I have been sent for twice to-day by Lord Wellington,
besides twice last night, and have so much on my hands about Spaniards,
Portuguese, and English, that I cannot add more.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, February 7th, 1813._—There never were known
so many Courts-martial in this army as at the present moment, and as I
have the whole direction of them all, I really scarcely know where to
turn, and my fingers are quite fatigued, as well as my brains, with the
arrangements and difficulties as to witnesses, &c. I sent out seventeen
letters yesterday, and to-day I have one case of thirteen prisoners
who have been committing every sort of outrage on their march here.
Lord Wellington is now much more easy with me, and seems to trust to me
more. Yesterday I was pleased when he said, “If your friends knew what
was going on here, they would think you had no sinecure. And how do you
suppose I was plagued when I had to do it nearly all myself?”

He seemed to feel relieved, and of course I could not but feel
gratified. I can assure you, however, that we have none of us much idle
time. Dr. M’Gregor has seven hundred medical men to look after. The
Quarter-Master-general, all the arrangement of the troops, clothing,
&c. The Adjutant-general, daily returns of the whole, constantly
checked by an eye which finds out even a wrong casting-up of numbers in
the totals. Lord Wellington reads and looks into everything. He hunts
almost every other day, and then makes up for it by great diligence and
instant decision on the intermediate days. He works until about four
o’clock, and then, for an hour or two, parades with any one whom he
wants to talk to, up and down the little square of Frenada (amidst all
the chattering Portuguese) in his grey great coat.

General Alava, whom I have seen lately much more about Spanish
business, is a very gentleman-like, and appears to me to be a clever
man.

We have had constant frost hitherto; but I fear the rain is going now
to begin. Some of the days lately have been delightful, like the frosty
days in England at times at the end of February, with a fine clear warm
sun in the daytime.

I have just heard of five German deserters, brought in to the Provost
here; and shall, I suppose, have to try them. They were taken on the
other side of Rodrigo by the Spaniards; they are just come out to us
from England. Don Julian’s cavalry are very useful in this way, and
very active. The Cortes want to encourage farming in the country, and
will give land to any wounded soldiers of the allied armies, English as
well as natives, on condition of building and living on the spot.

General Wimpfen, one of the Chief’s new Spanish staff, is arrived, and
will be stationed with us.

At Ciudad Rodrigo they are going to set up a Spanish newspaper, which
is to come out once in a week: I mean to take it in. My new black
horse goes on hitherto very well; I like him much; but use him little.
Whenever I can, I get a gallop and a trot for an hour on the common
just close by, and return home to write again.

Excuse this stupid letter. I am very tired and must to bed.

On Thursday, the 11th, I go to Fuente Guinaldo, and shall probably
sleep there, at General Vandeleur’s.


FOOTNOTES:

[2] Meaning Lieut.-General Sir Edward Paget, second in command, who was
taken prisoner in the retreat. Lord Paget, afterwards Earl of Uxbridge,
now Marquis of Anglesea, was not in the Peninsula at this time.




CHAPTER IV.

 More Courts-martial—Bal Masqué—Anecdotes of Wellington—Songs in
 his praise—Spanish Banditti—Excesses of the Army—Carnival—More
 Anecdotes of the Duke—The Staff—Grand Entertainment at
 Head-quarters—Wellington’s opinion on Affairs at Home—Murder of an
 Officer—General Craufurd.


  Frenada, February 12, 1813.
  8 o’clock, Friday night.

  MY DEAR M——,

On my return from Fuente Guinaldo I found instructions for two new
Courts-martial in Lord Wellington’s rough pencil notes,—a broad scroll
in pencil in one corner, “Refer all this to the Judge Advocate,”
meaning me to draw charges, &c. I must now tell you of my expedition
to Fuente Guinaldo. We were to have tried the Commissary for burning
a house down, but by my advice he offered to pay all the damage done
to General Alava, the Spanish agent here, and in consequence to be
forgiven if it was paid in time. This was the best for the Spaniards,
the owners, and a tolerably sharp punishment for a man whose only
lawful pay is 7_s._ 6_d._ a-day, the damage being near fifteen hundred
dollars. The night before the trial he had not raised the money. I
went to Lord Wellington to know what I should do, as the witnesses
were all ready. He told me to give him till Monday next, and have all
the witnesses rationed and kept till that time at Guinaldo. Suspecting
that this would be my instruction, I had got another case ready for the
Court there.

About seven o’clock, after a crust of bread and a glass of rum and
milk for breakfast, off we went, Henry and I, for Fuente Guinaldo, and
at the same time I sent one of my Portuguese men with my mattress and
blankets, coverings, corn and hay for my horses, to meet us there,
Henry carrying my papers, Mutiny Act, testaments, and all writing
implements, &c., for my Court-martial. The morning threatened much,
as the frost is just broken up; but we got there dry and in time, and
I found my way without any blunder, which, as the road was entirely
across open downs, or through woods without inhabitants, and full of
cross tracks, was some merit; I had, however, applied to Captain Wood,
the hunter, who knows all the country well, for instructions.

We arrived at Guinaldo in two hours, finished a case and tried a man
for shooting a Portuguese, acquitted him of murder, but found him
guilty of very disorderly conduct, and sentenced him to receive eight
hundred lashes. I then walked round the town, looked into the church,
and came back; wrote the whole out fair on six sides of folio paper;
dined with the president at six, had a hospitable reception; and in
the evening went to a sort of frolicsome masked ball, given extra on
account of the Courts-martial. As the General went, I accompanied him.
There were all the _equivoque belles_ of Guinaldo, and all the light
infantry officers, many in disguise and masquerade; some as females,
and one as a Spanish farmer, the regular dress. We were all struck with
the becoming appearance and picturesque style of the costume. One or
two of the ladies were dressed as officers, and so on. The ball went
on very well for some time, but the two ladies who were the leading
beauties of the evening quarrelled, and the harmony was disturbed. At
ten I went home, and left the party half tipsy and rather riotous, so
that it was time for Generals and Judges to retire. The Court-room was
my quarter. This morning before breakfast I read over my fair copy
of the evidence, &c., with the General. He signed it, gave me some
breakfast, and I set off home, on a very threatening day which was as
good as it promised; my cloak, however, kept me nearly dry.

Fuente Guinaldo is nearer the Sierra de Gutta, and several degrees
colder than we are here at Frenada, though we are many, many degrees
colder than Lisbon. The Spanish staff are now all arrived, but scarcely
a Spaniard amongst them—all foreigners. General Wimpfen, a Swiss;
General O’Donoghue, Irish; and so of others. They all dined two days
ago at Lord Wellington’s.

Tell John, in answer to his inquiry, that with regard to the campaign
and the siege of Burgos, it is a question much argued and discussed.
Some say we should never have lost time by going to Madrid, and that
was the mistake; some that if we had taken Burgos, as we should
have done but for the very bad weather, all would have gone right.
General O’Lalor, however, told me he thought that would have made no
difference, but that if the French chose to give up the South, and
unite against us ninety thousand strong, we must have been off just the
same even though Burgos had been taken.

My quarter at Fuente Guinaldo, having no window, is rather cool, but
being in Spain, is clean. The church is a fine building, and the town
not quite broken up; I suppose we shall move there next. To-night is a
play-night in the gay light division at Galegos, and Lord Wellington
was to have gone there, but the perpetual rain will probably prevent
him. He meant to ride there, a distance of ten miles, at night. Had it
been very fine I might have been almost tempted to take my mattress
round that way, and go once to the theatre, which all say is very
tolerable in regard to acting, scenery, &c., the whole carried on
by the light division in a chapel at Galegos. I was not a little
surprised to see common country dances very tolerably performed last
night at Guinaldo, and even Sir Roger de Coverley.

Two or three days ago I was somewhat puzzled, when, upon my pointing
out the sentence of a Court-martial as illegal, Lord Wellington said,
“Well, do write a letter for me to the president, and I will sign it,
and it shall be sent back for revision.” I did not know his style, but
my letter was fortunately approved of. I had yesterday a visit from
Colonel ——, of the Engineers, begging for a favourable report upon the
case of a complaint against a Captain of artillery; I suppose people
think I have some weight in Lord Wellington’s decisions, but that is
by no means the case. He thinks and acts quite for himself; _with_ me,
if he thinks I am right, but not otherwise. I have not, however, found
what Captain —— told me I should find, that Lord Wellington immediately
determines against anything that is suggested to him. On the contrary,
I think he is reasonable enough, only often a little hasty in ordering
trials, when an acquittal must be the consequence. This, in my opinion,
does harm, as I would have the law punish almost always when it is put
in force.

_Wednesday, 17th._—I have heard no news at all: still strong reports
that the French cavalry are partly gone from hence to France; but
I cannot ascertain that they are actually removed beyond Vittoria,
and that may be only for forage, as our cavalry are wide apart and
dispersed. The first division, under General Bock, is at and below
Coimbra, near the sea, where I have just fixed a Court-martial to try
a set of men of the 9th and 87th for most outrageous conduct on the
march to join the army. Lord Wellington has had the whole complaints
against this party along the road written out, to send home, with an
official copy of his letter, as he finds that an account of the matter
has travelled home, and is quoted as a specimen of the conduct of our
army on the march. The first division of cavalry is, on the other hand,
at Alter de Chaon, towards Castello Branco, and is all much dispersed;
General Hill, with the second division, Coria; sixth division, Cea;
fifth, Lamego; third, Maimento de Beira; seventh, Maimento; light,
Fuente Guinaldo. These are the head-quarters of the troops. Marshal
Beresford is better, and his wound nearly healed; he talks of soon
joining; his head-quarters will be Villa Formosa. I now see Lord
Wellington almost daily on business; he one day fell into a passion
about the Courts-martial for not doing their duty, by acquitting and
recommending to mercy, &c., and also about officers commanding parties
not being attentive. He has always been civil to me, though at times
quick and hasty in business. I nearly got into a scrape by saying a
good word for Captain ——, merely from his good character, as I did not
personally know him. However, Lord Wellington so far acquiesced, that
he said I need not draw the charge as yet; but he should send him word
that if the village in question were not satisfied for their forage and
bullocks in a week, he should either have him tried or sent home.

I have just got a letter of reprimand to send out, according to a
written memorandum from Lord Wellington; a little slap at a deputy of
mine, and greater at the Court-martial, with directions how they should
act. Adieu.

_Monday Evening, Head-Quarters, Frenada, February 22nd, 1813._—On
getting up in the morning yesterday, I said to myself for the first
time these two months, “Well, I do think I have no business to-day, and
will write to M——.” In two hours’ time, however, before I had finished
my breakfast, and read one of Vetus’s letters, in came three new cases,
and old General O’Lalor to tell me he had sent me a case to try at
Guinaldo—a man charged with shooting a Spanish girl through the door,
because she would not give him some chestnuts! The wanton outrages of
our people are quite extraordinary. There are four poor fellows to be
hung this week in the second division; one for desertion, and three
for a burglary near Coria about a fortnight since. For the sake of
immediate example I hastened the case, by giving full instructions to
the Deputy Judge-Advocate there. The men were tried immediately, and
three are to be hung to-morrow. The Commissary charged with burning the
house was at last let off for a large sum of money. I was very glad
when it was settled, for I had more trouble about it than if he had
been tried and hung ten times over. An overwhelming heap of Spanish
proceedings has just reached me about the man for shooting the poor
girl; and yet I have very little doubt, when the Court meets, I shall
have much difficulty in proving that the man shot her, and that she is
dead. I go over for that purpose the day after to-morrow.

During the last two or three days the weather has been delightful—quite
a mild south-west breeze, with a clear sun; but this was, I heard,
too unusual to last. I like “Vetus” much, and agree with him in most
things; but his style is not by a good deal to be compared with Junius.
In parts there are considerable blunders, and often confusion and want
of clearness; but there are some curious stolen cuts, if facts. I have
just heard from General O’Lalor that we have been attacked at Bejar
by a party of French, and have beaten them back. It was the second
division, General Hill’s corps, who were concerned, and I believe
the 50th regiment principally. I am told no great loss, but know no
particulars. You will hear more of it from the papers than I can tell
you. It is still said that we are to encamp and bivouac this next
campaign. We are now consuming our last stock of hay—two great stacks,
which have been saved by Lord Wellington’s orders at Almeyda. After
that we must buy reaping-hooks, and try to cut grass before the green
corn forage comes in; and though I can see a plain difference already
in the colour of the hills, and the young green corn and spring grass
are here and there making a show, there is very little to be got to eat
yet in that way.

We have still many sick, and the doctors do not take better care of
themselves than of their patients, for no less than five medical men
have died at Ciudad Rodrigo since we have been in quarters here. The
French have got all about the part of the country near General Hill,
near Nava, Morguende, Mentrida, &c., and are moving; but I do not
expect anything important for some time. Some say the French will begin
this campaign; and I rather hope they may. The 10th Dragoons have
arrived, I hear from every one, in the highest style and in excellent
order. This is very good news.

We have three Spanish songs in honour of Wellington, one rather gone by
now: “The Retreat of Marmont,” “Ahe Marmont, onde vai, Marmont,” a very
pretty air; the other was composed at Cadiz lately when Lord Wellington
was there. I suppose you have them in England. Moretti of Cadiz is the
composer. One of them is good, and the other very well. Lord Wellington
sits and hears his own praises in Spanish with considerable coolness,
and calls for it himself at times.

_February 23rd, Tuesday Morning._—Just a few lines more, and but a
few, as I have just been with Lord Wellington, and, having got rid of
one batch of papers, have returned with another. I hear the affair at
Bejar, or Banos, in the sierras north of Placencia, was not much. We
had six taken and a few wounded. It is supposed to have been a French
party for provisions and plunder, as they wander about for these
purposes, and to have been no serious movement. Our men got a position
first, which the French tried to get, at Bejar. We had no cavalry, or
an attempt might have succeeded to turn the French party; but without
this assistance the 56th drove back the French, and saved Bejar and
that country. The 71st were also there, and concerned.

Lord March is just returned from a flag-of-truce excursion to the
French. He fell in with their pickets half a league from Ledesma,
where the French seemed in force. They were very civil. He dined with
a General Goutier, or some such name, and stayed about four or five
hours. Their men and cavalry looked well, and clothing very fair;
accoutrements, &c., bad and slovenly; horses in good condition; but
he concludes that he saw the best, for he found they knew of his
approach five leagues off. They kept away all the Spaniards, who were
getting round him, and were particularly violent against the canaille,
the Guerillas. The latter were close upon the French. He passed them
very near the town. They abused Sumeil; said he would rob even the
English, and would not believe he dined at Lord Wellington’s table.
They hoped to see the English in a month, they said. His five hussars
and his trumpeter were surrounded by eighty men in a trice, and all
communication cut off, and a thousand questions asked of course, but
little given in answer. The French officer and escort of five dragoons,
who escorted Lord March on his departure, would not go above half a
league, for fear of the Guerillas, and was half inclined to accept Lord
March’s offer to let his trumpeter and some men see him back, with a
party of the Guerillas; but at last he said he had a good horse, and
galloped back. I do not know what Lord March went about; some say on
Sir Edward Paget’s affairs.

_Guinaldo, February 24th, 1813._—From the blunder of General O——, here
I am, after a wet ride, with no Court-martial to-day, and nothing to
do. The consequence is, I must stay to-morrow also, when I really hope
to get this business over, for I have plenty to do at home. Marshal
Marmont had the quarter I occupy when he was here, as well as Lord
Wellington. The former shut the whole up, and used candles all day. The
latter got on as well as he could in the dark, and used the General’s
bedroom, which is rather a better room, as his dining-room. The owner
was once a man rich in flocks, herds, and lands and houses, and has
another good house at Ciudad Rodrigo. At present I take it his worldly
goods are not sufficient to make him think too much of this world.
Between Pago and Coria there are banditti and robbers; and two or three
murders have been committed there by armed men, Spaniards, I believe,
and Portuguese, five or six together. What a state this poor country is
in!

_Frenada, March 1st._—Several of these banditti I hear are deserters
from our army, and Lord Wellington has sent out after them. On the
Thursday I tried the man at Guinaldo for murdering a poor Spanish girl.
We had some difficulty in coming to an understanding. The witnesses
were all Spaniards, principally the relations of the deceased; the
only interpreter was Portuguese; the prisoner a German, but he spoke
bad French. At last, as I had looked into all the Spanish proceedings,
we got on, as most of the Court understood Spanish as well as the
interpreter, and nearly all understood French. The prisoner’s defence
was in French. I then read it in English to the Court as he went on,
and took it down. He had a very narrow escape for his life; I thought
it murder, and the Court were long in doubt; at last they only found
him guilty of a most disorderly outrage and killing the poor girl, and
gave him a thousand lashes.

I wrote it fair, got it signed, dined again with the General, and
came over here on a beautiful day. We have now again fine clear,
frosty mornings, beautiful, but really almost too warm days and too
cold evenings. I wish this would last; and yet it is trying to the
constitution, for there must, I think, be thirty degrees difference
between the temperature at three and at six o’clock.

On my return here I found that no less than nine Courts-martial
had arrived and plenty of newspapers. One Court-martial had met
thirty-eight days, and another sixteen: thus I had plenty to read
and report upon. I saw Lord Wellington, in consequence, two days
running, for nearly two hours, as I thought four of the cases ought
to go back for revision, and one only to be confirmed, as it was half
illegal—eight hundred lashes and transportation for life—which latter
is not a legal sentence for mutiny. In truth, the men should have been
shot.

The Courts will not do their duty: Lord Wellington was quite angry.
He swore, and said that his whole table was covered with details of
robbery and mutiny, and complaints from all quarters, in all languages,
and that he should be nothing but a General of Courts-martial. He has
given some broad hints to the Courts in general orders. I sent out
three new cases yesterday, and have about fifteen deserters just in
hand now—in general Poles from the second King’s German Legion light
infantry battalion.

I made it a rule, whenever possible, to clear off everything as I go,
and answer every letter by return of post, which is the only way; and
I am glad to see my pile of papers done with now larger than that in
hand. Whilst I was with Lord Wellington, the Commissariat returns came
in, and were very confused. That added to his ill-humour; but he was
very civil to me, and gets more easy, as I do with him. He sent orders
for fifteen thousand complete black accoutrements to be sent round
to Corunna, so I hope the Gallician army is to be increased; some of
their regiments got home much more entire than any of ours during the
retreat, but upon the whole they diminished very much by desertion when
they first got away from home.

The people of Guinaldo, whilst I was there, were almost mad—nothing but
dancing and noise in all quarters. They told me it was a particular
day, when the women were to rule the Dios de Madre; but it seems to me
they are always in this gay state. The people agree there very well
with the English, particularly with the 52nd, which is now there, a
fine light battalion, seven hundred strong, and in high order. The
ladies go about, and tie strings to the coats of the officers, and even
of the General; dance about, sup, and drink with them, and are all
alive both with them and the men.

The 52nd and 43rd lost part of their baggage in the retreat, and one
on the Court-martial told me an anecdote as to his baggage. A French
officer and a few men overtook his bâtman with the canteens, &c.
“Where’s the key?” he said; “come, quick! break it open; out with the
tea and sugar, I have had none these three months:” and in this manner
he took all worth having, the best horse and mule, and left the bâtman
frightened to death.

There is one regiment of the Caçadores that is the constant
astonishment of the English. Badly paid, no new clothes for the last
two years, almost in rags this winter, and yet scarcely a man has been
sick. I wish this was the case with them all. Our men are getting their
clothes much better than last year, but still many are sick. Of two
hundred men, a reinforcement to the 43rd light regiment Walcheren men,
ninety have died; and the Guards have suffered terribly, but still all
are in spirits; though the verses I enclose to you (and which are
printed at the Adjutant-general’s portable press, used for printing the
army orders, &c.) give a very fair description of the life in Portugal.

I have taken a ride to Malliarda de Sorda, and found the Deputy
Paymaster-General H—— very unwell, with an attack of fever. One
must not think of these things: that is the best way, I believe, if
possible. Sir W. Erskine, who threw himself out of the window here in a
delirium, came to his senses after his fall, and said he never thought
he could have been guilty of such an act, and that he did not intend
it. This was very melancholy; but I am told he had been two years
confined, and that he should not have been here as chief officer of the
cavalry—it was too great a risk.

We have a report here of a revolution in France; but I do not credit it
yet, though not unlikely. It seems to me Bonaparte is a man to run that
hazard by his conscription and immense levies, and that there will be
either a revolution, or he will soon be again formidable; and much is
yet to be done. I hope we shall make a good end of it here this year.

_Wednesday._—I dined yesterday at head-quarters, and sat next to Baron
Wimpfen, the new Quarter-Master-general attached to Lord Wellington.
He is a very gentleman-like man, and talks French well. We had much
conversation together, in which Lord Wellington, who sat next to the
General, often took part. He gave us the whole history of the battle of
Fuentes d’Onore, which was fought some time since near here, in which
the French were three to one, and in which Lord Wellington said he
committed a fault, by extending his right too much to Poço de Velho;
and that, if the French had taken advantage of it, there might have
been bad consequences, but that they permitted him to recover himself
and change his front before their face.

Another new comer at dinner yesterday was a Monsieur Saudri, an agent
for the Portuguese, a sort of interpreter. He gave an account of the
state of the Portuguese provinces. Some are recovering fast, it seems,
Coimbra particularly, but many are still in great distress.

Yesterday was the last day of a sort of carnival here. We had fools,
and pantaloons, and straw bulls, &c., and masks walking about the
streets—much noise but no great magnificence. I saw poor pantaloon
fall in earnest when throwing his sword after a soldier, and he could
scarcely get up again.

A general order has just been issued for all the officers to apply for
tents for the next campaign. I must do the same, I suppose, and try
that sort of life, which in dry weather may be well enough, but bad
work if as it was last year, when the little bed-legs sunk in mud up to
the mattress, and the blankets got quite muddy!

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, March 6th, 1813._—A man arrived here two
days ago from Madrid in five days, for payment of a Commissariat bill
due to him. He states that the French are in small force at Madrid,
and that Joseph was packing up. But I believe this is only because
he individually is going away; for I understand that the French are
still in force below Madrid, and that the only notion entertained as
genuine here as to their troops going homewards is that ten men picked
from each squadron and battalion, or as some say from each company,
are to be sent home to make good the Imperial Guards. I do not think
myself they will withdraw at all now. They keep the country to support
themselves till we are ready to move, and then I think they will
collect and risk an early action with us, as their difficulty is to
keep together long. If they beat us, they will remain as they were,
and I think that is all, unless we are quite routed; if we beat them,
then they will go behind the Ebro. The conjecture is, as far as I can
understand from the probabilities, a late opening of the campaign on
account of the Spaniards not being ready, and then an early action when
it does begin.

Some say that the Spaniards will not be ready to move before the
harvest in July, or not much before. The French have nearly ninety
thousand men in their extended positions, with their right on and
near the Douro and the left on or along the Tagus. We shall have,
when we begin, about forty-four or forty-five thousand British, about
twenty or twenty-two thousand Portuguese, and how many Spaniards no
one can tell, or what they will do. So do not expect to hear of a
march to France—to the Ebro, or very possibly up to Burgos again.
The opportunity for effecting this must be by obliging the French to
assemble, and then by rousing up all the Guerillas to starve them.
Having heard Lord Wellington give his account of the battle of Fuentes
d’Onore to General Wimpfen, the Spanish Inspector-General, I rode there
yesterday with Lord Aylmer (who was present in the action) over the
whole field of battle, saw all the field-works, the positions of the
different divisions, and the plan of the whole. I perfectly understood
Lord Wellington’s blunder, and the risk he had run, and could form a
very good notion of the strength of the position, and the nature of it
as protected by the ravines of the Coa, &c. Lord Aylmer gave me two
striking instances of Lord Wellington’s coolness: one when, as he was
pursuing the French, in a fog in the morning, he found a division of
our men under Sir William Erskine much exposed in advance, and nearly
separated from the rest of the army, and the French in a village within
a mile of where he was standing, he could see nothing; but, on some
prisoners being brought in, and asked what French division and how
many men were in the village, they, to the dismay of every one except
Wellington, stated that the whole French army were there; all he said
was, quite coolly, “Oh! they are all there, are they? Well, we must
mind a little what we are about then.” Another time, soon after the
battle of Fuentes d’Onore, and when we were waiting in our position
near them to risk an attack, in order to protect the siege of Almeyda,
early one morning Lord Aylmer came suddenly in to him whilst he was
shaving, to tell him that “the French were all off, and the last
cavalry mounting to be gone;” the consequence of which movement was to
relieve him entirely, to give him Almeyda, and preserve Portugal. He
merely took the razor off for one moment, and said, “Ay, I thought they
meant to be off; very well;” and then another shave just as before,
without another word till he was dressed. I find, however, it is said
he magnifies the French now and then—sees double as to the number of
blue uniforms, and cannot see all the scarlet; but I believe most men
in his situation do this more or less. I must now proceed to summon
some witnesses: so, for the present, adieu.

_Monday, 4 o’clock._—You ask me what my house is like, and what Frenada
is? Frenada is a village much in decay, very dirty; in the streets
are immense masses of stones, and holes, and dung all about, houses
like a farm kitchen, with this difference that there are the stables
underneath. My last lodging was like a part of a Welsh farm-house,
boarded off at one end from the common room, with a hole through the
wall and one pane of glass let in. I am now in a distinct building
like a granary, with the stables below, in an English farm-yard, in
which are my animals of all sorts, servants and all. The kitchen is a
miserable shed, not water-tight, where the woman of the house and three
children live quite separate. The building I occupy has one opening
with a wooden door besides the entrance-door, and the end, about eight
feet wide by sixteen long, was boarded off by an officer last year. In
this I sleep, eat, drink, write, &c., and live altogether, as it has a
fireplace in the corner built by the same officer. The fireplace is
so contrived, however, as to let more smoke into the room than up the
chimney, and of course my eyes suffer, and all I have looks yellow and
smells of smoke.

It is said that Lord Wellington and the Court here are to go to
Ciudad Rodrigo, to a fête, to install the new Knight of the Bath,
General Cole. I shall not go unless especially invited, and I have
enough to do here, for except, probably, the Adjutant-general, the
Quarter-Master-general, and perhaps the Commissary-general, I have more
correspondents than any one here.

I take it in the army that the officers in the lower branches of the
staff are sharp-set, hungry, and anxious to get on, and make the most
of everything, and have a view even in their civilities. I have tried
not to notice much that I could not help seeing, and which gave me a
moderate opinion of the profession, which has not the independence
to be seen in all the most respectable at the bar. There is much
obsequious, time-serving conduct to any one who is in office, or is
thought to have a word to say to his lordship.

Lord Wellington gets angry about the Courts-martial, the difficulty as
to getting witnesses, the inconvenience, and then at last the great
lenity of the Courts. “How can you expect,” he remarked to me, “a Court
to find an officer guilty of neglect of duty, when it is composed of
members who are all more or less guilty of the same?” He does not
like the tribunal. We have, however, hung six men within this month,
broken several officers (at least their cases are gone home with that
sentence), and flogged about sixteen or eighteen (pretty well, this),
and we are still at work. I have now twenty-two cases left on hand,
about thirty-six tried, about two or three new cases every week, yet
I hope we are getting on better now. I am glad to be made of such
importance as you say I am in England; my reputation increases here a
little, several Courts-martial having been sent back for revision: for
this I get in a degree the credit, and in some instances justly. I am
thought a formidable person to whom it is as well to be civil, and who
can often be of service to others.

The Princess of Wales’s letter is good; and I think, and have always
thought, that if she could once dare inquiry, her case would be
unanswerable, and the Prince in a complete dilemma. We have heard here
that Brougham wrote the Princess’s letter: is there such a story in
England?

_Wednesday, 10th March._—No more news, and no more mails, and no more
time. I am to be asked, it is said, to Rodrigo to the fête there
on Saturday. Lord Wellington wants to be very magnificent in his
own city, and has said that he wished to give a supper to a hundred
and fifty, but is told that it is quite out of the question, as the
town and head-quarters would not supply dishes and plates, &c. There
is, however, to be a small dinner first before the ball. But this
arrangement may be a little disturbed by an event I have this moment
heard from General O’Lalor. A Spanish dragoon is come in, with news
that the French are moving in the Sierra di Francia; their object,
I think likely enough, to rout us up before we are ready. I know no
more; General O’Lalor went to Lord Wellington to tell him the news.
N.B.—Orders have just come in to prepare charges against nine Polish
deserters.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, March 15th, 1813, 9 o’clock at night._—As
to Sir Isaac Heard’s coming over here to invest the Marquis with the
Garter, doubtless the old Garter king would like it; and at this time
of the year, while quiet here, and neither hot nor wet, no mosquitoes,
and without baggage, he might do it tolerably well. If you travel
without baggage, as Lord Wellington did when he went to Cadiz, with
good horses, you get on thirty, forty, and even fifty miles in a
day; avoid all the bad places, only stop in towns, get the best
accommodation, and only rest where there are English Commissaries, &c.
Lord Wellington came from Lisbon here in five days, with relays of
horses; the last day he rode fifty miles between breakfast and dinner.

The movements of the French I mentioned in my last came to little or
nothing—it was a mere alarm.

I have had a long letter from Sutton in answer to several queries. He
agrees with me in every point which I have had to decide; and I am
particularly glad to be right in the great one on which Lord Wellington
differed with me, and directed me to send home his reasons. Still Lord
Wellington is hardly satisfied, but desires me to wait till I hear
officially from Sutton about it.

The day before yesterday we had a hard day’s work in the shape of
gaiety and amusement. Lord Wellington desired to invest General Cole
with the Order of the Bath, in a suitable manner; and as he had never
done anything at Ciudad Rodrigo, of which he is Duke, he determined
upon this opportunity to give a grand fête in the midst of the ruins—a
grand dinner, ball, and supper. All heads of departments, generals,
public authorities, Spaniards and English, were invited to dinner,
to the amount of sixty-five. In the evening, ladies about forty,
and men about a hundred and fifty, came to a ball and supper. The
dinner and supper were half cooked at Frenada, and carried over in
military waggons and on mules. All the plate at head-quarters was put
in requisition, and there was enough to afford a change of silver at
dinner. Plenty of claret, champagne, and Lamego, _i. e._, port, was
sent over. A caravan of glass and crockery arrived from the governor
of Almeyda, and from a shop just opened there. Almeyda is twenty-five
miles from Rodrigo. The whole went off very well, except that it was
excessively cold, as a few balls during the siege had knocked in
several yards of the roof of the ball-room, and it was a hard frost at
the time.

Lord Wellington was the most active man of the party—he prides himself
on this; but yet I hear from those about him that he is a little broken
down by it. He stayed on business at Frenada until half-past three,
and then rode full seventeen miles to Rodrigo in two hours to dinner,
dressed in all his orders, &c., was in high glee, danced, stayed
supper, and at half-past three in the morning went back to Frenada by
moonlight, and arrived here before daybreak at six; so that by twelve
he was ready again for business, and I saw him amongst others upon a
Court-martial on my return at two the next day. Campbell and General
O’Lalor managed the fête. I made cards for every place at dinner, with
corresponding ones for each person, with his name, table, and number
of his plate, and so there was no bowing and scraping, or pushing for
the first table. We got quarters in the ruins. Stables there were none
scarcely, and we took over hay and barley for the horses for the night,
and our beds to lie down for an hour or two. Several ladies, refugees
from Salamanca, were there, and the band of the 52nd.

The house at which the entertainment was given was the best in the
town, with some very good rooms; but it had suffered a little by the
siege, and had, moreover; only bare walls. Luckily, however, the
General O’Lalor discovered that the Intendente of the Palace of St.
Ildefonso had brought away the hangings of five or six of the best
rooms to save them from the French, and had deposited them at Rodrigo.
These were obtained, and the bare walls of the ball-room were hung
all over with yellow damask satin with a silver border, with openings
at each end in festoons, like a tent, and looked very well. The other
supper-rooms were hung with crimson satin and gold from the same
palace, and in tolerable condition.

The whole was laid out so as to astonish the inhabitants, and the
defects were concealed almost entirely. Near one hole in the floor a
man was placed to take care that no one got a leg in, and a mat was put
over the whole. The ladies were not very handsome, but two or three
good-looking, and several very lady-like in their manners.

I was most pleased with the bolero and fandango dances, which were
executed by two Spanish ladies, Chanoinesses as they were called,
nieces of two Chanoines, and two Spaniards, one of whom danced very
well. The best was the old fellow who was sent for to play on his
ornamented paper square tambourine, or rather flat drum, who sang the
airs and accompanied himself with great humour, and afterwards gave us
a dance in the true style. The enthusiasm of the Spaniards was also
amusing, and their eager applause. All the other dances were English
country dances, which the ladies execute very well and exactly like
ours, except that they waltz the poussets, and generally, therefore,
dance waltz tunes, and have that figure. They are also a little more
twisted about and handled than our fair ones would like at first; but
upon the whole, perhaps our country dances are improved by the change.
We had much drinking and toasts given on both sides, at the expense of
the French: “Ferdinand the Seventh,” “The next campaign,” “Death to
all Frenchmen,” &c. In short, several Spaniards as well as English got
very drunk by five o’clock in the morning, and they chaired the Prince
of Orange, General Vandeleur, whom they let fall, and several others,
as soon as the ladies were gone, and there was nothing else to do. The
Spaniards at first began with “vivas,” but soon learnt “hip, hip, hip,
hurra!”

With great care a few silver spoons and knives and forks only were
missing, and it is said one plate. Henry tells me the servants saw one
Spanish officer with a turkey’s leg sticking out of his pocket; but,
like our aldermen, they are given to pocket even at Madrid, and have
some excuse, for they are paid little, and find everything very dear.
Probably a turkey had not been seen there for months: they were, I
believe, all brought from thirty or forty miles down the Douro, near
Lamego. Besides the Spanish military authorities, there were some
civilians of rank, as the Marquis d’Espeja and a few others. Colonel
Gordon was the only officer who would return with Lord Wellington;
and though he has the best horses here next to those of the chief, he
borrowed another horse which had come over earlier, to ride back upon
with Lord Wellington, and left his own, which he had ridden on in the
morning with his lordship, to come back later in the day.

The repairs of the walls of Ciudad Rodrigo are going on better, and
they are now nearly cleared of rubbish, so as to be ready to begin to
rebuild the new work, which all fell down last autumn. I sat at the
grand dinner directly opposite to E——, who introduced himself to me
afterwards in the ball-room. Colonel Fisher, of the Artillery, was
next, a very pleasant man, a great artist, connoisseur, traveller,
&c. Except at a grand fête, and the few great men who come to
head-quarters, or when crossing a division on the march, which we
always avoid if possible, we seldom see any regimental officers.

_Tuesday Night (16th)._—We have flogged and hung people into better
order here, I think, but have now got into a little squabble with
the Portuguese Government, who will become bold by success. By the
Portuguese law a magistrate is only to give evidence in writing by
deposition, which our Courts, if it be a fact in his own knowledge,
and where he is wanted as a witness, ought not to receive. I fear the
Bill proposed at home will be unpopular, and yet inefficient in a great
measure.

The Guards, who joined nearly when I did, have suffered most of all
by the campaign. They came out a noble battalion of fine men, twelve
hundred strong; four hundred are dead, and not above five hundred are
now fit for duty. This is very shocking.

The division on Grattan’s motion in the House is stronger than I
expected it would be after all the outcry on the subject. I had a
long conversation while walking up and down the market-place with
Lord Wellington here, a few days since, upon that and the Indian
question. He has, from what he saw in Ireland, taken up a strong
notion that independence is what the Irish really aim at, and he is,
therefore, for giving no more, but proceeding upon King William’s
plan to keep them down by main force, for he thinks that they have
too much power already, and will only use more to obtain more, and
at length separation. He said he thought his brother and Canning had
just taken up the Catholic question when the tide of popularity was
turning against it. I hope this is not so; and though I agree with him
that the party for separation is strong, his plan would drive them to
extremities, and is now too late; the only chance is, to get the higher
orders of Roman Catholics and the priests, if possible, by pay or
otherwise, and by looking for pay and patronage, to be dependent on the
Crown and on England more than they are, and at the same time not to be
a degraded class.

Did I tell you the size of Frenada, about which you asked? It is about
as large as Ashted, without the three gentlemen’s houses in it. Lord
Wellington’s house is, however, better known than the inn there (the
Leg of Mutton and Cauliflower), and more ornamented, though it does not
contain more room or as much comfort. This is as good a description as
I can give you, only that all the houses are more roomy than in our
villages—more like barns—for the straw, corn, and all are left under
the same roof.

As Sutton only answers my letters indirectly, and not officially upon
the point on which we differed, Lord Wellington says he will not act
until he has an official answer. He does not like to be wrong, and yet
I am very glad he is so.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, March 19th, 1813._—The day before yesterday
we had a most extraordinary arrival here in General Murray, the
Quarter-Master-general of the army. He left Plymouth late on the 10th
instant, and was here at Frenada on the 18th, in the morning, in about
seven days and a half. He got to Oporto from Plymouth in less than five
days, and here in three, travelling post on horses, ponies, mules, and
anything he could get: he brought London papers of the 8th. His baggage
went round by Lisbon. He was to have come out with General Graham and
General Stewart, but was sent off here express with despatches in a
sloop of war. No one knows what the important news is which made it
advisable to send out a Quarter-Master-general as a messenger.

I hear of no movement yet in the army, and as part of the cavalry are
down below Coimbra, and part still below Abrantes, near Cabeça de Vide,
Aunde Chad, and Monforte, it will be necessary to give some notice of
anything like a serious movement in good time. Perhaps head-quarters
may move to Guinaldo in a month—I think not sooner, for there is no
grass there yet, and the cold is not gone, nor the rain come, though
the sky has threatened much for the last day or two. I have now to
send above thirty miles for bad hay or straw for my animals, and that
I hear is nearly exhausted. We have been obliged to send fifteen miles
for some time past, which is hard work for the poor mules during what
should be their resting-time.

You ask about our religious duties. There are four or five or more
clergymen in Portugal, but no one now at head-quarters. The clergyman
stationed there went away ill about a twelvemonth since, I hear.

_Sunday, 21st._—The remains of the battalion of Guards which lost
so many men, and was so sickly, is going down towards the coast and
towards Coimbra, to recruit with sea-air.

I must now away to answer letters. I have only read four of the
newspapers out of the last fifteen; you may therefore conclude how much
I am employed. I get through one at breakfast-time, and when at home
two of an evening; nor have I yet read half through one review. Lord
Wellington is as bad; he borrowed my “Vetus” nearly three weeks since,
and has not read it.

_Wednesday, 4 o’clock, Post-day._—Having got all my proceedings written
out fair by half-past six yesterday, I dined with the General. Early
again this morning I breakfasted with him; compared the two, got the
fair one signed; picked you up botanical specimens of the flowers in
the fields in my ride back, and here I am.

Since Rodrigo has been taken, the inhabitants about Guinaldo feel
more confidence, and more land is this year in cultivation. They are
tempted also by the high price of everything; and near Guinaldo I saw
a new enclosure going on, and trees being grubbed up to a considerable
extent. The old lady where General Vandeleur is quartered, is doing
this to an extent of several thousand acres. To give you a proof of the
lightness of their ploughs, I met a man walking off a mile or two to
work from Guinaldo with a complete plough on his shoulder, the whole
plough fit for use, iron share, &c.; he was walking three or four miles
an hour, quite upright. I hear that the inhabitants of Bejar, rather an
opulent Spanish town, and where there is a cloth trade, have been so
well satisfied with the 50th regiment for having driven away the French
and saved their town, that they have given them all round a pair of
pantaloons each, and several days’ double rations of spirits, and some
other presents. The place is now strengthened considerably as a post,
it is said, for the French seem to be making some stir, though no one
seems to know what they mean to be about.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, March 27th, 1813. Saturday._—The statement of
Courts-martial, which I shall present to Lord Wellington to-morrow,
satisfies me that we are mending, and that we have not tried fifty
cases, hung eight, transported eight or ten, flogged about sixty
severely, and broke several officers—for nothing. I have now only
eighteen left in hand, and three of these very old cases. We had one
very melancholy piece of business here last week: a young corporal,
Mac Morran, a Scotchman in the 42nd, was reprimanded mildly by his
officer, Lieutenant Dickenson, for neglect of duty; he answered rather
impertinently, and was then told to consider himself a prisoner, and to
follow. Having walked a few yards, Lieutenant Dickenson looked round,
and the corporal, having (no one knows how) loaded his musket, levelled
it at him, and shot him dead through the heart. The corporal has been
tried, and is to be hung to-morrow. They were both under twenty years
of age, I hear, and the most promising young men in their respective
stations. The officer was a man of mild, humane character. The corporal
made no defence: it seemed an excess of Scotch pride. It is altogether
a very painful business.

We have still very cold north-east winds, and to-day a little fall of
sleet, hail, and stormy, windy, black sky. Lord Wellington is gone
hunting, which gives me a little time.

I hear the French are moving; two divisions of Soult’s army are said
to be retiring behind the Douro, near Valladolid: and I am told they
are engaged in fortifying all the fords and bridges near the Douro,
at Toro, Tordesillas, Aranda de Douro, &c. Probably they will make
a grand stand on that river; where, from what I saw, they have great
advantages, for the banks on our side are low and flat, and on their
side, towards France (the right bank) high and commanding, and the
position on that side also strong. It is thought the slight movement in
advance of one of our divisions, the fourth, from St. Jean de Piscara,
merely for convenience of supplies and change of air, caused this
movement on the part of the French, who only stay down about Toledo,
probably, for food.

Accounts have just come in from one of our look-out officers, who live
close to the French, and act as spies, and have correspondence with
them—a Captain ——, who was here a fortnight since. He says that the
French are all moving, and apparently towards the other side of the
Douro. Joseph has left Madrid. His informers state that the French are
going at once behind the Ebro; but he himself thinks not, as they would
not willingly give up the fine country between the Douro and Ebro for
nothing, and have fortified, report says, the passes. So we stand.
Conjectures are made, that our advance will not be the same as last
year, through Salamanca, as we have no great depôt being made yet this
way at Rodrigo, and should have to force these passes on the Douro;
whereas some depôts are being formed in Portugal near the Douro, more
in the north of Portugal; and we could in that direction cross the
Douro without opposition, turn all these French works on that river,
and join the Spanish army in Gallicia, but the roads in that case will
be much worse. I hope we may go that road, and thus see a new country,
and in part, I believe, a fine one. There is one fine pass in the
Agava, only five leagues hence, at Barba del Puerto, which I have never
yet had time to visit, but shall do so, if possible, after the rain,
provided we remain here.

Lord Wellington, in conversation the other day, told me that some
Spaniards of rank had talked to him about educating their children at a
Roman Catholic school in England, if there were such. I knew of one or
two good girls’ schools, but could not remember any good Roman Catholic
boys’ school.

We have a most furious Portuguese lady now here, the wife of a hidalgo
of Portugal, whose daughter was run away with by an English officer.
Lord Wellington told her that he would give him up to the laws of
Portugal; but as he has now married her, Lord Wellington says he will
not interfere at all. The woman swears that she will get the priest who
married them transported for life by their law, as well as the officer,
and has moreover declared she will kill the daughter if she meets her!

As to Mr. R——, concerning whom you inquire, I know nothing about him:
we have a _ci-devant_ major of that name just arrived here. He is
full of travellers’ stories; has been long a prisoner in France: had
a prefect’s wife for his _chère amie_; escaped with wonderful risks;
joined the Guerillas, got to the coast, and off, I believe, to Cadiz. I
am told that he is to be an officer in a new horse-police staff corps
about to be established.

_30th March, Tuesday, 4 o’clock._—I have presented four Courts-martial
to Lord Wellington, and sent one back for revision as illegal, and
confirmed three, two against one man—together, two thousand lashes.
This is absurd, he will bear six or seven hundred, and there it will
end. The sentence, however, is legal, which it was not before, when
transportation was the punishment. Lord Wellington now addresses me
with the familiar “How are you?” So we go on more easily, and I made a
sort of proposal to him to insert a passage in general orders now, to
be read to the men every day until we march, to let them know that a
new police corps was established to catch them, and to tell them that
seven officers would be sufficient now to hang them, and that Courts
would be held always ready in every division. He said he would think
about it, and thought it would be of use.

Dr. M’Gregor told me yesterday, that his sick-list was improving daily,
and that if Lord Wellington would give him another month he thought
he should bring the greater part into the field. King Joseph, I have
just heard, arrived at Valladolid from Madrid on the 23rd instant; Lord
Fitzroy Somerset just read it out of a Spanish private letter.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, Sunday, April 4th, 1813._—You will observe
that I do know when Sunday comes, although that is certainly nearly
all. We, however, have a church and a bell, which goes on tolling for
hours in a most unattractive manner. We have a church, too, which is
made use of for various purposes, civil as well as ecclesiastical;
for instance, one night about one hundred and fifty Spaniards and
their mules, officers and all, slept in it. The building is large,
considering the size of the village, the floor covered with straw like
a stable, but the end where the altar is, is all gold and glitter up to
the ceiling. The decorations must originally have been very expensive,
for, besides the great expenditure of gold-leaf and foil, and carving,
all the ceiling, which is coved and circular, and divided into squares,
has a picture of a saint, or a father, a founder, a hermit, or some
great divinity hero, in every square. Masses, the funeral service,
weddings, and christenings, are also performed there. I just look in
now and then, for it is awkward to stand there, when all are on their
knees on the floor. There is also a little chapel belonging to the
owner of Lord Wellington’s house; which is fitted up by Colonel G—— for
his quarters. He has hung it with red baize, fitted up the altar as
his dressing-table, put up an iron stove, and made it one of the best
quarters here.

Lord Wellington looks forward very coolly to another winter here. He
said yesterday he should have twenty-five couples of fox-hounds next
season. The other day the Commissary-general told him that we had eaten
nearly all the oxen in the country, that the cultivation of the lands
in Portugal could not go on for want of them, and that he scarcely knew
where to turn for a supply of beef, as there was this year no reserve
store near Lisbon. Lord Wellington said, “Well, then, we must now set
about eating all the sheep, and when they are gone I suppose we must
go.” And General M—— added, “Historians will say that the British
army came and carried on war in Spain and Portugal until they had
eaten all the beef and mutton in the country, and were then compelled
to withdraw.” Without joking, I fear our Commissariat may have great
difficulties next year. Talking on this subject, I must add that the
Portuguese agent here, a sly, money-making man, who has realized about
25,000_l._ during the war, said the news was so good, that he now
hoped to get a peace, and that the Portuguese would get rid of the
“beefs,” meaning the English. Communication as to necessary articles
and others is so difficult with Lisbon, that one of Lord Wellington’s
aides-de-camp has been six months getting two bridles up, and C.
Campbell four months in getting up a great coat.

Lord Wellington yesterday, talking of his soldiers and English notions,
observed that his men were now all so round-shouldered and slouching in
their gait, that he was sure, if his regiment here was in its present
state to pass in review at Wimbledon Common, the whole would be sent
to drill immediately, and declared quite unfit for service. Indeed, he
added, that the men had now got into such a way of doing everything in
the easiest manner, that he was often quite ashamed of the sentries
before his own quarter. He did not mention this by way of complaint,
but as showing how ideas here and at home differed. He also laughed
at our notions in England about the supply of the army, saying that
some corporate body or society in England had once made him an offer of
twenty bullocks for the army, which would last head-quarters only about
a week. General M—— said it must have been a mistake—the offer must
have been for his table only; not for the army.

Orders, it is said, are gone round for the Alicant army to be
re-embarked and landed in the rear of Suchet, to compel him to quit
Valencia if possible; this will be the first step I conclude. You say
you are all looking to us, and want us to move. Our black clouds have
all rolled away, and to-day we have again a clear north wind and hot
sun, and not a blade of grass growing; without the latter we cannot
stir. If the rains will but come soon and bring grass, we may, perhaps,
move in the first week of May, but not before: that is, no important
move can take place. Our cavalry, though down below Coimbra, are very
much distressed for food, and complaints come up without number from
the Portuguese that our people will feed their horses with the young
corn, which is now great waste; but what is to be done? When we have
finished the oxen we may go, as Lord Wellington says, to the sheep, but
what are horses to do when hay is all gone, and straw, and there is
no grass come? How little you know in England about the real state of
things here, and the requisites for moving in a campaign! You forget
our ten or fifteen thousand animals for baggage and for food, besides
the cavalry and artillery, &c. The Portuguese agent here repeats that
another campaign in Portugal will be impossible, for there will be
neither animals to eat, nor for transport, unless we bring all with us.
I hope, however, not to pass another winter at Frenada; but so hoped
those who were here last year.

Did I ever mention to you Lord Wellington’s saying how anxious the
Prince Regent was that he should correspond with him, and how much
hurt he was that he had never done so. “But,” observed Lord Wellington,
“I wrote to his ministers, and that was enough. What had I to do with
him? However, his late favour was a reason for my writing, and I have
had a most gracious answer, evidently courting further correspondence;”
but which he intimated he should not comply with.

I understand the famous Guerillas are much more dreaded by their own
countrymen in the north of Spain than the French, and I fear with some
reason, as they are (many of them, at least) very much like banditti.
The French, however, suffered so much by them, that they have adopted
the same plan, and have their counter Guerillas; some with French
officers to conduct them, and some headed by Guerilla chiefs, who have
quarrelled and separated from their companions in the good cause. I was
sorry to hear this. The French continue moving about, and their force
towards the Tagus diminishes.

You have my news as I hear it: we are now getting ready ammunition,
&c., to the front, to prepare for an advance when possible; so,
perhaps, we may pass Rodrigo, and cross the Douro to the left of
Salamanca, if the French stand on that river, as we have now this year
pontoons, which we had not last year. We have also a new and more
portable battering-train, come out from England, which has arrived as
far as Abrantes, where it only waits for means of transport to come
on here. That which we had here last year, I am told, was excessively
clumsy.

_April 7th._—I have heard a number of anecdotes of General Craufurd.
All admit that he was very clever and knowing in his profession, and
led on his division on the day of his death in the most gallant style;
but Lord Wellington never knew what he would do. He constantly acted
in his own way, contrary to orders: and as he commanded the advanced
division, at times perplexed Lord Wellington considerably, who never
could be sure where he was. On one occasion, near Guinaldo, he
remained across a river by himself; that is, with his own division
only, nearly a whole day after he was called in by Lord Wellington. He
said he knew that he could defend his position. Lord Wellington, when
he came back, only said, “I am glad to see you safe, Craufurd.” To
which the latter replied, “Oh, I was in no danger, I assure you.” “But
I was, from your conduct,” said Lord Wellington. Upon which Craufurd
observed, “He is d—— crusty to-day.”

Marmont, when he saw Craufurd filing off next morning, could not
believe it: “_Diable! voilà Craufurd! ma foi, j’aurais pu deviner
cela._” Another time, Lord Wellington said, “Craufurd, you are going
into a delicate situation; what orders do you wish for? I will write
what you think best.” Craufurd told him his own plan and went away.
Whilst Lord Wellington was writing them out, and acting accordingly,
Craufurd sent him word that he had done something else. On another
occasion, Lord Wellington sent to him to say he should inspect his
division, and came accordingly. Craufurd never attended until it was
half over, and then said that Lord Wellington was before his time; yet
he was very strict with his own division, and would be very exactly
obeyed. His division all complained of this, and many officers talked
of who should call him out, on one or two occasions, for this. Yet
he was so much valued, and the whole division had such confidence in
him, that, when he joined them again just before the attack to take
the command in the engagement in which he died, the whole division set
up a loud shout, so as to frighten a small party of French who were
near, who did not know what was the matter, and they ran away. Lord
Wellington knew his merits and humoured him. It was surprising what he
bore from him at times.

Lord Wellington celebrated the day of the storming of Badajoz with a
grand dinner yesterday; only those present at that event were invited.
Lord Aylmer had a rival dinner-party, at which was General Murray, &c.,
where I dined also. If the good news brings peace, what will become of
your humble servant and many others here? “Othello’s occupation’s gone!”

General Murray is apparently very clever and clearheaded. In my
opinion, he comes next to Lord Wellington, as far as I have seen.
We are all full of the news, for a paper of the 22nd has arrived at
Oporto several days later than the mail. We now know about Hamburg and
Cuxhaven, Berlin, &c. I fear that the French will be driven together
into one large body, and may then be more than a match for any one army
opposed to them, but they will be considerably cowed and disheartened.
When will the Dutch be roused to do anything? Now or never is their
time!




CHAPTER V.

 News of the French—Castilian Costume—Equipment of the Army—Melancholy
 Court-martial Case—Wellington in the Battle of Fuentes d’Onore—The
 Chances of War—Anecdotes of Wellington—His Opinions of the War—The New
 Mutiny Act—Wellington on “Vetus”—General Murray—Advance of the French.


  Head-quarters, Frenada, April 12, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

From what I hear, if we could only get grass, Lord Wellington would
move about the second week in May. There is no immediate prospect of
this, as you will perceive, when I tell you that the Military Secretary
has sent all his horses nearly a hundred miles off for grass.

The news here is, that some more of the French, about twenty men
from every regiment, are ordered home. Some, but I believe no great
number hitherto, are actually gone: and about three or four thousand
conscripts are supposed to have arrived in Spain to fill up the
vacancies of the old soldiers removed. Head-quarters will not now
probably move until we march; and, from report, we shall not go to
Guinaldo, but stay here quietly until the army is drawn up around us,
ready to move.

The clergy, both here and in Spain, are in general, I understand,
fortunately of the same opinion as to the Pope’s signing the Concordat,
as you say the emigrants are; that he did it from compulsion, or that a
different instrument was substituted for his signature. It was feared
that artful plan would have assisted Bonaparte in Spain.

I hear the same accounts of the state of commerce at Lisbon as George
sends from London. Old Colonel Arentschild here says, “She (meaning
England) will make enough in Germany, by trade, to enable her, in the
first six months, to carry on the war for two years, if necessary.”
I fear the news in the papers concerning the Prince of Orange was
rather premature. He states, that he has hitherto had no offer except
from the Continent, nor heard anything from the newspaper. It will
prove a prophecy, I hope, instead of a fact. He seems a very amiable,
deserving youth, is liked by every one, and has had the greatest of
all advantages for a young prince, that of being educated in a great
measure with persons who have behaved to him as if he were their equal.
So, indeed, he is treated now; except that he has a little more respect
paid to him, which I believe is really felt, for he lives nearly on
terms of equality with Lord Fitzroy Somerset, Lord March, Colonel G——,
&c., and is quite one of the set, and is little or no restraint to
any one. I met him, two days ago, scrambling down on the banks of the
Coa, three miles off, by himself on foot. He must just now have some
interesting subjects for contemplation, and I have no doubt some very
flattering visions pass through his brain.

I am looking so much better than when I arrived at head-quarters, that
Lord Wellington and several others think I am an exception to the
general rule, and that the climate here agrees with me. Lord Wellington
says he has had so many ill and dead since he has been here, that he
does not like to think of it; many, like General Hulse, &c., whose loss
he feels in every way. He says now, he is always ready to let every one
go home when first he complains, and is disposed to tell every one who
looks ill to be off.

I have just seen some very handsome specimens of the Castilian dresses,
male and female, of the higher classes of rich peasantry, made I
believe, by a tailor from Salamanca. The three female dresses Lord
Wellington means to give to his nieces for masquerades; they are
covered with work—embroidery, lace, and gold; he gives two thousand
dollars for them. The man’s dress was for Lord March, and is certainly
most becoming to almost every one.

I must now go and consider the new intended Bill to punish our
offenders here, which Lord Beresford has sent for Lord Wellington
to consult him upon it, and he has sent it to me—the draught of the
intended Act I mean; and as every one makes some observation, I must
make a few also. So, for the present, adieu.

I never told you that some of our military great boys here got very
tipsy on the commemoration of the fall of Badajoz, and went to a poor
_Juge de Fores_, that is a Portugal law magistrate, who was on a visit,
and poured a bottle of blacking partly in his mouth, and partly over
him, at twelve at night; and then made him dress, and go and help break
poor C——’s only pane of glass, and upset his bed, as he had retired.
Soldiers, lawyers, and all, I see, are boys at times alike.

_April 13th._—Much too hot for hunting I should think; but all the
sportsmen are out. Lord Wellington has not got good horses to be idle;
he works them well. Besides all the hunting, &c., the day before
yesterday, after doing business until twelve o’clock, off he went by
himself, without saying a word to any one, across to Ciudad Rodrigo,
seventeen miles off, inspected all the works, and was back again here
in five hours and a half to dinner. He says that they are now going on
very well there, and seems to be a little anxious about his own town. I
suspect when we do move that we shall get on fast, for Lord Wellington
will like to pass the Douro before the French know his plans.

_Wednesday, April 14th, Post-day._—This will be but a stupid packet,
as I have no news or events here to communicate. General Castanos
arrived here yesterday in a great lumbering carriage, with eight mules
and ropes from Cadiz, on his way to his division. He called here for
instructions.

We have had in my own line another murder: a private grenadier of the
Buffs shot his officer, on their private parade at Placencia, in the
second division, from the window of his quarter, just opposite to that
of the officer, and just as he came out to the men, who were all there.
The officer was Lieutenant Annesley. The grenadier wounded a sergeant
at the same time, and was instantly secured. No quarrel or disagreement
was known, but he said that he was satisfied he had killed his enemy,
and the day before, when another man committed suicide, he said, “What
a fool, not to kill his enemy first, if he had one!” The officer is
well spoken of. The conduct of the grenadier resembles madness more
than anything else, yet they say he was not mad; I have just sent out a
charge against him, and an order for his trial.

Our own army is now quite clothed, I believe. I fear that the
Portuguese are only in the middle of theirs, and will not have finished
these three weeks. You have no notion what there is to be done before
an army like ours is fit to move in such a country as this. We have
been three months getting up these clothes from Lisbon for our men; the
tents have not yet arrived for head-quarters, and some say that only
the army are to use them. I suppose, however, that we must carry them.

Lord Tweeddale continues here as an amateur, and will probably advance
with us. When we march I may not be able to write so often, as our time
will be much occupied, and pen and ink will not be always at hand.
An order has just now come out to pay everything up to the 24th of
December, that the officers may have a little money to prepare for the
march.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, April 17th, 1813._—The corn looks very ill
about this place, very thin, very yellow, and indeed positively very
bad crops. Whether this is, however, also only comparatively bad as
to other years I cannot say; it would appear to be so to some extent.
The soil is here very poor, and I suspect the harvest is never very
abundant. Several parts of Spain have this year suffered much from the
want of rain, and the very early heat of the weather; Estremadura in
particular: where the sun has been very powerful, everything has been
burnt up. My authority for this is General O’Donoghue.

In my own department I have another rather melancholy story. Mr. M——,
a clerk in the commissariat department, had been guilty of fraud and
embezzlement of stores (some pork, rice, and milk), to no great amount,
as far as I could prove under 20_l._; but it was sold out of the store
at Galigas, in a neighbouring village. By Lord Wellington’s orders I
made out a charge against M——, and sent it to him at Coimbra, with an
order from the Commissary for him to attend under close arrest at Cea
to take his trial, as the witnesses were near Galigas. Soon after the
receipt of this letter and order he shot himself, and has thus put an
end to the whole business. He was well connected in England, it is
said, has respectable friends, and was in a good situation there. A
woman with whom he lived here, I believe, was the cause of the whole.
When he turned her off she stirred up the witnesses against him, and
was the cause of its being made known to Sir R. Kennedy, and by his
means to Lord Wellington, when of course a prosecution was inevitable.
By the Mutiny Act he was liable to transportation for life, fine,
imprisonment, or pillory: and he could not stand the disgrace. He
partly admitted the charge, but pleaded sickness and distress. It was
unfortunate that the discovery fell on such a subject, for it was, I
believe, the first falling off from general good conduct.

I have now got a Court-martial in the fourth division, the only one
which has been hitherto free, to sit near Escalpaon, and to try three
fellows for going out at night and stealing seven sheep, keeping sentry
as a guard over the two shepherds, whilst they skinned the sheep and
divided the meat; two other men, of better characters, were with them,
and they are therefore to be admitted as witnesses against the three.
The Court at Coimbra has suffered the two worst fellows to escape
almost with twelve hundred lashes; they ought to have been hung, for
they are desperate fellows, both Irishmen. They have been most mutinous
and insolent whilst under trial, and one of them, a few days since,
said he did not know whether he was to be hung or flogged this time,
but if the latter, he would take care next time that there should be no
witnesses to tell of what he had done.

Lord Wellington said at dinner the day before yesterday, “We must move
by the end of the first week in May, that’s positive.” And then spoke
sharply to Colonel F—— of the artillery, because the artillery was
not arrived. The Colonel coolly replied, “My lord, I do not think the
artillery have been, or will be, the cause of your lordship staying at
Frenada. Transport is the great difficulty—animals are so scarce. The
Portuguese make much money, but are afraid of spending it, or getting
or breeding animals for fear of their being seized or embargoed.” An
engineer has been appointed and sent to each division, and a messenger
or Spanish courier (who arrived three days since in four days from
Cadiz post), was last night sent post round through Seville to Alicant.
Something, therefore, is in agitation, and all this looks like
preparation for moving. He expected to arrive at Alicant in eight days
at furthest, if not in seven.

Lord Wellington the other day was again talking of the battle of
Fuentes d’Onore. He said that he was obliged to ride hard to escape,
and thought at one time, as he was on a slow horse, that he should have
been taken. The whole of head-quarters, general and all, he added,
English dragoons and French dragoons, were all galloping away together
across the plain, and he more than once saw a French dragoon in a green
coat within twenty yards of him. One Frenchman got quite past them all,
and they could not knock him off his horse. At last they caught his
bridle and stopped him.

_21st April._—We sup early (as you call your late dinners) here,
and are as smart as you are in England in that respect. At present
half-past seven is the hour. We cannot change this hour till Lord
Wellington does, for business is now going on till six. We also beat
the most fashionable in London in one respect, for we have no female
society at all here. There is one lady here, Mrs. S——, and that is
all the English we see, once in a week perhaps; and then the men
preponderate so that the tone of the society is quite male. There
is one Portuguese lady, niece to the Capitan Mor here, or principal
resident inhabitant: but she is ugly, and said to be perfumed too
strongly with oily salt fish. She is no favourite, and is very little
noticed. Her little uncle hunts with Lord Wellington on a little
country pony, and does wonders in that way; he seems an active little
Portuguese.

Lieutenant-Colonel W——, in the Adjutant-general’s Department here,
who was ill when I joined, has now returned. He has had some curious
adventures in this country. He once fell in, accompanied by two
dragoons, with a small party of French, close to their main body, who
were attending some baggage. He, his men consenting, attacked the
French, beat them off, plundered their baggage, and brought off the
best mule. The latter he kept himself, and has it here now, and the
two soldiers took the money, &c. On another occasion, he was riding
quietly with Captain D——, of the same department, on the advance from
the lines at Torres Vedras on the retreat of Massena. They were quietly
jogging on, and were about to enter a place intended to be English
head-quarters that day. When close to it, they found the French were
still there in force, and saw three French dragoons close upon them,
who, however, did not see them. They resolved to attack by surprise.
They knocked two off from their horses, and attacked the third; he got
away and they pursued him. In the mean time the other two set off.
It ended, however, in W—— and D—— securing one dragoon horse, and
some other booty, with which they got safely away. Soon after this
Lieutenant-Colonel W—— was himself taken prisoner at Sabugal, when
the French advanced during the siege of Badajoz. He was then mounted
on this very dragoon horse, which he had kept as booty; the horse was
known by the French when he was carried in. He was asked how he came
by the horse? He said he bought it of a soldier; and as the three
Frenchmen had reported that they had been attacked by a “dozen men
in buckram,” and had said nothing of two officers, it all went off
well, and he kept their secret and his own. He refused to give his
parole, and was therefore ill fed, and kept prisoner with privates, and
treated like the rest, except that they let him ride Dragon, as he had
christened his horse.

Near Salamanca, a Spanish friend to whom he had been kind came to offer
his services to him: “Only get me a new pair of very sharp rowels to
my spurs,” said he, “that is all I want.” This was done, and on the
next day, the party, a whole French column of infantry, marched on at
daybreak about seven. Just near the end of the wood, near Salamanca,
in a wide open part of the road, he observed that most of the French
horsemen were dismounted; so turning about, he used his new rowels
strongly, got the start of them in some way, and was off. He galloped
till he heard no one behind him. At first there was a shout of “_Le
Mayo, le Mayo_,” and some pursued; he then crossed another road where
another French party was, got round by the mountains, reached, I think,
Tamones by eleven that night, and to Fuentes d’Onore next day safely.
The French had fed their horses in the fields at night on grass, and
were soon blown. He had refused to suffer his horse to leave him, and
gave him only a little bran, yet though his horse was a slow one too,
he thus got safely off. He has since sold the horse. Lord Wellington
asked him “Why?” He said, “Because, my lord, I was very near being
taken again on him when with your lordship at the battle of Fuentes
d’Onore, and that would be awkward, as the horse is known by the
French.” He seems an odd character.

The Commissaries all live here exceedingly well, the Lord knows how out
of their pay; and that ought to be nearly their only advantage.

_Frenada, Head-Quarters, April 24, 1813._—Four Generals have
arrived—Graham, Fane, Picton, and Oswald: Sir Stapleton Cotton, who
has received orders to command the whole cavalry, has, however, not
yet arrived, and is much wanted; but Graham and Picton are very good
officers.

Lord Wellington, a few days since, said that he hoped the Spaniards
were in many respects getting on much better; that there was a numerous
body now well clothed at least, and armed and tolerably disciplined;
that he was always ordering the drills to go on with spirit, and
by perseverance he thought they were much improving; that he never
interfered with the mode, but asked what their military rules and laws
were, and then said, “Well, that is very good; now mind and see that
they are put in force, and, remember, it is not I but your law orders
this; I have only to see your laws executed, which are very good, and
they must be obeyed.” He said, the Staff here seemed well satisfied.

The artillery is what Lord Wellington rails at most. They cannot get
on so well as he thinks they ought, or at least as he wants them to
do. I do not mean in particular at this moment, but generally. The
officers commanding this part of the army are rather heavy and slow,
or, as Lord Wellington said himself one day of a late commander, “I
took care to let him feel that I thought him very stupid.” “That must
have been,” General Murray said privately, “by telling him so in plain
terms, I have no doubt.” Colonel F——, who commanded the artillery at
the battle of Salamanca, and who is very well spoken of by every one,
but at times, I believe, is slow, was once with Lord Wellington at an
audience when things went wrong, and Lord Wellington got irate, who
told him pretty nearly that his friend concerning whom he was inquiring
“might go to h—.” Colonel F—— came muttering out, “I’ll go, Sir, to the
Quarter-Master-general for a route,” which Lord Wellington heard, and
laughed at well.

General Murray says that on hunting-days he could get almost anything
done, for Lord Wellington stands whip in hand ready to start, and soon
despatches all business. Some of the Generals, Lord Wellington observed
one day, used to come and hunt and then get on business, and get him to
answer things in a hasty way, which he did not intend, but which they
acted upon. “Oh, d—— them,” said he, “I won’t speak to them again when
we are hunting.” Colonel F——’s friend on his route to his destination
would have found plenty of fuel but less green forage than we have here.

By all accounts the first day after we were in Badajoz, the scene was
very shocking in every way. Nothing but dead and wounded on all sides,
and drunkenness and plunder in all directions. Even Lord Wellington,
when in the street with his staff, was followed by drunken soldiers,
continually firing feux-de-joie over his head with ball-cartridges, and
never thinking where the balls went.

The Portuguese Government have got bolder, and have tried some of our
people by their laws, when caught in the act, and have sent two or
three of them to the coast of Africa. If this were generally known,
it would do more good, I believe, than our flogging. Lord Wellington
said formerly, that their government always declined trying our people
themselves, but now they generally accepted the offer when made.
Lieutenant K——, of the Guards, who was tried and acquitted last week of
ordering a sentry to fire and killing a native, was very much alarmed
lest the Portuguese should try him, as it was at first agreed. It was a
hasty act on his part, but there was a slight riot, and I think in law
he was properly acquitted, for he was struck with a stone by some one
in the mob which was collected.

My cases are now rather increasing again, I think, and will probably
continue until we march. I have had two very blackguard officers to
try in the Royal Drivers’ corps. Sheep-stealing has now succeeded to
pig-shooting, as pork is out of season. The horses are now like mad
when turned out, and are scampering all over the country.

I had a long conversation with Lord Wellington yesterday. After
discussing our business up and down the market-place, he said that
“the want of rain began to be very alarming; but that as soon as the
pontoons arrived he would be off. The heavy artillery have started two
or three days since from Castello Branco, and will be here by the 31st.
The pontoons are stuck somewhere on the road.” He discussed the war
here, and in the North, with me: observing that, “a country ought to
think well before it undertook to do what Spain did; that, certainly,
Spain and Portugal were the fittest places to try the experiment of a
battle for the mere soil, because in general there was nothing else in
the country much worth fighting for, or which could be much damaged.”

“As, for instance,” he added, “what is this village worth? burn it,
and a few hundreds would make it as good as ever with a little labour;
but now,” he continued, “he believed that a great portion of the
Spaniards began to be very anxious to bring the business to a close;
they had rather that we should beat out the French and be off, but,
next to that, they had sooner the French beat us out, and had quiet
possession, than that such a war as that of the last three years
should be continued.” He said “he thought the Cortes were going on
ill; that they were unpopular, knew it, and did not know how to set
about becoming otherwise; that he disapproved of their meddling with
the royal feudal tithes, or church property, and particularly with the
elections of the next assembly, with which he thought they had nothing
to do. They have declared the elections of one district all void, from
some informality, and as the new elections have run much upon priests,
they have been trying to make these void, as being within the clause
concerning placemen in their constitution—‘that no placeman was to be
elected for his own district.’ However,” he continued, “in the present
state of things all the real and urgent business, and what is now the
most material, namely, all relating to the army and the war, is done
here, at Frenada, and let them squabble at Cadiz; if they will leave us
alone, I don’t care. Portugal is for some time quite safe and out of
the scrape, and if things go on well I think Spain will be out of the
scrape also.” “But,” he added, “he should be almost sorry to see such
a war as this has been carried on all over Germany, where there is so
much to destroy, and to be lost.”

In spite of the poverty of the country and the difficulty as to
obtaining bullocks, we have somehow or other collected one thousand
here to begin the campaign with: I hear one hundred and fifty fine ones
for the artillery.

_April 26th._—I am kept going to the last minute. A number of new cases
are come in, and I am very busy again; the more so, as the time is so
short, and so uncertain when all my Courts are to break up. I cannot
get below a dozen cases in hand, for new ones arise faster than I try
the old ones.

I have just heard from Coimbra, that one Court-martial is broken up by
a division of cavalry moving down to Oporto. I do not quite understand
this, but conclude that they will pass the river somewhere below,
and so march through the Tras os Montes, and join us again on the
other side of the Douro, and have a good untouched country to advance
through—otherwise this does not look like a march. No one knows,
however, and probably I know as much as the Adjutant-General. I must
now write to Lord Wellington; this movement at Coimbra has disturbed
two of my Coimbra cases very much.

The new Mutiny Act has been sent out to me. There are several changes,
one I see which I suggested; but the business is very much bungled.
The Mutiny Act and Articles of War are now at variance, as the latter
have not been altered with the former. By the first, an officer may be
tried here by a Court of seven members; by the articles, there must be
thirteen.

Some of the fifth division have, I hear, moved across the Douro at
Lamego. This confirms the opinion I have given above, especially as
D’Urban’s Portuguese cavalry are all north of the Mondego, and have
been some time there. This will disturb another of my Courts. Lord
Wellington says, that the witnesses must follow and try and catch the
Court; but I am no hunter, and shall try to remove the case to another
place. I dine with Lord Wellington.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, Saturday May 1st, 1813._—This last week I
have again been very busy, and shall remain so, no doubt, until we
move. This will probably be in a week or so, for our wings are in
motion. The cavalry round by Oporto, as I mentioned before, and some
Portuguese infantry, under Colonel Hamilton, are advancing to Alcantara
from near Portalegre and Eloss. We shall soon be drawing together, but
head-quarters, I have very little doubt, will be the last to move.
We have just got the “_Spanish Gazette_,” of Seville, with Elio’s
letter, stating the victory gained by General Murray near Alicant,
and his driving Suchet back with loss, through Bejar and Villana to
Fuente Higuera. I conclude you will have heard this in England before
this reaches you. We have no English account, but Lord Wellington
seems to consider it very good news. He came running into the Military
Secretary’s room, where I was yesterday, to communicate this, saying,
“Murray has beat Suchet, Fitzroy.” I always expected the fighting would
begin in that quarter this campaign. We got also yesterday from Lisbon
the almost incredible good news that Austria had agreed to join the
Allies with eighty thousand men in Germany, and one hundred thousand
in Italy, and that Davoust and Grenier had been again defeated. Lord
Wellington seems rather to give credit to all this. Poor Bony will go
mad if it should prove all to be true.

A few days since at dinner at Lord Wellington’s, he got upon the
subject of “Vetus.” He said, “He thought he knew the author, and that
he had been in India—not Mackintosh, as reported here.” He then went on
to say, “he did not think much of Vetus’s letters:[3] that many of his
facts as to this country were quite without foundation; that neither
Vetus, nor the O. P.’s, nor Lord Wellesley, knew anything about the
war here, and what could or could not be done; that he fully believed
Government had done all they could; that the men who did come could
not have been here sooner, and perhaps had better have come still
later; that more cavalry he could not have employed, had he had them at
Lisbon, for want of transport for food; that when he advanced formerly
to Talavera, he left several thousand men at Lisbon, because he could
not supply them had they been with the army; that even now he could not
have brought up the Hussar brigade into the field, unless by draughting
home the three regiments whose men he lately had sent back, and thus
setting at liberty their transport; that the Guards, Life and Blues,
he knew of some time since, and sent five months ago to Estremadura to
collect mules for their supply; that every two dragoons employed a mule
to feed the men and horses, and that all this difficulty in the detail
was quite unknown at home. In short, he said, Lord Wellesley knew
nothing about the matter, and he had no reason to be dissatisfied with
Government at home.” All this made several of us stare. I am told that
Lord Wellington was very angry with Lord Wellesley for his resignation,
and hardly spoke to any one for some days after he had heard the fact.
Lord Paget has just sent up here two of the Hussars, a corporal and
a private, to wait as orderlies on my lord the peer; two very fine
fellows. This was done out of compliment. They will only be ruined at
head-quarters, which is a terrible place for soldiers and servants;
over-pay, great idleness, and every third house a vine-house.

I have just read Mrs. M. A. Clark and the Messrs. Fitzgerald’s, &c.,
which Lord Fitzroy Somerset sent me by desire of Lord Wellington. It is
a curious production, and very ingenious as I understand it, merely as
a punishment on the Chancellor of the Exchequer for not letting her
profit by the Treasury, and, at the same time, a strong inducement to
all others in her favour, held over their heads _in terrorem_, not to
be guilty of equal ingratitude; that is, not to neglect making up her
deficiencies in cash when a hint has been given them of the necessity.

_May 2nd._—Lord Wellington, I hear is to go to-day to General Cole’s
division, the fourth, near the Figuiera, above Castello Rodrigo, and
near Eschalo. He sends his hounds over the six leagues to-day: they
hunt there to-morrow. On Tuesday he is to review the fourth division,
and return here to dinner at Frenada afterwards. Lord Wellington said,
some days since, he would move on the 5th of May: some of the army
may, and will, I have no doubt; but I do not think _we_ shall before
the 10th. Ho one knows, however; and I dare say no one will know until
the day before, when all will be in a bustle. I hope we shall not set
out in this weather, however, which continues constant cold, rain, and
wind. By watching sharp, I can generally get an hour’s ride dry; but it
will be rather dismal work to start on a long march in this wet, and
it would, from the state of the roads, knock up the mules too much at
first, when I take it they will have far enough to go.

If the news from Austria be true, and General Murray has really beaten
Suchet in an English and not merely in a Spanish fashion, the French,
when they hear we have crossed the Douro, will probably go at once
behind the Ebro, carrying all they can with them that is moveable and
worth carriage. At present, however, their plan seems to be, to try to
make a stand on the Douro first. They are evidently receding gradually
from Madrid.

_Later._—I have just heard that part of my gossip of head-quarters is
not correct. Lord Wellington has got a cold, and has determined not to
go to General Cole to-day, though the weather has now cleared up.

_May 3rd, Monday._—Lord Wellington is rather worse to-day, I hear, and
does not leave Frenada. I hope his review will be quite put off. He
has, I believe, only a bad cold. We have still no further news from
Alicant: at Cadiz they had only seen the same account that we have. Mr.
Wellesley says that the people were in high spirits about it there,
though I suspect that some of the Spaniards did not behave well. The
allied loss is reported to be nine hundred, that of the French at two
thousand. If we could kill off at this rate, and make the Spaniards
bear a fair share, this would do very well. I have since heard from
Colonel C—— that it is supposed Elio’s troops behaved ill, and threw
away their arms. Elio’s corps had received orders not to fight, but to
unite with General Murray: he was just about to do so, and part of his
corps was on his left, but too far distant, and gave way when attacked.
The orders were, for all the corps, Elio’s, Del Parque’s, &c., to unite
with General Murray without a battle. General Murray will scarcely be
able to do much (if he has beat Suchet) with his small force, if he
cannot trust the Spaniards. I hope, however, Whittingham’s corps has
behaved well.

_May 4th, Tuesday._—Lord Wellington has just got eight of the Prince
Regent’s grey stallions up from Lisbon to draw his carriage on the
march: they are small, but showy, little, prancing, round-carcassed
animals. They have the same mark as is on my black horse from Machacha;
but mine beats them in beauty. To-day they were tried, and not having
been for some time, or ever, in harness, or not liking the country so
well as Lisbon, they would not for a long time go at all. One reared
up and fell backwards twice, clean over, and one got astride the pole.
They got on better, however, at last, and did not break the carriage
as I expected. Lord Wellington’s six old large mules would do the work
much better, though they are not so showy for Spain.

I saw Lord Wellington to-day, he said he was much better; but has
apparently a heavy, bad cold.

_May 5th._—Here we are, still mum, as I expected; and the reason for
it is now said to be that the pontoons are not yet arrived. They left
Castello Branco May the 1st only, and, it is said, cannot reach this
place before the 9th. Monday the 10th is now talked of; I think,
however, it may be still Thursday next, the day after the post-day
again, before we stir; most people say, however, Tuesday the 11th; much
may depend on news. Of course, Lord Wellington must be very anxious to
know the true state of the North of Europe before we start; and the
present strong south-west gales are much against our hearing soon; he
also wishes to know the exact effect of the fight at Alicant. I dined
yesterday at head-quarters, and Lord F. Somerset told me that they had
more irregular accounts of the latter business, and that they became
less and less satisfactory. It was understood that the Spaniards, when
first attacked alone, were charged and quite cut up by the French—_muy
mal tratado_, is the Spanish private account; and one whole regiment,
I am told, surrendered. Three regiments are considered to be _mis hors
de combat_. Our army, it appears, did certainly afterwards at last
beat back a French partial attack with loss; but our vanguard had been
beaten back before, and the loss in our army, English and Sicilians,
without Spaniards, was nine hundred. This will not do; still it is to
be hoped that Whittingham’s people behaved better.

Lord Wellington dined at table again yesterday, and was much better.
I sat next to him on one side and the Prince of Orange on the other,
as there happened to be no other grandees there; and we had much
conversation. This has happened two or three times lately, when I
have been there, and there are few besides his own establishment
present. He always calls the two who are on his right and left, and
Campbell settles the rest. Lord F. Somerset sent me yesterday a little
pamphlet of Lord Wellington’s, containing the account of the Russian
retreat—rather a catchpenny, I think; and, though not exceeding the
Russian gazettes in the number of French prisoners, adding several
rather incredible details, such as the French crawling into the fires
like gnats into a candle, without being sensible of their danger, &c.

The French, who had quitted Toledo altogether, have again advanced,
and occupied it with much the same force as before, to the great
discomfiture of the junta there, who thought the “_Esclaves_” (as they
call them in the account of the Alicant battle) were gone for good and
for ever. To-day Lord Wellington keeps the anniversary of the battle of
Fuentes d’Onore, and all present at that battle are to dine with him.

_5th (Later)._—Since writing the above, I have received a case of a
deserter from the Isla de Leon. Two years since he deserted to the
French, and persuaded others to go with him. As no time is now to be
lost, I have drawn the charge and sent the whole off to Lamego for
trial directly. My only Court which has as yet moved, or had orders to
move, is that at Coimbra, who are cavalry, and are now at Oporto. I
have sent Mr. Commissary D——, from Coimbra, there to be tried, for a
breach of orders; and a number of witnesses are all gone with him on
both sides to Oporto: I only hope they may not, by any sudden order,
have all their march for nothing. We have now, since Christmas, tried
eighty cases, and there are still ten in hand, besides about thirty
which have come to nothing.


FOOTNOTES:

[3] If the letters of Vetus were written, as was supposed, by Lord
Wellesley, it is quite clear that Lord Wellington was ignorant of the
fact.—ED.




CHAPTER VI.

 Newspaper Complaints—Wellington’s Comments—Review of the
 Portuguese—Gatherings at Head-quarters—Reviews—Recommencement of the
 March—The Route.


  Head-quarters, Frenada,
  May 8, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

I have first to thank you for your letter and paper of the 21st, which
was most acceptable, as it happened to be, once more, the only paper
of that date at head-quarters, and of course the only one which had
the accounts from the French papers of Bonaparte’s having left Paris,
and of the state of their armies, &c. Finding this to be the case I
hastened to read it, and laid it, with three Courts-martial, before
Lord Wellington; more particularly, among other things, pointing
out to him a malicious letter against him, from Lisbon, stating the
discontent of the cavalry officers at having their horses turned over
to the Germans, and at its being done by a German officer, &c., and
the disgrace at being sent home dismounted. He read it through, and
at every sentence of that part relating to the general state of the
cavalry, he went on, with a laugh, “a lie!”—“a lie!”—“a lie!” except as
to Lieutenant-colonel Sherlock’s being vexed at the regiment being sent
home. “That’s very true—all the rest is a lie!”

I think we are still likely to be here for some days. The pontoons are
only expected to arrive in this neighbourhood to-morrow, and I have
then heard it whispered that we shall not stir until they are on the
banks of the river, or indeed till they are fixed ready. The brigade
of heavy artillery, namely, six eighteen-pounders, were encamped
about two miles from hence on Thursday, and I went over to see them.
The difficulty of transport may be conceived when I tell you that
there were above a hundred and sixty of the strongest oxen employed
in getting these six pieces, with the appurtenances, along the road,
besides spare animals.

The next day the whole proceeded to Almeyda; this, and what I hear
about the pontoons, makes me conceive that a part of the army at
least will cross the Douro immediately, somewhere in the vicinity of
Eschalona; but of course I can only conjecture, and am very much in
the dark on the subject. The troops still remain at Lamego, Vizeu,
Cea, Coria, Maimento, &c.; the cavalry only round by Oporto, and some
of General Hill’s, have moved yet. The Hussar brigade are now all up
near us, and the Household troops all in the road on this and the other
side of Sabugal. Some of the Blues have been here; they are in fine
order. I saw some horses as fat as in England; I hear, however, a much
worse account of the Life-Guard horses. Colonel H., of the Blues, says
that he does not see why his horses should not continue to be in as
good condition as they are now, and look as well through the campaign;
the other soldiers here, however, say, “Wait for a little duty and
starvation, and then talk; you have done nothing but come up in the
best time of the year, in the grass season.”

I dined yesterday at head-quarters, to meet General Graham. He is a
very fine old man, but does not indeed look quite fit for this country
work; every one seems to think and say the same, and also that he is
broken since he was here. It is really to be regretted that such a fine
old man should be exposed as he must be. General Picton was also there,
and seemed in full vigour. All the great guns come here to pay their
respects to head-quarters. Lord Wellington is quite well again; was
out hunting on Thursday, and, being kept in by rain all yesterday, is
making up for it to-day by persisting in his expedition to the fourth
division. He was to set out at seven this morning for the review of
General Cole’s division, on a plain beyond Castel Rodrigues, about
twenty-eight miles from hence, was to be on the ground about ten,
and was to return to dinner to-day by four or five o’clock. This is
something like vigour, and yet I think he overdoes it a little; he has,
however, a notion that it is exercise which makes head-quarters more
healthy than the rest of the army generally is, and that the hounds are
one great cause of this.

_Monday, May 10th._—The weather is, since yesterday, clearing up
again, and is just now perfection—a mild sun, moist ground, and fine,
genial, south-west wind: it will soon turn now to heat. I inquire
daily about the pontoons, upon which our movement depends, and have
now ascertained that they only left Castello Branco three days since,
and that a commissariat clerk went yesterday to meet them with fresh
animals at Sabugal. They cannot be here, it is clear, before the 13th
and 14th, and so says General Picton, who passed the men on the road.
If they are then to move on to be fixed, we cannot well stir before the
16th or 17th, and that seems the general opinion here now, though Lord
Wellington appears to be impatient about it.

I have now to tell you of a piece of gaiety of mine yesterday. I went
to leave a Court-martial with Lord Wellington about twelve o’clock;
saw him, and found that he was at two o’clock to set out for another
review of the Spanish cavalry of the Conde de Penne Villemur, who have
often been mentioned, and were of use in General Hill’s surprise, &c. I
had much curiosity to see these gentlemen, and finding, after calling
upon the Adjutant-general, that I had only one summons to send out, I
agreed with Lord Aylmer to go with him to this review, ran home, wrote,
sent off my summons, dressed, &c., got my black horse equipped in his
best also, and at one we set off for Huero, near which the cavalry were
ordered to assemble, on the Agueda. It was about twelve or thirteen
miles distant, and we got there, riding gently, soon after three,
having gone about two miles round, under the guidance of Colonel B——,
close to the Quinta de Agueda, a pretty farm and gentleman’s house (so
esteemed here), in a wild, park-like scene in the wood. I knew the road
well, for it was nearly my way to Guinaldo, but I had no objection to
see this Quinta, so took merit for my modesty, but only undertook to be
guide home. The meadows were quite green, the woods all coming out in
leaf, and the thorn in blossom.

At about a mile from this place we fell in with Lord Wellington and his
aides-de-camp, who had got over, in about an hour and twenty minutes,
by my road. The party then consisted of Lord Wellington, Lord F.
Somerset, Colonel C. Campbell, the Prince of Orange, his aide-de-camp,
Lord Aylmer, Colonel B——, and myself; and I assure you the black went
neighing about in high spirits, looking very sleek and respectable. On
the ground we were met by the Spanish generals O’Donnell and O’Lalor,
and found the cavalry drawn up in front of the river in open order,
about seven hundred in all. The first and best regiment was that of
Algarve, the second was that of Estremadura, and then came on the
left a single squadron of partizans, to be the regiment de Gallicia.
The two first regiments were tolerably clothed, and some of the men
fine-looking fellows, all very fierce in appearance, with their dark
faces and black beards, &c. The arms, though not uniform, good enough;
the greater part with our cavalry broadsword and carbine, but many
with our sailors’ long straight boarding-sword, and no bad weapon
either—I should think the best of the two. The helmets—black and
steel, or rather bright iron—were serviceable, and seemed to have seen
no little service; many, however, were black and brass, belonging to
other regiments, of Saguntum, &c.; the belts generally white, at least
those of the Algarve regiment, many black in the other. The horses, in
general, very small, and some scarcely fit for duty, but for the most
part apparently well fed, and in very-fair condition; out of the two
one very tolerable set might have been chosen, as good, I understand,
as many French regiments have been when here.

The left squadron of Portuguese were queer-looking gentlemen, in
dirty brown, blue, and green jackets of all hues and ages; one fellow
among them was quite a monster in size, and excited much notice.
Lord Wellington quite burst out into a laugh as he passed. After his
lordship and his suite had passed in front and in the rear of the
whole, as in England, they passed him in troops and saluted. The
officers then appeared the worst—they were awkward louts; some did not
salute at all, some in a most clumsy manner; but perhaps this was not
a custom with them, as they had inquired what was usual with us. They
were, many of them, however, round-shouldered, dirty, ill-looking men.
Lord Wellington desired them to form once into close column, and then
to deploy again, and as there was more room across the river, desired
it might be done there. We galloped across, and then the scene of the
cavalry passing the ford was very picturesque, as the day was very fine
and the mountains and country in great beauty. This was between Huero
and Castilegos. They manœuvred thus much very tolerably, that is, the
regiment, for the squad of partizans remained behind practising the
broadsword. The ground on which the regiments were reviewed was quite a
bog.

About five o’clock off went Lord Wellington in a gallop across the
country home to dinner. We all followed close for about a league,
and then, to save our animals, not having fifteen as he has, Lord F.
Somerset, Lord Aylmer, General Oswald, and myself went quietly on, and
got here about a quarter after seven, I for one much pleased with my
trip. The Conde P. Villemur did not command, and, as I understand, has
retired in disgust altogether, because there is a commander-in-chief
appointed in the cavalry, and he wished to be appointed if there was
to be one, or at least not to have any one over him. He was always, it
is said, a person who had a will of his own, and did not like to obey
orders. These jealousies and quarrels are much to be regretted. The
officer who commanded was Monte Major. His aide-de-camp told me that
a number of their men were on duty, and that their real numbers were
above one thousand.

The review of the fourth division was, I believe, much more
satisfactory to Lord Wellington, as everything was in high
order—Portuguese and all, about six thousand five hundred; but having
so often seen a good English review, I was much more gratified with
these Spanish gentlemen. The Life-Guards, &c., are to be inspected
to-morrow.

The messenger who was sent off on the 17th to Alicant has returned
to-day, and has been round by Cadiz in his return. He makes our loss
less—only about three hundred, I hear from the official statement—and
that of the French greater: and I was very glad to hear that
Whittingham’s men had behaved well, and that General Murray was well
satisfied with them. The messenger rode from Cadiz here in three days.

We have here to-day all the grandees—Marshal Beresford, General Alava,
Don Julian, General Graham; the latter has been to the review above
sixteen miles distant, to see the Household Brigade. They mustered
eight hundred and twenty-nine rank and file in the field, that is,
Blues and Life-Guards together, and seven hundred and fifty-one horses,
and performed very well. The horses of the Blues much the best, some
of the Life-Guards’ rather skeletonish. I still fear General Graham is
too old for this work; at least he must not act as he did at Barossa.
Before the battle, I am told, he stood up to his middle in the water
for an hour or more, encouraging the troops to get on, English and
Spanish; and jumped off his horse on purpose for the example. It is
added, some of the men said, “Come, old corporal, do go and take care
of yourself, and get out of our way.”

Lord Wellington was to-day in his full Colonel’s dress uniform of the
Blues, and looked very well in it.

_Wednesday, 12th, Post-day. Head-Quarters, Frenada._—Still here,
and very probably we shall be so for some days. There are symptoms,
however, of a move soon, such as the packing of Lord Wellington’s
claret, &c. The pontoons are expected the day after to-morrow. The
twenty-four-pounders are on their march through Gallicia from Corunna.
The eighteen-pounders have passed on by Almeyda from hence. The cavalry
near the coast, whom I caught for a Court-martial at Oporto sending
every witness from Coimbra, have now in part, I understand, passed
Braga. I sent a case yesterday to Lamego, but fear it will be too
late, and must be tried on the march: there are so many little delays,
however, that I may yet be in time. The difficulties now increase.
Lord Wellington and Colonel F—— of the artillery do not agree. Lord
Wellington complains much of the heads of that department. He sent
B—— home some time since, and I now hear F—— is to go to England, and
for the present at least Lieut.-colonel D—— is to have the command.
F—— is much of a gentleman, I think; draws, it is said, very well,
&c., but has a bad memory, is nervous, and raises difficulties, which
I suspect Lord Wellington does not encourage, but expects things to
be done if possible. I am now told that General Pakenham is to act as
Adjutant-general to the army, and supersede Lord Aylmer, the deputy
Adjutant-general, but who has acted hitherto as principal. Every one
speaks most highly of Pakenham.

_Head-Quarters, Frenada, May 15th, 1813. Saturday._—The first division
of the Guards and Germans left Vizeu for Lamego three days since. The
fifth division have left Lamego, and are marching through the Tras os
Montes. The seventh division have left Maimento, I believe, on the same
route. The sixth have also left Cea.

When the French, who are still at Salamanca, Arevalo, Avila, Madrid,
&c., hear that we have thus crossed the Douro and turned their
position, they must either assemble and give battle, which I think
they will not do, or they must at once go beyond the Ebro, and then
I suppose we shall attack Burgos, and cross after them. However it
be, I expect a good long march in the outset. The army, however, on
the whole, is in good condition, and never has had so long a repose,
or been so regularly clothed. The sick are reduced to nearly seven
thousand, and will probably be never much less. A very bad report has
been made of the pontoons: they changed the oxen for horses, and these
treated them roughly. The day before yesterday so bad a report was
made of them, that yesterday, when they reached Sabugal, off went Lord
Wellington about twenty-six miles to look at them with his own eyes. I
hear he is glad to know the worst, but that is bad. They are made too
slight, were old and had new bottoms made for them, but now the sides
are very much shaken and decayed. Exaggerated reports have reached us
that the tin covering is knocked in holes, and that the wood of the
sides may be pinched out by the touch in some places. Lord Wellington
may now, however, act accordingly, knowing the worst. They will not
pass this way, it is said, but across by Galegos, a different road
from that taken by the heavy guns, the eighteen-pounders. I now think,
therefore, that the heavy guns will cross towards Lamego by the bridge,
and that the pontoons will be fixed, if at all, further north up the
river. We shall probably cross at Zamora, but cannot tell: it is said
the bridge is not destroyed there.

On Monday Lord Wellington will review the light division in our
front under General Anson—the 43rd, 52nd, 95th, and the Caçadores
Portuguese,—a very fine body of men. To-morrow he is to fix his tent
in the Praga of Frenada, and will give a dinner to Marshal Beresford,
the 16th being the anniversary of the battle of Albuera. To this I am
asked, though not a military man, and certainly not present on that
fortunate occasion. The town is so full that some encamp; and Captain
M——, who is just arrived here, sleeps and dresses in the ante-room of
the Adjutant-general’s office, where the printing-press is all day at
work, and leaves him a fine perfume of printing-ink at night, besides
the full smell from the stables below, through the open floor, which he
enjoys almost as much as I do myself here in my quarters. The numbers
at head-quarters are so increased that I fear we shall find it very
difficult to get quarters when on the march. We have now Lord William
Russell and Lord John here, the former on Lord Wellington’s staff, the
latter, I believe, as an amateur. We have also Lord March’s brother
in the dragoons, and last, but not least, I can assure you, Captain
Fitzclarence, an immense young man: he is in the Adjutant-general’s
department.

The first division from Vizeu are, it is said, to be at Braganza about
the 17th. Great part of the army will be there by the 22nd, and by the
same day the second division, under General Hill, from Coria, will be
within seven leagues of Salamanca; yet the 52nd, who to-day are at
Nava da Ver in order to attend the review of the light division at
Espeja, are to return to Guinaldo.

I have just fallen in with a dozen of the Life Guards, with their brass
helmets, &c. I think before they have lived to October they will have
a very philosophical idea of a vacuum—one pound of bony, lean beef
will occupy but a little of their long stomachs. I suspect our good
allies, the Spaniards, will think that we have sent them a regiment of
Don Quixotes, and the horses from present appearances may in a little
time make no bad Rosinantes. Five or six of these tall, six feet high
men were mounted on mules going to Almedia, to get iron; I pitied them
to-day as they were bargaining for a bit of dear cheese and some dried
chestnuts in the market. They have some spirit, however, and will not
enter the staff mounted corps, a new thing, considering it to be a sort
of police, and declaring that they would rather be police at home as
before than here, if they are to be police at all. This corps of staff
horse is to be two hundred, and to be composed of volunteers from all
regiments. Officers do not hitherto take to it, but very good-looking
men have volunteered in general; none from the hussars, I hear.

_Monday Evening, 17th._—The dinner yesterday went off famously, very
well managed in the tent, and very comfortable. Lord Wellington was
supported by Marshal Beresford and General Sir Lowry Cole on one
side, and by General Castanos and Sir T. Graham on the other; and
then all the staff of the three Generals, Wimpfen, O’Lalor, Alava,
&c., with the aides-de-camp; the Portuguese Quarter-Master-general,
and other staff, Lord Aylmer, Lord F. Somerset, Marquis of Worcester,
Lord March, and all the heads of departments. Almost all were with
stars, medals, Portuguese orders, or something distinguishing. If I
were in the American General Harrison’s army, perhaps I might get an
honourable mention, like his good friend Charles Walker, the Judge
Advocate-general, who was of such use in the corps of spies. Then
we had Mr. Joe Kelly, of the Life Guards a famous singer, whom I
recognised as having heard at Shrewsbury races, and he gave us some
good songs; and we “hip! hip! hipped!” &c., to the grandees. I was much
entertained at the etiquette observed between the Marshal and General
Castanos, who should go into the tent first: at last they went in side
by side, as other great men have before determined that knotty point.
Castanos seems very easy and good-humoured, and willing to give way,
and even to have a little fun, but he is very old. All the fashionables
were at the review this morning near Espeja, and a very fine sight it
was. Between five and six thousand of the _élite_ of ours, and of the
Portuguese troops; the line near three-quarters of a mile long, two
deep, and they marched in line near half a mile over rough and smooth,
and then changed their front three times, and at last passed in review
admirably. The German hussars, commanded by Colonel Arentsfchild,
were on the right, in excellent style, and beyond them a brigade
of artillery: the day was beautiful, and the scene upon the whole
very striking. Lord Wellington is indefatigable. He goes six leagues
to-morrow another way to Friexada, to review the English hussars, the
10th, &c. He looks, I think, a little fagged and anxious.

_Guinaldo, May 18th._—On my arrival here at eleven o’clock to attend
the Court-martial, I found the President, General Vandeleur, had
stayed with Lord Wellington to go over to the review, and had sent
an order for the Court to assemble to-morrow, the 19th, instead of
to-day, of which he had forgotten to give me any notice. If we march
on Thursday I shall be at my wit’s end, and it is so provoking to lose
a whole day thus, just at such a moment. He is so hospitable, civil,
and good-humoured, that, though very much inconvenienced, I cannot be
angry.

The fourth division march from Escuao to-day. The light will, I
suppose, move with us. The second division are now moving along the
Sierras de Francia, the mountains in sight of us here. This air must be
aguish; five of the officers and a great number of the men of the 52nd,
though such fine-looking fellows, are attacked by the ague when doing
no work, and in fine weather. At Frenada most of the sickness was among
the natives.

Lord Wellington, at the review yesterday, was on one of his new
purchases from General L. C. Stewart. He gave four hundred guineas
for the two, and for this two hundred and fifty—a gentleman who has
gained some plates in England, and has a name. It is a very pretty
animal, but is as troublesome in regard to neighing as my black.
They were answering each other all the morning. Indeed this neighing
gives quite a character to a Spanish review—it is heard more than the
trumpets. I met in my way here about twenty Spanish grenadiers, who, I
understand, were part of a treasure escort. They were very fine men,
and were well clothed. Individually they greatly surpass the Portuguese
in appearance: tall, straight, well-limbed, and with good young
countenances. As to their discipline, or how they will stand, I cannot
say; but such men can only want good officers to do anything. In the
review yesterday, besides the two regiments of Caçadores Portuguese,
there was the 17th of the line Portuguese: they really marched and went
through the evolutions very nearly as well as our own men. The men,
however, are naturally mean, shabby men in general, like the pictures
of the Queen’s family at Frogmore, which you must remember. The
officers look much better than those of the Spaniards, and seem most of
them to know more of their duty. The Spanish men, as men, independent
of discipline, are wonderfully superior to the Portuguese; and yet we
have seen, from want of that knowledge of acting in a mass, and total
mistrust of their leaders, how inferior they have hitherto been.

The Portuguese people, though they do not talk so well as the
Spaniards, or look so well, have shown much more practical spirit.
When the French passed through the Spanish towns or villages, the
alcalde went to meet them, the people remained quiet, submitted to
the exactions, and the French in general treated them tolerably well
in consequence, for they thus got food and forage. In the Portuguese
villages, on the contrary, when the French last entered Portugal,
almost every inhabitant sacrificed his house and property, and fled,
according to orders; and thus it was that the French were so plagued
and puzzled for food, and provoked to destroy the houses as they did.

_May 19th, Six o’clock, evening, Head-Quarters, Frenada._—Just returned
from Guinaldo in time for the post. My Court met at twelve. We tried
the man by one o’clock. I wrote the proceedings fair, got them signed,
and here I am, very hungry, and find that every one has dined, for Lord
Wellington began to-day to dine at three o’clock, instead of eight. We
do not march to-morrow, perhaps not till Saturday.

_Frenada, May 21st, 1813, Friday._—At last, to-morrow morning we all
break up for the march. I go, as a civil department, by the route
enclosed; I shall, therefore, see nothing of the greater part of
head-quarters for a fortnight. Dr. M’Gregor goes my way; but who else
I know not. Indeed Dr. M’Gregor wishes to go to Oporto, and perhaps I
may have the whole road nearly to myself. I am told that the road is
pleasant; at least it is new all beyond Almeida. The light division
is to march to-day. The second are not far from Tamames by this time.
Tamames is, I believe, the military head-quarters on the second day’s
march, the 23rd. The fourth division passed the Douro, I believe,
yesterday; the others have already done so, and in two or three days
the main body of the army will be at Braganza, Outeiro, and Miranda de
Duero; and the light and second divisions and head-quarters on this
side of the Douro.

Some of Hamilton’s Portuguese in the second division are so ill
supplied, that Lord Wellington has, it is said, threatened the Marshal
to send them in the rear if they be not better clothed and fed. He says
he would rather be without two or three battalions, than have them
in such a state as these are. Indeed, he seems either not quite to
trust the Portuguese, or they cannot be supplied; for he leaves a full
battalion, I hear, at Abrantes, and one or two elsewhere, saying he has
Portuguese enough in proportion. He seems in good spirits, but looks
worn and anxious. The pontoons have crossed the Douro, so now I do not
know where they are to be laid down, unless to let the second and light
divisions and head-quarters pass over, whenever necessary, or to bring
over the others, if the French should collect.

The French have hitherto always judged of the situation of the main
body of the army by that of head-quarters: they were thus twice taken
in last year. Before the siege of Badajoz, Lord Wellington had moved
away nearly the whole of the army before he stirred, and the whole of
the head-quarters were not protected against two thousand men. This
deceived the French then, and I hope will now, but they are on the
alert; at Salamanca constantly on the _qui vive_, and ready for a
run, &c. The Commissary here has already trusted a man with money to
go and collect forage, &c., at Salamanca, before the French are gone.
Everything is now alive. General Graham, I believe, commands at Miranda
de Duero, or at least will very soon. General Picton has the ague, and
is too ill to take the command of this division yet, but remains with
it. I thought him looking very well; but there is something in this
climate which does not suit the English at all, even when quiet and
living well. The natives have their annual ague fit, and seem to think
it a part of their existence: they are rather unhappy when it does not
come as usual. Lord Wellington’s cars with the heavy baggage are off.

_Frenada, May 20th, 1813._—Route for the head-quarters of the army.

The military department will move on the 22nd instant to Ciudad Rodrigo.

  _The Civil Department._

  May 22nd. Almeida. Depôt of provisions.
    ” 23rd. Pinhel.
    ” 24th. Cotimos.
    ” 25th. Villa Nova de Foscoa.
    ” 26th. Torre de Moncorvo. Depôt of provisions.
    ” 27th. Halt.
    ” 28th. Tornas and Lagouça.
    ” 29th. Villa Dalla.
    ” 30th. Sendim.
    ” 31st. Miranda de Duero. Depôt, &c.

  G. MURRAY, Q. M. G.

  _To the Commandant of
  Head-Quarters._




CHAPTER VII.

 The March commenced—Scenes on the Road—Villa Dalla—Toro—Castro
 Monte—Palencia—Prospects of a General Action—Skirmishing—Massa.


  Head-quarters, Civil Department,
  Torre de Moncorvo, May 27, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

We here halt a-day; on the 22nd, about twelve, I arrived at
Almeida—that heap of ruins—and turned out, by the authority of the
Governor, two Portuguese officers, to get one miserable room as my
quarters. Colonel Le Mesurier, the late governor, was too ambitious
a man to remain inactive, shut up in Almeida during a campaign. He
therefore applied for a brigade in the Portuguese service, and,
though he could not obtain it, gave up his government to command a
regiment. I met him at the gate on his way to Miranda de Duero to
join his division. The new Portuguese governor was just moving, but
as he had not yet got into the present government-house he gave us
up all the great stable, which was very good, and he was in every
respect very civil and willing to do the most for us. In my way
here we had no particular adventures. By the aid of the Spaniard in
loading we have much less trouble, and I have always ridden on, and
got a quarter before the baggage arrived. My only companions were the
Paymaster-general, Hunter, and Mr. Whitter, and nine other clerks
with him, and the military chest, &c., and two or three commissariat
parties. The weather has been uniformly fine, and at times very hot.
We have daily been roused at five o’clock, and off at six, but have
nevertheless suffered from the heat, at times very much, before we
arrived at our station.

On the 23rd we left Almeida and descended to the Coa and passed it by
a very picturesque bridge, rendered more so from one stone arch having
been blown up, and repaired with wood in a rough style. After a mile
of steep ascent, we reached a lofty, rough, level common, in a wild,
uncultivated country, like Dartmoor; with the Sierra d’Estrella on
one side, still partly tipped with snow, and the ridge of hills and
Castello Rodrigo on the other. We passed Valverde,—a complete ruin
now—a village without one roof remaining! I was sorry to hear that
we had begun the destruction of it, and that the Portuguese soldiers
afterwards left very little remaining for the French to do. The next
village, Periero, was pleasingly situated, and we then soon got down
by a river, and observed Pinhel with its old Moorish tower, fort, and
walls, and a bishop’s palace, and a convent adjoining, a league before
us, on the brow of a hill. At Pinhel we were all fixed by the _Juez de
Fores_ in the bishop’s palace, and had a choice of large empty rooms
in this now uninhabited but lately handsome house. It was all tight,
and Mr. Hunter having a table by means of baggage, and tubs for seats,
we fared very well. The stables are magnificent, good ones for thirty
horses, and inferior for sixty horses more.

At Almeida there was no green forage to be had; we bought small
bundles of grass at about a shilling each in the grass-market for
our animals. At Pinhel we however got an order for green barley from
the Juge, twenty-eight pounds each animal for the day, and they all
fared so luxuriously that my black gentleman was the next day very
troublesome. In the bishop’s palace at Pinhel, the rooms formed a very
handsome suite round a square court in the centre; the hangings, &c.,
all removed, but the ceilings ornamented; the rooms well shaped, with
a tolerable garden adjoining; but the house standing exactly like the
Castle Inn at Marlborough, by the road side, at the end of the town.
The water is very bad, a nuisance from which we are, it seems, to
suffer much throughout the summer in Spain. Last year our men were
at times obliged to hold their noses when they drank. At the convent
adjoining the palace, which has been much damaged but not destroyed,
one or two monks still remained, and I met one as I wandered over the
building. He was very civil. The palace is now appropriated as barracks
for officers or troops as they pass. The bishop lives at another, at
Santa Euphemie, a league beyond Pinhel.

The castle is like all the Moorish castles I have seen here, with the
square smooth towers of well-cut hard stone, as sharp now almost as
when first built. In the castle lying about are four curious specimens
of old cannon, two ribbed, made of beaten iron bars and braced
together; one of them appeared to be hollow at both ends, and solid in
the middle. The other two a sort of mortar, something in the shape of
a very old-fashioned, clumsy earthenware jug, with a sort of handle to
raise and fix it for use.

At the convent was a small aqueduct of stone pillars across the garden,
to conduct a little stream of water to the monks’ habitations; the
stream was so small in the pipe that you could scarcely see it run at
all, but it was good, and ran constantly all the year, which, as the
only good water was a mile off in the river, was very valuable.

On the 24th, our party, consisting of the ten paymasters, three
commissaries, and myself, with about fifteen dragoons, and thirty or
forty horses, and about thirty or forty baggage animals, assembled at
five in the morning in the palace-court and marched onwards.

In less than a league we passed a very pretty village, called, I
believe, Valbom, and in another short league came to Euphemia, another
village, with rather a large but imperfect house where the bishop
resides now; and I believe he was there sitting in his shady colonnade.
In a short time we descended again and crossed the Lamego; here we all
dismounted, and let the animals graze on the banks, whilst we got some
bread and cheese. Half a league further on we turned up out of our
road to Cotimos, our destination for the night. It was a bad village,
but with a few houses formerly good and still tight. Mr. Hunter, Mr.
Whitter, and I, were in a fidalgo’s house, and tolerably comfortable,
though there was only an old woman there, but we had chairs and tables.
We made a great cup with the country wine, brandy, lemons, &c., and
were very well off for a dinner by the purchase of a leveret, eggs and
bacon, and mutton broth.

On the 25th left Cotimos; and about a league beyond we came to a
much better village, with two or three very good houses, of imposing
appearance. This was directly in our road, and would have been a better
division of the distance. After another league of excellent road we
passed Marialva, half a league on our left, a village, with another
Moorish castle. After another half league we came to the entrance of
a long winding descent of a mile and a half, which brought us into a
pretty vale, with another Moorish castle on the hill on our left; and
there we again ate and the animals grazed in the meadows near a little
stream. Thence we had a league and a half of excessively steep hill
to ascend until we got on the high level where stands Villa Nova de
Foscoa; this ascent at near one o’clock was tremendously hot work, and
very difficult for the baggage.

We here began to get into the army train. About twenty hospital waggons
were encamped on the hill near the town, and two troops of the waggon
train; and near them were about eighty ox-cars with bales of cloth done
up in a sort of sacks to fill with straw for hospital beds, &c. We here
got good quarters and tolerable fare.

On the 26th, leaving Villa Nova, we began immediately to descend a
winding road to the Douro; this was very fine, one of the best things I
had seen here.

I was off as soon after sunrise as possible to pass the ferry before
the military chest. I got down to the bank and found about eighty cars
drawn up to pass with ammunition, boards, planks, and beams, for the
repair of bridges, &c. Two at a time crossed in one boat; and there
was another for mules, &c. I stopped some Portuguese; and having
waited an hour for the baggage, who had loitered on the road when I
left them, we at last got on board this platform as close as we could
stick.—Mr. Hunter, and six other gentlemen, about a dozen servants,
seven stallions, three mares, and six loaded baggage mules. After some
kicking and confusion, we landed safely, and after a league of ascent
arrived at Torre de Moncorvo. Both banks of the river were covered on
the sides of the road with parties of artillery or baggage grazing,
&c.; some bivouacking, and others in camp. The scene was interesting,
except that I regretted the obligation of cutting so much of the corn
for green forage just as it was becoming ripe.

Here we found the same scene in all the environs; parties picketed and
bivouacking, and more artillery drivers; quarters very moderate; but
shops very decent; the town not destroyed, for the French have never
been here.

The great number of troops which have been quartered here on the march
has cleared most of the shops, and injured many of the buildings; even
here we cannot buy anything except honey, sugar, bacon, bread, and
cheese. The convent of Franciscans above the town is nearly entire, and
has two tolerable pictures—the altarpiece, and one in the refectory,
by Romano, the monks said, and from the style it may be so. There are
some houses here with the furniture remaining; that of the Capitan
Mor (the head inhabitant, and a colonel of militia) has painted coved
ceilings, and apricot-coloured silk hangings, with old-fashioned wooden
chairs and sofas, with bottoms to match the hangings. The church also
is handsome. The town is surrounded by hills like Bath, and yet we
ascended to it three miles from the Douro. I saw also something like
a female to-day, a smart, pretty Lisbon miss going to church—quite a
curiosity; and so, I believe, the inhabitants think. My old patrona (or
landlady) here came to tell me to look out of the window, as “The Lady”
was going by.

_Head-Quarters, Civil Department, Villa Dalla, May 29th, 1813._—On the
27th, the night before I marched from Torre de Moncorvo, we had some
heavy rain, which cooled the air, laid the dust, and made our journey
onwards much more agreeable.

On the 28th, the road to Lagouça was very rough and hilly, and the
distance four long leagues. The country is fine; the distance very
like parts of Somersetshire and Devonshire in its general features,
but the valleys are less rich, and there are some large pine-woods on
the hills. About half way we passed Carvacies, a large village; and
at the end of four leagues, Tornas, a poor place, where we had the
option of stopping, but preferred Lagouça. A part of the staff corps
were encamped near the pine-wood, with several cars and materials for
bridges. They are, I understand, about to lay down a bridge somewhere
on the Douro, very near that part, as a safe retreat in case of
accidents.

At Lagouça I got a tolerable quarter, and bed, at the padre’s. House
dirty only. I found books which he could not understand, and I believe
never looked at. There was the ‘Recopilacion of the Spanish Laws,’ a
book of authority in Spain. He asked me if it was mine—the authority
I acted from; had I known how to carry it I would have bargained with
him for it. There was also a Horace, Bourdaloue’s Sermons in Spanish,
and a few other sermons. He gave me some wine, and was very civil; and
honestly sent after me something that I left behind.

Within a mile of Lagouça, but out of the main road, you look down on
the Douro, which runs down in a deep rocky chasm, very fine and wild,
with a very picturesque convent, which was once Mas Bonito, half way
down on the Spanish side of the river, and the Spanish town of Miesa
above. The French had long been at these places, and had much injured
the convent; but had never got over, as there is only one little bark;
and the brave Portuguese had a sort of battery. The scene was very fine.

To-day (the 29th) I started again after breakfast (but before six
o’clock, being always called at four) for this place. The road was in
general good, though rather hilly and in parts boggy. We passed to
the left of Brosa; to the right of Majaduero, and near two or three
other villages. The country is finer, and still more approaching
Somersetshire. I have here, at Villa Dalla, got a decent quarter in a
great farm-house, where there are five or six beds about my room, which
has, however, only a door, no window or ceiling. In winter I should
have been starved; it is now well enough. I got a table and chairs,
and have bought one small fowl for a dollar, and two little chickens,
nearly as big as pigeons, all bone, for half a dollar. We get eggs,
and sometimes milk; and though this country has never seen the French,
the houses do not seem quite in a state of English repair. The whole
road is covered with marks of the encampments of troops, &c. The back
of the village Lagouça was just like a drawing of an Otaheite village,
and not much better, with bad thatch instead of tile, the general roof.
The villages, however, are numerous, and much more populous than in the
other parts of Portugal I have seen, and rather cleaner, being nearer
Spain. There was bread from Zamora in the market at Lagouça regularly
for sale.

_Miranda de Duero, May 30th._—I came on here to-day a very long
journey, meaning to have two days’ rest, but found Lord Wellington’s
head-quarters had passed through here this morning; that his lordship
left Salamanca yesterday, and was to be six leagues off in advance,
near the Esla, to-day, the 30th. The French absolutely ran away, near
Salamanca, and a small party were taken. Spanish head-quarters here
to-day, and all in confusion.

_Head-Quarters, Toro, June 3rd, 1813._—A day’s halt will enable me to
give you a few lines to let you know how we go on. The day I sent my
last from Miranda de Duero (May 30th), I learnt that head-quarters
were to be that day and the next at Carbajales, near the Esla, to
superintend one great object of the movement, the passage of the Esla,
a formidable river in a military point of view. Fearing to be left
behind, though without orders, I determined to march again the next
morning (31st), at four, six long leagues to Carbajales. I tried to
find the nearest road, the longest being round by Constantia, and,
though the best, I did not wish to go above a league out of my way. My
directions were to pass Yal d’Aguia, Aldea Nova, Fonfrio, and Vermilho.
I got right to near Fonfrio and then, through a wrong direction given
me by a little miss who sent me by mistake for Carvajosa, I found
myself two leagues out of my way at Pino, and had to cross straight
over the country for Vermilho. The consequence was that I arrived
late and tired at Carbajales, where head-quarters still remained, and
at last got a very bad quarter there, but a good stable, which General
Graham had just left.

In the evening of the 30th I went down part of the way to see the ferry
over the Douro at Miranda. The scenery was very fine, and very like
that at Lagouça; the river very deep and narrow, running violently
through a chasm of rocks not unlike Chedder cliffs in Somersetshire;
and the little ferry-boat almost invisible from above the road down and
up above three miles, though the real distance across seems not above
a quarter of a mile. Lord Wellington and a part of the staff only came
over there. Heavy baggage, printing-press, &c., were left with the
light division near Salamanca.

In my way to Carbajales, the road I kept near the Douro towards Aldea
Nova was very picturesque, but bad. For the rest of the way the road
became better, but the country was ugly, like Bagshot Heath, only
with several villages—and the mountains in Gallicia, still tipped
with snow, on our left, or nearly behind us. The morning of the day I
got to Carbajales (the 31st), the pontoon bridge was placed, and made
passable on the Esla, in less than three hours. The Hussars passed a
bad ford of above four feet water and bad bottom early in the day to
protect this operation, and two divisions of the army passed before
night and encamped. Lord Aylmer, who had forded in the morning to go
over and look about him, found the bridge ready, and the troops passing
as he returned. These were the pontoons which had travelled up from
Lisbon, and had been the cause of so much anxiety. About nine of them
were used, and the river about the width of the Thames at Windsor. This
being the state of things, the orders were to have all head-quarters’
baggage down at the water-side by six, and to get them over before the
other troops should arrive and the guns. As I had got into a quarter
with Spaniards, and they were lazy, I had some trouble to get mine
off, but succeeded at last, and afterwards rode with Lord Aylmer.

We soon fell into the train of head-quarters’ baggage, the whole of the
eighteen-pounders with their ammunition, &c., and one hundred and sixty
oxen and their spare horses; and also the whole of the fourth division
of the army—a train of three miles length in the whole. The scene
presented by the winding down the hill to the bridge, and the order
with which everything was managed, and the winding up the opposite
bank, was very interesting. We passed about eight o’clock, baggage and
all, and the guns and two more divisions of the army were safely over
before five o’clock in the evening, with baggage, &c. We then had about
three more leagues of a Bagshot Heath road, sand and pines, until we
suddenly came in sight of Zamora and the Douro. The latter is here
about as wide as the Thames at Kew Bridge, rather wider—more perhaps
as it is at Fulham. It winds along a large plain on the south side
under the ridge of higher ground to the north, on which, boldly and
well-placed, stands Zamora with its Moorish church.

The town pleased me much. It is nearly the size of Salamanca, and
having been much less destroyed, is, at present quite as good a town:
the convents alone have suffered and been gutted. Some of the French
had not left the place until the very morning our troops entered; the
greater part, however, went off the night before. The castle was rather
strong, and would, if defended, have delayed us two or three days,
but the garrison would have been sacrificed. It was fitted up very
regularly in the inside by the French for troops, places appropriated
for everything, with the names inscribed. There was also a large
foundling hospital, and a general hospital for the poor. In the former
were only about ten or twelve babies, and about sixteen children, for
they had now scarcely any funds. Nearly opposite was the general
hospital, with much space and good wards, but not above six or eight
sick, partly from the same reasons, and partly because the French had
only left the people the use of one small ward, and the room of the
intendant, and occupied the rest with their sick and wounded. They had
also now in this last retreat carried off all the linen, &c., and only
left bedsteads and bedding. They had not, however, done any wanton
mischief in Zamora when they left it this time.

The bridge is handsome, but in our retreat last year we blew up the
centre arch out of about a dozen; it had been repaired since with wood.
This the French had burnt, on the 30th, but by to-day it is repaired
and passable. The people received us very cordially, scattered roses
over our heads, cried _viva_, &c., and hung all their counterpanes and
the hangings of their rooms out of the windows. The lady at my quarters
embraced me, and was very kind, but—she was old. There was another like
a plump Englishwoman, to whom I passed on the compliment.

The people entertained Lord Wellington and the staff with a concert,
lemonade, and ices, &c. The former did not admire the time lost in
singing psalms to him, as he said. I met him in the evening, in his
Spanish uniform, riding down to the bridge to give directions. In the
morning he was on one side of the pontoon bridge, and Marshal Beresford
on the other. I almost knocked myself up running about to see Zamora,
for we were to march again next morning. I could not attend a little
dance given by Lord Wellington in the evening, and except for the iced
lemonade should have been in a fever. A thunder-storm in the evening
cooled the air, and a good bed made me ready again to march for this
place (Toro), five long leagues, the next morning, June 2nd. The French
having left Toro on the 1st of June, it became an object to take
possession, and open a communication with the light division, and the
second from Salamanca.

The road was admirable; a flat sandy level, by the river nearly all the
way, until we came to the ascent on which the town of Toro is placed,
standing still more boldly over the river than Zamora. The only village
we passed, and that a poor one, was Fresno; but we saw several on our
left, and across the river in the flat on our right.

Toro is very old, surrounded by ruined mud walls, and though it covers
much ground has not many good houses, and is not to be compared to
Zamora; there is, however, a market, with a little mutton and beef,
and vegetables, pork, eggs, &c. The Moorish church here is much
smaller than at Zamora, though that is not very large; there are a few
tolerable pictures in both. The castle here is stronger than the one at
Zamora, and appears almost new: it stands on the hill above the bridge,
and is rather formidable. The two centre arches of this bridge had been
blown up by us, repaired by the French with wood, burnt again by them
now, and is now being repaired again by us.

We passed, two miles from hence, the sixth division and the seventh,
taking up their encamping ground on a fine meadow by the river side,
near a small wood. It was a very lively scene, the men marching with
music, and as regular, without any disorder or loiterers, as if going
to a review; the whole in high order. Yesterday evening the light
division arrived from a place within three leagues of Salamanca, a
march of nearly eight leagues, and encamped in a meadow near the water
side, close to the bridge and ford opposite this town: they only left
six men behind in their march. This morning the horse, the baggage, and
the artillery, have all come over, passing by the ford; and though it
is both wide and deep, I believe without accident, except wet baggage.
The infantry crossed by ladders across the breach in the bridge—that
is, down one side, then up the other—one by one. They encamp at Morales
to-day. This was also a very interesting and animating scene from the
hill, which is a humble imitation of Richmond Hill in point of beauty.

The Hussars have commenced famously; they brought into Zamora an
officer of the 16th (French), and about thirty prisoners, whom
they dashed at, and knocked over in fine style, with little loss.
The officer came in here prisoner on horseback, which offended the
Spaniards, who were disposed to insult the prisoners, whom they dared
not fight, and who had been with them now nearly four years or more.

Yesterday the Hussars again came up with the 16th French cavalry and
some others; the latter had only a small bridge to pass which would
only carry four abreast. Two squadrons of the 10th formed and charged;
the French stood at first well, but were broken, and then formed again.
The 10th formed, charged again, and again broke the French; the latter
then still made another effort, but at last ran for the bridge. The
10th killed a few, and brought about a hundred and ninety prisoners in
here; no horses were taken. Twelve or fifteen men badly wounded were
left about two miles off, where it happened. Several of those who came
in here were much cut and wounded, covered with blood, wounds neither
washed nor dressed; but they were fine-looking men; their horses thin,
and smaller than ours. Another officer was taken, to whom I spoke.
He said he had advised that they should not remain on this side the
bridge, but his superior officer ordered otherwise, and afterwards ran
away when attacked. We lost a Captain, who was taken prisoner, and a
Lieutenant killed, both of the 10th; and about five or six men killed
and wounded. The Captain passed some way over the bridge, where the
French had artillery and infantry in force, and they came down and cut
him off.

The French had yesterday, I hear, nearly ten thousand men about five
miles off, and nearly thirty-eight thousand or more in the vicinity of
Valladolid. This made us halt to-day. The second division are still
between this and Salamanca, but are expected. The whole are now within
eight leagues of this, I believe; most of the divisions very close. The
Spaniards are near Benevente: Don Julian’s cavalry, between this and
Salamanca, have sent in about thirty prisoners and two officers here
to-day, who were marauding, I suppose. The French told the people here
that they were only moving to make room for other troops.

The Portuguese troops are generally in very high order, as well as
ours, quite as well clothed, and hitherto well in health, though they
bivouac when ours encamp, their Government not furnishing them with
tents. Yesterday was a pleasant cool day for a long march. I met Lord
Wellington again last night, walking about in his grey great coat
alone. We have a hundred pieces of field artillery with us, besides the
eighteen-pounders.

A French commissariat party were caught in a wine-house on the 1st of
June; one was brought in prisoner, and nine were killed in the house,
as they would not surrender.

Lord Wellington reviewed the sixth and seventh divisions near Morales
to-day. They did not perform well, and the poor aides-de-camp were
galloped all over the country in consequence: the Portuguese were
stupid.

_Head-Quarters, Castro Monte, June 5th, 1813._—On the 3rd, we started
for La Mota, three long leagues of good road. I was late, for my
careless fellows had allowed one of the mule-saddles to be stolen in
the night, and we were a long time getting off in consequence, and
vainly endeavouring to replace the loss; but upon the whole, when I
hear of all the sore backs, lost animals, &c., around me, I am lucky. I
looked at the two hundred French cavalry horses which were sold, with a
view to purchase one, but they were all half-starved, and the service
having seized upon the best hundred and fifty for Government, the
remainder, which were sold by auction, were most miserable.

The road from Toro was full of animation: it was one train of baggage
and soldiers the whole way, three leagues, as we are now in the midst
of the division. La Mota is a very good, large farming village,
in a productive corn country, and the quarters were very good in
consequence, the inhabitants being comfortable; the French, however,
who had left it the day before, had carried off all the bread and
fowls, &c. My landlord, Don Fernando Granado, was very gracious to
me. Lord Wellington was in a large and elegant palace of the Duke of
Berwick and Alva, and, in order to celebrate the King’s birthday, had
the band playing, &c.

At five this morning we marched for this place, three long leagues
again only. It is a miserable hole; with only eighty houses of all
sorts, and we require a hundred billets. Several are doubled up,
several are encamped, which, as we have now a thunder-storm and rain,
is not very agreeable. I have an humble quarter, with mules and all
close.

We had a hot but cheerful ride to-day, as we were in the midst of the
march. I first passed the Household Brigade; the Blues look very well,
the Life Guards fair enough; then the third division, then the fourth,
the seventh; I saw also the light division; five are within a league of
this. The second crossed the Douro yesterday, and are to-day about a
league on our right, under General Hill. I saw Picton with his, looking
tolerably well. The French left Madrid the 20th or 28th of May,
finally, and have by forced marches joined their army near here. The
French were off again yesterday from Valladolid and Tordesillas, and
were to be to-day at Duennas; it is thought they may stand at Palencia,
or near there; I suspect not, however, though we all wish they would,
and fight whilst our men are in health and spirits. I have just heard
that their right is at Placencia.

To-morrow we move for Amputia, a good town, it is said, five leagues
off. On our road to-day, about half way, we passed one of the
finest convents in Spain—La Espina—in ruins; situation good, domain
considerable; a large building, handsome, as far as it remains, but
the walls only are standing. Adieu: I shall finish and send this off
to-morrow.

_Amputia, 2 o’clock, 6th June._—I arrived here at ten, having left
Castro Monte at half-past five, and seen my baggage off, after
breakfast; of course I was up soon after three. The road was by a
bye-way over the common, but tolerably good, and covered with troops
and baggage the whole way, for the third, fourth, and light divisions
of infantry, with their baggage and artillery, head-quarters, the
Household Brigade, and the Hussars were all on our route, and passed in
their way; they are now in this neighbourhood.

We passed Villa Alba de Alcor, three leagues further; an old ruined
village rather, with a castle and walls all around, but nothing
particular; after that Villa Real, a little village, and then here.
This is a large old-fashioned town, with the houses in the streets
projecting, and standing on wooden pillars, so as to form covered
footways, a tolerably large church, and a castle nearly perfect,
where our police corps and the cavalry are quartered. The people are
apparently more cordial and zealous. I have been over the church, spire
and all, and castle, and have taken two sketches, for the rain has
made it rather cool and pleasant to-day. The country round this town
onwards, towards Sahagun, Placencia, &c., is a dead flat, covered with
villages and towns, but no trees. Another large castle on a hill, half
a league off, and on the whole rather striking.

The French left Palencia the day before yesterday, and are off again
in advance, with a good start. Report says they have also left Burgos
town, not the castle; they are seventy thousand strong, but think us,
we hear, too much for them, and are consequently retiring to strong
positions. By very long marches we might perhaps press them, and take
some prisoners, and part of the cattle and provisions they are carrying
off; but this might put our army out of the high order and condition it
is now in, and Lord Wellington does not seem to think this worth while
for such an object. So the Hussars and Household are both kept quiet
in this neighbourhood, and not sent in pursuit; indeed they could do
little without strong support.

_Head-Quarters, Amusea, June 9th, 1813._—Another halt to-day enables me
to proceed with my journal. The night I sent my last from Amputia, our
orders were to have all the baggage ready to start, at the end of the
town, by five o’clock on the following morning; and that I should fall
in, and proceed on the road towards Palencia, in the rear of the column
of the third division, but at the head of the baggage of all the light,
third, and fourth divisions. This was because the French had shown
twelve squadrons of cavalry at Palencia; and Colonel Waters who went
on there that day, could not enter, so that it was not certain that it
should be safe to give out in orders, “head-quarters, Palencia.” The
cavalry had marched early; and as they entered one end of Palencia at
about six in the morning, the last of the French were off at the other.

I passed the third and fourth divisions, went through Paradilla, and
entered Palencia with the light division. On getting my billet, I
wandered about to see all that was to be seen before my baggage came.
The city is old and curious, in size much about the same as Zamora.
Lord Wellington passed us on the road soon after six, and went on
through Palencia, some way, to reconnoitre.

We passed through a good open corn country until about a league beyond
Paradilla, and then descended a long hill, with a deep clay soil, into
the green and rich valley in which Palencia stands. The city appears
to great advantage surrounded with meadows, and some trees, but mostly
young ones. The Carrion is a respectable river, and we passed the canal
near it, about half a mile from the city, where a very considerable
paper manufactory remains unfinished; and the French having taken down
windows, mill-wheels, &c., for firing and shelter in their huts for
their bivouacs there the day before, the work will, I take it, be for
some time interrupted.

The bridges into Palencia were handsome and entire. The streets are
rather narrow, and the main one, the “Calle Mayor,” about a good
half-mile long, contains about three hundred houses, all old-fashioned,
and standing upon stone tall pillars over the footway, on each side,
with the shops under, like Covent Garden. The houses are in the old
style, like Exeter, or Chester, and Geneva; the streets badly paved,
with a most offensive gutter in the middle; the whole dirty. The
bishop’s palace is a large, plain, neat stone edifice, quite modern, of
1799, being built round a square, complete only on one side and a half
however, the rest being bare walls.

The cathedral is Gothic and very handsome, the arches lofty and rich;
but the custom all over Spain of having the choir in the centre, with
very high double screens, deprives you altogether of the fine main
aisle, so magnificent in our churches. This spoils the effect, though
the screens and sides of the choir in the centre were most richly
wrought, with Gothic masonry, like some of our monuments of Henry
VIIth’s time. The side-aisles above are left open, and as there is a
range of chapels the whole way down each side, and at the end, filled
with gildings, saints, and pictures, the whole striking. There were
also a few good pictures.

I afterwards went to the top of the spire, to survey the town,
villages, and roads around. On my return, I was sorry to find orders to
march again for this place, Amusea, next morning.

The town was all hung with counterpanes on our arrival, which made it
look gay, and the people cheered us much. The general cry, however, is
everywhere, “_Viva Espana!_” though there is scarcely a Spaniard to be
seen in our line of march. Now and then, however, we hear, “_Vivan los
Ingleses!_” and “_Los Portugueses!_” or “_Las tres naciones aliadas!_”
The Portuguese are in the highest order, the men really look at least
equal to ours, better than some; the officers are well dressed and gay,
and have the advantage of language; the infantry and the Caçadores
in particular. The whole army marches very fresh hitherto, but the
Portuguese in particular: they come in even to the last mile singing
along the road. The cavalry are not nearly so good, and, I suppose, are
not much to be trusted. From what passed last year near this place,
when they turned short round and ran away, they are called the Vamuses,
for they ran off with a general cry of “Vamus!” Their infantry are
termed Valorosas, from their having hugged and cheered each other early
in the war, when they had for the first time behaved well and beat off
the French, each patting the other on the heart, and saying, “_Mucha
valorosa!—Mucha valorosa!_”

I hope the latter will support their name; and indeed they are disposed
to do so, for we have put so much beef into both men and officers,
that they are quite different animals, and will not submit at all to
what they used to do, even from the English.

Our horses finished the half-eaten meal of the French, and I believe
that has been all they have left behind for us hitherto; not a store of
any kind, sick man, or anything else, has been discovered at Valladolid
or anywhere; they must have been well-prepared for this plan.

The young avenues of trees round the town suffered a little by the
French bivouac; and our men laid waste many a field of wheat in their
march and for forage. The former is particularly wrong, being quite
unnecessary, and merely to save perhaps a few hundred yards, or to get
before others a little. I was glad to see General Picton stop a party,
and about to punish them on the spot. The taking the wheat for forage
is also very bad, for the commissaries regularly buy a field at each
place, and allow us to take each our proportion, cutting the whole
fairly and properly; whereas the fellows who go and steal, cut patches
all about, and tread down more than they cut.

King Joseph left Torquemados, three leagues on the right, the day
before yesterday, and it is said, peeped in again afterwards. The last
French troops left it yesterday at five in the morning, and I believe
General Hill’s head-quarters were there afterwards from Duennas.
Castanos and his Spaniards are on our left all the way; they came by
Benevente across the Esla and so towards Carrion. Their head-quarters
were yesterday, I believe, at Villoldo, on our left. The Life-Guards
and Blues looked well on their entrance into Palencia, and on their
march yesterday the former, however, seem dull and out of spirits,
and have some sore backs among their horses. The Blues seem much more
up to the thing, but they are neither of them very fit for general
service here. Lord Wellington saves them up for some grand coup, houses
them when he can, and takes care of them. To be sure, if many of the
French cavalry are like some specimens we have seen, particularly two
deserters yesterday, who were on ponies I could almost jump over, one
of our Householders must upset them like an elephant, if they come
fairly in contact.

A French officer, a deserter (the third officer), came in two days
since, with a pretty woman, daughter of a General, with him; he calls
her his wife. Another starved scullion came here yesterday, and says he
is an officer, and has some papers, but I think he stole them. He is a
little dirty beast, in rags and without uniform. The cavalry who have
been taken and deserters are quite new-clothed, and the men very fine;
the last who has come in is a Fleming, and had they not persuaded him
to enter our corps of guides, I should have taken him as a groom, and
bought his pony.

Tamarra, a village a league from this, was deserted by the inhabitants,
with their provisions; the French, in consequence, made an example
of it, and it is as bad as the Portuguese villages now, almost a
heap of ruins. Indeed, all the houses and villages on the high road
to Torquemada have suffered terribly, and the villages generally are
now becoming worse, more dirty, and _à la Portuguese_. I hear this is
now the case all round Burgos, and till we get across the Ebro, if we
are destined to do this. We are eleven leagues now from Burgos. The
weather has been cool and excellent for the march this last week, and
rain often in the night; it has now rained the last sixteen hours,
and I hope will be fine again for the march to-morrow. I dined with
Lord Wellington yesterday, for the first time on the march, and gave
him your Roman Catholic book, with the lists of their schools and
establishments in England. He looks well, but anxious, as you may
suppose just now, for a false step may be fatal. All prospers hitherto.
The eighteen-pounders are near, the twenty-fours still at Corunna,
and if wanted will, I suppose, go round by sea to St. Andero. For the
present, adieu.

_June 11th, Head-Quarters, Castrogores._—The church at Amusea is
large and handsome: a room 150 feet by 50, and 70 feet high, without
a pillar, and the whole end one mass of gilding. Yesterday morning,
after the violent rains of our halting day, we started at five on a
fine day, the roads in a terrible state, for Mergan de Fernamental,
head-quarters, on the 10th, five long leagues. Our way was near the
noble canal, and through Pino (one league), a large village. From
thence another league through Fromista, a larger place; then another
league to Requena: then another to Lantidillo, where we crossed the
Pisuerga over a large bridge, left entire; and then after another long
league, Mergan de Fernamental.

The country was flat, and rich in corn, meadows, &c., nearly all the
way, but low and boggy, and a hard march for men and baggage, &c.;
mine started at five, and did not arrive till about two. There were
villages thickly set all around us, and all with large churches. The
latter, compared with ours, are very much superior, considering the
size of the places: all possess a considerable church of rather curious
construction, and all somewhat different, though in general appearance
alike. The church at Mergan was particularly handsome, and more like
our Saxon at Gloucester and Tewkesbury. It had some decent pictures, so
indeed have several of the quarters, though perhaps not very valuable.
Many are to be bought very cheap, and I should have purchased some, had
I known how to carry them home.

At Mergan we were in the right road for Reynosa and St. Andero, and the
first division were two leagues in advance the same way. I conjectured
we were going to open a communication with St. Andero, and to cross
the Ebro as soon as the French from Burgos, and thus turn them. There
seems now, however, to be a change of plan, as to-day we are come three
leagues here, nearly in the right road again for Burgos, which we had
before left on our right. Here we have fallen in with General Hill’s
division, who are now within half a league of this place. We are thus
all now quite close together, and report says that the French have
united their army of the north to the rest, and are now between this
and Burgos eighty thousand strong, about four leagues distant.

They thus seem to make a stand here, and we are, probably, assembled
in case they should persist, but many think it is still only a plan to
make us assemble and draw up, to see what we have, and also to give
time for their baggage and plunder, oxen, &c., to withdraw without
loss: time will show. The sooner the battle comes for us the better, I
think: and so do most, but it will be more tremendous, probably, than
any hitherto fought in Spain. The numbers now approach those of the
great continental armies on both sides, and we are at least equal, if
you reckon all that are well dressed and ought to fight on our side; as
to the Spaniards, hitherto we must put a query to that. Don Julian’s
cavalry have sent in about forty or fifty infantry stragglers of the
French, and have killed a dozen or more,—about fifty or sixty in all;
several with bad pike or lance wounds.

Mergan is a very dirty old town, but this town, Castrogores, though
larger, and the quarters better, is in that respect much worse; the
streets so offensive, that you must hold your nose in passing through
them, and everything about the place filthy. We passed the German
hussars in quarters half a league off on our way here, and crossed the
line of march of the light and fourth divisions, meeting General Hill’s
army on our arrival here.

The scene is now very animated. This place is above a mile long, round
the bottom of an insulated hill, with a castle at the top of it, which
looks over a rich country for some way to a ridge of hills which bound
the whole, about a league off; trees, however (except just round a few
quintas or villas, and about the several ruins of the old monasteries),
are very scarce; corn most luxuriant, but not much forwarder than with
us in England. Weather, hitherto, scarcely at all too hot, and that
only for a few hours; at times very cold. Lord Wellington has gone
through again on in front.

_Castrogores, June 12th._—As we halt here to-day, instead of marching
to Eglesia, as was intended, I determined to finish this, and seal
up to-day for Lisbon. Colonel A——, of the German hussars, told me
that he saw about two or three thousand French cavalry the day before
yesterday, but they filed off as we came in sight. Colonel Waters went
on yesterday to within a league of Burgos. He only saw about fifteen
thousand French in a valley near there, near Quinta della Duennas. They
were about to march, and the reports are that they are off again, and
the whole of the second division of General Hill’s army have advanced
hence this morning. They began at daylight, and about eight o’clock
the Spaniards began to file by, just below my house. This was General
Murillo’s corps: I went down to look at them. There were about ten
regiments, I think, but most of them small ones. The men looked very
well, though a great many were quite boys. They were singing, joking,
and in good spirits: the artillery with them in good order, the draft
mules quite fat. The clothing and equipments of some very good, though
unequal to ours, or to the Portuguese; others moderate only. They wore
a sort of flannel jacket and trousers not at all alike, and some were
ragged, here and there a man barefoot,—very few; all with good caps, in
the French style, and the officers more respectable than usual, and
generally mounted; some very fierce-looking pioneers, fine grenadiers,
and all with good English town muskets in good order, brighter than
our own, being, most probably, nearly new: in short, the whole was
respectable. If they will but fight as well as they look, it will do.
Doyle’s regiment was one of the best; but the very best, I think, was
the Regimento del Unione.

General Alava, the Spanish great man at head-quarters, is in high
spirits, thinks all going on well, and is beginning to ask one or two
to dine with him at his mansion near Vittoria, where his estates lie.
He only begs that he may have a guard to preserve his green forage
from our soldiers. The Spaniards are astonished at our baggage. The
French carry very little, as they make the people at the quarters
furnish everything they want, which is not so much as we require. We
carry everything with us. An English captain, therefore, has (plunder
excepted) almost as much baggage as a French colonel. Barley is
already scarce, and not to be bought, though we pay in guineas. Bread
is also scarce, as well as beef. I hope soon to hear through St.
Andero, but the French have Castro and Santona. We still have reports
that the works at Burgos are being destroyed; it may be so, if the
French resolve to go to the Ebro, for the garrison will otherwise be
sacrificed. We have only six eighteen-pounders, about the same as last
year; the twenty-fours are at Corunna. This will not do for the siege
well, and I hope that will not be necessary. For the last thirty miles
and more the style of the houses has changed. They are generally now
mud or cob walls, like those in Devonshire, whitewashed, but not in the
best repair, or else they are unburnt brick, or dried mud bricks with
mud plaster.

_Miserable Head-Quarters at Massa, June 14th, 1813._—The regular
English post-day was yesterday, but I had not time to write then, and
as it is ten to one but that this will be in time for the same packet,
though you will have, I hope, a long letter by the same mail, yet,
wishing to give you the latest news from hence, and to let you know the
events which have occurred, I write again.

At four o’clock on the 12th, as I told you, Lord Wellington had not
returned from the front when my last letter was sent off. He came back
at seven o’clock; he and his horse and his comrades well tired. The
enemy were found about fifteen thousand strong, two leagues south-west
nearly of Burgos, with cavalry and artillery. We had up the hussars
(heavy), and General Fane’s brigades of cavalry. Manœuvring went on a
considerable time with skill. Our infantry could not get up in force
in time, or much would have been done. We had a gun, however, close to
a French column, and killed a few. We also took an officer and about
ninety men prisoners, some desperately wounded, and one gun. A charge
of cavalry was ordered, but the French moved off.

There seems to be considerable confusion at times in the intermixture
of the French and English. The light divisions were at hand; the
second near with the Spaniards, but not up. The Prince of Orange
galloped about well, with orders; he knocked up his horse, and was in
some danger. Lord March met a French dragoon, took him till he came
close for an English soldier, turned short round, was struck at by
the Frenchman, and his horse slightly hit below the ear: in short,
something material was very nearly happening.

The next day (the 13th) we had orders to march to Villa Diego, where
head-quarters were yesterday; a dirty place, but quarters tolerable.
The country between is rich and good, and covered with villages. We
passed, among others, Ormillos, Villa Sandine at a distance, and
Sasamon, in perfect ruin; the whole place, church and all, both of
considerable extent and size, having been burnt by Romana and his army
for some real or supposed treason. The destruction was certainly well
performed; the punishment severe, and very impartially inflicted. The
next place we came to, which had been a very neat village, was nearly
in the same state, from the same cause. Villa Diego was nearly six or
seven leagues from Burgos. Lord Wellington, &c., went round that way,
to see how matters went on. They could not find any French, and at last
ascertained that the works, castle, &c., of Burgos, had been all blown
up and destroyed by five o’clock yesterday morning. This news caused no
little joy to every one, and most particularly to those who expected
to have to knock their heads against the place. Many good lives have
thus been saved. This news met us about four o’clock yesterday, and in
consequence to-day we had a long march to this place, Massa, on our way
to the Ebro.

We shall probably nearly all get across about the same time; I think
French and all. Some of the Spanish army of Gallicia pass to-day up
towards Reynosa. The first division do the same to-day or to-morrow. We
met one cavalry brigade on their road to cross at St. Martine to-day.
General Murray told me that we should probably cross to-morrow; but
I find we are here five leagues from a bridge or ford. The first two
leagues here to-day were through a productive country like Wiltshire;
round smooth chalk hills, well-watered meadows, and rich pasture
valleys, with abundance of grass: draining and better farming, with
cleanliness, were all requisite. We then entered a rough, wild country,
with rocks, &c. We nearly all lost our way, including General Murray,
the Quarter-Master-general, with whom I was riding, Lord Wellington
himself, and nearly all the baggage! We were near a place called
Brulla, ought to have passed Cuirculo, near Urbel de Castro, whereas
we got through a rugged pass in the rock, came down to a picturesque
village, called La Piedra (so called, probably, from the rocks around
it), and there we fell in with the fifth division. At last, after
passing another little space called Fresnoy, and leaving Urbel de
Castro, in a valley on our right, with a curious small castle on a
pointed hill close to it (from whence the name), we arrived at this
wretched place. The houses in this place would not in any way hold half
of us; so the Spaniards have been sent back to Fresnoy, the artillery,
commissaries, paymasters, and doctors to Vilalda, or some such place, a
league off.

I was forgotten, but have, from there being one spare quarter, got a
wretched dirty hole here: it is the worst of dirty cottages. My baggage
is all in the entrance. I have no place but a dirty passage to put up
my bed in; I have a table and chair, but am surrounded by baskets,
hampers, tubs, boxes, sheepskins, dirt, &c. Cobwebs and dirt are
dropping upon me continually. Most have encamped. Lord Wellington and
Marshal Beresford are walking up and down the street, and the Military
Secretary is writing under a wall, upon his knees, whilst his servants
are pitching his tent. In a little field where General Alava is about
to encamp, there were just now the Military Secretary, Colonel Scovell,
the Commander of the Police Corps, Fitzclarence, General Alava, the
Spanish Aide-de-camp, Colonel Waters, the Prince of Orange, and your
humble servant, all lying upon the ground together, round a cold ham
and bread, some brandy, and a bottle of champagne. And no bad fare
either you will say. The Prince and Lord Fitzroy, like two boys, were
playing together all the time.

The people in this part of the country are as bad, if not worse than
in Portugal. There is nothing but filth and laziness. They are not
good-looking either. They live in dirty mud houses, and fleas are so
abundant that I cannot sleep from their annoyance. I suppose we shall
cross near Puente Arences, or Rampalaise, to-morrow, or next day at the
latest. The French have left about ninety sick or wounded at Burgos,
and the bedding of the hospitals, about eight hundred beds. No cannon,
&c. We are already short of forage or corn for the horses; bread
scarce, as well as spirits, and the country we enter produces little or
nothing.




CHAPTER VIII.

 March continued—Quintana—Anecdote of Wellington—Morillas—Vittoria—The
 Battle—Its Results—Plunder—Kindness to the Enemy—Madame de Gazan—The
 Hospital—Sufferings of the Wounded—Estimated Loss.


  Head-quarters, Berberena,
  June 18, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

My last left me at Massa, on the other side of the Douro, in a
miserable quarter. On the following morning (the 15th) we marched
for Quintana, on the same side. For about four leagues we proceeded
through a rough hilly country, barren, but at times picturesque. We
passed troops all the way, and at last came to a tremendous long hill
which led us down to Quintana, near the banks of the Ebro. Troops were
descending the hill, infantry, cavalry, and artillery, from eight or
nine o’clock until past four; and at last the baggage, which was kept
waiting on the banks around the road-side, moved on; the scene was very
striking. The artillery was much shaken; some guns were lowered by
hand, with the wheels locked, without horses, and all very gently; four
wheels gave way, and the 18-pounders had to go round by St. Martine.

The valley in which Quintana and six or seven other small villages
were placed, and through which the Ebro passed, was very rich and
beautiful, surrounded with rocky heights and covered with corn,
beans, fruit, vines, trees, &c., and the villages externally very
picturesque. Internally, however, they were most wretched, and my
quarter was misery itself. The people had not seen the French in the
valley for two years, until about ten days before we were there, when
they had been through to collect contributions, and to seize part of a
magazine formed there by Longa. The head-quarters’ house was, however,
good, and near it was a large but unfinished and unoccupied college,
for young persons of both sexes, founded about twenty years ago by
the owner of the head-quarters’ house, by the desire of his deceased
wife, for the education of children of the valley. The great man of
the valley, however, was the owner of the Adjutant-general’s quarter,
and only a Procureur there—a poor abode. I think he was called the
Marquis de Villa Alta. There was a small castle, and the whole scenery,
particularly along the banks of the river, was very delightful. I
longed for a tent, for I could not live in my house in the daytime from
the smoke, and could not sleep in the night from the fleas. The light
division and the fourth were encamped in the meadows across the river,
and added, by their fires and tents, much to the interest of the scene;
the cavalry and artillery passed through the valley. The river runs in
this part about as wide as the Severn above Shrewsbury—less than the
Thames at Maidenhead.

The next day (the 16th) we crossed the river, and proceeded with the
troops between the lofty rocky banks of the river, above the valley,
on a road cut close to the water, and winding alongside the river for
about a league and more, most beautifully! in some respects like the
Wye, the cliffs almost like Cheddar, and wooded to the water’s edge.
The constant line of cavalry and infantry, whenever the eye caught the
winding road, was very picturesque. In two places were the remains of
walls across the road made by Longa or the French—I do not know which.

The road afterwards turned from the river, and through a fine country
brought us to Medina de Pomar, leaving Villa Cayo on our left. Medina
de Pomar, our next head-quarters, was a straggling dirty town, and the
accommodation very moderate indeed. I got a tolerable clean room for
myself at the apothecary’s, but my stable was down a cellar with dark
stairs, and I could scarcely get my animals in or out. The alcalde was
not civil, nor did the people appear glad to see us. The town was very
full, for the Spanish Generals Mendizabel and Longa (the _ci-devant_
Guerilla chief) were quartered there on our arrival, and did not seem
disposed to move for us.

I saw Longa in the street; rather a stout man, well dressed in a
sort of hussar uniform, and looking civilized enough. I was in hopes
of meeting him at Lord Wellington’s, where I dined that day, but he
did not stay. The party of cavalry attending him were all uniformly
dressed, and seemed to me to be more regular than most of the Spanish
regulars. They wore scarlet jackets, and appeared not unlike some
of our volunteer yeomanry cavalry, but they had quite an air of
consequence which was amazing. Longa has left thirty of them and two
officers at head-quarters, as part of the corps of guides, to assist in
keeping up the communications of the army, in which way I have no doubt
they will be very useful.

Lord Wellington was at Medina in a large nunnery where there were
twenty-five ladies, who came and played at bo-peep with us in the
chapel, which was a handsome building. The altar was very rich, and
in the centre was a piece of clock-work of small moveable figures
describing the crucifixion.

On that day General Jeron arrived, the General of the Gallician Spanish
army acting with us, and he dined there. Castanos, the former General,
is now a sort of General of two armies, and amuses himself by parading
through all the towns and places in the rear of the army, Burgos last:
I suppose he is employed somehow in this way. Jeron is a man about
thirty-six, I should think, and looks very much like a gentleman and a
man of talent; he is very well spoken of, and considered as one of the
best of the Spanish leaders. Through Corunna we have news to the 6th of
June. Talking during dinner of the late accounts from Bonaparte, and of
the sentimental story about Duroc, which Lord Wellington was laughing
at, General Jeron said, “If there was such a place as hell, he thought
Bonaparte quite right, and that he and Duroc would most certainly meet
again there.”

Yesterday, the 17th, we started again (having had no halts) for
Quincoces, five long leagues almost, towards Vittoria, but to the left:
there our head-quarters were yesterday, in that and the neighbouring
villages. The troops I think were pushed on in this way, from an
account received from Longa and others, that the French rear was still
at Pencorbo, and part even at Briviesca, on the other side of the
Ebro. Longa gave great hopes of doing something. We have, however, our
difficulties from this. We get no corn for the horses, and bread is
very scarce; stores gone for the present, for we outrun our supplies,
and there is very little to be bought. We have bought some and baked
it, to supply us as we go, but some divisions have been for one or
two days entirely without, and others on short allowance. We hope now
soon to get into a better country, towards Vittoria, but Longa and the
French have cleared everything about this country.

Longa, when we came to Quincoces, was ordered on to Orduna, having
had all he could from this place. On taking leave he collected all
their oxen for the plough, ninety in number, all they had left, and
drove them off. The people received us with tears and lamentations,
and with no small fear, not knowing what we should require next. My
patron seemed quite stupified and melancholy. We told this to General
Alava, and he galloped off with two dragoons after Longa’s people and
the oxen, overtook them, and compelled them to restore them to the
owners, to their no small satisfaction. At last we found eight hundred
pounds of bread, that is, flour; half a day’s rations for head-quarters
only. We bought it, paid for it with guineas, and baked it—_voilà la
différence!_ But this cannot last or be general; the divisions cannot
do this.

We last night heard that the French were over the river Ebro, and as
near Vittoria as we were. However, we advanced in hopes of something
arising, and head-quarters were ordered to be at this place, Berberena,
and the neighbouring villages. It was intended that Marshal Beresford
should have been at a village half a league in front of this place, but
when we arrived near here, about nine o’clock, we found two divisions
of the 1st and 5th halted here until further orders. We heard a
cannonading in the front, at this village, and found that the French
were making some stand in a narrow pass near it, and in the village.
Beresford was put into a village to the rear of us, and an order soon
came out for all baggage to proceed to that village for security. Mine
was unloaded; but as I saw the French just before us, only about a mile
off or little more, I made my people all load again and stand ready
to be off, whilst I went with my glass to the end of the village, to
a rising ground, to witness the skirmishing, and to be ready to act
accordingly.

A brisk cannonade was going on, a few shells were thrown, and a light
infantry attack. The French I saw very plainly in the churchyard and
village on the hill beyond. They advanced under a ridge in the ground
and some bushes, where they stood above an hour and more, when I saw
our men and the Portuguese advance gradually and drive them back. The
cannon advanced also, and the French by degrees went out of sight
round the hill, our guns and soldiers after them. Very few I believe
were killed on either side; but our light division I find went round
by Espeja, and, falling in with another division early in the day,
routed them so completely, that two battalions dispersed, and the
light division got a quantity of mules and baggage, with a good deal
of money; some privates got two or three hundred pounds. About three
hundred prisoners were taken, and some of the runaways are still coming
in. One French battalion fled towards Frias, and some Spaniards are
sent off after them.

_Morillas, Head-Quarters, June 20th._—Our orders yesterday morning (the
19th) were to set out at eight o’clock through Osma, where a little
affair took place the day before, and so on to Escorta, following the
fourth division. We did this, and I was riding with the doctors just
before that division on towards Escorta, when we were told that the
French were only two miles in advance, and that there was nothing
between us. Upon this we turned out of the road into a field of vetches
for the horses, and let the fourth division go by, and have the honour
of preceding us, as we did not quite think the French would run away
at the sight of us civilians. When this division came well up we went
on, passed through Escorta to another village half a league beyond,
and then, by the advice of an officer, who told us they were going to
attack the French, who were strong at this place, Morillas, and that
the passage of the river was to be forced, we ascended a high hill on
our right, which commanded the whole scene of action, and there with
our glasses we could distinctly see everything.

As soon as the light division had got almost round the hill on our
right, from the direction nearly of the Frias road, in order to be
ready to advance and turn the French position, the fourth division
advanced to the village here, and the skirmishing began from the
houses and a chapel on the river. In about half an hour our men
entered the village, and we got about three field-pieces into play
close to it. We then saw the French, who were in considerable force on
the other side, and formed into a crescent on a hill near, begin to
move off, at first gently, but soon in quick time, and a part of our
division was very soon formed beyond the village over the river. The
skirmishing thus went on all the way up the road and hill beyond to
another village half a league further on the hill, where the French
were drawn up in greater force. When our men got up, however, the enemy
went off pretty quickly, and were last night in great force, some say
fifty thousand, in a plain about a league and a half from this, and
about half way to Vittoria.

The pass here was very defensible, and not easily turned; but the
resistance was very slight, and few fell on either side. I suppose
the French were afraid of bringing on a general action by further
resistance. They had not any artillery with them near here, I conclude,
from the fear of losing their guns, as just through and near the
village the road is so bad and narrow, that our baggage, without any
resistance, did not pass through to the two divisions beyond until dark
at eight o’clock, our head-quarter baggage having all followed on here.

Lord Wellington walked into a house and made it head-quarters. I have
a sort of barn here. We have had wet and cold weather for these three
days; I can scarcely keep myself warm to write, though with my cap on
and double waistcoats. This is considered extraordinary here for the
20th of June, though the climate is always much colder and more subject
to wet than in the more southern parts of Spain.

There is a large plain near Vittoria, and then all beyond is hilly
to France. An officer of the 95th was killed on the 18th, and about
seventy men wounded, I hear. Yesterday an officer of the Fusileers was
wounded badly in this village, and lies in a house here: in another
house a very spirited Portuguese (Caçadores) serjeant is also lying
wounded.

_3 o’clock._—The French remain in the valley, but it is thought will be
off to-night.

_Vittoria, June 23rd, 1813._—My last was of the 20th from Morillas, and
on the 21st I arrived here after a scene never to be forgotten. Our
baggage was that morning ordered to remain ready to load until further
orders. The French were very strongly posted at about a league and a
half distance, directly across the road to Vittoria, about sixty or
seventy thousand strong, and extending about a league; their centre
supported by a wood and a small river, their left by strong wooded
hills, and their right on another hill not so strong. The attack was
ordered in the manner you have seen before this in the “_Gazette_.”
General Graham was to turn the French right flank; General Hill their
left. I mounted my horse about nine to see the result, leaving Henry
and everything behind, with directions to do exactly the same as Lord
Wellington’s servants. I got, with Dr. M’Gregor and a few others, on
a hill about a mile from the French, which commanded nearly the whole
scene. At about half-past ten the firing began very briskly on the
hills on the French left. The different ridges were well contested; but
our people constantly, though gradually, gained ground, and advanced
along the top ridge to turn the French. The cavalry were nearly all
close under us to be ready, some in the rear, and one division of
infantry also. General Pakenham’s division was not up at all—it was
four leagues in the rear.

By the ground gained on the French left, and soon after from General
Picton having got up quite on the ridge of the hills there with his
division, a steep and difficult ascent, the centre were enabled to
advance a little also, and much skirmishing began there near a little
village before us, which was for some time contested. At length, some
guns being brought to bear there, and one also half way up the hill,
the village was passed by our people, and we saw them lying sheltered
under a hill beyond, nearly opposite the wood at the French centre. A
smart contest then ensued. The cannon and a few men from the hill and
village fired into the wood, and a constant firing was kept up from the
wood on our men; the main contest being still, however, on the hills on
the French left. By this time, about one, we on our hill all advanced
to another nearer, to observe more distinctly with our glasses. Soon
after this, General Graham’s attack began on the French right, and
a very brisk cannonade was then kept up right and left. The French
line on the hill on the right and left (for we saw the whole of their
line) began to give way a little, and to put itself in motion, and
the plot then thickened. Still we gained ground, and some of our men
also got close to the wood, and, lying down, kept up a smart fire. The
cannonading lasted two or three hours, the English constantly gaining
ground. Our party moved a second time to a third hill within the
original French picquets, and in front of our cavalry. At last we saw
our line forming gradually under shelter of the rising ground, within
half a mile of the French line and guns. They then advanced, and the
cavalry began to move up—some say rather late, as Lord Wellington was
not there to give the orders.

We then left our hill and advanced with the Household Brigade
constantly as they moved. We now began to see the effects of the guns.
Dead and wounded men and horses, some in the most horrible condition,
were scattered all along the way we passed. These were principally
cannon-shot wounds, and were on that account the more horrible. It was
almost incredible that some could live in the state we saw them. From
my black feather I was taken by some for a doctor, and appealed to in
the most piteous voice and affecting manner, so that I immediately took
out my feather, not to be supposed so unfeeling as to pass on without
taking any notice of these poor creatures. Our hospital spring-waggons
were following, and men with frames to lift up and carry off those
near the roads. Some in the fields about crawled by degrees into the
villages; but hundreds have lain without food or having their wounds
dressed until now, two days afterwards. Parties are sent all over the
contested ground to find them, though the peasants are continually
bringing in the wounded.

On the hill in the centre of the French position, at a village where
we first came in full sight of Vittoria, and about two miles distance,
the contest was very sharp, and the three first guns were taken, with
several tumbrils, and there the first charge of cavalry took place.
The sufferers there were principally Portuguese of the 11th and 21st
regiments, and we had all along seen more of our people wounded than
the French. We now found swords, muskets, knapsacks, &c., in all
directions. The stragglers and followers were stripping and plundering,
and a scramble ensued for the corn, &c., which was in the tumbrils with
the ammunition. The Hussars in their charges suffered much. The Life
Guards I kept close to all the way to Vittoria, and to that time they
were not engaged.

We could hear the whistle of the cannon-shot, and saw the ground
torn up where they struck. Tumbrils and guns were now found upset or
deserted at every half-mile; and when we got near Vittoria the road was
absolutely choked up with them, so that our artillery was some time
stopped. Some of the Life Guards were placed at the gates and in the
streets here, to keep soldiers, &c., out, and to preserve order as far
as possible; and we rode into Vittoria amidst the cries, hurras, and
_vivas_ of the mob, which consisted chiefly of women. We looked into
the stores and found little left, and then passed through the town,
at the further side of which we stopped at a very curious scene. The
French so little expected the result, that all their carriages were
caught, and stopped at this place—three of King Joseph’s, those of the
Generals, &c.; the Paymaster and his chest, the _Casa real_, hundreds
of tumbrils, the wives of the Generals, all flying in confusion;
several carriages upset, the horses and mules removed from them, the
women still in their carriages, and the Spaniards (a few soldiers, but
principally the common people) beginning to break open and plunder
everything, assisted by a few of our soldiers. Upon the whole, our
people got but little of the plunder, except by seizing and selling a
few mules. The seats of the carriages were broken with great stones
and ransacked, and gold, silver, and plate were found in several in
abundance. I took a case of maps, part of Lopez’ provincial set, and a
horse-cloth, which I bought of a Portuguese soldier as a memorial, but
would not meddle with the rest. Maps, books, &c., were thrown aside;
brandy, &c., drank.

In the midst of this, a lady in great distress, well dressed and
elegant, with her carriage in the ditch, and she herself standing
by, appealed to me, and, asking me if I could speak French, said she
was the Countess de Gazan, wife of the French General, and that she
wished to get back to the town, and, if possible, save her horses,
mules, and carriage, and those of King Joseph, which were by. With the
assistance of two hussars, after above an hour, I at last accomplished
this in a great measure; that is, I got the lady, her woman, the
carriage, and four out of six of the animals, to the house of a friend
whom she pointed out to me, and also a few loose things out of the
carriage. The other two animals and the three trunks of clothes had
been plundered before I arrived. I also put King Joseph’s carriage and
horses in their way to the square of the town; I then went and tried to
find out amongst the prisoners a little boy of two years old, a son of
the General, whom some French gens-d’armes had taken from the carriage
to carry off, and who had not since been seen, and whom the mother
thought was taken prisoner. I could not find him anywhere; but I met
Lord Wellington returning to the Palace at ten at night to his quarters
there; and as Madame de Gazan was most anxious that he should know she
was taken, I told him, and also about her boy. He desired me to say
that he could not then see her, but that she might rely on his doing
what he could to find the child, and that she should be immediately at
liberty to join her husband. This I went and told her. I also found an
English aide-de-camp of General Hill, who had been released only the
day before, having been prisoner, and to whom she had been very kind
when he was with the French, and who had, on taking leave, promised, if
the fate of war should make a change in their relative situations, to
return her attentions.

My return and message made her more easy: I fear, from what I have
since heard, that her boy was killed between two carriages; but still
hope he may have escaped. The confusion lasted all night, and indeed,
has continued until now. The event was also so little expected on our
part, that for a long time there were no guards for the prisoners, and
many escaped in consequence, and several are still wandering about the
country.

The next day (22nd) the head-quarters followed the French to
Salvatierra; but I was advised by Colonel Campbell and others to stay
quietly here, and proceed afterwards. I did so, but already repent,
for no place is so certain of news, and so secure, as head-quarters,
though the accommodation is often most wretched. I have been over the
hospital, and the scene which I there witnessed was most terrible;
seventeen or eighteen hundred men, without legs or arms, &c., or
with dreadful wounds, and having had nothing to eat for two or three
days, the misery extreme, and not nearly hands sufficient to dress or
take care of the men—English, Portuguese, Spaniards, and French all
together, though the Spaniards and Portuguese had at first no provision
at all for their people. Half the wounded have been scattered round the
villages in the neighbourhood; and there are still many to come in,
who arrive hourly, and are lying in all the passages and spare places
around the hospital. A Commissary is just established.

Six hospital waggons are just now setting out for another load of these
poor wounded fellows!

I do not know what now to do as to proceeding to join head-quarters;
for, to our great surprise, last night Lord March was sent over here
to tell the Commandant, who was just appointed, that it was discovered
that from ten to twelve thousand French, supposed to come from Bilboa,
were in our rear, and might be in here soon; that a division of men
(I believe General Pakenham’s) was left for our protection, but that
every man here capable of bearing arms must be kept in readiness, and
every one must be ready to leave this place at an hour’s notice. I
now, therefore, do not know what to do exactly, and wish myself at
head-quarters. The pay-chest, with about a hundred or a hundred and
twenty thousand dollars of French prize money in addition, is still
here, and several of the doctors.

In the blue coach was a box of gold in different shapes, which a
servant of King Joseph stayed behind to give up to Lord Wellington,
and which report says he has given to his own personal staff. But
everything was in confusion; even the ammunition waggons were left
unguarded, and were broken open to be ransacked, and we have had
accidental or intentional explosions almost every hour since. One
tumbril with twenty shells was set fire to by the foolish Spaniards
yesterday, and several persons were hurt in consequence. Every one
is taking and wasting the musket cartridges, notwithstanding Lord
Wellington is really in want of some. All, however, are now busy in
trying to remedy this confusion.

I hear that nearly one hundred and forty pieces of artillery have
been now taken in different states and places between Morillas and
Salvatierra. The French, however, have comparatively lost fewer men
than we did; the Portuguese more than their proportion; the Spaniards,
several. Some corps behaved well, though General Picton said some liked
best to fire away and make a noise at a distance.

I fear that few prisoners are taken—as far as I can learn about a
thousand; and I suppose they had a thousand killed and wounded, having
done us much mischief with their tremendous artillery firing. Their
line would not stand at all when Graham advanced to turn them, but they
were off so quick that our men opposed to them could not get up to
them. Had they waited for a fair attack, the prisoners would probably
have been numerous. As it is, the French still have numbers, and,
though the equipments of the army are gone, they may, if they can fall
back on supplies, be again formidable. Report also says that Suchet is
moving fast to join them. Last night, when our head-quarters were at
Salvatierra, the rear of the French was three leagues in advance; they
are off so quick, the weather is so bad and wet, that I fear we shall
have many sick in the pursuit. The result of the whole is, however,
the most glorious possible, whatever may be the consequence; never was
there for the time an army of sixty or seventy thousand men, as we say,
more completely routed and put to flight. Several French Generals are
killed, wounded, or prisoners; in officers of rank the French have
suffered much.

It is so very difficult to be at all certain as to our own loss,
unless one is in the secret, that I shall say nothing but that General
Colville, who had a slight knock in the arm, is the only officer
wounded of whom I have heard. The 18th Hussars suffered much. I must
now see the Commandant, and settle whether to move or not. The reports
when not at head-quarters puzzle one very much. A dragoon (Spanish)
rode into the town yesterday, and came up to me in the square to ask
for the mayor of the town, to tell him that six thousand French were
only two leagues off. I took him to General Pakenham, whose division
had just arrived. He carried the man off to see what he knew, and said,
if true, he would have a dash at them. I suppose this was in part true,
from what passed afterwards about the French in our rear; the division
of men is still, however, close to us.

Suchet was endeavouring to join the other French army, and was, as the
prisoners say, in the neighbourhood of Logrono for that purpose, so
that he will soon be with the others. Tarragona we hear is taken, and
I conclude Murray is after Suchet. I have had much conversation with
the Commissary-general of the army of Portugal, a talkative perfect
Frenchman. He has lost everything, and has neither money nor a change
of linen, but he seems tolerably happy. He says he had orders to pay
out of the Treasury when the fire had commenced, which was madness,
and he described the confusion of the fight most eloquently and most
truly I am sure. Joseph had sent off a caravan of valuable pictures
only the day before, and various kinds of baggage, and a heavy train of
artillery. Some of this will, I think, be caught in the confusion, but
the pictures probably destroyed.

Head-quarters are to-day at Echarva Aramaz, and I mean to get as
near that place to-morrow as I can, or even there, if I can get my
baggage over the nine leagues in the bad state of the roads, for it
has rained constantly these ten hours. Lord Wellington has not given
the box of treasure to his private staff. It has not yet been opened,
but is here. Colonel Campbell, who is just come into the town on
business, says that the French have committed great ravages on their
route from this place, destroying property, committing every excess.
A girl at Lord Wellington’s quarters at Salvatierra accuses even King
Joseph of an attempt at violence; but I do not believe it. Some very
strange things were found in the baggage. I was sorry to find that,
except stragglers and more baggage, we have got little more by our
pursuit. There are tumbrils I am told to the amount of five hundred,
and carriages and carts as many. King Joseph had neither a knife and
fork nor a clean shirt with him last night. The loss to the French must
be very considerable, though our gain is not nearly so great, from the
destruction of many, and the quantity of things taken, to us of little
use.




CHAPTER IX.

 Pamplona—Pursuit of Clausel—Wellington on the March—Prospects of more
 Fighting—Effects of the War—The French Position turned—Anecdote of
 Wellington—Ernani—St. Sebastian—Wellington’s Movements.


  Head-quarters, half a league from
  Pamplona.

  MY DEAR M——,

I have repented staying two days at Vittoria. The consequence has been
that I fell in with all the fagged division of the army, and found
every hole full of troops, and nothing to eat or drink. The roads
were poached up knee-deep with clay, and I have almost knocked up
both myself and my animals. Yesterday I had no dinner, and to-day no
breakfast, and the first day I was twelve hours on the road going six
leagues to a place two leagues beyond Salvatierra; from thence I got in
thirteen hours more to Orunzun, eight leagues. There my baggage did not
arrive in time, and I went to bed without dinner and without anything
except the comforts of a Spanish cottage.

I set out this morning for head-quarters. Now we start fair again;
to-morrow we march. Pamplona is invested, but I fear that we have
little means for a very regular siege; and accounts state that Clausel
is, with fifteen thousand men, on his road from Logrono, endeavouring
to escape towards Suchet. It is hoped that we may intercept him, or at
least his guns; and so we march, though the army is terribly fagged,
and the animals also. General Graham is at Tolosa; Mina at Tudela to
assist against Clausel. From Vittoria to this place we have constantly
passed at first stripped and unburied dead, then baggage and animals
without number, but the French have got off to France, and march away
like monkeys, scrambling over everything, consequently there are few
prisoners. Lord Wellington is in the highest spirits. King Joseph was
within two hundred yards of our dragoons, and had a narrow escape. A
few more cannon have been taken.

It is one continued pass, or valley, all the way from Vittoria to this
place; the road infamous, villages every mile, but much damaged by the
French, and the people, from affluence, reduced to misery and distress.
Oh war! war! little do you know of it in England. At Orunzun the French
had spent much in a blockhouse and fort; they withdrew the garrison for
the battle, and the peasants destroyed it immediately.

_One league from Sanguessa, Head-Quarters, Casseda, June 29th,
1813._—Thus far we have arrived in pursuit of Clausel and his division,
who were at Logrono, on their way to join King Joseph. Had the battle
been delayed two days longer, we should have had these fifteen thousand
men, in addition, to contend with; for by that time they would have
joined the king’s army. As it was, they were in some degree cut off
and separated from their friends, and might have been in some danger;
for had it not been for the information of some treacherous alcalde (I
believe), these men would have proceeded towards Pamplona, and would
then have fallen completely into our net. As it is, hearing of our
approach, and having the start, there is no chance of doing anything
with them, I think; they have full opportunity of joining Suchet, and
nothing material in their way, though Mina may harass them much. Our
army, by this pursuit, already is terribly harassed and out of sorts.

In marching, our men have no chance at all with the French. The latter
beat them hollow; principally, I believe, owing to their being a more
intelligent set of beings, seeing consequences more, and feeling them.
This makes them sober and orderly whenever it becomes material, and
on a pinch their exertions and individual activity are astonishing.
Our men get sulky and desperate, drink excessively, and become daily
more weak and unable to proceed, principally from their own conduct.
They eat voraciously when opportunity offers, after having had short
fare. This brings on fluxes, &c. In every respect, except courage,
they are very inferior soldiers to the French and Germans. When the
two divisions, the fourth and light, passed through Taffalla the day
before yesterday, the more soldierlike appearance and conduct of the
foreigners, though in person naturally inferior, was very mortifying.
Lord Wellington feels it much, and is much hurt.[4]

The 23rd and 11th Portuguese regiments, who behaved in the field on
the 23rd as well as any British did or could do, are on the march,
though smaller animals, most superior. They were cheerful, orderly, and
steady. The English troops were fagged, half tipsy, weak, disorderly,
and unsoldierlike; and yet the Portuguese suffer greater real
hardships, for they have no tents, and only bivouac, and have a worse
commissariat.

I think we shall to-morrow retrace our steps to Pamplona, and give
over this pursuit. Lord Wellington, I think, sees it will not do.
We had a very long march the day before yesterday to Taffalla. The
road was, however, very good on the Canuria Real from Pamplona to
Tudela. Thinking that the French were making to Tudela, we proceeded
that way by this forced march. The country was very fine. About two
leagues from Pamplona was a handsome, plain, elegant aqueduct, of one
hundred arches, light and simple. We passed several villages, and,
near Taffalla, a quantity of well-managed orchards and garden-ground;
the consequence was, fruit and vegetables cheap and good, plenty of
cherries about 1_d._ a-pound, pears and plums, &c.; onions, beans,
peas, lettuce, pork, cheap; in short, a most plentiful Spanish market.

Taffalla is a good town, and the people civil and hospitable. They
had never seen us before, and gave us a welcome. I should have liked
another day there, for both my men and animals were knocked up, and
wanted it. The next day, however, we proceeded by a mountain-road over
a little sierra to this place (Casseda), changing our direction of
march, though the object was the same. Last night, I believe, it was
found that the French had much the start of us, and had crossed the
Ebro. In short, I presume from this, and from the very harassed and bad
state of the men to-day, we halted here; and I suspect to-morrow we
shall return.

Lord Wellington himself seemed knocked up yesterday; he ate little or
nothing, looking anxious, and slept nearly all the time of sitting
after dinner. I think he was not quite well, and anxious, no doubt.
Lord March was sent off to General Graham, at Tolosa; he returned
yesterday, and reports that General Graham had entered Tolosa,
which might have been well defended. He blew open the gates with
a nine-pounder, and so got in. General Foy, however, had taken a
position beyond, with eighteen thousand men, in such a strong country,
that Graham dared not attack him, and Lord March thought the loss would
be great if we did, unless we could turn it by a circuitous march. He
said the country was in that direction full of positions; in short
there is much yet to do.

Tarragona is, I believe, not taken at last. General Murray re-embarked
when Suchet’s army came that way. This, as a plan to free Valencia,
has, I believe, answered, and Elio, &c., have advanced. Longa’s people
have behaved well in another affair since the battle. The day after
to-morrow I expect to be either in sight of Pamplona again, or to be on
the way towards the Tolosa road; but time will show.

From this place, which is a large village on a hill, we have a full
view of a long range of the Pyrenees, which I have been spying at with
a good glass. They are fine mountains, but much less so, I think, than
the Alps. I see much snow on them, but no glaciers. The shapes are more
picturesque, but less astonishing and sublime. We are, however, far
off, and perhaps I do not do justice to these hoary gentlemen. There is
no snow summit so far as I can see, only great lodgments of snow.

_Huarte, July 2nd, in front of Pamplona._—As expected, we yesterday set
out on our way back here, a short cut over the sierra, to Monreal—the
day before yesterday sending the guns, &c., round by Taffalla, and
from Monreal here yesterday. This is a wild road, and yet not very
picturesque. About this place we have a fine plain, in which Pamplona
stands. The town is invested, but I believe that is all, and no steps
have yet been taken for the siege; the place is strong, and we have as
yet no guns for the purpose. We yesterday found the suburbs burning,
the work of the French, and more women sent away from the town. The
town looks handsome, but somehow has disappointed me. A French party
also still holds out at Pancorvo; the worst of all, however, is the
bad news from General Murray. It is said that he went off in such a
hurry when he heard of Suchet’s approach, that, without waiting to
know his exact danger, or where Suchet was, he embarked, leaving all
his battering artillery, or as some say twenty pieces, with all the
ammunition, &c., belonging to them, in a perfect state for the use
of the French; and this when, in fact, he had four days to remove
it in, and when the Admiral offered to undertake to bring it off. I
am glad, however, to hear that Lord William Bentinck has arrived to
take the command. The odds are, however, that the Spaniards will get
a beating under Elio before our men join them again; it is now said
that Suchet left five thousand men at Valencia also. In short, in this
game of chess we are playing, there is almost always some bad move to
counteract Lord Wellington’s good ones.

It is now said that we are not to wait here for the siege, but to move
towards Bayonne, and the King’s army, which is said to have taken up
a position on the frontiers. We expect to move towards Roncesvalles
to-morrow; but this is not settled. In my opinion we should have done
this immediately, without going after Clausel; but no doubt Lord
Wellington knew best what to do. We have to-day cold rainy weather
again, bad for men in camp. This place, Huarte, is rather a large
village with tolerable market. Villa Alba, half a mile off, where
some troops are posted, seems better still. We are about two miles
from Pamplona, across a little stream, now from the rains become a
respectable river. The great distress at present is for horseshoes, and
to-morrow I expect a mountain march.

It is now stated that we took fourteen hundred prisoners altogether in
this late battle, not wounded, eleven hundred wounded, and about seven
hundred and fifty were found dead; the prisoners reckon their own loss
at eleven thousand. However, as they say, thousands ran away over the
mountain, and left the army altogether, this must be exaggeration. If
the armistice produces a Russian and Prussian peace, and we are left
here to Bonaparte’s sole attention and undivided care, I fear we may
again see the neighbourhood of Portugal before six months are passed,
notwithstanding the late most glorious victory.

_Head-Quarters, Ostiz, July 3rd (Civil Department at Boutain)._—Here
we are now within five leagues and less of France, and on our way, at
least, towards Bayonne. General Hill is, I believe, to be to-day at
Estevan, and we have some men in France, at St. Jean Pied de Port.
General Foy’s (French) eighteen thousand have left their position
beyond Tolosa, having given the great convoy three days more time to
be off. This convoy had the pictures, immense service of plate of the
King, three hundred pieces of heavy artillery, &c.: I think we might
have caught it had we known how things were going on. They have now
retreated to France, and I believe Graham after them. All cars and
wheel carriages remain at Orcayen, near Pamplona; I guess, therefore,
we shall soon be back again, and perhaps proceed against Suchet, if he
joins Clausel at Saragossa, as his orders, from intercepted letters,
were supposed to be. Your proverb, however, _vedremo co’l tempo_,
applies here, as well as everywhere. Dr. M’Gregor is very much engaged,
and if this wet weather continues will, I think, be more so. I am so
cold now that I am writing with my coat buttoned up, and my hat on,
and we have constant showers. For about three hours the day before
yesterday it was excessively hot. So we go on! As yet we have seen
nothing very beautiful on this road, but it may mend. I am hungry,
tired, and worried, and must send this off to Ostiz: so adieu.

Lord Aylmer has now a brigade, and has joined it as Major-general.
General Pakenham is the Adjutant-general. Three thousand of our men
wounded at Vittoria.

_Head-Quarters, Lans, July 5th, 1813 (Civil Department, the Spaniards
and Artillery at Arriez)._—We were yesterday ordered to proceed to
Lans, but not very early, as the French were in the neighbourhood. It
rained all the way, and was very cold and uncomfortable, and what added
much to the unpleasantness of the journey, was the horrible road and
the loss of my horse’s shoes. The first league of this _camina real_
was a narrow lane of large loose stones, nearly the size of my head,
with all the interstices filled with good Brentford slop, half a foot
deep; baggage constantly stopped the way. About half way, however, I
bribed a Spanish farrier to put me on three Spanish shoes, until the
heads of the nails half an inch square, upon six of which heads in each
shoe the horses walk, as the shoe never touches a stone; these skaits
are, however, much better than nothing. Having stopped an hour in the
rain for this, I proceeded, and at Lans found an order to go on half
a league on the left. We are almost all here, or close by, except the
Adjutant-general’s and Quarter-Master-general’s departments, and except
Marshal Beresford. The latter was to have been in my house, but did not
like it, and found a place at Lans. The quarter being vacant, I popped
into a large rambling black place, with long tables and benches, like
your servants’ hall, great stables, &c., all under one roof.

The villages are nearly all alike in general shape and
accommodation;—scarcely any cottages but farm-houses, and I suppose the
great tables and benches they all contain have been in better times
used for the workmen to dine. This has been the character of all the
villages for the last ten or twelve miles, and they lie very thick,
four in sight here, and probably ten within a league. The hills around
are all covered with wood; the valley almost knee deep with grass for
hay, and abounding in corn; the walks further on towards the mountains
very pleasant; fine oaks and rocks, &c.; the climate very cold for
England in July, and wet; the verdure like that of Ireland; plenty of
sheep on the mountains, but little to be had here except milk. At Lans
there was pork at a penny a pound, and French brandy.

To-day we halt here, for the French are disposed to stand a little
further. Our cavalry moved last night to Almandos, two leagues on,—the
14th, and some Germans, and General Hill’s head-quarters, to Berrueta,
whence the French retired. The reports now are that General Hill sent
word last night that the French were strongly posted a little farther
on, and that the peasants said they were eight thousand; but though
he could not see so many, he did not much like the position. Lord
Wellington sent him word that he would be there by ten o’clock this
morning, and he is gone with most of the military staff. We have heard
firing very plainly, but know not where it is. This is famous ground
for sharp-shooting, as you cannot see in general a hundred yards before
you. General Byng, with some British and Spanish, is gone along the
Roncesvalles road, toward St. Jean Pied de Port, and Graham proceeds
by the great road. Some stores are ordered round to land at Deva; I
conclude we shall only secure the passes, and that we shall not enter
France. Ground is broken up before Pamplona, but I think only for
form sake; very few men at work. Only the six eighteen-pounders are
at hand. An artillery serjeant I hear deserted from Pamplona two days
since, and is supposed to have given important information. General
Wimpfen tells me that the French have some works at Elisondo, which is,
I suppose, the place General Hill is stopped by, and that they seem
disposed to make a little stand there. I wish Suchet would either come
up by Saragossa and fight near Pamplona, and thus save us that long
trip, or that he would be off at once, like the rest; the latter is,
however, I fear, more to be wished than expected. With Clausel, he will
have probably, including garrisons, about forty thousand men. If after
all a peace should be made, leaving out England and the Peninsula, we
must even now still be off, and I only hope it will be settled before
the autumn bad weather; another rainy retreat from this part will never
do. I think we may at least stand towards the Astrinos and Gallicia,
and not go back to Frenada, for Bonaparte, with all his energy and
activity, can scarcely be ready to follow us in force this autumn.

My old witch of a patrona came in just now, into the place where I am,
and moving the heavy bed, disappeared down a trap-door under it to
get up a little clean linen from her hiding-place, where she conceals
things from the French. She also produced a guerilla soldier’s shirt,
which he had left to be washed, and called for to-day. She was very
much frightened at us yesterday, as all here are, but is more sociable
to-day.

We have turned about three hundred mules and horses into the meadows
here, and have cut down two or three fields for the feeding at night,
instead of the green oats or barley, for that is scarce here. How would
you like all this in England? The peas and beans also are pretty well
pillaged by our soldiers, and frequently the cattle get in besides. I
do not pity the Spaniards for this; but as they are obstinate, they
will not pick and sell to us officers who ask them, consequently the
soldiers and our muleteers pick for themselves gratis. I do not think
the crops here are so forward as in England; we are, therefore, luckily
for the horses, just in the grass season. If we go back to the barren,
brown, southern plains, it will be rather a disagreeable change. We
shall then, however, probably, get corn for the horses, which now is
very scarce. For the present, adieu.

If the French do not move, probably we may halt here to-morrow again;
but I doubt we shall proceed. Twelve Portuguese field-pieces were
following us up this horrible road; the French got two guns by the same
road to Pamplona last year. For the last fortnight we have found the
people of Navarre very stupid, and their language unintelligible. They
do not understand good Castilian, but have a lingo of their own, very
barbarous; the little Spanish I have picked up is here, therefore, of
no use, and I am nearly reduced to the state of the deaf and dumb, to
have recourse to signs and acting.

_Head-Quarters, Irurita, July 7th._—From Lans and Arriez we proceeded
on the 6th to Berrueta, through Almandos, across a part of the
Pyrenees. The first league was through a fine oak wood, and very hilly;
the next there was more hill, and, if possible, worse roads, and in
particular a very long descent. The hills were, however, green and
wooded to the summits, rounded, and not wild or savage, in short it was
hilly scenery and not mountain—this is the Lower Pyrenees. From one
part on the Lans road, the sea, I am told, was visible. Some Portuguese
artillery followed us all the way, and have arrived safely.

We then reached Almandos, which contained a few very large houses
for head-quarters; there the artillery, engineers, and Spaniards of
head-quarters remained, and we descended a zigzag hill, and then
ascended to Berrueta. I there got a very bad quarter, but staid,
in order to be at the head-quarter village, to inquire into some
complaints of public money taken by a Commissary at Vittoria. On the
night of the 5th I was sent for at nine at night from Arriez to Lans by
Lord Wellington about this business. It is a most horrible road even
in the day time, and in my way back alone, I lost myself on a boggy
common, and did not arrive until nearly one o’clock, having for about
an hour and a half splattered about in a bed of wet clay, up to the
horse’s knees at times, and having some notion of wolves, &c. This made
me anxious to be at the head-quarters village, where I dined with Lord
Wellington, and examined the Commissary in General Pakenham’s presence.

Berrueta was a small French post against the Guerillas, and the ground
was strong; the church and about four houses, and a wall near were cut
with loop-holes for musketry, and a little round bastion built in front
with a double row of loop-holes commanding the roads, and a little
tiled roof for one sentry at the top. The house had a rough eagle in
black drawn upon it, and the inscription “Place Napoleon.” The little
street or alley within the enclosure was called Rue Impériale. In spite
of this the French, about three thousand strong, had the day before
been driven from this ground and position by about five hundred of
the second division, and had left us in possession, allowing General
Hill to go on to this place, Irurita, a good league further, where we
have now the head-quarters. General Hill has proceeded this morning to
try and drive the French from a position about two leagues and a half
further on near the French frontier at Maya, where they have made a
semblance at least, with about eight thousand men, as if they meant to
defend the pass there.

The road from Berrueta to Irurita was over one long hill of a league,
but good enough, and then brought us down to this place at one
extremity of the valley of Bastan. This valley is a very rich tract,
surrounded by cultivated hills, well built and peopled, and terminated
on the other extremity by the pass of Maya.

General Hill has moved on his head-quarters from hence to Elisondo,
full a half league further, near the centre of the valley; and if the
French give way, is to proceed further. Lord Wellington and all his
suite are gone on forwards to watch the event. This place contains
a number of large houses, but is in general dirty and bad in the
interior. Lord Wellington’s house, and that of Marshal Beresford, and
a few others about here, are in the French style, with glass windows
in folding doors, and French blinds, &c., and they are clean and
comfortable; at Elisondo, there is more of this, I hear. This valley
has a sort of nobility of its own, and most of the numerous good houses
belong to an inferior nobility. They almost all sport arms, and most
the chequers. I understand this valley is also famous for the number
of men of talent who have at different times issued from it. There is
also trade in the valley, and commercial connexions even with Cadiz.
These second-rate nobles have had the sense not quite to despise that
mode of getting money, and thereby all other comforts. The effects of
the war and of the times are, however, equally manifest here, but on a
higher scale than in the ruined cottage, or the farmer stripped of his
cattle and corn. Lord Wellington’s patron, whose house is now opposite
and very handsome, was a native of this place, and went as a merchant
to South America: he was engaged there in trade twenty-six years, and
then returned to enjoy himself, like our Scotch Indians, in his native
place. He, however, foolishly bought no land, and continues engaged
in trade by means of an agent at Cadiz, and another at Vera Cruz,
living here on the profits. One rich vessel we took from him before
the declaration of war; this shook him a little: since that his Vera
Cruz agent turned gambler and failed. We have taken another vessel of
his since, and he thus was reduced nearly to his moveables. To supply
French contributions, and to find the _à quoi vivre_ for himself and
two sons, he has sold all his plate, &c., and jewels. He has now only
some tolerable bedding in twelve bedrooms, and straw chairs and deal
tables. The little man, however, told all this to General O’Lalor in my
presence with much good humour, and did not seem very unhappy. He was
very anxious to please Lord Wellington in his quarter.

Here we see the miseries of the contest in another shape. The old mad
Marquis d’Almeida left this to-day to go on with General Hill, very
anxious to beat the French in their own territory, and give them back
their own again. He has attached himself to General Hill’s corps all
along.

I believe King Joseph’s gallantry in trying to seduce a young girl
at Salvatierra, the night of the battle of Vittoria, was mentioned
in a former letter by me. In this valley he performed a most noble
feat: after the dinner given him by his patron and the neighbours,
he permitted or ordered his servants to sweep off and carry away all
the utensils, table-cloths, spoons, &c. The Padré at Arriez, our last
place, told General Wimpfen that he had there carried off the sheets.
This is a noble exit; and all his suite were without a change of linen.

The papers taken at Vittoria make it appear that nearly a million of
property was taken after the battle—250,000_l._ in gold. Only about
one hundred and twenty thousand dollars have been paid into the chest.
Much was certainly plundered by the natives and soldiers: the latter
were offering nine dollars for a guinea, for the sake of carriage.
Lord Wellington, however, has his suspicions of pillage by the civil
departments; has heard various stories, also, of money taken on the
road back from Vittoria. I do not know what may come of this: I have
made out but little satisfactory as yet. One gentleman, however, whom
I examined yesterday intended to keep two thousand dollars. At the
same time, the understanding that this was all fair seems to be pretty
general.

Captain Brown was knocked off his horse by a sabre cut on the head and
taken prisoner, but as he had his sword left, he cut down his guard,
who was pricking him with his sword, and ran into our dragoons and
escaped, changing his own horse for a French one in the confusion.

Lieutenant-Colonel May had a musket-ball in his belly. It passed
through his double sash, his waistcoat, and pantaloons, and then, by
striking the button of his drawers, was so deadened as only to give him
a swelling the size of an egg, and he has been long with us again. I
dined with him at Arriez the day before yesterday.

In the skirmish on the 5th, at Berrueta, we had about twenty wounded.
The Spanish peasantry are a fine, stout, tall, well-made race of
mountaineers, and behaved that day with spirit. Several would act with
their firearms with our light troops, and brought in two prisoners; and
one set would go on with a picket of six of our cavalry, and when told
by Major Brotherton that they were acting foolishly, as he could not
protect or support them if the French cavalry turned on him, they said
they could run as fast as those French horses, and would not be caught
so. The rulers here have also been forward in offering supplies, a good
part of which, I believe, they were ordered to have collected by the
French, and by which collection we have profited.

More Portuguese troops and artillery are now passing this way. I
believe no English artillery has come this road. The Portuguese guns
are not so wide in the wheels, having been made for their own roads,
and are therefore more adapted to this.

_Irurita, Head-Quarters, July 9th._—Still here. The day before
yesterday, the 7th, the French showed fifteen thousand men in the Maya
pass, two leagues and a-half in front, a line of nearly two miles.
It took much time to climb the hills to turn this position. About
four, we got possession of a hill which had that effect; the French
saw their error, tried three times to recover it, drove back our men a
little, but it would not do; they just now will not stand against us. A
battalion of Caçadores behaved well, and drove them back once. A close
column of theirs was opposed on the hill by two columns of ours, the
39th; our fellows, when near, shouted and came down to the charge, and
the French were quickly off. It was dark, however, before the pass was
abandoned, and past eleven before Lord Wellington and his staff got
home to dinner, as he lost his way for some time in the fog, despising
guides, &c. Yesterday the French, in part, came back to a little
village near the pass, and stood some time against our light infantry;
but the third shot of our two guns which were brought to bear, sent
them scampering off. They little think that we have some eighteen
field-pieces in this valley.

Yesterday Lord Wellington came in early, and left the French in another
pass in the last Spanish village. They were, I hear, to be driven
out to-day unless they retired. They had yesterday, however, nearly
succeeded in surprising some of our men. They appeared in rear of
our advanced troops, through a pass on our right, which communicates
with the Roncesvalles pass to St. Jean Pied de Port, drove in a small
picket, and came, about fifty of them, down very nearly to a village
in which we had much baggage. The peasants said they had five hundred
men there: they however went back again, and one of our serjeants,
by himself, caught one of the stragglers when the others were gone.
Just then there was only a small body of cavalry between their party
and our baggage, and even between them and our head-quarters here.
This was soon looked to, and a Caçadore regiment ordered into the
neighbouring village. The peasants here continue to behave with great
spirit and activity, and want to enter France to take some revenge.
They had been told by the French that we were ten times worse in regard
to plundering, &c., than themselves, and so the French are told now.
The French respect their own people, and do not treat them like the
Spaniards. In Spain a French encampment was covered with all the doors,
window-shutters, beams, trees, &c., of the Spanish villages near; in
France, though in rain, they are now seen without any such shelter on
the bare ground.

The French peasants in these parts, I hear, are as fine men as the
Spaniards here, and formidable. If we enter France, we must not wander
and ride about as we do here, nor let our baggage cover leagues
in extent. It is said that they disposed of four of our soldiers,
Portuguese I believe, whom they caught stealing cherries. I do not
think head-quarters will enter France, here at least, but enter down
towards the sea: this is, however, only my speculation. General Byng
sent an invitation yesterday to dine with him in France. The Spanish
troops are in France in part also.

The day before yesterday Lord Wellington ordered young Fitzclarence to
go and bring up two Portuguese companies to attack. He went. It was
close by; but he was highly pleased with the order. When he had given
his instructions, he saw a cherry-tree, and went up to break a bough
off, and eat the cherries. When Lord Wellington lost his way the other
night in the fog (returning to head-quarters), Fitzclarence told Lord
Wellington he was sure the road was so-and-so, as they had passed the
place where he found the two Portuguese companies. “How do you know
that?” quoth Lord Wellington. “By that cherry-tree, which I was up in
just afterwards,” was the answer. It amused Lord Wellington much; and
yesterday he called to him, with a very grave face, and desired him to
go and get some of the cherries, as if it were an important order. I
believe we only lost about seventy men killed and wounded, Portuguese
and all included, on the 7th.

I misinformed you some time since about General Jeron, the Commander of
the Gallician army. I understand he was not named at the suggestion of
Wellington; there are two opinions about him.

We have had stories against several of the civil departments in regard
to the plunder. One or two I have saved from suspicion by an immediate
inquiry and explanation, which I stated to Lord Wellington directly.
It is always best to know the whole openly at once, as ten suffer
in reputation from reports for one really guilty. One Commissary, I
believe, will have leave to resign.

Yesterday the chimney of the house of Lord Wellington’s patron was on
fire, from the dressing of Lord Wellington’s dinner. I was much afraid
that it would spread and complete the poor man’s ruin, by destroying
nearly all he had left. It was with difficulty at last put out, when
the fire-bell had collected all the town buckets full of water, and
a wet blanket had been pushed down the chimney, which, being half
wood, made the event very uncertain. I was really glad when it was put
out. Lord Wellington was out in the rain with his hat off, and a silk
handkerchief over his head, giving directions, as well as your humble
servant.

P.S.—_Head-Quarters, Zobieta, July 10th._—We arrived here this morning,
in the direction I expected, about four leagues from Irurita, on the
road to St. Sebastian, through a very pretty wooded valley all the way,
the road good, and by the river side, with villages every two miles.
We passed St. Estevan, the largest place, and perhaps the only one
you will find in any map, except Lopez’ provincial ones. Some of the
other villages were large, containing some thirty or forty good large
farm-houses, and some mansions. The light division was dispersed on
the road, and in one village I found George Belson and his artillery. I
do not, however, expect to hear any more of him for some time, as he is
not likely to follow us any farther, from what I am told of the road.

To-morrow head-quarters move eight or nine leagues of mountain track
road through Gaygueta to Ernani, in parts it is said scarcely passable
for a mule; so at least Colonel Ponsonby reports, who came last night
from Ernani. In consequence of this account, civil departments and
baggage are, if they choose, to stop at Gaygueta, which is half way. At
Ernani we are on the high road to Bayonne from Vittoria. Something is
now, I believe, going on at St. Sebastian. I understand a convent near
it was to be attempted to-day or to-morrow, preparatory to the grand
attempt. The heavy guns are, I believe, landed, and are, it is said, at
Deba for this siege. The garrison is two thousand strong, about sixteen
hundred of their own, and four hundred from another fort near, now
blown up. Santona is left with a strong garrison, and well supplied,
and would be a more difficult affair, from what I learn. Pancorvo was
taken by O’Donnell and the Spaniards: they took an outwork by storm,
and the men then surrendered.

Pamplona is more closely invested by means of some redoubts, and I
believe nothing more will be done there. These redoubts will be of
use, if this undertaking is left to the Spaniards. Though we have thus
to-day gone away from France, I conclude we, or rather some of the
army, are to be within France soon, as Lord Wellington has published
some long and good general orders on the subject of well treating the
people, &c., and not copying the French in Portugal and Spain, as we
are at war with Bonaparte, and not with the inhabitants, and that
_recevos_ are to be given for supplies, &c. Still I think we shall
only keep on the frontiers. Clausel, it would appear from the Spanish
authorities, has, since we left him, made off for France by the great
Tacca pass in Arragon, instead of joining Suchet, as I supposed, and
Suchet was at Tortosa when last heard of. Zobieta is but a miserable
place, and the people quite unintelligible. We shall soon be in Biscay
again.

_Head-Quarters, Ernani, July 16th, 1813._—My last was from Zobieta, a
little village in the lower Pyrenees. Our next day was a tremendous
journey to this place. I started at six o’clock in the morning, and we
immediately began to ascend near the bed of the stream, which ran by
Zobieta towards its source, in order to cross the mountain at the back
of the town, which divides that valley from the one in which the river
is situated, which runs down by this place to St. Sebastian.

In less than half a mile the road became choked with baggage. There was
only one path winding zigzag up the hill, and every mule whose load
got more on one side, or out of order, discomposed and stopped the
string. I had one mule lightly loaded, and my man, foolishly eager to
get forwards, led it up straight from one path to the cross one above,
instead of following the track. He got on safely, but this tempted
three of Colonel Dundas’s mules to do the same. Just as I passed below,
the hinder one fell backwards, with a heavy load, and the whole three
being tied together, he pulled both the others down upon him, and they
all lay in a heap at my feet kicking in the path. With some difficulty
I got an ass out of the way in time, and scrambled upon foot, leading
my horse to get away, that I might not be pushed down the side of the
hill; by this means I also gained ground, and by continuing on foot for
about two miles of the steepest ascent, I got up tolerably quick. Two
of General Murray’s mules rolled into the river below.

We then continued to the highest point of the mountain, whence we were
told Bayonne was visible. When we arrived the fog was so thick that
we could not see a yard, and we went on two leagues more in this mist
through the clouds, along the top and side of the hill, until we got
over Gaygueta. Then we had a very bad descent of about two miles to
that place. Near the town we passed General Longa and his suite going
to meet Lord Wellington, and we found the town full of his troops all
drawn up to receive the English General. They looked very well, fine
men, tolerably well dressed and equipped; about five thousand in the
whole. One grenadier company looked very fierce and military.

I here found every quarter occupied, and could hear of none; after
waiting an hour, I determined to proceed. After an ascent of about half
a league again, very steep, we went along the top of a hill for another
half league to Eranos; here I found another thousand of Longa’s troops,
and all the houses occupied. I therefore went to a shop where they sold
bread and wine, and we got a large loaf and some wine, which, with the
help of the horses, for whose sake I principally stopped to procure
this feed, we soon finished, and then proceeded refreshed.

Whilst I was thus employed Lord Wellington and his staff passed. I was
sorry to hear Longa had missed him, and that he was much mortified
at this, especially as his men scarcely knew Lord Wellington and his
party, and he had almost passed before they irregularly presented
arms to him. The one thousand men at Eranos were more fortunate, for
at a hazard I told them, when they inquired, that he would pass in
about twenty minutes, and he actually passed within the half hour. I
followed in Lord Wellington’s train to this place, Ernani, over a road
still worse than the last, a mere water-channel, with irregular broken
steps and slippery clay; most of our horses got more or less on their
haunches. The road ran up and down on the side of a thick wooded hill
on the banks of the river, near which we saw two or three works for
iron, in which this country abounds.

We arrived safely, about four o’clock; very little baggage got in that
night. All mine came in by seven o’clock, except one mule load and
man, who stuck, knocked up, at a house two miles back. I bought some
eggs and bacon and went to bed. About eight, next day, my stragglers
arrived, the mules strained in the shoulder and scarcely able to move.
Dr. M’Gregor had two mules killed down the mountain, and many have
suffered as well as myself.

The next morning after my arrival at Ernani, I walked off to see what
was going on at St. Sebastian. Not knowing how long we might be here,
my horses being tired, and having no shoes, I made this survey on
foot. The road is a wide _camina real_, a rough sort of pavement, but
a good road. About half a league distant I saw the fort or citadel of
St. Sebastian, and the smoke of the guns, the noise of which I had
heard before. I proceeded on by our heavy guns, which were near on the
road side, passed about four thousand Spanish troops of the Gallician
army drawn up to receive Lord Wellington, and then our reserve park
of artillery, with some small works around. Here I began to hear the
distant whistle of the balls, which occasionally got near the road.
At about a league from Ernani, just at the brow of the descent to St.
Sebastian, and about half a mile from the latter, a barrier of tubs
of earth was placed across the road and sentries posted, our advanced
sentry being at a turn of the road a hundred yards forwards. I went
to the left to take a sketch, and soon heard a musket-ball whistle by
me, which I took at first for a rocket behind me. I thought this an
accident, but soon came a second, and a third. I then concluded that
I was the object, and leaving my sketch rather in a hasty unfinished
state, I returned behind the barrels as the last shot came into a bush
close to me.

Our trenches were open about fifty yards to the right, against a
convent on the side of the hill, which was full of French, and from
which almost all the musket-shots proceeded. I determined just to peep
into them before I went off, and having been cautioned how to proceed,
I looked in: but having had one more shot whistle close to me, and
passed a bloody hole where a shell had just fallen, which had carried
away a man’s arm, I walked home, to dine at Lord Wellington’s at three
o’clock. At dinner I met Castanos, Jeron, Alava, Mendizabel, and a
number of inferior officers, amongst them the Major who had been left
as a Captain to defend Villa Alba de Tormes, when we retreated last
year, and who held out the time he was ordered to remain, and brought
off two hundred out of three hundred of his men to Frenada. For this
he was made a Major, I believe, at Lord Wellington’s request. General
Alava also introduced an officer who came to present to Lord Wellington
King Joseph’s sword—his dress sword set in steel and diamonds, and very
handsome. Where taken from, or whence obtained, I did not learn. Lord
Wellington just looked at it as he took his seat at dinner, and telling
his man to put it by safely somewhere, fell to at the soup and said no
more.

On the following day the alarm was spread that we were all to go back
to the mountains the next day by the same road. At last, however,
orders came out that Lord Wellington was going, and that only his
immediate staff, and those who could be very useful, were to attend
him. Even General Murray, the Quarter-Master-general, the life and
soul of the army next to Lord Wellington, staid here, not being quite
well. He appears to me decidedly the second man; and it is thought that
without him, and perhaps Kennedy, the Commissary-in-Chief, we could
never have done what we have; even Lord Wellington would be, in some
degree, fettered and disabled by a bad Quarter-Master-general and a bad
Commissary-general.

Not to lose a day, Lord Wellington, the first day he was here, rode
all about St. Sebastian to examine it in all directions, &c., and was
provoked at the Spaniards parading for him, when his object was to
be unobserved. The second day he went to Irun, on the frontiers, on
the Bidassoa, to see how things were going on there. The day before
yesterday, having waited till eight o’clock (morning), just to receive
the “_Gazette_,” with his battle despatches and his appointment of
Field Marshal, away he went, nine leagues over the mountains, for St.
Estevan. He is going to see more of the mountain passes that way, and
says that he shall be back the fourth day, if possible, though many
think it impossible.

We have heard of Lord Wellington eating some trout at Gaygueta at
twelve, and arriving at St. Estevan at five, the day he left this.
All baggage nearly is left here. The day he went I was occupied all
day, by his desire, in examining some gentlemen on a report which had
got about concerning some of the captured money, which report Lord
Wellington had been caught by, and had suspicions. I hope I have sent
a very satisfactory explanation. To me it is so, at least. I sent it
off by express the same night to General Pakenham, who is with Lord
Wellington on his tour. One idle day, since I have been here, I went
to see Passages, about five miles distant, but an infamous road. There
are two towns of that name, the Spanish and French, as they are called;
one on each side of a narrow deep stream, or inlet from the sea, which
forms rather a picturesque basin within. I should have thought more of
it had I not seen Exmouth, Dartmouth, and some other western English
scenery of the same land first, which I think superior. The towns
were built with the same kind of narrow alleys, only fit for a horse
to pass through; these standing up the side of the hills. They were,
however, a better description of houses, and four stories high, with
balconies. The scene was more enlivened than usual by our transports,
by the landing of biscuit, rum, shot, ammunition, the twenty-four
pounders from Sir George Collier’s ship, and other great guns, with
their apparatus, for the siege; two Portuguese regiments at work, and
about three hundred mules, besides the oxen, &c., for the guns: gabions
and fascines were making in every direction by the Portuguese. The road
was so narrow and slippery in one place, that my horse, as I led him,
nearly slipped into the sea.

Yesterday, having a few hours again to spare, I went round to look at
St. Sebastian by the right, where I witnessed a sharp conflict, and
saw more than I had done before, with much less risk. I was out of the
way of the musketry, and only had one cannon-shot, which went over the
intended mark from the town, and, whistling along, dashed into the
water just under me. It was nearly spent, as I heard it, I think, long
enough to have got out of the way had it come up higher. If it clears
up to-day, I mean to go to the lighthouse, on the left of the town, or
the cliff, where it is said the view is very fine, and where, with a
glass, you see much and in safety.

There was almost as much firing yesterday as in a battle, cannon-shot
and musketry, particularly on the French part, and many shells; and we
made a feint to obtain the convent with only a few men, yet I hear that
only four were killed on our side, and about ten wounded.

The convent is almost in ruins, but we have in vain tried to burn it
with hot shot, and the French continue to pepper from it. A shell of
ours fell amongst their men in a redoubt in rear of the convent, and
they ran. I believe this led to our attempt, but it was soon found that
they were strong just behind, and several men still in the convent; and
three new parties were pushed along the causeway from the town—about
two hundred and fifty men—to strengthen the convent party. Ours,
therefore, were off very quickly, not being supported. One shell of
ours fell just into one of the three new parties, and killed one man
and dispersed the rest. Several wounded French were seen carried back
over the causeway and bridge. The number of cannon in the town is very
considerable; and though our works proceed fast, the town is considered
formidable.

I have heard more stories of King Joseph from the Paymaster of his
head-quarters, Mr. Frayre, who was taken. He said that the King was in
the town until our dragoons were close upon it. He then rode quietly
along, through the train of carriages and baggage, with Jourdan and
his guard in a walk, in order not to give any alarm, until he was out
of the bustle. He then changed his coat for a nankeen jacket, and
away they all went, galloping off for Salvatierra, on the road to
Pamplona. In the first village, a mile or two from Vittoria, there are
two turnings, and he was heard to call out, “_Par où faut-il aller?_”
“_Tout droit, tout droit_,” said Jourdan, and away they went again as
hard as they could go. Of the twenty-seven Generals who met in the
house at Salvatierra, a great proportion were slightly wounded, and
their greetings at seeing each other alive were very loud and sincere.
Joseph’s servant had a sort of saddle-bag with him for the King, and
that was all their baggage.

I hear that there are two millions of dollars on the road. Just now we
are without anything in our military chest to pay for our daily food
and expenses, which are very great. Corn for our horses, we got none.
Bread is not dear here, or scarce, as yet. Bullocks, I hear, we have
bought enough for nearly forty days for the army, in this part of the
country, mostly from the mountains. Nine hundred head have been bought
within these ten days.

_Head-Quarters, Lezaca, July 18th, 1813._—On the 16th I went up to
the lighthouse in the evening. I met Baron Constans coming down.
The French did him the honour of a cannon-shot, a proof they were
touchy. I proceeded within half musket-shot, but at a trot, and they
left me quiet. I stayed an hour on the hill; view beautiful, evening
clear, scene very interesting. I saw all the French sentries, troops,
inhabitants, &c., in the town, and on the island near, in the convent,
redoubt, &c. I could see our advanced sentinels and pickets, and those
of the French near the convent, within sixty yards of each other in
some places, behind ruins, &c. I could also see a long extent of French
coast, and many other objects. The ruined convent, and the French
sticking to it in several parts and firing, was, however, the most
curious and novel.

I came down at seven and rode home quietly by nine in the dark; when,
lo! I found an order for head-quarters, baggage, &c., to join Lord
Wellington at this place on the mountains, on the frontiers, six
leagues of bad road distant.

I was off, however, by eight yesterday morning, baggage and all. The
first two leagues were by the high French road, the _camina real_,
through Astigarraja and Oyarzun. At the end of the last town we turned
from the great road, which is a broad, well-laid road, and has been
very good, though now broken up a little, and very rough. We then went
along a paved mountain road, up a valley for half a league, and then
began climbing a mountain path over two long hills until we got into
this valley, and to this place. There is a great sameness in the
scenery—round hills, wooded in part below and a stream—nothing very
fine. About a league from hence we saw the camp of the 95th regiment,
on a hill above Vera, which is lower down in this valley, and near the
immediate frontier division. We also saw the seventh division camp near
and the French cantonment bivouac on the opposite hill; for a short
time they kept half Bera or Vera; now we have the whole.

We halt here at Lezaca to-day; the Commissariat baggage is ordered a
league and a half in the rear in case of an attack. I believe when
reinforcements arrive we shall make one. I was sorry to leave St.
Sebastian, for an attack was to be made that morning. We heard and
saw a violent firing throughout all our route, and I last night heard
that the convent had been taken by our men, and some ruins below, &c.,
and that the new battery had been opened. The French stood firm when
the Portuguese advanced, who behaved very well, but when the English
regiment which had been ordered up to assist was seen advancing, the
sight of the red coats made the French soldiers run, and the French
officers were seen in vain beating and pelting them to make them stand.
The causeway (as I had seen) below was cut by the French in two places.
This stopped our men for a time, and the French attempted to return,
but did not succeed; thus matters stood last night. Some of the first
division returned from Oyarzun yesterday to help, and we met them on
the road. The French surprised about one hundred of the Spaniards in
this place a few days since. The noble inhabitants of Saragossa have
contrived to open one of their gates, when the French were in the town,
and to let in Mina and his men. The Spaniards now have the town. I
believe the French still stick to a fortified part, and have destroyed
the bridge; this comes from the English Captain who is with Mina, and
employed in procuring intelligence. A flag of truce was sent in to
the French, carried by Colonel Gordon, this morning—“_Pourquoi?_” “_Je
ne’en sais rien._” Lezaca is rather a good village, and has a running
stream in it, which might be more used. It was plundered by the French,
and now contains nothing, no bread even, only some straw; and we have
now been seven days without corn for the poor horses; even grass is
here very scarce: we want the course of the Bidassoa to keep up our
communications with Irun, &c. The French now interrupt this—the river
runs in part through France.

Soult, the great Soult, the Marshal, is said to have arrived, and taken
the command against the allies: so say the country people, &c. To-day
it is very hot. A report is circulated that the French have attacked
us. So adieu for the present.

_July 19th, Lezaca._—No fresh news. I am going to ride up a hill, a
league off, to the seventh division camp, from whence Bayonne and much
of France is visible.


FOOTNOTES:

[4] Mr. Larpent’s opinion on the moral deficiency of the English
soldier has astonished many; but it should be remembered that he was a
non-combatant, and his professional practice as Judge-Advocate-general
brought him more in contact with the _delinquents_ than with the real
steady soldiers of the army. Let any reader who inclines to think
that the French can outmarch the more robust English, remember the
advance of the light division to Talavera under General R. Craufurd,
so justly eulogized in Napier’s History. An English soldier becomes
sulky, careless, and insubordinate in a _retreat_; but let a battle be
announced, and spirit and discipline reappear together. Witness the
conduct of Sir John Moore’s army, when he offered battle at Lugo, and
afterwards when he was attacked at Corunna.—ED.




CHAPTER X.

 Movements of the Army—Wellington on the Portuguese—His Personal
 Habits—St. Sebastian—The Siege—Miseries of War—Wounded Officers—The
 Prince of Orange—Vestiges of the Retreat—English Papers—False Accounts
 of the Campaign—Incidents of the War.


  Head-quarters, Lezaca,
  July 21, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

Here we are still, deluged with rain almost incessantly, accompanied at
times with violent storms of wind, hail, and thunder. This is terrible
for the troops in camp, and for every one more or less, and indeed for
everything except the Indian corn, which thrives here most luxuriantly
in consequence of this perpetual wet. I took a ride (the 19th) up to
the hill above the seventh division as I intended; it was a league
and a half, the latter part very steep. The French were in sight all
along the hills on the other side of Bera, all around one ridge, but
quite quiet. When at the summit I saw the sea-coast around Bayonne
(though not the town itself), and the low country in France, for
probably thirty miles inland, with the enclosed fields and villages.
It was a very fine prospect; I was only sorry to see that the French
had apparently so much more productive a country immediately in their
rear than we had. They must now, however, be supplied at the expense of
old France. We are but ill off here for everything just now, until our
supplies come regularly to this coast.

Passages is to be the depôt and landing-place, I hear, for our
infantry, and Bilboa for cavalry. Major-general Lord Aylmer is to-day
setting off to take a command at Passages; he expects nearly four
thousand men there very soon. We still hear the battering guns of St.
Sebastian continually roaring at a distance; I fear we may lose many
men in this siege. Good luck, however, may do something for us, and
the French seem everywhere dispirited; sickness, at present, if this
weather lasts, will be our most destructive foe.

Suchet, I hear, left a garrison at Murviedro, when he crossed the Ebro.
They seem to have intended to give us some tough work until they were
ready to return; I hope here, at least, that will not be so easy. Both
sides are now strongly posted, and the assailant must have the worst of
it. Soult is said to have refused to take the command of the army here
unless the pay of the troops was more regular. Talking of this, Lord
Wellington paid the highest compliment to Bonaparte, by saying, that if
he came himself, he should, as he always did, reckon his presence equal
to a reinforcement of forty thousand men, for that it would give a turn
to everything.

Lord Wellington, talking of the Portuguese, said that it was
extraordinary just now, to observe their conduct; that no troops could
behave better; that they never had now a notion of turning; and that
nothing could equal their forwardness now, and willing, ready tempers.
I am sorry to say that some of our foreign corps do not go on as well.
Of the Brunswick corps, ten went off from picquet two nights since to
the French, and fourteen from the camp, and others have gone off also;
and some have been surprised, so that I believe they are ordered to be
sent more to the rear, and cannot be trusted. I do not wonder at it, as
Government have taken men from the French prisons, who were only taken
last year, and who, no doubt, only enlisted on purpose to desert the
first opportunity.

_Lezaca, July 22nd._—To-day Lord Wellington celebrates the battle of
Salamanca by a great dinner. His victories and successes will soon ruin
him in wine and eating, and if he goes on as he has, he had better keep
open house at once every day, and his calendar of feasts will be as
full as the Romish one with red letter days. This morning the guns have
been thundering salvoes.

I think the breach at St. Sebastian must be ready soon. I only hope
that we shall not lose many of our fine fellows. Pamplona is invested
more closely—that is all that is attempted. Two sallies have been
repulsed; there are about fifteen thousand Spaniards there. I was sorry
to hear that bread was, very lately, in the town at the same price as
when we were first there, and that a low Spanish price; this does not
look much like starving the garrison out. For a regular siege we have
no means, and the place is formidable from the very circumstance that
makes it look otherwise—the citadel is all flat, there is nothing to
fire at, and no ground to approach it by. The scenery all about this
lower Pyrenees and coast, is like the north coast of Devonshire and
Somersetshire, a little enlarged as you get inland, and so increasing
in size, but the same character remaining for a considerable extent,
only that the valleys become deeper, and the hills higher. There is
nothing, however, so striking here as the passage of the Ebro, and the
valley near where we crossed it.

Major D—— has still got his prize here taken on the field of battle,
namely, a Spanish girl, a pony, the wardrobe, monkey, &c., the property
of one of King Joseph’s aides-de-camp. I am still kept at work. We
yesterday tried two men for plundering Lord Aylmer’s tent in the night
whilst he slept.

Out of 500,000_l._ sterling, the supposed plunder at Vittoria, only
about 30,000_l._ has found its way to the treasury, or military chest.
Lord Wellington seems to think the best of Mina, Longa, and the
Empecinado; amongst the Spaniards there is much to be done yet, to
make them like our vagabonds or the Portuguese, in regard to fighting;
for plundering and the “_savoir vivre_” here without money or rations,
they beat us both already; we cannot improve them.

Castanos, the other day at dinner, asked Lord Wellington how Madame
Gazan had been treated, as she was accustomed to have a considerable
number of lovers? Lord Wellington looked rather drolly at me, and said,
she had been treated, he believed, very properly and respectfully.
Castanos said, “_Elle en serait bien fachée_.”

Last week some of the light division had rations of wheat in the
grain instead of bread. One fellow, who was sulky, said, he supposed
he should have “long forage” next, that is, straw. Another more good
humouredly said, he was as strong as a horse now since yesterday?
How so? “Why, they have given me a good feed of corn you see, so how
could it be otherwise.” We had one very ingenious device by two of our
fellows last week; they were employed to take care of two thousand
dollars prize, for the benefit of the regiment, and to carry it on a
mule or ass given to them for that purpose. General Cole passed this
donkey on a bridge, and being irritated from the obstruction caused by
the baggage, &c., swore he would upset the whole over the bridge if
they were not off. When he had passed, one said, “That will just do,
let’s divide the money, and say the General upset it in the river.”
This was done, and the report made; something, however, was overheard,
and this led to an inquiry, when one of them admitted that this was the
case, and that a serjeant shared and proposed the plan. I said that
they could only be flogged for this. Lord Wellington therefore said
they might as well be tried in their regiment, for three hundred lashes
was as good as a thousand, and that to publish these things was only to
put similar ideas into other people’s heads.

_Lezaca, Head-Quarters, July 23rd._—Lord Wellington and all his party
went off at eight this morning for St. Sebastian to see how things are
going on. He intends returning to dinner, a late one, though they all
have fresh horses on the road. It is feared that his hints have not
been attended to, and that the breach has been made too soon before
all other things were ready, so that the place of danger is discovered
to the enemy in time, perhaps, to enable the French, who are ever
quick and ready on these occasions, to let in some sea, and make a wet
ditch behind, or to throw up new works, &c. The breach may thus, as
at Badajoz, become the worst place of the whole to attack. It is to
be hoped that this is only a false alarm; but things do not appear to
go on well, unless Lord Wellington or General Murray are on the spot.
Lord Wellington is not so easily roused from his bed as he used to be.
This is the only change in him; and it is said that he has been in
part encouraged to this by having such confidence in General Murray. I
understand he was always naturally fond of his pillow. He had rather
ride like an express for ten or fifteen leagues, than be early and take
time to his work. Upon the whole this may fatigue him less, as being a
less time on horseback.

_Head-Quarters, Lezaca, July 25th, 1813._—We have now been some time
stationary in these mountains, and I am at work again, and have little
time, and less to write about. We have been in hourly and nervous
expectation of news of the storming of St. Sebastian. It was first to
have taken place the day before yesterday, but we were not quite ready;
then at five yesterday morning; but either from our shells firing a
house near the breach, and the French encouraging the flames to spread,
or from their originally setting fire to that part of the town, there
was such a considerable fire all around the breach, that it was thought
too hot to attempt the storming. It was then, by Lord Wellington’s
order, I believe, fixed for this morning, and he has been as usual very
anxious about the event.

He was very fidgety yesterday, when I went to him about two poor
fellows who are to be hung for robbing Lord Aylmer’s tent; and to-day
he came out to the churchyard, where we were listening, about eight
o’clock, to judge from the noise of the guns whether our batteries had
ceased, and what the firing was. He has been once over himself, but
appeared to wish to leave it to Graham, and not directly to interfere.
At eleven this morning, however, Colonel Burgh came over with an
account of our attempt having failed; that our party (consisting of
English, too, and I believe of the 9th and 38th) went up to the breach,
then turned, and ran away. This will terribly discourage our men who
have to go next, and encourage the enemy. Lord Wellington has ordered
his horse, and is going over immediately.

Nothing can be done, however, before the evening or to-morrow morning,
as the attack must take place within two hours before or after low
water, in order to pass the sands for the breach. I am told the latter
is wide and easy, and we cannot tell what possessed our men on this
occasion. The object, St. Sebastian, is most important for the army;
first, to enable us to keep our ground here, as an _appui_ to the left
flank, and secondly, as a safe place for stores, sick and wounded,
where, in case of retreat, they may be all left to be brought off at
leisure by sea, and also as a refuge for Guerillas, &c. A few things
are now beginning to be brought to us in these wild inhospitable
regions, but still they are sent from Lisbon by land, with the six
weeks’ carriage on a mule to pay for. If some one would speculate to
Passages direct, it would fully answer, for Irish butter is 4_s._ 6_d._
a pound; sugar, 4_s._; ham, 3_s._; tea, 20_s._, the same as that sold
at Lisbon for 8_s._: and so on.

To-day I am going about three miles up the Bidassoa river to a posada,
in which the artillery of Colonel Ross’s troops are quartered, to dine
with them. Part of the way to their present quarters from St. Estevan
they had to cut their road with spades and pickaxes for the guns; but
there they now are safe.

I am sorry to say several of our men (English) desert as well as the
foreigners. I have just heard that the cause of their failure at
St. Sebastian this morning was partly the same as that of Badajoz
formerly—a deep ditch behind the breach, and nothing to fill it up
with, if indeed that were possible; but it is said to have been very
deep. Our men looked, came back, got for shelter under the wall, and
were then ordered back, and they ran a little. This is a much better
account of the business. The attack was also too soon, so that the
tide prevented one attack from being attempted, and it is feared that
our artillery even fired from that cause on the attackers. The French
certainly understand sieges better, I think, than we do.

_Head-Quarters, Berrio Planca, in front of Pamplona, half a league,
July 31st, 1813._—To my great surprise, here I am again, and now tell
you how and why.

_Head-Quarters, again at Lezaca, near Bera, in the Mountains, August
3rd, 1813._—I had just taken up this paper, and headed it as above, to
begin my history, when a turn of good fortune, arising from the courage
of our army from the superior manœuvres of our General, have in eight
days brought head-quarters back to our old place, whence the first
sheet of this letter was dated. I have been too much occupied in this
interval almost to sit down, much more to write; but I will endeavour
to detail the important events I have witnessed in them in the best
order my recollection will permit.

On the 25th July I went over to dine with the artillery. About seven
I mounted to return home, Colonel Ross, Captains Jenkinson and Belson
riding with me. On our way we met a messenger. I asked him to whom he
was going? He said to Colonel Ross. The Colonel was thereupon called
back. It turned out to be an order to march that night, and rather
to the rear. There had been a distant firing all day, on the right
wing near Maya. Lord Wellington was over at St. Sebastian. Belson was
sent to General Alten with orders by Colonel Ross. Jenkinson galloped
back to order the troops to get ready. Colonel Ross begged me to tell
General Murray he would endeavour to reach Sambillo that night; and
giving a receipt for the letter, was off. On my return I found Lord
Wellington still absent, and reports flying about, but no orders. I
soon found, however, that matters were not going on well, and ordered
everything to be ready for the march next morning. Lord Wellington
returned to dinner at eight, and found the following account of matters
on our right just arrived to greet him on his return from the failure
of St. Sebastian.

The French had collected a force both at the pass of Roncesvalles
against General Cole, and at the pass of Maya against General Hill. In
the morning of the 25th they pushed a strong reconnoissance against
General Stewart, commanding Hills advance brigade near Maya, made a
show, but gave way again. This report we had heard, and thought all
was over. About three, however, the French advanced against Cole and
Hill. About twenty-two thousand against Cole’s force, about sixteen
thousand against General Stewart’s brigade; the force of the latter are
scattered on the hills round the pass. The French came up in one close
body, and gradually ascended the hill. Our people fired on them the
whole time, and the destruction was very considerable. Still, however,
they gained ground. Twice were they charged by a single regiment of
ours, and the head of the column gave a little, but the press of
numbers urged them on, and as our force was only about three thousand
men, and that acting only by small bodies of regiments or companies,
the French drove all before them after a most gallant but fatal
resistance, before a sufficient reinforcement could be brought up. Four
Portuguese guns were abandoned. Our loss in killed and wounded you
will see in the “_Gazette_.” It is said to be twelve hundred British,
almost all in three or four regiments—principally the 50th, 92nd,
74th, and 28th. In the 92nd, I am told, there was no officer except
the Quarter-Master in a state to march off the men at parade. Colonel
Belson (28th) had only four officers left besides himself on duty, as
he had been thinned at Vittoria. To add to this disaster, General Cole
thought he was not justified in opposing the superior force against
him, and gave way in the pass of Roncesvalles. This left an opening for
the enemy to get in the rear of General Hill in the valley of Bastan at
Elisondo. Of course, therefore, he was obliged to fall back also, and
the result was that Lord Wellington on his return found his right wing
forced, and his position completely turned. Retreat, and that a rapid
one, became necessary, in order to take a new position, and to fall
back on the divisions near Pamplona.

After I was in bed on the night of the 25th the order came to march, as
I expected. Lord Wellington was off early straight across to the second
division. The light divisions fell back from our front; the seventh
also toward St. Estevan towards the second; the artillery proceeded to
St. Estevan by Sambillo. Head-quarters were sent over the mountains by
Yanga and Aranor to a little village called Eligarraga, just as you
descend into the valley of St. Estevan, there to wait for orders.

We had a wild and tedious road of four leagues, up and down the
mountains like Blue Beard’s procession, in which we should now all be
adepts. A road ran round the bottom through Sambillo, but probably it
was not thought safe, and that it might interfere with the artillery,
as it was narrow the whole way, and nothing could pass.

About two o’clock on the 26th we reached Eligarraga, and there found
Major Canning sitting by the wayside to order on everything three long
leagues further through Estevan, and then after keeping the road along
the valley about a league beyond towards the pass into the Bastan
Valley, near Trinita and Elisondo, we were to turn at Oronoz through
a pass on the right, which brought us into the rear of the valley
of Bastan, and into the rear of General Hill’s division, to a place
called Almendoz, on the road to Pamplona from Elisondo, General Hill’s
head-quarters being half a league in our present rear as we retreated,
at our old head-quarters, Berrueta. In the meantime the seventh and
light divisions got down into the valley of St. Estevan that night.

At Almendoz we found the effects of the battle at Maya. The wounded
had just reached that place, and there those who had not been dressed,
had their wounds examined, and all were urged on to the rear over a
mountain pass to Lanz as fast as possible. The village of Almendoz
was very small; the wounded lying about in all directions, till cars
and mules could help them on. It was near seven o’clock, and we had
nothing to eat since seven in the morning; quarters very bad of course,
and the inhabitants all in the greatest distress, beginning to pack
up, to desert their houses, as the people in the valley of Bastan, at
Elisondo, &c., had done already, the French having got possession.
A retreat is a most distressing scene even at the best, and when
conducted with perfect order as this was.

About nine o’clock that night orders came to march at daylight for
Ulague, a place about half-way between Lanz and Ostiz. After a five
o’clock breakfast, away we went for the mountains again. The road was
choked with baggage, and artillery, and fugitives, amongst others,
fourteen or fifteen nuns in their dresses, who were reduced by fatigue
to beg some rum of us as we passed, which unfortunately we had not with
us. We got on by scrambling along the paths near the road, and arrived
about twelve. On the 27th we arrived at Lanz. We there found General
Murray and several officers, all looking very serious and gloomy, and
orders given for everything to be turned off that road to the right,
and not to go to Ulague, as Cole had been pressed. The firing was very
sharp, and the French were urging on to that road, besides which, by
taking to the right we got towards the _camino real_, from Pamplona to
Tolosa, and could have made for General Graham’s if necessary. We were
turned through Arayes (where I had been on the advance, and by the road
where I had lost myself before in the night), on through a rich valley
and several villages to Lissago, or Lisasso.

Here (the 27th) we were placed very snugly, only about two leagues and
a-half from the Tolosa road, about three from Pamplona, and in the
midst of the divisions. General Cole, with the fourth division, had
fallen back on Pamplona to some hills near Villa Alba, or Villalba:
there he joined the third division, General Picton’s, and some
Spaniards. General Hill fell back to Lanz. From Berrueta, the seventh
division got a short way over the mountains, from St. Estevan to near
Lisasso, our head-quarters, and thus got near the sixth. The light
division fell back more towards Goigueta, or Ernani, to communicate
with Graham and protect the Tolosa road, and thus we stood all night.

The scene at Lisasso was dreadful! All the wounded from Lanz had just
arrived there, in cars, on mules, crawling on crutches, and hobbling
along: all those with wounds in their hands and arms, &c., walking.
Finding that they had orders to stop there, all our quarters, except
Lord Wellington’s, and about four more houses, were given up, and we
all dispersed to the villages round. You may conceive the scene, both
on the road and in the village. I thought one of my horses had lost his
shoes on the road, and desired my servant to ascertain this. A soldier
walking along, apparently one of the best, said that I had not; that
he was still, as a farrier, able to see that, though he thought he
should be some months before he could put another shoe on, as he had
been shot through the back. I went with Colonel and Mrs. Scovell to
a little village half-way up the hill towards Pamplona; and Colonel
Scovell and I climbed up to the top of the hill to listen and look
about until nearly six o’clock, when we expected our baggage. The
curé of the village and three peasants went up with us. We could see
beyond Pamplona, and beyond the firing, but could not perceive the
place itself for the smoke. By five o’clock, however, we all agreed
that it slackened, and receded a little; we therefore descended, got a
beefsteak, and waited ready for orders.

About six that evening the wounded were ordered to move on towards
Irunzun, on the Vittoria and Tolosa roads; but we remained quiet.
About seven, a furious thunder-storm came on, and caught all our poor
wounded men on their march: they could not get on to Irunzun, but got
to Berrio Planca, near Pamplona. Two officers, one sick and one wounded
in a house half a mile from us, heard of this order, left their beds,
packed up, and were proceeding; but came first to us to inquire. We
told them that head-quarters were not to move. They then went back to
bed, keeping a guide in the house all night, to start in case of alarm.
At nine came an order to march to Orcayen, near Pamplona, the next
morning. Thus passed the 27th.

At five o’clock on the 28th I began to load to proceed to Orcayen,
when Mr. Hook, who takes quarters, came back and left word that we
were to go to Irunzun instead; but the sergeant, by mistake, told us
he would call again when he had made more inquiry. In consequence of
this Mrs. Scovell and I staid until past ten before we marched. Then,
finding every one gone, and the baggage of General Hill’s division
arrived at Lisasso, we started over the mountain. For the first league
we were quite right; but afterwards, in a wood, got too much to the
right, and entered a wrong valley: as it was all safe, however, to
blunder on that side, and the country was picturesque, we proceeded on
that road, and by this means got through to Oscoz, and came into the
high Pamplona road to Tolosa, about three-quarters of a league from
Irunzun towards Tolosa, instead of half a league on the Pamplona side
of Irunzun, which would have been the nearest; it was not a league
round, and very picturesque. We were, therefore, not sorry for the
mistake. At Irunzun, however, came a difficulty; it was quite crowded
with wounded; and of head-quarters we could hear nothing, nor of our
baggage.

Leaving my servant to bring on the baggage if it came, we proceeded
forwards towards Pamplona, near where we heard head-quarters
were—somewhere at least that way. At Berrio Planca, a place on the
_camino real_, we found all our baggage and the nominal head-quarters,
Every one, however, was absent, and the place full of wounded, the
effects of the preceding day. I got a room in the Prince of Orange’s
quarter, as he had sent for his bed away that night; but Henry had all
my keys. About eight I found Henry and went to bed.

The next morning, the 29th, I heard that we had the most severe work
on the 28th; that the French attacked our position on a hill six or
seven times, which I believe our troops had only occupied a few hours
before the French came up near Oricain or Orquin. These attacks were
very desperate: and I understand that such a fire for a short time was
scarcely ever known, for four French corps all bore upon one point,
and General Pakenham told me that he scarcely dared show any of his
men. These attacks were, however, all unsuccessful, and we kept our
ground. The French were generally driven down with the bayonet, having
been suffered to come close, and then received with a volley, a cheer,
and a charge. I hear that some of our officers were once very much
alarmed for the result. The French remained close and steady, and one
regiment (I believe the 40th) went at them rather loose and straggling.
However, at the cheer at the last moment the French broke and ran.
The Portuguese behaved in general most inimitably, the 4th, 10th, and
12th regiments in particular. The 10th did, indeed, once give way, but
rallied; and the 4th charged twice, I think, on the 27th June, in good
English style.

Our loss was very severe; that of the French, of course, much more
so; but as their cavalry carry off the wounded to the rear, and they
have an hospital corps also for that purpose, no one knows their
losses; their prisoners and deserters say nearly five thousand, Lord
Wellington’s staff were never so roughly handled. The Prince of Orange,
who was sent to thank one regiment by Lord Wellington, was very much
exposed while executing this order. His horse was shot under him,
and he was grazed in the sash. It was near this place that General
Cole’s aide-de-camp had been killed, and also Brigade-Major A——,
one of my Deputy Judge-Advocates. He was trying to rally a Spanish
battalion which was quite broken. The Adjutant-general Pakenham had his
coat-sleeve much torn by a ball. Colonel Waters, A.A.G.C., was shot in
the head, through the hat, on the temple, but somehow was little hurt.
It is thought that the ball glanced under the hat, against the head,
and passed out through the hat. He was out again the next day. Lord
Wellington was near at the time, and told him that his head must be
like a rock.

Lord Wellington said, I hear, that he had never seen the French behave
better. He staid and dined at Picton’s on the 28th, and few returned to
head-quarters. All the 29th was quiet; both sides employed in burying
the dead and getting off the wounded. On the 29th also the staff and
light canteens alone remained at Villalba with General Cole; and I
was left with scarcely anything except wounded men and baggage. All
the stores were ordered to be unloaded, and all spare mules of the
head-quarters and of the second and seventh divisions likewise. Two
troops of Portuguese cavalry were employed from daylight to dark, in
addition to cars and hospital waggons, in carrying off the wounded to
Irunzun, to be out of the way in case of attack, and on the road to the
great hospital at Vittoria.

I made myself of some use in assisting the arrangement, and as there
were not hands to move the men from their mules, to get their rations,
&c., and then remount them to proceed, I asked an artillery officer
close by, to lend some of his men to assist, which he did directly,
and everything went on as quick again. I was sure they would not stand
upon form on such an occasion, and the men were standing about waiting
for orders; they only regretted that they did not know it sooner, for
they would have given men all day. The scene was a busy one. I suppose
nearly twelve hundred went through in this way; they were provided
with rations for two days to get on to Echani, mounted and sent off,
their ammunition having in the meantime been taken from them to be
better used, for that was getting scarce more than once. Some had two,
some one ball still in them. Besides this, Colonel Campbell, of the
Portuguese service, who had been wounded, was lying in my ante-room
all day. He was shot through the shinbone, a painful wound. He could
not get into my room, which of course I offered, but he preferred the
cool passage. I was at breakfast when he arrived. I gave him tea, and
some newspapers to try and read himself to sleep. A friend was with
him, a Campbell, who shared my bouillie; he ate as good a dinner as I
did, but objected to a second bottle, upon which I discovered he was
also wounded in the side, and feared that the end of his rib was broken.

The next morning, the 30th, we were all in suspense, as Lord Wellington
had determined on a general attack. The firing began at daylight.
At nine o’clock I determined to go and see what was going on, and
mounting my black, proceeded up for the hills, where the sixth and
seventh divisions were, on the opposite side of the valley from our
grand position, where we had been attacked the day before. I met many
wounded, crawling back all the way, and on the top found only the
pickets left in the camp of the morning, and that the seventh division
had just driven the French from the adjoining hill, and were after them
up the valley on the other side. I went on to the point of the hill and
saw the battle still raging strong, just opposite on the hills below,
on the other side of the valley opposite our position. The French
still steady and firing very briskly all round the side of one hill
and in the village below us, and our people creeping on by degrees
under ridges towards the village and the hill, and also advancing
round the back of the hill. We had two mortars and a gun also upon our
position-hill constantly at work, playing upon the French, and we saw
the shells continually fall and burst close to the French line, whilst
the wounded were carried off to the rear.

This went on for some time, above an hour after I came up, and we
had men in reserve all round. I then saw our men in the village, and
immediately under the French, and appearing at top also. The French
gave way, but went on firing all over the hill. In half-an-hour, I
heard the loud huzzas of our soldiers, and saw no French left except
on the next hills, where they seemed very numerous and strong, but in
confusion. The first huzzas were I believe for a body of about eighteen
hundred prisoners, who were caught, being headed every way. There
was soon a shout on our side close by our positions. It proved to be
Marshal Beresford and Lord Wellington proceeding down to the village to
water their horses and proceed on. I should have wished to have pushed
on also, but I knew head-quarters would move, and had told my people I
should return, and not to stir until they saw me. I therefore went back
to Berrio Planca, found as I expected all loaded and on the move to go
towards Orquin; got a mouthful of mouldy bread in the market, and went
back again close to our position at Orquin. There we got orders to halt
loaded, until orders came to proceed to Ostiz. We took off our bridles,
turned the horses into a field of Indian corn, where the French camp
had been four hours before, and where their dead of the 28th had been
buried. We waited thus, hearing a distant firing, until near dark. The
reason of this halt, as I learned from General O’Donnell, who passed,
was that D’Erlon had attacked General Hill in the morning, and that he
had been rather too much in advance, and was in some degree obliged to
give way; that he had now taken a new position, and expected the second
attack without alarm, as he was to be supported.

About four or five thousand Spaniards moved by us whilst we halted and
went up that way. I conclude that this was part of the support alluded
to. General Hill was attacked again, and I understand beat Count
D’Erlon (Drouet) back with great loss. When this had put all matters
straight again, on that side, at least, we were to proceed. At last
came orders to advance to Lanz, and we moved again. We drew up first,
however, on one side to allow eighteen hundred prisoners to march to
the rear,—a very pleasant sight. I spoke to several, and found all
of the 17th regiment, who were numerous, to be Italians, principally
Genoese. They said that they hated the French, but were forced to fight
in Spain against their inclinations. All the prisoners seemed quite
tired of Spain, and were as anxious as most of our people never to see
it again. They said that Soult was more in the rear, and did not intend
to fight that day, which was true, I believe, for he waited for General
D’Erlon to get up from St. Estevan towards Lanz. General Monceau, I
believe, commanded.

We were again a second time stopped under some trees, for Lord
Wellington had ordered the French to be moved from their position
beyond Ostiz, and driven to the vicinity of Lanz; the baggage was
halted till the result was known. In the villages and on the road,
which was strewed with pouches, empty knapsacks, and broken muskets, we
passed several bodies all stripped, and in some places could scarcely
avoid treading on them, by the horse stepping over a leg or an arm.
In one place on the road was a half-buried Frenchman, which the horse
had again laid bare. The doctors determined to halt, and encamp under
some trees; and if my baggage had been near me to stop it, I should
have bivouacked with them, having no tent. As it was, I proceeded, got
a wretched quarter at Ostiz with Colonel Waters and seven countrymen,
just come from the mountains, at about nine o’clock, got a beefsteak at
eleven, and to bed at half-past twelve.

The next day, 31st, orders came to proceed to Lanz, and wait further
instructions. There we arrived about ten o’clock, and I turned my
horses into the forage remaining in the French camp of the night
before, and got some collected for the mules. Thus we remained loaded
until four o’clock without orders. Lord Wellington then sent on for
fresh horses and his light canteens, and of our own accord we unloaded
to relieve the animals, but for a long time durst not unpack. At last,
General Murray came in, and ordered some dinner; but telling us that he
had no authority to direct others to do the same. We were all to go to
our old quarters; but, not liking in this state of things to go over
to Arriez, my old place, where I had lost myself in the night, I got a
room at Haines’s, and some dinner, hung my baggage cover up for a door,
and went to sleep on the table to avoid the fleas.

The next day, 1st of August, about six o’clock, orders were issued to
advance to Berrueta, and there to remain, waiting orders again. We
returned over this mountain thus the third time, and got to Berrueta
about one o’clock. I called at Almendoz in passing, to remind the
patrona of the house that I had told her we should beat the French,
near Pamplona, and be back in a week. I was so in five days, and found
her more miserable than before, having been plundered by the French.
I gave the green Indian corn the French had left to my horse, and
wished her good-bye. About two o’clock, we heard that we had driven the
French off the hills above St. Estevan, and also through the town, and
head-quarters were to move on to St. Estevan directly. We did so, and
got there by five o’clock; the French having been driven out between
twelve and one. We saw about a dozen French, just killed, close to St.
Estevan. So we go on, you see.

The French being driven in, about two leagues towards Lezaca and
Echalar, Longa and the Spaniards, and the light division, made a long
march back that day, the 1st of August, towards their own ground above
Lezaca, going more round, however, towards Echalar. By this, the
95th fell in with the French at the bridge, where the road to Lezaca
turns off from that to Echalar, headed them, killed and wounded about
a hundred, and, without discovering it, before dark, drove much of
their baggage up the valley round again towards St. Estevan. By this
movement, the French being then headed at the Lezaca valley, went the
Echalar pass and road instead, and in confusion; and the baggage walked
into the fourth division just as they advanced next morning.

Yesterday, the 2nd of August, our orders were to proceed again to
Lezaca. We started, and got into all the baggage of head-quarters
(three divisions) eight miles extent of loaded mules in a string. There
was a halt of about four hours, and no one could move. This continued
until we got near where the baggage had been caught, which was the
cause of the stoppage. After fighting by all the baggage, and leading
my horse along some very dangerous places, where, if he had slipped,
he must have fallen down to the river (and four to five mules actually
did so), I got to the scene of the captured baggage, and then went
quietly on. For nearly two miles there were scattered along the road,
papers, old rugs, blankets, pack-saddles, old bridles, girths, private
letters, lint, bandages, one or two hundred empty and broken boxes;
quantities of intrenching tools, rags, French clothes, dead mules,
dead soldiers and peasants, farriers’ tools, officers’ boots, linen,
&c. There were also the boxes of M. Le General Baron de St. Pol, and
several private officers’ baggage; the principal thing taken seemed to
be the _ambulance du 2ème division_; that is, the field hospital of the
second division. There were still more things worth picking up, and
some soldiers digging up three live mules out of an old limekiln near
the road-side. This caused stoppages and confusion.

Just beyond the bridge of Yanza the French were crawling off, who were
wounded by the 95th the night before, and we twice met small parties of
prisoners going to the rear, abused not a little by the plundered and
exasperated villagers. The prisoners told me that the country people
about these mountains were “_diablement méchant_,” and treated them
very ill. The truth was, however, that the French began this treatment;
for though they had behaved well in advancing, they had plundered and
destroyed considerably in their retreat, and much wantonly. I told them
they ought never to have come and entered Spain, to which they replied,
“We never wished to do so; it is not our fault.”

About three o’clock, I went round to see what was going on, but my
horse was tired, and I was not able to get up, to see the French driven
from the hill above Echalar, and also from the hill occupied by the
light division. In short, all our old position, and a little more, was
gained last night.

In our advance again, we also saw some of the effects of our own
retreat. In one place was an ammunition-waggon, with six dead mules,
which had all rolled down the mountain together. I ascertained that it
was English by sending a muleteer down for some papers in the waggon,
which turned out to be our printed blank artillery returns. I also saw
four other wheels and parts of carriages, and it is said that we lost
a howitzer. Colonel Ross’s troop suffered the most in this way. The
French seemed to have made this advance as a desperate push to relieve
Pamplona and St. Sebastian. The garrisons of both sallied; that of
Pamplona was driven back directly, as I hear: that of St. Sebastian (as
we are told) surprised us in the trenches napping, as the heavy guns
were all embarked for security, and nothing going on, and carried off
three companies of Portuguese. This, it is to be hoped, is exaggerated.
Near Elisondo, I hear, we took thirty cars of bread and brandy, and
some baggage also—a day’s bread for two divisions; and many are now
fighting without it on both sides. There is no delivery of bread
to-day, even for head-quarters; corn for the horses we have had none
this week.

Head-quarters have stray papers to the 19th, which I am reading whilst
the fighting is going on. One great amusement in these papers, to
me at least, is the excess of lies, the impudence, the abundance of
them, and then the blunders, and ignorance of what is going on. You
will be surprised at the contents of this, when you get the _Gazette_
account, as you will probably long before you receive this. I told you
that the beaten army would return in a month: whether they will muster
again this year, and attack, depends, in my opinion, upon the fall of
Pamplona and St. Sebastian, and the northern war. Pamplona is starving;
at least it is without meat; but I still doubt, except that this sudden
effort proves it to be in danger. It is merely more closely invested by
small gun redoubts—no battering gun has ever been near it, at present
only about six thousand Spaniards watch it, and I think if they choose
they might be off, only much harassed by our cavalry.

The charges made by the Life Guards were the most ludicrous. They were
never near the enemy, until beyond Vittoria, as I was before them, and
was almost run down twice by their anxiety along the road, galloping
away without occasion. I leaped a ditch once to avoid them, not wishing
to blow my horse as theirs were, at a time when we were on one side
of Vittoria and the French on the other. They were afterwards ordered
on, but never came up with the enemy. They could do nothing in such a
country, with six-foot ditches round the enclosures. Very few of the
Spaniards have behaved well this time. They have been generally in the
rear; one regiment stood fire well on the 28th, but some ran, and in
general I hear they have done little. Longa’s people tolerably here.
There has been sharp work on the whole. I should put down the allied
losses at six or seven thousand, and the French nearly at eighteen
thousand, provisions and all, that is somehow put _hors de combat_. If
the Spaniards will not fight, we can scarcely stand even this advantage
long; we shall be ruined by our victories. The French under D’Erlon
behaved very well to Colonel Fenwick, who was left wounded; no one was
allowed to go to his house as a quarter, and every attention was paid
both to him and the surgeon left with him. The latter became so popular
that the French liked to be dressed by him, better than by their own
surgeons.

_August 3rd, six o’clock, evening._—The great men are all come in; and
I am told nothing has been done more to-day. The last push over the
hills, and out of their position has not been made yet. So at least
says General O’Lalor. I suspect the Prince of Orange will carry home
these despatches, and I think it but fair now, that he should go and
see his intended as a conquering hero. He certainly promises very well.
An old man just returned home, is thrashing out his wheat over my head,
and has been thus employed all the morning, giving me his dust as well
as his noise.

_Later, nine o’clock, evening._—Nothing has been done to-day; the
French remain in their strong ground above Bera, a league and a
half from this. It was found, I believe, necessary to turn it in a
regular manner to avoid great loss; for though one brigade of red
coats yesterday turned two French divisions off one high hill, we can
scarcely expect this to be always the case. I think, therefore, we
shall remain here some days at least. I have just heard an anecdote
of General Picton. General Cole on the 17th ordered General Byng to
retire from a post on a hill which afterwards formed a part of our
good position on the 28th. Byng sent to Picton to say what his orders
were, and added that though very important, he felt he was not strong
enough to justify his keeping it. Picton said to Byng’s aide-de-camp,
“No, by G—, he shall not give up the hill; I will bring my division
up to support him; but no, your horse is done up, I’ll go myself and
tell him;” and he ordered the division to follow. This saved that
hill. Another time, General Cole was by orders leaving a hill, when he
received fresh orders to occupy it. His men found a few stragglers on
the top, and the French main division half way up; but they gave them
such a volley and warm reception, that they soon turned back and were
off.

We were very nearly destroying some of the French cavalry, and taking
two divisions. Two circumstances prevented this. The night we were
at Berrueta two of our men straggled, and got taken, and they told
the French where head-quarters were. This made them conclude we were
strongly posted close by, and they decamped at night instead of the
morning, as they had intended. Thus several hours were gained. The next
was, that our light division got their orders seven hours later than
was expected. Had they been that time sooner up, they would have headed
the French division on their road to Echalar, as well as to Lezaca, and
from strong ground might have been able to drive them back upon the
other divisions, and have surrounded them. Their cavalry also would
have been caught on this narrow winding road down by the river, where
the baggage was destroyed, with a path in the wood just on the opposite
side, from whence our men might at least have picked off the horses if
the men chose to run away. This was just missed, however, from these
causes, and remains one of the _ifs_ and _ands_; it is very provoking,
for that would have completely crippled them for this year.

A Spanish priest told me to-day that all the priests, nuns, &c., in
Spain, were constantly putting up prayers for Lord Wellington, thinking
almost everything depended upon him individually, as I believe most
people here really think. They were sorry he was so often exposed as he
is to fire.

_Lezaca, August 4th, 1813._—Nothing is to be done, I believe, to-day.
Everything _in statu quo_; the Prince goes to-night or to-morrow
morning with despatches to England, and I shall send this with them.

P.S. It feels, as you may suppose, very strange, after the whirl about
to Pamplona, and all the scenes I have witnessed, to be again quietly
drawing charges at Lezaca. I have just heard that the French have
increased their force much in our front above Bera on the hills, but I
think nothing more will be done immediately on our part or on theirs.




CHAPTER XI.

 Rejoicings for the Victory—Sufferings of Cole’s Division—Complaints
 of the French—Statements of a French Prisoner—Decay of
 Spain—Characteristics of Wellington—His Opinion of Bonaparte—Prospects
 of a renewal of the Attack—Exchange of Prisoners—Wellington’s Spanish
 Estate—His opinion of Picton—Disposition of the Army.


  Head-quarters, Lezaca,
  August 7, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

Here we are still, quiet, and _in statu quo ante_ our last run to
Pamplona. I have sent you a long account of all this business with the
Prince of Orange’s despatches.

Our cavalry have been moving up, both to St. Estevan, and towards
Irun. From the former place, however, for want of forage they begin to
retire again. Much are left still round Pamplona, where there is only
a Spanish infantry force to watch and invest. They have tried in vain
to burn the corn just under the walls of the town, for this partly
supplies the garrison. Marshal Beresford is gone for a week to the
sea side, for bathing; I conclude, therefore, that nothing is to be
immediately undertaken to turn the French out of the remaining hills
near this place. I should like to have them clear out in the plains
below, for I expect in about three weeks to have them plaguing us
again. Something is still in agitation for this purpose, but for the
present delayed. We fired, at St. Sebastian, a salute of twenty-one
guns for our late victory. The garrison regularly returned two for
every gun fired. They are very well supplied, it is said, and are
very impudent. I fear that all our former breaches will now be quite
useless, as they are, probably, before this, made the strongest points.
Saragossa, or Zaragoza (the fort) has surrendered to Mina with about
forty guns, and, it is said, nearly five hundred men; this will be
good, if Suchet intends to come that way towards us. I think he is now
retreating a little, and perhaps this late business may make him go
back quicker.

Lord Wellington was on his bed yesterday, and could scarcely rise from
the lumbago; but was in good humour and good spirits. His position
near Sorauren and Oricain, or Orquin, was a near-run thing (this was
where the last two battles were fought). General Cole was there with
the fourth division. In the course of his retreat, Lord Wellington
was falling back on him with his staff, saw the importance of the
position and galloped over the bridge, and up to General Cole, to
form his division, and take up the position at first sight. Pamplona
must otherwise have been relieved. The French were so close upon Lord
Wellington, that a part of his staff rather behind could not follow him
over the bridge, but were cut off by the French, and obliged to find
their way round. This position was afterwards strengthened by the third
(Picton’s) division, and the Spaniards, and this at least saved the
communication with Pamplona. I hope we should in any case have beaten
the French at last, but it must have been further back certainly, and
probably on the Tolosa road. General Cole’s division has had, on the
whole, nearly nine days’ constant fighting and marching. It is terribly
cut up in consequence.

The French vow vengeance against the Spaniards. An officer, prisoner
here, told me yesterday, that the Spaniards had always complained
of the French, and often with reason; but if they came again as he
expected, the French were resolved to show them the difference, and
let them have some reason to complain of them in earnest. He said, that
France had lost nearly four hundred thousand men in Spain, in the war,
and much more than half from sickness and unfair means, assassination,
and treachery. He said there was not a family in France which had not
put on mourning for this Spanish war, and yet scarcely any of the
Spaniards had fought them like men. He said the notion the French had
was that in the general peace which was expected, England and France
would make arrangements to divide the best part of Spain between them,
and that we should keep Cadiz, Carthagena, and all the useful maritime
parts, and leave them to the Ebro. He smiled much at my disowning any
such honest and honourable intentions on our part. He told me that the
French armies had suffered more in their _morale_ here in the last
campaign, than by their Russian losses, for every Frenchman laid the
latter disasters entirely to climate, and was satisfied he still could
conquer a Russian as formerly; but here, the troops were fairly beaten,
and in general would not stand. Only two brigades, he said, behaved
really well at Vittoria, and Jourdan was sent to Paris under arrest for
his conduct. As to the money, baggage, &c., they behaved much better on
the 18th of July.

He also told me that not even an English or Spanish officer, in the
best of times, had ever been so well treated as the French were when
they first came here. He appeared not at all to feel how much worse
this made their conduct appear since. This was drawn out by my telling
him that Bonaparte had contrived now to make the French detested,
almost by every nation in Europe, and that power was all he had to rely
upon. The part Bernadotte had taken the French officers seem not to
have known, so much are they kept in the dark about every thing. The
Frenchman also said, that had it not been for the jealousies of the
Guerillas, they might, by acting in concert (which they never would
do), have sometimes almost annihilated whole French divisions, and that
the French could scarcely have kept their ground some time since; but
by local and individual jealousies the finest opportunities were lost.
He considered that the good or bad behaviour of an army all depended
on their having pay and food; or, on the contrary, the want of both;
and I believe so much: that he rightly considered that the French
discipline was the best when they had both, but that not being here
ever the case, plunder was the consequence. “But why come here at all?”
quoth I. “_L’Empereur le veut_,” was the answer, “and we as soldiers
have only to obey.” “Try and enter France,” said he, “and you will soon
see how the people feel, and whether your stories of a readiness to
revolt, and dissatisfaction are true. So far from it, that there has
been considerable zeal shown every where in replacing the Emperor’s
Russian losses.” The French think there must be war, and therefore
the further from home the better. We have heard before you, by French
papers, of the extension of the armistice in the North. This is bad for
the campaign here.

The English reviewers and others may say what they please as to Spain
not having been on the decline during the last century. It has at
least stood still when almost every other country in Europe made rapid
advances in everything. In Spain and Portugal, no town is now, or has
been lately, on the increase; but several have manifestly diminished.
The decay of houses is seldom made good, even on the same ground, by
new ones; I do not recollect to have observed, in the whole country,
four new houses building, notwithstanding the thousands destroyed of
late; nor does this seem owing to the events of the last five years and
the present times, for you see no houses commenced before that time,
and left unfinished, at least extremely few. In France, almost every
large place had its new town as in England, only in a less degree,
and evident marks of new buildings, &c., stopped by the Revolution.
In Spain there are no appearances of new towns at all, nor of parts
of towns, or scarcely even of houses, or unfinished buildings stopped
by the present confusion—some in Vittoria, from French excitement I
believe, but nothing to speak of. The churches are every where on a
large and expensive scale; a few modern, but in general they are old.
The Spanish towns have nearly all the appearance of what we should take
to be decayed manufacturing towns. The inhabitants appear to have been
asleep as to the rest of the world, and not to have made any progress
whilst others made great advances. This is a sort of decline. There
can have been little demand for manufactures, for the same few chairs
and tables seem to have been in use these fifty or hundred years.
Whitewashing and new placing the tiles seem the only repairs of the
houses.

Yet, I think many districts seem to have been uncommonly happy and
comfortable before this war—large tight houses, abundance of food, good
clothes, cleanly habits, a general equality of rank; no rich among them
at all; no very poor; and no manufactures. Almost every man could make
what he wanted for his farm, and a shoemaker, a tailor, and a farrier,
were nearly the only tradesmen, except farmers, in work. Occasional
pedlars supplied the other wants of a people who had but few. Such
must have been the independent, happy state of many large districts
away from the influence of the corruptions of the large towns, where
all the idle, lazy, pauper nobility lived: they were alike free from
the effects of the misgovernment and oppressive conduct of their
rulers. Other districts certainly were very different, and more like
the dirty and ill-provided Portuguese. In Portugal, the higher classes
seem, I think, to have been generally better off, and to have enjoyed
themselves more in their quintas, or villas, and the poor to have been
worse off. There are none of the districts in Portugal such as I have
described in Spain.

I have just met General Cole, who commanded the fourth division; he is
quite knocked up. He says that his division alone have one hundred and
four officers killed and wounded.

_Lezaca, 8th August._—Yesterday I rode up to the hill at the point
of our position above Bera, from whence you see Bayonne. I stood on
the top until it was nearly dark, and returned down the mountains by
moonlight. The French fires were very numerous, and were burning all
over the sides of a tremendous hill, which they still occupy opposite
to our position. I passed the boundary stone, and got half-a-mile
into France, to the highest summit of the rock, where the outlying
picket is. I saw the French relieve their pickets, heard their drums
as plainly as ours, saw the men at work at a redoubt to oppose us if
we should advance, and, lastly, saw five thousand Spaniards come up to
occupy the ground in the place of our light division, &c., who were
ordered to go elsewhere. These were O’Donnell’s regiments; they were
thin in numbers. A brigade, nominally three thousand, mustered eighteen
hundred, but were well-dressed and good-looking men. I only hope they
will fight—at least that they do not steal as adroitly as Longa’s
people. We have had the latter near this place, and nothing is safe at
all from their fingers—from a horse or mule down to a bit of biscuit.
In my letter from Vittoria, I told you that the French as an army
had escaped, and that we should hear of them again in a month. So it
proved; and so I think it will be probably again, unless the two places
surrender to us in a few weeks.

This small, dirty place, Lezaca, is a curious scene of bustle just
now; crowded with Spanish fugitives—the head-quarters no small body,
with all our stragglers and those of Longa’s, who are more numerous
(he having a quarter here now, and looking like an English butcher in
a handsome hussar dress), with abundance of Spanish and Portuguese
officers (for both troops are near), as well as with English, with
wounded and prisoners passing, with mules and muleteers innumerable,
besides all the country people who come here to turn all they have
got into money. Noises of all sorts; thrashing all going on in the
rooms up stairs; the corn then made into bread and sold in one corner;
“_aguardente_” being cried all about; lemonade (that is, dirty water
and dark-brown sugar) the same; here a large pig being killed in the
street, with its usual music on such occasions; another near it with
a straw fire singeing it, and then a number of women cutting up and
selling pieces of other pigs killed a few hours before. Suttlers and
natives with their Don Quixote wineskins all about, large pigskins,
and small ditto, and middling ditto, all pouring out wine to our
half-boozy, weary soldiers; bad apples and pears, gourds for soup, sour
plums, &c., all offered for sale at the same moment. Perpetual quarrels
take place about payment for these things between the soldiers of the
three allied nations and the avaricious and unreasonable civilian
natives; mostly, however, between Spaniards and Spaniards. The animals
eating green Indian corn almost against every house here and in the
churchyard, which contains four tents, from the want of stables and of
quarters. Not the least curious or noisy in this confusion, are about
fifteen men and women with fresh butter 4_s._ the pound, who are come
from near St. Andero and beyond it—a stout race dressed in a curious,
peculiar manner, who contrive to bring butter on their heads in baskets
for above a fortnight together, and sell it at last in a state that I
am very glad to eat it for breakfast for ten days after it arrives. It
forms a sort of very mild cream cheese, in fact.

_Head-Quarters, Lezaca, August 9th._—You ask me if Lord Wellington has
recollected —— with regard? He seems to have had a great opinion of
him, but scarcely has ever mentioned him to me. In truth, I think Lord
Wellington has an active, busy mind, always looking to the future, and
is so used to lose a useful man, that as soon as gone he seldom thinks
more of him. He would be always, no doubt, ready to serve any one who
had been about him, or the friend of a deceased friend, but he seems
not to think much about you when once out of the way. He has too much
of everything and everybody always in his way, to think much of the
absent. He said the other day, that he had great advantages now over
every other General. He could do what others dare not attempt; and he
got the confidence of all the three allied powers, so that what he
said or ordered was, right or wrong, always thought right. “And it is
the same,” said he, “with the troops. When I come myself, the soldiers
think what they have to do the most important, since I am there, and
that all will depend on their exertions. Of course, these are increased
in proportion, and they will do for me what perhaps no one else can
make them do.” He said, “he had several of the advantages possessed by
Bonaparte, in regard to his freedom of action and power of risking,
without being constantly called to account: Bonaparte was quite free
from all inquiry, and that he himself was in fact very much so. The
other advantages which Bonaparte possessed, and of which he made so
much use,” Lord Wellington said, “was his full latitude of lying;
_that_, if so disposed,” he said, “he could not do.”

You ask about my health—I think this hole in the mountains unwholesome:
the place is so full, and without drainage; the air heavy and
oppressive; it is like Devonshire, warm moisture constantly. I long to
be on the mountains, to get air and braced up. It has rained nearly all
the last twenty-four hours.

_August 10th._—I have just seen Lord Wellington, about some more than
usually important business: he is better, but not well. He has given me
an immense bundle of English and Spanish papers to peruse and examine.
The enclosed plan may help you a little to understand the _Gazette_,
and my letter; remember it is only my hasty personal sketch in pen and
ink, on no scale, and taken from no regular document.

_11th, Post-day._—I worked very hard all yesterday, and could not
get through Lord Wellington’s papers. I am still at work at the last
part of them: a Spanish narrative of all the Spanish operations of
a Spanish army for a month, by their General Copons. It consists of
sixty-four sides of foolscap in a Spanish hand. There is nothing new.
Lord Wellington will give a dinner to-morrow, in honour of the Prince
Regent’s birthday, to all the heads of departments, to which I am
invited. There are reports of the French moving already, but I believe
all lies as yet. Do not be too sanguine about Suchet. He may retire,
but will hardly be forced out of the country, for there are forty
thousand French on that side of Spain. The Spanish Government have
given Lord Wellington a handsome royal estate near Granada; he told me
this yesterday.

_Head-Quarters, Lezaca, August 13th, 1813._—Here I am, and very busy
still, and with no events to communicate. All is now quiet for the
present, as at Frenada, though this cannot last long. Having the paper
by me, however, I determined to place this letter upon the stocks,
against the next post-day.

Yesterday I dined at Lord Wellington’s, with a party of thirty-six,
to keep the Prince Regent’s birthday. Eight mules had arrived in the
morning with prog and wines from Bilboa, and we had therefore a good
feast, and some very good claret of Majoribanks and Paxton. The party
was very dull, though many grandees were present—Castanos, O’Donnell,
the General of the army of the reserve (the best Spaniards I have seen,
and now on the hill above us, with something like a Commissariat, &c.),
their aides-de-camp, &c., Generals Cole, Anson, Murray, Pakenham,
&c. Two bands were in attendance those of the Fusiliers and the 7th.
Fuento, the Spanish Commissary, gave us “God save the King,” and Lord
Wellington’s favourite, “Ah Marmont, onde va Marmont?” but it was very
hot and stupid; every one here, in fact, is fagged, and half done up.
Lord Wellington could scarcely rise when he sat down, or sit down when
he rose, from lumbago, and was in great pain, but is much better; all
around him looked pale and worn. I think, however, we shall be up to
another brush again soon.

We are soon about to begin again at St. Sebastian; but it is to be
feared that it will be hard and bloody work, unless some piece of good
luck should arise in our favour.

_Later._—I have just been to Lord Wellington, with the result of my
labours, which have amused him much, and which he thinks I cannot be
correct in, as to facts; or if so, the whole, he concurs with me, is
most extraordinary. He has now got the papers and my statement to
examine. It is not, in my opinion, the Spanish General who was to
blame; I must not explain more at present; he seemed pleased, and asked
me to dinner again to-day. We have a stray paper to the 4th, which
has set us all agog; but I have only heard the news concerning Lord
Aberdeen, and it does not seem quite certain that there is to be an
ambassador from England to the Congress. The French nation, or rather
the news through France, is I hear all for peace, and the Rhine and the
Pyrenees are to be the boundaries, Jerome King of Holland, and Joseph
King of Italy; this is only French rumour.

I am told that Soult says he will be here the day after to-morrow, the
15th, and has two bridges ready near Irun, to come on our left; he
would only come there, for I think we should be able to do something.
We are well up for an attack there; four hours would put the divisions
here on that flank, Spaniards, &c.

_The 14th._—We had last night a little firing, but I believe it was
only the Spaniards. The latter and the French fire at each other
at every opportunity, and when neighbours, are never at peace. Our
sentries and the French, on the contrary, are within one hundred yards
of each other, and are relieved regularly without the least molestation
on either side. This is the way. Unless an attack is to be made, what
is gained by killing a poor sentry? Our new brigade is not yet at
Passages, although expected for this fortnight. Some reinforcements
have, however, come up, and the brigade of Guards, which were left
behind, have, by easy marches from Oporto, now joined us—about fifteen
hundred out of the three thousand who came out at that unlucky time
last year. The French have also reinforcements, and must in honour
do something if the two places hold out. The French gentleman who
came over to us near Pamplona fourteen days since, dined at Lord
Wellington’s yesterday, and talked away. He seems clever, and, like
every Frenchman, professed to know everything—the secret history of
everybody and of every event. He calls Bonaparte _un tigre_, &c. I
cannot say that I like him much, and would not trust him; but I am not
much afraid of Lord Wellington doing so. Lord Wellington told him the
following fact, concerning the exchange of prisoners in this country.
He said that Massena once agreed to exchange three hussar officers and
one hundred and twenty men, rank for rank, and when he had got his
own three officers and the men, sent back only twenty soldiers, and
the rest countrymen and Portuguese militiamen, and three officers of
militia scarcely embodied. Lord Wellington vowed never to trust his
honour again, and in every proposal always excepts Massena. Indeed
he said he was so little inclined now from experience to trust any
of them, that a short time since, when an exchange was proposed, he
said, “Yes; but first name the officers and men you offer, and their
regiments, ages, &c., and then I will treat, but I will not have
Spanish peasants for French soldiers.” To this they sent no answer.

Lord Wellington also tells them, that until our travellers, civilians,
&c., who were detained are released, he can never listen to
non-combatant pleas. All must be exchanged; but he is very liberal. He
also said Soult once complained that six of our officers had escaped
from their guard near Oporto, on that retreat, and had committed a
breach of honour; but that he (Lord Wellington) having inquired into
it, found they were placed in confinement under a guard, and their
parole not relied upon, and that they had got the better of their
guard. Lord Wellington, therefore, told the Marshal that the parole
being abandoned by the imprisonment, the point of honour was gone; and
that there were two ways of prisoners and their guards separating, and
that he believed the guard had run away from their prisoners, not the
prisoners from their guard. To this also he had no answer.

Lord Wellington also talked of Grant’s case, who lately got away from
Paris. Lord Wellington had advised him not to give his parole in Spain,
and had provided persons to rescue him in several places on the march
to France. They offered this to Grant in consequence, but the offer
was from honour declined, as the parole had been given and acted upon.
The moment he was in France the French placed him under a guard, and
at Bayonne he got away from them and went to Paris, remained there
nine months, and got to England at last. Lord Wellington yesterday
was excessively stiff and sore, but in high spirits. He seems to have
a notion that the Continent will make a peace, and leave us and the
Spaniards in the lurch, and I believe this prevents any very forward
movements here on his part, for the French would then soon come down
upon us with decidedly superior numbers; and if we had quite passed
these mountains a hasty retreat back through them would not be a very
easy or agreeable manœuvre.

I rode last night to Bera or Vera, where our outposts are in the
valley. The French pickets are in two houses on the hills opposite, a
few hundred yards up. Several of the houses about there are destroyed,
gutted, and burnt, and most of them deserted. It was only a month ago a
pretty little town. Longa had also, since we were here last, burnt two
neat farms on the road, and knocked off the parapet of the bridge, and
dug a trench across it, for the purpose of annoying the French. We have
headed nearly all the green Indian corn in this valley for the horses;
it is cut short off, half way, leaving the fruit below; and this is
said not to do much harm to the corn. But then we cannot eat our cake
and have it also. There will be no dry forage for the animals in autumn
and winter. The little wheat straw about these valleys is nearly all
eaten already, and much of the wheat and Indian corn itself has been
either destroyed or taken by the irregularity of the thousand muleteers
around us, in spite of their being occasionally flogged when caught in
doing so. The inhabitants will, I fear, be half starved in the winter,
unless they migrate, which many will, no doubt, and we must be supplied
from other parts if we stay near here. Spain in general will, however,
have been released from the supply of, nominally, two hundred thousand
French; and as we drove them away before harvest time, most of this
will be in the market somewhere, except what has been destroyed on
our immediate line of march. Much has been of course trodden down, and
from the want of forage and corn our horses have been obliged to take
the ripe wheat and eat it—straw, grain, and all—to serve both purposes.
This is dangerous food, and if drink is given carelessly, often kills
the animal; but otherwise it answers well.

We understand here that it was not until three days after the news of
the battle of Vittoria arrived that any one durst inform Bonaparte of
it. This last battle will very probably be almost entirely concealed
from him. As we are now both _in statu quo_ as to place, this may
perhaps be managed: though the enemy are about fifteen thousand
men minus to what they were before the attack at Maya began. From
intercepted letters we find that, in reports even to each other, the
French lie considerably, or at least misrepresent, for the good of the
service, and this will present a good opportunity, as Bonaparte is so
far off.

In this little town, or rather village, there are about twelve priests
at least, walking about in their shovel hats. These hats would astonish
the most orthodox bishop’s chaplain in England, and our coalheaver’s
hat is nothing to them. The only fine cloth in the shops here is black,
you may guess for whose use.

The estate which the Spanish Government has given to the Marquis of
Wellington is, I understand, a very desirable one; and the best proof
that it is so, is that it was one which the Prince of Peace had given
to himself, and doubtless he chose the best he could find. It is
nominally thirty thousand dollars a-year, a castle, I understand, and
about a league from Granada, in a fine country.[5] Lord Wellington
seems very much pleased with it. He says that he hopes the house is a
good one, as he should not like to have to build, and that he hears
there is hunting, coursing, fishing, and everything near it. There
was a fine wood, but I fear the Prince of Peace cut most of that
down. General O’Lalor, who is in a bad state of health, is to have
the government of Granada, and will superintend this estate for Lord
Wellington. The latter had got the papers concerning it before him when
I called a few days since, and said, “This relates to the estate they
have given me.”

_The 15th._—I have been very ill all night and this morning, but am
now rather better, and the doctor tells me I am saved a fever by this
bilious attack. We are all most anxious for news from the North, for
all must depend in the end upon that, at least in a great measure.
Next to General Frost, I think, our General has done the most for the
common cause. General Villa Alba, the Spanish Inspector of Cavalry,
dined at head-quarters to-day. He is a queer-looking creature, anything
but a General in appearance, and much less a cavalry officer. I know,
however, nothing of his real character. We now feel the effects of our
work through these valleys; for we cannot ride a few miles without the
alternate smells of dead horses, dead mules, and dead men. Bonaparte’s
birthday has passed over very quietly, except a tremendous triple salvo
of all the St. Sebastian’s guns and mortars upon our poor fellows in
the trenches at daylight. The garrison are amazingly pert, from their
success hitherto; but we have some hopes they will soon want water.
Adieu.

_The 16th._—Much the same to-day, the attack continuing all night.
Cannot think what it is in this country that affects us. The
thermometer has never in the shade, in my room, been beyond 72° in this
part of Spain. General Sir T. Picton is attacked again with a violent
bowel complaint, and is fallen to the rear. He would be a great loss,
for he is one of the best here. Lord Wellington, the other day, said,
“Why, even General Picton did so-and-so the other day,” as if surprised
that he should not have acted quite right.

Our soldiers are quite unaccountable; all is going on right, and they
are just now quiet and well fed, yet desertion, and even of British,
to the enemy, was scarcely ever more frequent. It was not surprising
that one hundred and forty of the Chasseurs Britanniques went off when
we were falling back to Pamplona, and, as they thought, probably to
Portugal; but that the English soldier should desert, is astonishing
and unaccountable. Three went off from pickets together the other
night, towards the French, and were all caught, and are to be tried.
Several must be hung for this. Two new regiments have at last arrived.
I wish the French would come fairly on now, if at all, but every one
talks of a general peace. Adieu.

_The 17th._—We have this day a strong French report that peace is
signed, and that the Pyrenees are to be the boundary of France on this
side. Nothing said about England; but even at this rate, we must be off
if this prove true. The news you told me of the fifty thousand men,
under Soult, you will have seen was tolerably correct; it was intended
he should have been here sooner, to prevent the mischief which happened
at Vittoria. As soon as the report came that we were threatening to
cross the Ebro he was sent off, but he did not allow sufficiently
for Lord Wellington’s rapid movements, and was a little too late. It
is clear, from many circumstances, as Lord Wellington says, that he
intended to drive us back to the Ebro this last push, and that his
measures were all taken accordingly; his cavalry, which he brought with
him, and which, as regards the country as far as Pamplona, would have
been useless, has suffered much from the roads, want of shoes, &c., and
had no employment except that of carrying off the wounded.

Our army is now nearly as follows: first and fifth divisions, Oyarzun
and St. Sebastian, under Graham; Jeron, with his Spaniards of Gallicia,
in their front at Irun; Longa between them and this place, with his
diminished Guerillas; here the fourth division and the light division
in front, and the Spaniards of O’Donnell the reserve next, on the right
of the others, in front; then the seventh division above Echalar, &c.:
then the third and sixth in Maya and Roncesvalles Pass, with Spaniards
I believe also, and General Hill’s second division behind them in
the valley of Bastan, Elisondo, &c.; six thousand Spaniards watching
Pamplona, and our cavalry about there principally or in the rear of
Graham.

_The 18th, still Lezaca._—O’Donnell is unwell, from the wound in his
leg, from which thirty splinters have been extracted: he is going to
the baths. He is the Conde de Bispal, commanding the army of Reserve.
Jeron is to take his command now, and give up the Gallicians; our men,
however, I am glad to learn, are in general considered as very healthy:
General Cole told me that his division was particularly so, after all
their fatigues. The army have Lord Wellington to thank principally,
even for this. Last year the mules per company allowed by Government
were employed in carrying the heavy iron camp-kettles, and our men had
no tents; though they were allowed them, they could not be carried.
This year Lord Wellington had light tin kettles made, one for every
six men, for the mess, to be carried by one of the men, each having a
small cooking machine of tin besides. This plan sets the mules free and
disposable, and thus three tents have been carried for every company,
and allowing for absentees, guards, officers’ servants, sentries, &c.;
this now nearly houses or covers all our men, and contributes much to
the health of the army. It was entirely an arrangement of his own.
The Portuguese are still without tents, as are the French and the
Spaniards.

The French, however, are very expert at making wood huts, with fern
for the top and for the bedding, tolerably comfortable except in heavy
rains. So are now the Portuguese indeed, and many of them (as well as
our men who happen not to have tent room) join two together, and giving
up their blankets for sleeping on, make a good tent of them, which
holds two very well, and only consists of their two muskets and two
blankets; and now, since we have obtained so much plunder, generally
a good sack or piece of carpet at the rough weather side. Orders were
given before we marched from Granada, by Lord Wellington, to have all
blankets looped and strengthened at the corners, for this purpose, all
ready, as an excellent defence from the sun, even better than a tent,
for it is cooler, and a very tolerable one from rain.

I am to dine with General Cole, who is quartered here. My people in
this house are up all night, making a noise, and baking for Longa, and
all day the children are shaking the dirt from above down upon me.


FOOTNOTES:

[5] It is situated in the Val de Soto.




CHAPTER XII.

 Reported renewal of Operations against St. Sebastian—Effects of
 the War on Spain and Portugal—Wellington’s Account of recent
 Proceedings—Courts-martial—Prisoners Shot—Discussions on War between
 Wellington and a French Deserter—The Siege resumed—Work of the
 Heavy Batteries—Trial of General O’Halloran—Volunteers for the
 Storming-parties.


  Head-quarters, Lezaca,
  August 21, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

Several of our Vittoria sick and wounded now begin to return and join
their regiments. Major Freemantle came back just in time for dinner
yesterday, and amused us with an account of all your madness in England
about the battle of Vittoria.

General Cole, with whom I told you I was going to dine, lives very
comfortably. To do this, even in his way, he has now travelling with
him about ten or twelve goats for milk, a cow, and about thirty-six
sheep at least, with a shepherd, who always march, feed on the road
side, on the mountains, &c., and encamp with him. When you think of
this, that wine and everything is to be carried about, from salt and
pepper and tea-cups to saucepans, boilers, dishes, chairs, and tables,
on mules, you may guess the trouble and expense of a good establishment
here.

I mentioned to you the iron-works all about this country, and their
simple construction; they make, however, I believe, excellent iron. For
this purpose they mix the ore of this country, which is too brittle,
with the ore they fetch from near Bilboa, which is rather too ductile
and soft, and of the two form an excellent compound, which used to
supply much of the southern part of France.

Our great guns are, I am told, to begin pounding to-day at St.
Sebastian again, but I have not heard them yet. The old breach will not
do at all; it is, we are told, mined and filled with little intended
explosions. A seventy-four and some frigates are now near. I wish they
would let the sailors try the sea side when we storm. I think they
would get in somehow at once into the castle.

_August the 23rd._—I have now a fresh set of Courts in every division
again, as my last are broken up. One Deputy Judge-Advocate sent me, out
of curiosity, a history of his Court-casualties, &c., nine members out
of fifteen, and the Judge-Advocate, killed or severely wounded, since
the 22nd of May, two prosecutors and three witnesses, all officers. We
are trying to clear as we go, and to prevent all arrears, and we hang
away to prevent desertion. I am told that the French do the same and
still more, but their people will go home to the rear; this is more
natural. We are told that ten men from each company are gone by orders
to the rear also—some foolishly say to quell riots, for which purpose
ten old men would be the most useless possible; but the most plausible
account is, to drill new conscripts. Some deserters say they are sent
even to Italy for this; I believe just now that they are not prepared
to move, and will be content to remain quiet. We have alternate
accounts, of course, of war and peace. To-day two women (one French,
the other Spanish,) of the French prisoners from Vittoria, came in here
on their way to join the French. Lord Wellington, however, has stopped
them, and says he will have no more sent over until the French release
about three hundred mothers and wives, &c., of the Guerillas, who were
carried off by them as hostages for the return home of the Guerilla
relations, so they cry and think this very sad to be put upon the same
footing as such creatures. One of the ladies asked the Adjutant-general
whether she had better write to her friends openly, to propose an
exchange, or in cipher? Upon which he thought a cipher lady should not
remain here, at least long. We now give some flour to Longa’s people
for bread, and try to make regulars of them.

It is very terrible that our people, muleteers, soldiers, &c., do more
mischief by far than the French, except when the latter do it by way
of punishment and revenge; at ordinary times their discipline is much
better than ours. The heads of the Indian corn are now nearly all eaten
off about here by the cattle, and cut by the soldiers to roast, as well
as the leaves for our animals. The Spaniards, however, in some degree
have their revenge; we bring a quantity of money into the country in
spite of our bad pay, and this they fleece us out of in high style.
They sell everything like Jews, and are naturally exorbitant, greedy,
and avaricious; this seems the general character. So we go on! They
cheat our men as much as they can, and our men get all they can gratis;
upon the whole, however, if we remain stationary, we benefit the
country.

Lord Wellington yesterday said it was stated in his letters from
Lisbon, that Portugal was miserable without us. No money, no markets,
nothing doing. I believe he was half joking with the Portuguese agent
here; but he really meant that we were much missed there. The muleteers
with us are the worst. Their terms were, a dollar a-day each mule,
and one for a man for every three mules, and rations. They have gone
on four years, and more; they are now, I believe, sixteen months in
arrears in their pay, having just got one month lately. If paid up
they would make fortunes, and have no pretence to behave ill. As it
is, they steal, plunder, turn out their mules in the corn, &c., and
from one of the most orderly classes in Spain, are become the least so.
There are about ten thousand of the mules in this state, and I suppose
four thousand muleteers. Their pay is almost more than the army; and
when is it to be paid or how? there lies the rub.

The people say that we have brought the plague of flies, and I really
believe we have increased the swarms by the number of dead carcasses,
and various kinds of filth caused by the density of the population at
present. We do not bury so regularly as the French, either our offal or
dead animals, or anything; the Spaniards not at all, unless we do it
for them. To give you a notion of the flies, they eat up all my wafers,
if left open, and spot my letters all over if left one day on the table.

Nothing can look better than the condition of the Portuguese troops.
They are cleaner than our men; or look so, at least. They are better
clothed now by far, for they have taken the best care of their clothes;
they are much gayer, and have an air, and a _je ne sais quoi_,
particularly the Caçadores both the officers and private men, quite new
in a Portuguese. It is curious to observe the effects of good direction
and example, how soon it tells. The French seem to do the same with
Italians, and with every one; or rather have done so, for I hope this
may not cease in part at least.

_Head-Quarters, Lezaca, 24th._—Having been writing nearly all day
yesterday, I took an evening stroll, and then went and sat down on the
churchyard parapet wall. In ten minutes who should come there but Lord
Wellington, alone. After one turn he came and sat on the wall with me,
and talked for more than half an hour. Amongst other things I said,
I hoped that you in England would hear Soult’s account of the Maya
business first, as you then would be alarmed, and value the latter
account by the Prince of Orange as it deserved.

He said, “Why, at one time it was rather alarming, certainly, and it
was a close-run thing. When I came to the bridge of Sorauren, I saw the
French on the hills, on one side, and it was clear that we could make a
stand on the other hills in our position on the 28th; but I found that
we could not keep Sorauren, for it was exposed to their fire and not
to ours. I determined to take the position, but was obliged to write
my orders accordingly at Sorauren, to be sent back instantly, for had
they not been dispatched back directly by the way I had come, I must
have sent four leagues round in a quarter of an hour later. I stopped,
therefore, to write accordingly, people saying to me all the time, ‘The
French are coming! The French are coming!’ I looked pretty sharp after
them, however, every now and then, until I had completed my orders, and
then set off, and I saw them just near one end of the village as I went
out at the other end; and then we took our ground.”

I then observed that the only time I felt a little uneasy was, when we
were stopped at Lanz, and sent across to Lisasso, for all faces seemed
very long, and the removal of the wounded was very much pressed. This
led him to explain more; and he said: “Had I been as regularly informed
of how matters stood on the 26th and 27th as I was of what had passed
on the 25th, that need not have happened; but General Cole never told
me exactly how far he found it necessary to give way, or let me know
by what a superior force he was pressed, and that he intended giving
way, or my arrangements would have been quite different; and the French
might have been stopped sooner than they were. In truth, I suspected
that all Soult’s plan was merely by manœuvres to get me out of the
hills, and to relieve one or both of the besieged places, as things
should turn up and succeed for him; and I expected him to turn short
round towards St. Sebastian accordingly. I had then no notion that with
an army so lately beaten he had serious thoughts, as I am now sure he
had, of driving us behind the Ebro. The consequence was that the second
division halted a day and a half at Trinita and Berrueta, on the 26th,
and till three on the 27th; and the seventh division only took a short
march to St. Estevan, as I was unwilling to lose a bit more of the
mountains than was absolutely necessary, from the probable loss of men
in recovering such ground. On the night before we marched, or at three
in the morning of the 26th, I knew all that had passed on the first
attack, and acted accordingly. Had I been as well informed, and had
everything been communicated to me as punctually on the next evening,
the march of several divisions would have been different. I should and
could have pressed them more on the 27th; there would not have been
the risk and apparent alarm as to head-quarters, &c.; and we should
probably have stopped the French sooner. As it is, however, and as I
had men who could fight, as the English did when they recovered the
hill which had been lost, it has all ended very well.”

We then got upon the expedition on the other side of the Peninsula; and
he explained some of the reasons for his instructions there. He was
rather stiff with the lumbago; but in high spirits. He said that the
Spanish Generals thought the reason the French beat them was, that they
had no good cavalry; and that whenever they had our cavalry with them,
they wanted to fight. This was what he was anxious to prevent, “For,”
said he “our cavalry never gained a battle yet. When the infantry
have beaten the French, then the cavalry, if they can act, make the
whole complete, and do wonders; but they never yet beat the French
themselves.”

Talking on this subject another day, Lord Wellington and all the
officers present seemed to agree that a cavalry regiment did not
know what real infantry fire was. They talk of a sharp carbine fire,
which kills ten or twenty horses and half as many men; but they could
not exist ten minutes in a fire to which our infantry battalions
are at times exposed; they would be annihilated if they did not go
threes about very quick indeed. Even in the infantry at times it was
said, that in less than half an hour every mounted officer would be
dismounted, from his own or his horse’s wounds, and perhaps not six men
in a company out of sixty, would remain.

_Head-Quarters, Lezaca, August 25th._—We are as quiet here as at
Frenada. Desertion is terrible. I think, however, Lord Wellington must
stop it. We have only as yet tried five out of sixteen sent for trial:
they are all sentenced to death, and all shot! This will, I think, at
least have a good effect on our new reinforcements. One of our officers
did an odd thing to stop it; and it answered, or has done so hitherto;
he called his men together and, addressing them, said, “I want no men
who wish to go to the French, and if any now will say they wish to go,
I promise to send them in with a flag of truce.” No one stirred, nor
has any one stirred since; but as to the legality of this plan there
may be a query?

Our great guns have now just begun pounding again at St. Sebastian;
we are to demolish everything this time; but still I fear we shall
scarcely get in easily at last.

As to Pamplona, the reports are, that they are now on half-rations,
and have enough at that rate to last till the 15th of next month. It
is provoking how much they have picked up. They have tried to send out
another batch of inhabitants, but these have been sent in again to help
eat; a hard fate to be made a mere tool for starvation! and I conclude
they will not have the best commons even Pamplona can afford.

_Head-Quarters, Lezaca, August 28th, 1813._—Here we are still quiet,
and very busy; and Courts-martial all at work. In these hills, however,
our Provosts are not the most secure; and common precautions will not
do against men who know they are probably to be shot in a day or two.
A Court was adjourned till yesterday morning, for a witness for the
prisoner, and in the night he was off. Another man under sentence of
death, near Maya, and three other deserters just taken as they were
going over to the French, were put foolishly under the care of a man
and a lad armed to convoy them a little way. They rose on them, took
away their arms, and went over with them to the French post. I am sorry
to say, however, that we have still enough to hang.

The French deserter, the talkative Lieutenant-Colonel, is here again,
and has one great merit—he induces Lord Wellington to talk and discuss
his old battles, &c., when this man was on the other side. Thus from
the two I pick up a little of the cause of things. Yesterday the
conversation turned upon the retreat of the last year. The Frenchman
said that all their officers blamed Soult for his conduct after
crossing the Tormes; that he was in fact nearer Rodrigo than our army,
and might and ought to have cut us off, if he had pushed on. Lord
Wellington observed, “I fully expected to find him on the high road:
and I ordered nothing at all that way in consequence on the first day;
afterwards, when I found he was not there, I took to it.” The French
officer replied, “From the rain and hazy weather, and bad roads,
Soult was puzzled and afraid—he did not in the least know the English
plans. He heard of some troops, and did not know whether they were a
rear-guard or the main army, and so on; but when he found your lordship
making a stand collected at St. Munos, he said, ‘_Ah que j’avois
tort_.’” He then tried to pump Lord Wellington, and said, “If he had
cut you off, perhaps you would have recrossed the Tormes, and made
for the Benevente road? but you would have suffered much.” Upon which
Lord Wellington observed, “No, I certainly should have done no such
thing: that would have been ruin. But if you must know what I should
have done, I should have done that which many thought I ought to have
done as it was—I should have fought, and trusted to the bravery of my
troops to get me out of the scrape.” The Frenchman then said, “No one
ought to have blamed you for not doing that, unless it were absolutely
necessary, for the French were twenty thousand stronger than you were,
and their cavalry was then very numerous, and in the highest order.”

These conversations give a value to the Frenchman which he does not
otherwise possess, though a clever man. I found Lord Wellington the day
before yesterday busy with all the Spanish staff and General Murray,
with a dozen great Spanish drawings and plans of the mountains about
them; they were comparing our several labours together. The Spanish
staff draughtsmen have a good character. I should like to have been
called in, but I was only waiting an audience at the other end of the
room.

Yesterday, Lord Wellington went off on horseback over the mountains,
for Irun; he then went on to St. Sebastian, and was not back here till
nearly nine at night. They are pounding away at that fortress from
fifty-one pieces of ordnance, mortars and all; but nothing is done yet.

_The 29th._—No news yet. Still battering away at St. Sebastian. We
had a ridiculous event here yesterday: an enraged bull—belonging,
I believe, to the Commissariat—broke into the quarters of the
Commissary-general, Sir Robert Kennedy, and contriving to get to the
room of the clerks, put all to flight, one this way, the other that, in
the greatest alarm. All were dispersed in an instant. After upsetting
a few things, the bull retreated into the garden, and jumped over the
wall, without doing any serious mischief. The joke was, that the owner
had contrived this, on account of nonpayment of his demand.

Our fifty-one battering pieces have now been at work three days, and
have laid open one end of the entire wall of the town of St. Sebastian,
and to-morrow is talked of for the assault. Two days since the garrison
made another sortie, and carried off a few men; and, upon the whole,
I think people are not quite satisfied with the conduct of the fifth
division, who are employed. Ever since our retreat and the former
sortie, they seem to have had in some measure a sort of panic. We have
had a general Court-martial on Major O’Halloran, for neglect on that
occasion as field-officer in the trenches; but he is acquitted on the
ground that the orders he gave were correct, but that he was disobeyed.
The facts on the trial were these:—

A sortie was expected all the night, and peculiar precautions were
taken accordingly; every fifth man sentry, &c., by order of the
General. All was quiet until an hour after daybreak and more; then a
Captain Canvers, of the Portuguese service, who has since shot himself,
seems to have suffered the sentries to enter the trenches, and rest on
their arms for security, without orders, or rather against orders. At
a little after six out came the French, and another Portuguese captain
seems to have misunderstood his orders, and did not suffer his sentries
to fire instantly, thinking that he had no orders to this effect; he
was made prisoner. In short, the consequence was, that about fifty
French were in an instant in the trenches, when half-a-dozen of our
people fired and fell back. The Portuguese were mostly in a panic, and
they were nearly six hundred out of seven hundred then employed. They
did once attempt to get up the bank and form, but the sandy ground
gave way, and in they went again. This increased the confusion, and
no exertions of our or their officers could rally the men, until they
had been quite driven out of the trenches, and pursued to the little
village in ruins under the convent. There Major O’Halloran rallied
them, and, with a fresh English working-party just arrived, drove the
French back again to the town, but in the meantime many prisoners were
made.

Lord Wellington himself, I think, is not pleased with the fifth
division; and, as some proof of this, has ordered three hundred of the
first division, one hundred and fifty of the light, one hundred and
fifty of the fourth, and, I believe, one hundred and fifty of the third
(of each of which one-third are to be of the Portuguese regiments),
to march to-day to assist in forming the storming-party to-morrow.
This is a cut at the fifth; and these men are all volunteers, and the
orders are to send men who, by their cool courage and good conduct,
will be likely to succeed. In a measure the success of this will depend
on these qualities. The fifth division ought now to volunteer, trying
first alone, I think.

There was nothing but confusion in the two divisions here last
night, (the light and fourth,) from the eagerness of the officers to
volunteer, and the difficulty of determining who were to be refused and
who allowed to go and run their heads into a hole in the wall, full
of fire and danger! Major Napier was here quite in misery, because,
though he had volunteered first, Lieutenant-colonel Hunt of the 52nd,
his superior officer, insisted on his right to go. The latter said that
Napier had been in the breach at Badajoz, and he had a fair claim to go
now. So it is among the subalterns; ten have volunteered where two are
to be accepted. Hunt, being Lieutenant-colonel, has nothing but honour
to look to; as to promotion, he is past that. The men say that they
don’t know what they are to do, but they are ready to go anywhere.

I fear we shall find the French have run a ditch across and a new
second wall behind those we have destroyed, and that we may have tough
work yet. The shells, however, which are sent every ten minutes into
the castle, and shake the dust out of its roof in a fine style, must
make the place rather too warm to hold just now; and I heartily wish it
would induce them to give in before all the bloodshed begins. They fire
now but very little. Lord Wellington and every one is gone over to St.
Sebastian to-day; and having nothing to do, I have made up my mind to
be off also.

_August 30th._—I was on the point of setting out when I heard that the
storming was put off a day; as the French are in motion, and making
pretence at least to relieve St. Sebastian, and as the fourth division
marched accordingly this morning, and head-quarters may, therefore,
suddenly be off, I determined to be quiet here, especially as I do not
feel quite well. Lord Wellington came home at nine o’clock, and was off
again before eight this morning. We remain here much in the dark, of
course, when he is away. General Murray stays here to protect us with
the light division in our front.




CHAPTER XIII.

 The Author taken Prisoner—Kind Treatment by the French General—Life of
 a Prisoner—Release—Details of the Author’s Captivity—Curious Scene at
 General Pakenham’s—A Basque Squire.


  Bayonne, September 5, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

When you told me, some time since, that you expected to hear from me
from this place, I never expected to have realized in this way your
prediction. But as the French all tell me with a shrug, “_c’est le sort
de la guerre, Monsieur_,” I must submit to as great a piece of ill
luck as generally falls to a poor man, “_dans le meilleur des mondes
possibles_.”

On the evening of the 30th August I was, as I mentioned to you in my
last, stopped from going over to see the storming of St. Sebastian the
next morning by the general report that the French were in motion;
that an attack was expected on our line at daylight, to relieve that
place if possible, and that therefore head-quarters would probably
move. So it turned out; at six we heard that the French had all crossed
the Bidassoa, and were moving on. The baggage was all ordered half a
league up the mountain Yangi, there to wait orders either to proceed
further for security if we were pressed, or to return if we repulsed
the attack. At seven, Lord Wellington, &c., were off. By nine the town
was nearly cleared, and every one in motion.

Nothing can be more stupid than thus waiting a whole day standing with
the mules and baggage, to hear the result, without a creature to talk
to, and knowing nothing that is passing. One of the officers advised me
to go up the hill just above Lezaca, to observe a little what was doing
near, assuring me that it was quite safe. Just afterwards Major Canning
returned from Lord Wellington with orders, and said he would show us
the way to the hill and then go on. I mounted, and set out with Mr.
Henry, having sent off my baggage. Mr. Booth, the principal Commissary
of Accounts, Mr. Jesse, his assistant, and Captain Hook, the officer
who takes all the quarters for every one at head-quarters, determined
to join the party. When we had got a little way Major Canning remarked
that by going up the first hill we should see sooner what was doing,
and could then return to Lezaca, or stay and proceed as was found
advisable, and that we should be thus sure of not being cut off from
Yangi. This we accordingly did. When half up the hill we observed two
battalions resting under arms quietly on the top and having examined
them some time with our glasses, thought that they were Spanish; but
not being certain (for they are so alike as scarcely to be known at
fifty yards distance), we thought it advisable to keep to our left,
towards the rear of some of our own red-coats, whom we saw engaged with
the French in a wood further on. We did this, and then waited to see
whether those two battalions advanced and fired or not, to enable us to
be sure, by their fire, to which party they belonged. As they remained
at rest, we could not determine this point; and as there was much fern
and wood, and we were only about a short half mile off, we determined,
for fear of a surprise, to go back, and follow up the mountain Major
Canning’s road, where we saw our own red-coats. We did this, and just
before we ascended, ascertained that our people were still there; we
trusted firmly to their not giving ground, as the French were already
much advanced, and this road was the common communication of all our
army through Lezaca to Oyarzun and San Sebastian.

About half-way up the hill, or mountain, is a wood, from whence we
got a peep at the two battalions. We saw them moving towards the
English position, but not firing, and Captain Hook remarked that there
were several red-coats amongst them, so they must be friends; but
that, however, about a hundred yards further on we should be able to
ascertain, and if it were not so we must return.

At the end of the hundred yards the woods ceased, and the two roads
up the mountain joined, when to our great astonishment, just as we
came one way to the place of junction, two French battalions came up
the other, and we found ourselves within twenty yards of each other;
Mr. Jesse was still nearer. I heard a cry of _qui vive_, which put an
end to all doubt as to who they were; and after a sort of short pause
and drawback in the head of the French column, thinking, I believe,
that they were the head of an allied column, several moved towards us,
and two levelled at us. Mr. Jesse, the nearest of us, dismounted, and
surrendered instantly. The other two jumped off their horses, and,
as the side of the mountain was very steep, and no one could well
ride after them, they ran down, and the French having incumbrances,
I believe they escaped. I now think that was the best plan I could
have adopted. At the moment, however, as I was in the road, and nearer
to the French than they were, I determined to turn about, and try my
horse down the road again the way we came, thinking it a great chance
that the only two who levelled, and seemed ready to fire, would hit
me. They never fired, but some pursued, and one or two officers on
horseback. I galloped down, however, nearly a mile, at the risk of my
neck. The road then got steeper, and I looked round to see if any one
was nearly up behind me. I pulled up a little, as I found they had not
reached my servant, who was above a hundred yards behind me; but, on
turning round again to proceed, I saw, in the narrow part of the road
just before me, where the descent was steep both ways, one up and one
down, six Frenchmen; two in the road, two on each side, all ready with
their pieces up to their shoulders. Upon this I pulled up and we had a
parley. On my pulling up, and addressing them in French, they seemed in
doubt, and spoke some bad French. I then looked about me, to see what
chance remained, but seeing that they all levelled again, and cried out
“_prisonnier_,” the risk was then too great for the remotest chance of
escape, so I dismounted, and they instantly took down their pieces,
and ran up. In a moment, my two horses, and cloak, pistols, sword,
telescope, handkerchief, were all gone.

Having received some money just before, and fearing some theft from
my Portuguese servants, I had about fifteen doubloons about me, as
being the most secure place. One-half they found instantly, and were
so pleased that they scarcely searched more, except to take my knife,
comb, &c. I then told them that I was no General, having heard a cry
before from the battalion of “_voilà le Général_;” that I was only a
civil officer, a non-combatant; but that I had some more money, and if
they would then, when they had got everything from me, release me, I
would tell them where it was, and give it to them. This I did, thinking
as they had got so much booty, they would perhaps wish to keep it
secret, not to be called upon to refund any part, and that therefore
they would not be sorry to say that I had escaped, and let me go that I
might not have to tell the story.

They promised to do this, so I produced the rest, and at the same time
contrived to give my watch a twist up above my waistcoat, that when
they felt for it, they found nothing, and by this means I contrived to
save that.

The other speculation did not answer so well, for I believe they still
took me for a General. They would not release me, and I was carried
into the battalion, and then to General D’Armagnac (I believe), who was
behind their attacking troops. They were leading me into the fire of
our own people, when an officer ordered them up on one side. I said it
would be very hard to get me killed by our own fire, and that they had
better let me run across, and shoot at me themselves. Upon the whole
they all behaved very civilly, and without any violence. I there met
Mr. Jesse. I told our story to General D’Armagnac. He said we were very
unlucky, and seemed good-humoured, ordering the captors to give me back
two doubloons. After telling his aide-de-camp to take us to General
Clausel, who commanded in chief there, and then to the rear, he said he
would apply to get us exchanged (as that was now the fashion, and not
to release civilians gratis) for two civil officers, friends of his, in
England: and then lending me one of his horses to ride back upon, took
leave of us. The soldiers told me that he had bought my horse for a
trifle, and thus ended the fate of poor Blackey!

The whole was the work of half an hour. Whilst we were in the wood, our
people had just given way across this road to superior numbers, and
had thus left us exposed to this misfortune in a place where every one
had passed in safety all the morning, and so again from an hour later
all the evening. A little sooner, or a little later, we should not
have been caught above a league within our lines of the morning. Such,
however, was our fate!

We were then taken to General Clausel, and were instantly ordered
back to his former head-quarters. There was then a great outcry for
ammunition, which delayed the French some time, and, as they said,
saved our last position on this hill. I found that they did not,
however, know the country well, and tried to pump me as to what was
beyond, both as to men and mountains, &c. I always pleaded ignorance
as a civilian. They had contrived to get four small two-pounder field
mountain-pieces up this difficult ascent, and kept them constantly in
use, asking me why we, who were so ingenious, did not adopt the same
practice? I said they had taught us the art of war, and I believe
they had found their scholars had made very rapid progress, so that
if these guns were really worth the labour, I had no doubt we should
soon have some, but that such things were not to be found ready-made
in the mountains, therefore they must wait a little. I soon gave up my
horse to a wounded man, as they abounded on the road, and we descended
and crossed the Bidassoa by the ford below the bridge, as I found our
light division were still maintaining their ground near the bridge at
Bera (or Vera,) and had kept the other side of the valley all the time
secure.

A tremendous storm then began. We took shelter till five o’clock in a
hovel, but at last proceeded, the storm continuing, up the mountain of
La Rhüne, to the French position, and head-quarters—those of General
Clausel. Mons. d’Arnot, an officer belonging to the latter, was
extremely kind to us. He said our best prospects were not to stay and
sleep in the hovel, where we should be starved and crowded by wounded,
&c., but to go with him to the General’s hut on the top, where, if
anything was to be had, we should have it. He also lent me a horse part
of the way up again. We passed the French position to the entrenched
camp, where amongst a variety of huts of boughs, earth, &c., were three
rather better than the rest, consisting of a few feather-edged boards
at top, and earth and fern on the sides and bottom. These were for
Generals Clausel, Taupin, and D’Armagnac, for the attendants, &c. There
were only two places where it had not rained in considerably, and we
were wet through, without a change.

The General’s canteens were unpacked, and the aide-de-camp said, “If
he returns, you will have some dinner, if not, we have some bread.”
That and sour wine was all our fare for the night, and we laid down in
our wet clothes on the ground. They first gave us up General Clausel’s
dry inner chamber, but on a notice coming that he was returning, we
were removed to the attendants’ hut. There I passed a sleepless night,
our party being the two aides-de-camp, a colonel, a major, five of the
gens-d’armes, or police corps, Henry, the General’s cook, a friend, two
or three attendants, and about four wounded men who staggered in, and
lay in the middle. The horses were all tied to the boards, out in the
storm all night, and making a noise against our heads. The wounded were
groaning; then came an oath from an officer against them as cowards,
and asking how that noise made them any better? At last came a poor
creature with a violent colic; this last filled us as close as we could
lie, and constant quarrels ensued between those near the doors, or
those who came every minute for shelter from the storm and rain, and to
get help for their wounds. The lightning gave us a glimpse of the scene
every five minutes. Now and then an observation escaped as to the rain
swelling the Bidassoa, &c.

At three o’clock the firing began again close to us; at four the drum
beat to arms, and at six we got a little cold meat and bread and
wine, after the General’s breakfast, and about seven we were marched
towards St. Jean de Luz with a party of prisoners and deserters.
Amongst them were several of the Chasseurs Britanniques, who, with
their red jackets, had, by deserting to the enemy, and then advancing
with them, contributed to our being surprised and taken. We stopped
half an hour in the wood below, and got a little brandy from the post
of the gens-d’armes in the rear, and arrived at St. Jean de Luz about
one o’clock,—three leagues. This was Marshal Soult’s head-quarters.
Thither we went, and merely saw him in a crowd. We were then taken to
Count Gazan, and then to the Commandant of the Police, &c. We were
quartered at an inn with some gens-d’armes in the outer room; got
some supper at seven at General Gazan’s, to whom I mentioned what had
passed at Victoria; was allowed to write to head-quarters to let them
know where we were, and to ask for money, clothes, &c., if we were not
exchanged, and we were allowed to stay till next day to wait for an
answer.

No answer came. It was intended to give us horses to carry us to
Bayonne the next evening, but all were engaged in carrying away wounded
men, including some troops of cavalry, so we marched on foot about
three o’clock, five under a guard. We were delayed by the bad walking
of some deserters, and were then again caught the last half league in a
most furious thunder-storm, which soaked us through in five minutes. At
nine, we reached this place, three long leagues, and were taken to the
Nouveau Fort. The Marechal-de-logis gave us a bed between us, on the
ground, in a room with two midshipmen and a sick and wounded officer of
the 34th; and having got some bread and cheese, we went to bed, with a
dry shirt which he lent us. I have ever since had rheumatism. We occupy
a round tower here, and our soldier-prisoners are in the court below;
the Spaniards are above, and some sailors in confinement, as their
dress would enable them to escape. The two midshipmen were exchanged
the next day. From Mr. Babou, the banker, a most liberal and generous
man, we have got money, and therefore now go on well. How officers
manage who have no money I cannot guess. Only three of the numbers the
banker has given money to have had their bills protested, and he says
that if it is poverty he shall never complain, otherwise he should
wish to be paid. If I get back I have undertaken to speak to Lord
Wellington on the subject.

_13th September, Mont de Marsan._—On the 8th I received a most kind
letter from Lord Wellington in his own handwriting, as to an old
friend, telling me that he authorized me to tell the Duke of Dalmatia
he would send back for me any one named by him, to be given in
exchange.[6] I had just before received a notice to set out next day
for Verdun. I went with a gens-d’armes instantly to the General of
Division, Baron d’Huilliers, and to the Commandant-general Sol. To
them I told my story, and showed my letter. They advised me to send
my letter to the Duke of Dalmatia, and engaged to detain me until the
answer came back. I also asked to write to the Duke myself. The other
officers, who had already been to Moulins (where General Paget is),
wrote also for leave to go to a nearer depôt than Verdun, on account of
the expense they had been put to; they were of the 34th regiment, and
they also were allowed to wait the answer. The other five officers of
the 60th were dispatched with a _feuille de route_ for Verdun. On the
9th, about seven o’clock, I went to the play with two Dutch officers
of the 130th regiment, one of whom was with me when at La Rhüne in the
camp, and had been all along very civil, and had called upon us and
volunteered going with us to the theatre. I did this in order to pass
the anxious time away till the answer to my letter came. The play I did
not much enjoy, as you may suppose, though our two gens-d’armes were
very well behaved, and went into a box opposite, leaving us with the
officers.

At nine o’clock came an account that my letter was arrived. I ran home
and eagerly opened it. I found it was a very civil answer from Count
Gazan, full of good wishes, &c., but stating Marshal Soult had never
had any proposal made to him for my exchange by our General, or that
it would be done instantly; again assuring me that if any such should
arrive I should be instantly sent back, and that in the mean time
orders should be given that none of us should for the present cross the
Garonne.

The next morning (the 10th) came an order to be at Mont de Marsan in
four days, about seventy miles off, the chief town of the department
of Landes, and there to wait orders. We also got a letter to give to
the commandant there, to halt the others there, or to bring them back
if they had passed that depôt. I prepared a letter to Lord Wellington,
encouraged by his letter to me (I had before only written to the
Adjutant-general), and stated to him how matters stood, thanking him
for his kindness. This I enclosed in one to Count Gazan, in French, and
begged him, as a last favour, to forward it by a flag of truce through
the lines to Lord Wellington. I then hastily bought a few necessaries,
and engaged with the other five officers to be conveyed to this place
(Mont de Marsan) in a large coach with six mules, Henry in the
driver’s tilt-cart in front. When I went home to pay our gens-d’arme,
he was most unreasonable and broke his agreement; we would not pay him,
so he locked us in. I said I had the General’s orders to march at one
o’clock, and called upon him at his peril to release us, and to go with
us to settle the matter. He would not, but released us, and would then
take nothing. I then went off to General Sol, and told my story. He
sent for the man in a hurry, but as he did not come instantly, asked
what we proposed to give. I told him. He said if we were willing to
pay that sum (which was according to our agreement), “Very well, leave
it here, and you may set out; had you left it to me I should not have
made you pay nearly so much.” Accordingly at two o’clock we started,
and got, in four hours and a half, over four leagues of the country,
or sixteen miles, to a small village on the river side, where we dined
and slept. Our route was through Dax, but we had leave, as that was
knee-deep in sand, to pass by Orthes.

Next morning (the 11th) at four o’clock, we proceeded to Orthes to
breakfast, and got there, six leagues, by eleven o’clock. There we sat
down to a _déjeuner à la fourchette_. We then, at one, started again,
and before six got to Hugemont, where we dined again, and slept four
leagues further.

On the 12th, at seven, we set out for this place, through the heavy
sand in some places, and over a ruinous bridge; we did not arrive
until twelve. All along the road we found everything in a state of
the greatest activity for the supplies of the army—everything in
requisition. I longed to have some of the Spaniards with me, to teach
them what was to be done in this way. The love of coffee is much
diminished, and the lower classes are excluded from it by the high
price of that and of sugar. Other things are cheap, and we got our
dinner, beds, and all for five francs a-head each night. Our mules
were very fine, and each had a name, which we soon learnt, by the
constant dialogues of the old driver and his boy, one of the two latter
always running by the mule’s side, as there were no reins to the other
four in front.

We met with every attention and civility here, were in time to stop
the other five officers, and we are now all in officers’ billets, the
same as the French officers themselves, and have received for our days
of march the same as they do on the march,—a captain three francs, a
colonel five, a lieutenant two and a half, &c. I am at the house of the
principal engineer (from Paris) of some works going on here, Monsieur
de Beaudre. Great improvements are nearly completed in this little
departmental capital: a new wide stone bridge of easy access, instead
of an old narrow Gothic one, and an open space cleared around it; a
new Prefect’s palace, with departmental offices, &c. A new chapel, new
official houses, and much private repairs, are in progress: this is
very unlike Spain. I breakfast alone in my billet on my tea, which I
have discovered here, as the others have only meat and wine. I dine
with the rest—and to please them, but against my will—at six; we have
a good cheap dinner at four francs each. The poor officers do not know
what to do with themselves. I immediately applied to my patron for
books, and he gave me the range of several. After a play or two of
Racine’s, and a few of the _Contes Moraux_, I have attacked La Harpe’s
_Cours de Littérature_ at the Lycée, and am as yet well pleased; I walk
as much as my rheumatism permits. Thus goes time; but I suffer much—I
feel as if I had been broken on the wheel.

Poor Henry is more bewildered than ever, but flatters himself that he
shall soon learn French. If he could copy the activity around him, he
would be wonderfully improved. We are here full of the _Moniteur’s_
victories, and the little check the French appear to have sustained
latterly under Vandamme, in Bohemia.

Before I go to bed I get my cup of coffee, a small one indeed, for my
ten sous, at the café, read the news, and then retire home. This place
is very full, from the wounded being in part here; from the exertions
making as to supplies, for we have two hundred cars here in a day; from
some artillery drivers being here, and from the constant passage of
everything to and from the army. The Commandant has been particularly
obliging. We have a mile round the town to walk in, and are never
troubled by any one.

_20th September, Mont de Marsan._—Alas, poor Seymour!—[Hiatus.]

On the 21st, at Mont de Marsan, arrived my mules, pony, and baggage:
no letter. I gave up all prospect of exchange, and was stupidly ill
and tranquil. The lady where I was quartered, was very attentive and
good-natured, and I had begun my literary course, and had made up my
mind to my fate. On the 22nd, however, at nine, came an order for us
all to set out at eleven for Bayonne again. We did so, had some little
misfortunes, overturns, &c., but got to the Chateau Vieux, at Bayonne,
on the 25th September, and had the honour of being confined in the same
room where Palafox had been for three months, and all the great Spanish
prisoners—the Duke of Gravina, Prince of Castel Franco, &c. We staid
there, seven of us, until the 1st, in anxious suspense—the room too
noisy for reading, and I too ill for it, so we played whist, and killed
time in that way quietly. At five o’clock on the 1st, when at dinner,
came an order for Mr. Jesse and myself only to set out at six for St.
Jean de Luz, in the dark. We got a coach at six, the only vehicle to be
had; and I packed all my baggage, and mounting Henry and my Portuguese
on the mules, we arrived all at eleven at night, at the Police at
St. Jean de Luz. We were sent to an inn for the night, then the next
morning (the 2nd) taken to Count de Gazan, at ten. I found him very
civil, had much conversation with him for an hour, breakfasted with
him, and at twelve we were all packed off with an escort for Endaye, to
be sent over here.

The gens-d’armes took us first to Count Reille, whose quarters were
half a league on from St. Jean de Luz. He sent us on to General
Maucale, who was half a league further. He gave us a fresh escort, and
sent us round the end of the lines, down to the water side at Endaye.
All very civil in every way. At Endaye, about four, we were with some
danger sent across, mules and all, in a little flat-bottomed boat to
Fontarabia to the Spanish outpost. There also much civility, but much
delay. At five we got to Irun with a Spanish escort, were taken to
General Frere, found him at dinner—very civil. I then went to General
Stopford; he was at dinner. No quarters to be had, so I sent my baggage
on here, but got some dinner. At eight, came on in the rain here: found
General Graham; very kind. He gave me a bed in his quarters, and some
tea. Breakfasted here this morning; baggage gone to Lezaca; I am to go
there in half an hour. I have grown very thin, and am in very crazy
condition, but must get patched up at head-quarters, and go to work
again. This last month has been like a dream. I hear there has been
much difficulty about my exchange; but it is now over, I am happy to
say, and Lord Wellington has been very kind. I hope to do something for
my fellow prisoners when I see him.

Count Gazan asked me to get for him the following print or caricature
to complete a collection he has. Will you do your best to find it, and
send it out if possible. The Count’s description:—

“Une caricature qui a paru il y a douze ou quinze ans à Londres, au
sujet d’un voyage que fit dans cette capitale Le Grand Rabbin Juif
d’Hollande, dans l’intention de reformer la manière de vivre des Juifs
de Londres dans ce temps là.”

[N.B.—It was not possible to trace or find this print, though every
inquiry was made.]

_Oyarzun, in Spain, at the Head-Quarters of General Graham, October
4th, 1813._—Once more again at liberty, as far as my rheumatic limbs
will permit: the will, at least, is free, and I hope soon my arms and
legs will be so likewise.

_Lezaca, Head-Quarters, October 7th, 1813._—To-day I have a little
leisure, as every one is engaged out, and a grand attack is to be made
on the French position to drive them quite off that mountain, La Rhüne.
It will be, I fear, tough work: I dare not go and peep again, even if I
were well enough, so have taken up this paper. Baggage and all for the
present remain here, only ready to load in case of necessity.

Lord Wellington had much difficulty in procuring my exchange, and has
been very kind; indeed every one here has appeared very much interested
in my return, and “my French value.” The Commissary-at-War was treated
here like a prince, to procure me every favour, when he went back, by
his representations. In short, if my pain goes off, I shall not regret
my other losses, which amount to about 230_l._, but shall feel myself a
very fortunate man upon the whole.

Monsieur Babedac, the banker at Bayonne, is most liberal and kind
to all the English officers taken. I hear a hundred have had money
from him; only five bills of 110_l._ in the whole have been sent back
unpaid; this, I hope, Lord Wellington will pay, though the banker said,
if distress occasioned it, he did not wish it. Nearly all my baggage is
now collected safely, through the kindness of friends. I have been, as
you may suppose, much questioned by Lord Wellington, &c., and many now
seem to envy me the trip, as it has ended so well.

I will now fill up my former French letter a little more freely.
On the morning following, the scene at the French head-quarters at
St. Jean de Luz was very curious. First came rumbling back from the
attack seven brigades, or about forty-two pieces of ordnance, with
the ammunition-waggons, about a hundred, looking very gloomy, almost
all drawn by mules, and generally in good condition. You will here
observe how soon the French come about again. Then came the pontoon
bridge, and, lastly, perpetual strings of cars, with the wounded; the
poor country people shaking their heads and lamenting all this misery,
all wishing for peace, and all saying that it was their Emperor who
prevented it, from his unbounded ambition. This was the talk of the
officers, and of all. They said the Allies, if successful, would rise
in their demands; that Bonaparte was too proud to yield, and peace
would only be further off than ever. This was the conversation, when
they heard of the check in the North.

When the account of the first victory of the 25th came (which by-the-by
was the first information received as to the quarrel with Austria),
they were all in high spirits, and exclaimed—“_Ah! le pauvre beau
Père, il sera chassé_,” and “Peace from the North will either give us
peace here also, or enable us to drive you all back to Portugal with
the reinforcements which we shall obtain.” Things changed afterwards,
and three weeks after the bulletin of the 25th, &c., and only the day
before the bad bulletin came out, a _Te Deum_ had been ordered at
Bayonne, and a hundred _coups de canon_ for the first victory! The
people almost laughed at this themselves, though very miserable.

At the inn at St. Jean de Luz, where I was billeted with a gens-d’arme
at the door, we were allowed to dine with the officers, who were all
returning starved from the lines to get a belly full. I here met with
men of a superior description, Colonels of the Guards, Chief Medical
Officers, Post-Masters, Commissaries, &c. They were civil, some of them
gentleman-like and free in their conversation, much irritated at having
been beaten by the Spaniards, which, with a tirade about numbers, they
admitted to be the fact. Monsieur D’Arnot, a young man attached to
General Clausel, and a young Dutch officer, gay, tall, and handsome,
were the most attentive to us, and without any object, which most of
the others had in view, to get a wife back, or a lost portmanteau,
their letters, &c.

The people all told us that had we been quite prepared to advance into
France at first, Bayonne was open, and without guns, dismantled; that
we might have walked in and gone on to Bordeaux. I believe much of
this, but not entirely, and our men were nearly as much harassed as the
French. The French troops in the first confusion behaved very ill, and
plundered the inhabitants, throwing away their arms, and absolutely
flying. Marshal Soult’s orders on this subject were stronger even than
Lord Wellington’s were here. The inhabitants generally said that they
would remain quiet if the English came alone, and would leave the
armies to settle it, for all they wanted was peace; but as they knew
how the Portuguese and Spaniards had been treated, and what they might
therefore expect in return, they must all fly if the Allies came with
us.

Count Gazan is elderly, and I believe quite sick of his trade; he said
he wanted peace, and to go to his villa at Nice for life after twenty
years’ war. He gave me an invitation there. In general all the officers
and men were attentive and civil; some looked sulky, but most noticed
us by touching the cap, which is more than we do by them here. In a
dispute which Captain S—— had with a stupid old fool, the _Commandant
de la Place_ at Bayonne, General Sol, the French officers present
seeing that the General was in the wrong (as he afterwards admitted),
all bowed to Captain S——, and the General’s own sentinel carried arms
to him as he went out. This is flattering. The curiosity is very great
about Lord Wellington, as one of the great men of the age.

From the questions put to me when taken, about the grand position,
and on the way to St. Sebastian, I am sure that the French had a very
imperfect notion of the exact state of that part of the mountains. My
being a civilian was my excuse for giving them no information. Their
loss in getting back again would have been greatly increased, had
they got on to the next hill. As it was, from the river swelling, and
the men not being able to cross the ford at which I passed, but being
obliged to go round by Vera bridge, which was under our fire, the loss
was very severe. Had I not been put across early I should have had that
fire to pass through with them.

The country all the way to Bordeaux is barren and unproductive; mostly
sandy heath with vines, and a few meadows near the stream. I saw no
corn, only the Indian corn, and that much less luxuriant than here,
and with very little head of green for forage. The consequence is,
the French provisions and forage come from an immense distance, and
the supplies are very difficult to procure; the exertions, however,
are in proportion, and very unlike those in Spain of the Spaniards.
Everything, for two hundred miles and more round, is in requisition,
all the corn taken, and only _bons_ given in return; wine the same; hay
the same; every merchant’s car in the town, and all the country cars
with oxen at work for the public. The districts off the roads send in
to the depôts on the high roads; and from thence the corn, &c., is
forwarded to the army, to the depôts at Bayonne, &c. The hay for the
staff horses and cavalry comes, as Gazan told me himself, one hundred
leagues, that is, nearly three or four hundred miles, from above
Toulouse, &c., partly by water, but much by land. The people now feel
for the first time what it is to supply their own army in their own
country, and the grievance is no small one.

The army have had a half month’s pay; twenty months are due. The
prospect of payment of the _bons_ for the supplies is very remote
indeed, and yet though they all grumble they act with zeal and spirit,
and I still think, with the feelings of Frenchmen, would all unite
against invasion. In spite of all this, things in general are still
comparatively cheap; dear to Frenchmen, as they say exorbitant—to us
reasonable, except colonial produce: bread about 4 sous a pound, or
2_d._ English; and good meat about 8_d._ English retailed; vegetables
and fruit very cheap; wine equally so; oats and hay tolerably cheap;
even as I fed my animals (three) at the inns for the day for about 12
or 14 livres travelling, three feeds of corn—small ones, to each—about
6 livres, or, as I generally gave them, 8 livres. Hay about 6 or 7
livres and good—cheaper when I bought the articles at Mont de Marsan. A
good dinner at the inns, with a bottle of light wine, about 5_s._ each.
This sometimes also covered the beds where we slept. Tea only to be had
by ounces at a time as medicine; coffee, very dear; sugar (brown), from
4_s._ 6_d._ to 6_s._; white sugar, 7_s._ the pound.

The consequence has been, in a great measure, to put an end to the
great use of coffee: it is now a luxury for the rich, and even they
generally breakfast _à la fourchette_, and drink little of it. Of
_Syrope de raisin_, I bought a basin-full for about 9_d._ This is a
sort of vinous treacle, and gives a taste to tea as if it were taken
from a dirty wine-glass. The _betterave_ sugar was to be had sometimes
at Bayonne, but I did not meet with any. On some bad sugar being
brought to him one day, a French Lieutenant-Colonel, by way of abuse,
called it _betterave_, and said, it was only from some small sticks
being in it, as really he had seen _betterave_ sugar as good as any
other: they still, however, give 6_s._ a-pound for brown island sugar.

The Chateau-Neuf, at Bayonne, was just like an English sponging-house.
With money we were very well off. The man, however, cheated us; we
quarrelled; I got redress from the General; and on my return got into
the Chateau-Vieux instead, an old English castle, where we were in the
same room where Palafox had been; the Commandant, a gentleman-like
man—his wife a troublesome skinflint. The Commandant at Mont de Marsan
was uncommonly liberal to us all, so were the people there; equally
so, my patron and patrona; the civil engineer, Baron d’Huilliers,
who first commanded at Bayonne, was also civil, but more distant. He
is now gone to Bordeaux, and General Thevenot, the late Commandant
at Vittoria, has succeeded him. Their reports were, that Soult was
going to the North to replace Berthier, who was sick, and Suchet was
to succeed in command here. Count Gazan, however, did not admit this,
but never positively denied it. It was also said, that the Etat Major
would remove to Bordeaux for the winter-quarters. Perhaps the events of
to-day may hasten this. The firing is brisk all this time. We met three
cavalry regiments on the retreat towards Pau and Toulouse for forage;
the horses in fair order, but generally very inferior to ours in size;
the men very fine, which was so much the worse for the animals that
had to carry them. At one place, near Lain, the depôt of forage was
empty. I met a man running hard with orders, the Major’s messenger; he
was charged to inform the few neighbouring parishes, that unless they
furnished and provided ready at the depôt so many rations of forage
for three days for two squadrons of cavalry who were about to pass by
twelve next day, all fit to move on immediately, the squadrons would be
halted there that day to help themselves in the vicinity.

Small horses and mules were very cheap, as the forage rations were
stopped to the subaltern officers in France, and they all consequently
wanted to sell, and many of the country-people from the requisition
wanted also to sell. Bayonne was declared in a state of siege for the
purposes of police. One order of the police posted up in the Café
Wagram at Bayonne directed, that no politics were to be discussed under
pain of arrest. Out of the town, in the suburbs of St. Esprit, was a
magnificent hotel, quite in the English style; there our party stopped,
but were marched off to the Chateau. The activity exhibited by the
French Commandant about Bayonne has been very great; one hundred and
twenty guns have now been mounted, of one sort or another, instead of
about three. This number has been collected all round the country, and
new works are rising round the place every day. The young conscripts of
the usual levy were being drilled; they were fine young lads of about
seventeen or eighteen; too young for Spain, but who in a short time
would make excellent soldiers. At first they appeared dull and a little
unhappy; but in a few days they became gay like the rest.

The newly-raised thirty thousand for the twenty-four departments for
Spain were not yet out, but are to be out this week. I understood they
will be better men, being taken from the old lists of those who had
previously escaped, some of them twenty-five years old. This grievance
is very great, but the conscripts seem to forget it themselves, and
the old parents can do nothing. It will tell, however, some time or
other, I think; and I hope soon. My patrona told me that her sister’s
husband had been drawn five years since, got off on payment of two
thousand francs, and two francs per day since; he is now married, has
two children, and is still liable to be called upon again. A wish for
peace follows the relation of all these stories.

On the whole I was well treated, and it appears to me that in general
the treatment of prisoners by the French is very good. Officers are
allowed fifty francs a-month to live upon, and on marching, the same
_indemnité_ as the French; 5_s._ a Colonel and Major, 3_s._ a Captain,
and 2_s._ 6_d._ a subaltern. Our being able to obtain money makes all
the difference almost between our treatment and that of the Spanish
officers, whom they dare not trust on their parole, so many having
broken it. The worst treatment I experienced was being marched on
foot from St. Jean de Luz to Bayonne, with our own deserters, after
having been promised a horse, and kept back until we were caught in a
thunder-storm, because these fellows could not or would not march. The
soldiers are like themselves to the last; when marched as prisoners,
they jumped over the fences to get apples. The French guard stared, but
permitted it to be done.

_October 7th, three o’clock._—The officers passing from the front tell
me that all is going on well—that the French have given way almost
everywhere, though they still hang to the high rocks on La Rhüne, near
where I slept on the 31st. They say that the Spaniards have behaved
well, but that the 52nd and second battalion of the 95th have suffered,
while forcing the position through which I was marched in that
thunder-storm. We have no orders to move here at present. The reports
confirm the news that I brought in to Lord Wellington, that Soult has
gone, and that Suchet commands. I know nothing accurately now, however,
as I must not go and peep again for myself.

To return to France, and my dream there (for such it has appeared), I
must give you a notion of a French placeman in a little way, not like
our great sinecurists. My running friend, who carried the message about
the forage, accompanied me side-by-side for a league. The people wished
him joy of his prosperity; I asked him why? He said, “They think that
I am making a fortune, having a place in the hospital; and what do you
suppose it is?—I am the hospital-sexton; I bury all the dead, four
or five in the twenty-four hours, and all at night, digging half the
night. And for what?—for eighteen sous (or ninepence English) a day.
This is not the way to make a fortune, you will allow. My companion
makes a better thing of it: he is always tipsy, and leaves me to dig,
but he always sings as he goes to the grave. The people who know his
voice say, ‘There goes poor silly John!’ and give him a sous.”

Now for a trait of a gens-d’arme—a private in the ranks. We went to
the play at Bayonne with a gens-d’arme, and our friend, the Dutch
officer. On going down to the coffee-room, my companion, Mr. Jesse,
meaning to be generous, but not understanding the method of treating
a revolutionary gens-d’arme, told him to get anything he wished to
drink as we did. Upon which he flew into a rage, said he had drank with
his colonels, majors, captains, and had never been sent out to drink
like a servant before. Our Dutchman was obliged to explain to him, in
order to pacify him, the difference in our service between officers
and privates; said it was once so in France and in Holland, but that
the prejudice was removed there now, though it remained in England. He
then desired him to sit down and drink with us. With difficulty he was
persuaded to do so, and we all knocked our glasses together, and so it
ended amicably. I did not expect this. The military retain, however,
the only remnant of the equality of the Revolution.

The two midshipmen in prison with us amused us much. By mistake, they
were at first put in prison with their men for two days on bread and
water. Afterwards they were lodged in the same room in which I was.
We were five in all at first. They slept in the same bed, and were as
often alternately with their heads where the feet of the others were as
on the pillow. In the open letter they sent to Sir G. Collier, about
their exchange, through the French, they suggested the advisability
of bringing in two gun-boats close to St. Jean de Luz, in order to
prevent communication with St. Sebastian, and further, advised a little
bombardment, &c. The sailors, as they were marched, proposed to the
midshipmen to upset the heavy gens-d’armes by their great jack-boots;
said they would never be able to right themselves again, and that they,
the sailors, might get off. The officers, however, told them that it
would not do; so they were quiet.

_October 8th, 1813, Lezaca._—The result of yesterday’s operations was,
that the French was driven from all the mountainous parts of their
position above Endaye, opposite Fontarabia, and so along, opposite
Irun, to above Bera. I do not know that we have lost above five hundred
men in this part. The French did not fight well, and were not above
twelve or fourteen thousand here. What has passed higher up I know not.
It is said that the sixth division, near Maya, have lost men. I believe
Lord Wellington very prudently stopped short, in this part, near
Orogne, on the road to St. Jean de Luz, not knowing exactly the result
near Maya and Roncesvalles.

It is thought that the French must be in greater strength there, since
they are so weak here. Report says, however, that men have been sent
northwards. Our sixty pieces of artillery were all carried across the
Bidassoa last night, and are established on the main road. We have not
lost many officers. About three hundred prisoners were brought in here,
with eight officers, about ten o’clock this morning. How lucky it was
that my exchange took place before this, or it would have been at least
deferred, or I should have been sent back to the rear.

General Graham has just called on me. He is on his way to England
to-morrow; he had called to see Lord Wellington. He was very civil, and
assures me that my new mare is a good purchase; and so it ought to be
for four hundred dollars. Major Stanhope sold her some time since for a
hundred guineas, to take it back at the same if he returned. He did so.
General Cole gave him a hundred guineas when he was ordered away again;
this looks well.

_Evening._—The French still cling with three companies to a rock in the
midst of La Rhüne mountain, about half a mile from my resting-place,
now six weeks ago. The Spaniards cannot drive them out. Little has been
attempted or done to-day.

The day before yesterday, a curious scene occurred at General
Pakenham’s. A French militia Captain had been taken among the rocks—a
_ci-devant_ regular officer retired, and now apparently an active,
useful man, in organizing the Basque peasantry. He had some regulars
with him, and peasants without uniform. Lord Wellington had succeeded
in frightening him by threatening to hang him for invading Spain with
peasants. He seemed a country mountain squire, and rather simple,
though probably useful. He let fall much against Bonaparte, and told
us many truths. He was told that I had just come from beyond Bayonne,
and made me confirm it by many facts. He was surprised and puzzled,
but believed I had been there as a spy, and never guessed the truth.
Another officer, who knew about eight words of Basque, was passed off
as a proficient in that dialect. The poor militia officer stared, but
swallowed everything as easily as his dinner. His own account of the
chase of him by the Portuguese, the rocks he climbed whilst they fired,
given in the most animated style, was very entertaining. I was almost
sorry this unlucky Basque squire was to leave us next morning for
Passages, to learn a little English farming. He confessed that if he
had been a single man, and had not left a wife and servants with six of
the 6th Light Regiment boarding in his house, he should in these times
have been rather glad than otherwise to get away to England, to avoid
the present troubles. What he wished for most, however, was to return
on parole, as he could then be at home quietly, with an excuse to
enable him to refuse to take any part in what was doing. The arming of
the country being what Lord Wellington wished to prevent, he could not,
of course, favour this man.

_9th October, five o’clock._—The French have given up the rock on La
Rhüne in the night, and have to-day been beaten out of two or three
redoubts; but there has been but little else done, and some say we
shall now be quiet again until Pamplona falls. To-morrow, head-quarters
move to Bera, only half a league. It is a large ruined village. A
letter has been intercepted from Pamplona, stating that the 25th of
this month will be the very latest they can hold out; but we have heard
this already very often. It draws nearer the truth, certainly, every
time. Plunder has begun, and disorder in the French villages, and Lord
Wellington is exceedingly angry. He says, that if officers will not
obey orders, and take care that those under them do so also, they must
go home, for he will not command them here; many of our officers seem
to think that they have nothing to do but to fight.

This place, Lezaca, is grown very unwholesome, like an old
poultry-yard, and the deaths of the inhabitants are very numerous. So,
I think, there is no reason to regret the change.


FOOTNOTES:

[6]

  Head-quarters, September 4, 1813.

  DEAR SIR,

I was very much concerned to hear of your misfortune, which, however,
I don’t doubt will have been alleviated by the Comte Gazan as far as
may have been in his power, as soon as he will have known that to your
humanity in the first instance he owed the safety of his wife.

In former wars a person in your situation would have been considered
a non-combatant, and would have been immediately released; but in
this war, which, on account of the violence of enmity in which it
is conducted, it is to be hoped will be the last for some time at
least, everybody taken is considered a prisoner of war, and none are
released without exchange. There are several persons now in my power
in the same situation with yourself in that respect, that is to say,
non-combatants, according to the known and anciently practised rules
of war; among others, there is the Secretary of the Governor of St.
Sebastian, and I authorize you to tell the Duke of Dalmatia or the
Count Gazan that I will send back any person in exchange for you that
they will point out.

I send you, with this letter, the sum of two hundred dollars, of which
I request you to acknowledge the receipt, and that you will let me know
whether I can do anything else for you.

  Ever yours, most faithfully,

  WELLINGTON.

  _F. Seymour Larpent, Esq._




CHAPTER XIV.

 Picturesque Quarters—Spanish Reverses—A Strange Adventurer—Spanish
 Jealousy—Distribution of the Army—A Pleasant Companion—News from the
 North—Morale of the French Army—The Artillery.


  Head-quarters, Bera or Vera,
  Oct. 15, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

I have now a quarter with a most rural exterior, and a balcony all
along the upper story, hung with vines. The picturesque and the
comfortable, however, are not always combined, for the room is dirty,
and though small has four windows, with only large wooden shutters, and
no fireplace.

It will be but a cold winter residence, and I fear even less
comfortable in fact than my Frenada habitation. The ground-floor is the
stable, the centre devoted to me and to the family, the upper story a
great drying-room. The style of the house is, however, pretty.

Several of the best houses are destroyed, nearly all are gutted
of furniture, chairs, tables, &c., and many deprived of doors and
shutters, for the French camp. The wounded occupy some of the best
houses, and in addition to Lord Wellington’s staff, head-quarters, and
Marshal Beresford’s, who has returned from Lisbon, we have General
Cole’s staff here, and General Alten’s. This place was for two months
a sort of neutral ground between the two armies, so you may guess
that it is a little deranged. It has been populous, and contained a
considerable number of spacious houses, though not magnificent; yet
the room which Lord Wellington occupies is, upon the whole, better than
almost any he has had since he was in Madrid. It is well proportioned,
has clean walls, and is sufficiently capacious to admit comfortably
twenty-five or thirty persons to dinner. Of course he has furnished it
himself, for there are only bare walls. The largest house in the place,
and the best in point of situation, on a pretty knoll above the town,
was made what is called a strong house of, and a regiment of Portuguese
are now in it. The squire, I fear, has not gained by this arrangement.

The Spaniards were disturbed early yesterday morning about two miles
from this, surprised, and driven from a redoubt, with some loss in
prisoners and wounded. I believe, however, that they behaved well
afterwards; but a Spanish regiment gave way. That queer playhouse hero,
Downie, who was there as a volunteer, rallied them, and conducted them
well, but had his horse wounded. He once more exhibited on the Pyrenees
the sword of Pizarro, which had so narrow an escape when he was made
prisoner in the south. You may remember that he threw it back to his
friends across a broken bridge, when he was wounded and cut off by
the French. He is, I believe, very brave, and seems to take with the
Spaniards, though with us he can scarcely speak without exciting a
smile, or even more. He was first a Commissary in the light division.

The day before this little surprise, the English officers at General
Cole’s were remarking, that it was only surprising that the Spaniards
kept the redoubt and their post; for the officers were never seen
there with the men to keep them on the alert, and the men were cooking
without arms within twenty yards of the French sentries, quite
unconcerned. I hope this little surprise may save us from a greater;
but I expect some night that the French will make a night attack upon
the Spaniards, though that is contrary to their usual method, which is
generally to march two hours before daylight, and begin the attack at
break of day.

_15th, later._—I have just met Downie, and he says Lord Wellington
has admitted that the French were too strong for the Spaniards, and
that he had given them a fort to defend too much in advance in the
French position. The result, however, is that the French have kept the
redoubt, and are at work on it already, and have recovered every house
in the suburbs of Zera, or Sara, of which the Spaniards at one time had
nearly one half. Many say that this is properly a part of the French
position, and does not signify at all. Lord Wellington seems to have a
bad cold to-day.

Every one appears to have had some adventures the night I was taken
prisoner. General Pakenham’s horse and Captain Eckersley’s fell down
from a bank into the river below, and it was so dark that they and two
others thought it best to remain there in the trees till daylight,
and not stir though it rained. Lord Wellington and all his staff lost
their way, and were five hours exploring two leagues home in the rain
and dark, and did not arrive until ten at night after various perils.
It was a tremendous night. Mr. Heaphy, the artist, who is now here,
was nearly being involved in my scrape, and it is said he has, in
consequence of these risks, added ten guineas to the price of his
likenesses, and made them fifty guineas instead of forty guineas. This
is too much for a little water-colour whole length; but he has, I hear,
now taken twenty-six, and some excessively like.

Some of our houses begin to improve much, as many of the inhabitants,
who must be somewhat used to these events, are returning now with all
their doors and shutters, which they had themselves carried off and
concealed. Canning’s quarter is suddenly by this means transformed into
a comfortable sort of residence.

_Head-Quarters, Vera, October 16th._—Here I am still sticking to my
post, though in constant pain, and at times bent enough to act the old
woman, like Mrs. Sparks. The doctor still says I must, first or last,
go to the hot-baths at Sestona, but I fight off as long as possible.
Things must mend soon. The ration beef is like shoe-leather; mutton
I can scarcely ever get; fowls are 9_s._ each, and are all snapped
up before my man can resolve to give that price for them. Pork, ham,
sausages, salt-fish and bacon alone abound.

Every one seems to think that we shall make no other movement until
Pamplona falls, which, as usual, is daily expected. The French, in the
meantime, are in busy preparation, burrowing and throwing up works,
like moles, on every rising ground near them. It does not appear to me
that they ever really intended to defend this mountain La Rhüne; they
were in some degree surprised, as I told you; they had a notion that
we had sent two divisions to Catalonia. They will now probably fight
harder for each acre of ground, unless completely turned by numbers,
and a decided flank movement from Roncesvalles.

From the reports which are current, the whole of which I dare not
mention, it is to be feared that the Spanish Government and Lord
Wellington have not gone on well together lately, in spite of outward
appearances. The moment any General acts cordially with us, and a
measure goes on well, some reason is found for his removal. This
ridiculous Spanish jealousy would be endurable if they supported it by
exertions of their own, so as to enable us to leave them to themselves;
but we are now feeding and clothing their half-starved men in the
front, and they are doing very little in the rear to supply those
they have, or to increase their numbers. In short, five years’ misery
has not yet scourged them into reasonable beings, and turned romance
heroes into common-sense soldiers and practical politicians. The men,
however, seem now to fight well whenever they are well led.

_October 17th, Sunday, Post-day._—General Graham has acted wisely in
going home just now, his age considered. I told Lord Wellington that
the French officers said that he (Lord Wellington) ought to die now,
for he never would have such another year, and fortune would prove
fickle. He laughed, but did not seem disposed to acquiesce in this. He
is better.

I have just got four bundles of English hay, about a hundred pounds
weight each, which are to last me for ten days. My next forage must be
picked up on the hills, or bought in the market in the shape of baskets
of coarse river grass.

_Head-Quarters, Vera, October 21st, 1813, Thursday._—The week is
already half elapsed, and Sunday, the post day, draws near, leaving
me with nothing to say. I am like the Spanish country people, who
without waiting to hear a question always begin “_nada, nada, nada_,”
or “_nothing, nothing, nothing_.” They generally add to us “_Francese
roben_” and “_rompas todas_,” and as the French told me, said to them
“_Anglesi rompen_” and “_roben todas_,” but always to every one “_nada
nada_.”

I have this last week ridden out for half an hour every day before
breakfast, and an hour or two before dinner; and thus exercise myself
and my horses in the meadows about here, which are now of course all
open, and when it has dried up a little after the rain, make a good
riding-school.

The only news here just now is, that Marshal Beresford is to have a
separate command of a _corps d’armée_, not to act separately, but to
complete our system, which will be—General Hill, right column; General
Sir J. Hope, left column, which Graham had; Marshal Beresford the right
centre-column; and Lord Wellington the left centre: each consisting of
different divisions and bodies of the allies.

The French to-day are collecting upon the rising ground near La Rhüne,
and our people, thinking that this looked like a threat of doing
something, are all on the alert, but I hear no firing. This is another
anxious moment, for the fall of Pamplona is daily expected, and the
garrison threaten to blow it up, which will make some desperate work.

Lieutenant-colonel Elphinstone arrived here some time since with
Marshal Beresford, from Lisbon. He is now in quarters within a hundred
yards of me, across a little stream; my nearest neighbour indeed,
except Colonel Ellicombe, in that direction. He is here without his
horses, and without much baggage, or many comforts; he is therefore,
like myself, buying. His own horses only arrived as far as Ciudad
Rodrigo. He has made up his mind to stay till the war is over.

The French, in addition to a few conscripts, who have joined, have
called out all the militia in the neighbouring departments. This is
a new scene, but I have still great doubts of the policy of entering
France at all. The French now suffer severely, and grumble against
their own government. Invasion may stir up the strong vanity of a
Frenchman, and make him forget his grievances, in order to revenge
himself on those who insult his native soil. Five or six subaltern
officers have come over here to us; I believe owing to some Spanish
connexions generally, or disgust and personal disappointment; and two
inhabitants of the village on this side of St. Jean de Luz, Oragne,
came over here to avoid serving in the militia, which is now being
assembled.

_12 o’clock, Friday, 22nd._—Nothing was done yesterday. It was all a
false alarm in the front. The French, however, say that we shall be
astonished with some extraordinary news in less than three days! Some
say they mean from the North, some from Pamplona. If they are bold
enough in the latter to dash out in the night against Don Carlos and
his Spaniards, I think they would, with the loss of about one-third of
their men, fight their way to Jaca, where they have a garrison, and
escape. They would of course come out with provisions only, leave mines
prepared to add to the confusion, sally out in all directions, and then
push on in a body. Don Carlos with all his vigilance would not, in my
opinion, be a match for them. He has sent word to the governor that he
holds his head answerable for the safety of the works of the town, and
two Frenchmen liable to death for every Spanish inhabitant starved.

_Saturday, 23rd._—As I have dined alone every day since Sunday last,
when I went to Lord Wellington’s, I pick up no news. Your July
‘Edinburgh Review’ is wonderfully fallen off; in parts very tame, and
more like a poor imitation of the old ‘Edinburgh Review;’ and yet some
of the articles are curious.

We begin to feel the effects of this dangerous coast now. Vessels can
even now hardly lie in safety, though shut up in the close harbour of
Passages, and the last packet was close in on Sunday last, on the same
day on which Major Hare fought his way in, in the _Landrail_, and was
not able to land the mail until yesterday. Major Hare brought papers
to the 9th, but scarcely any news. He was closely examined by Lord
Wellington when he arrived at dinner-time. He had got up his lesson so
badly, that he could answer nothing clearly as to dates, but always
ended by a reference to the papers.

It is known that Bonaparte was at Dresden up to the 5th instant, and
that nothing was done. This some call bad, some good news. On the
whole, I think the latter. Colonel Gordon states that Bonaparte used
our position here, as a strong argument with the Emperor of Austria to
join him in force, stating nothing could restore matters here but an
entire new army of a hundred and fifty thousand men, who had not known
the English, and that he should be invaded unless supported by his
father-in-law. This is a queer argument to one who, I suspect, was only
hesitating through fear of his son-in-law’s strength being too much for
the Allies, and would tell the wrong way. He also states, that Lord
Wellington’s true account of Vittoria did harm in Germany, being much
under the notions they had entertained of it.

_Head-Quarters, Vera, October 24 1813._—Post-day. We remain _in statu
quo_. I see the papers have made rather a pretty history of my capture,
treating me as an old gentleman (as just now they well may), and that
my younger friends got off. In fact, however, the youngest of the
party, Jesse, was the first who was taken. There will soon be some
dispute here among the artillery and engineers on the subject of rank
and brevet rank.

_Head-Quarters, Bera, or Vera, October 31st, 1813._—I have been so
worried this week with business and other things that I have not been
able to write until the very post-day, so this will be short and hasty.
The weather has been trying, one day very cold, and I hoped we were to
have clear frost, which, in spite of my open room, is, in my opinion,
better than wet. The thermometer got down to 36°, close to where I
was shaving, three mornings since; but it soon turned to wet—raw,
constant, violent cold wet; north-west wind, and rain in repeated
stormy torrents. In camp our poor soldiers have had their tents torn,
and almost washed away; then we have had hail followed by snow. Colonel
Belson has written to me very feelingly, from the mountains, but seems
well.

Another drawback as to writing has been this. Three brigades of
artillery were moved along La Rhüne mountain, three nights since by
night. As they went close to the French pickets, to get from our left
to Endage, towards the centre, in our front, they have as yet only
reached this vicinity, and have halted here. Amongst them was Colonel
Ross’s light troops, and Captain Jenkinson, and young ——; the latter
came to me here, very miserable, wet, &c. To save him camp I took
him in. Here he has been three days, and with my establishment this
saves me some trouble. Besides which, one cannot get on well with
business with a chum always at hand, in a small room, night and day.
He is pretty well, and I conclude will remain at this place until
we move—at least until the army moves, which every one expects as
soon as the French will give us up Pamplona. This is _en train_ I
conclude. A proposal came out to Don Carlos some days since, but a most
unreasonable one; namely, to allow them all to go to France, with arms
and baggage, and to be on parole for one year not to serve against us.
This was refused. They made a great parade of giving our officers white
bread and champagne, and Burgundy, &c., at the interview. So much for
humbug. They said, “See how _forts_ we are.” To which we said, “Let us
see how your men are.” Every day’s delay now is very provoking. I hope
they will soon surrender.

I wish it were possible to get my chum another quarter, for I work in
general at breakfast, at dinner, and in the evening, and a companion
is a great inconvenience, though he is very considerate. Pray tell
his family, the Colonel, &c., how he is. Captain Jenkinson would not
go into a house, but pitched his tent in the wet, and went to bed
dinnerless, at four o’clock, from fatigue. He is, however, well now.
The work of getting guns along over a clay-road, up a mountain, in the
dark, without being allowed to use lights, is no trifling undertaking.

The news from the North is very good, especially the accession of the
Bavarians to the Allies; which, from the papers I doubted, but which
Colonel Gordon says his brother mentions as fact; Lord Wellington
tells me, also, that Government at home believe it to be correct. The
private letters from the Austrian head-quarters which have reached
here, do not say much in favour of the Swedish Prince, and seem to
think he has much of French humbug in him—_c’est à voir_. It is also
said that he saves the Swedes, and is always in the rear, surrounded
with guards and twenty sentinels. They speak well of the Russian
troops, and very ill of the French lads now opposed to them. You will
rejoice to hear that we are to have divine service here to-day in
the square with some troops. This will not do for me, standing out
bareheaded for an hour in the damp; I must remain a heathen a little
longer, I fear. Mr. B——, the clergyman who has lately arrived at
head-quarters, seemed to be a pleasant gentleman-like man; I have,
however, only met him twice.

_Two o’clock, Sunday._—Still nothing decisive from Pamplona. To-day’s
post brings accounts of no communication for two days, but that the
garrison desert twenty a-day, and say that the place is almost in a
state of mutiny against the General. To-day the weather has a little
cleared up, but our artillery horses are living upon dried fern and
corn—no hay, no straw, and very little coarse grass; every one in a
fidget to move from hence. Unless we can so maul this French army as to
have them at our mercy, and then go where we please, and stop where we
please, out of our own moderation, I think we shall not have any quiet
winter-quarters this year. As long as anything like an army remains,
the French must be doing something to molest us, unless we molest
them; and then the great nation can never submit to let our allied
army quietly take up their winter-quarters in the French territory—at
least I think not. Several of their conscripts have joined them, and
they make a parade of drilling them within sight and hearing of our
outposts, even in marching without arms, &c. Their deserters say
they have about fifty-five thousand men; it is supposed with their
conscripts this is rather under the mark. They are throwing up works in
all directions all over the country, and making breast-works, redoubts,
&c. A breast-work, half round a hill, appears to be turned up in a few
nights.

It must be allowed that they are industrious at least, but the _morale_
of the old soldiers is shaken very much. It is even said that the young
ones fight the best of the two. This agrees with the story that we
hear from the North: that before the Austrian ambassador left Paris,
a letter from Marshal Soult had arrived, stating, that unless he had
fifty thousand new men, who had never met the British, he would not
answer for the South of France.

I see your papers make Endage a fortified place—it is a great heap
of ruins; never strong, only once a fortified village. It was nearly
destroyed about the year 1790 by the Spaniards, and has never recovered
itself. In return, Fontarabia, once really rather a strongly-fortified
town, was soon afterwards blown up by the French, and the works are for
the most part still in ruins. The town has not suffered much, for this
was only a military operation. Of all the ruins we have made amongst
us in Spain, even including Badajoz, and Rodrigo, and Almeida, it is
said St. Sebastian is the most complete. It was a large, handsome, and
thriving town four months since: one side of one street alone remains
entire! every street is barricaded and blockaded! Rubbish up to the
one pair of stairs windows, and walls half down, make it dangerous in
wind to walk anywhere. Beside this, the large wooden balconies, hanging
about by a few beams at the two pair of stairs windows, threaten every
moment to fall, even where the walls are sound. Some repairs are
being carried on, however, in a few buildings; at least preparations
are being made, by clearing, and the works are in progress towards a
state of defence. Most officers think the destruction so great that
it can scarcely ever be a good town again—that is, as a town; as a
fortified place, with much labour, it may. The French garrison were so
disheartened in the castle, that they could not be made to do more, I
understand from the engineers, for it was still tenable for some time
longer when it surrendered. When the town was first taken, and our men
were all drunk about the place, committing every disorder, the Governor
was doubting about a sortie to recover it; thinking, however, that we
must have fresh men near at hand, in case of such an accident, kept
sober and together, he gave up the idea. Many say, that if he had done
so, such was the disorganized state of our men, that it would have
succeeded. His own men were very much weakened and dispirited.

Most of the light division tents in front here have been declared
unserviceable from rents, &c. The men are still returned healthy, to
the astonishment of all, even the doctors, who say the consequences of
this must soon appear. Wine is dearer, which is a good thing, and I
believe our men bear this cold wet weather better than heat.

Tell John his two newspapers of the 20th have been in great request. I
believe only Dr. M’Gregor had one besides Lord Wellington. They have
been much read, and I have now enclosed one to Colonel Belson, which
will probably be the only one in his division. It happened to contain
almost all the news of the last week.

Lieutenant-colonel Elphinstone is still here. I understand that he
got a queer answer from Lord Wellington when at Lisbon, which brought
him here in such a hurry. When he became senior officer of the corps
here, he wrote up for instructions from Lisbon, and to ask what Lord
Wellington wished him to do, and where he was to go as Chief Engineer
in the Peninsula? The answer was, that as Chief Engineer in the
Peninsula he would best know where his proper place was. Up he came by
sea in a week, in consequence.

A man to thrive here must have his wits about him, and not see or
feel difficulties, or start them, to go on smoothly. People wonder
at Lieutenant-colonel Dickson, Portuguese service, and only (barring
brevet rank) a captain of artillery in our service, commanding, as he
has done now ever since Frenada, all the artillery of both nations,
English and Portuguese. He has four seniors out here, but all young
comparatively also, who have submitted hitherto. E—— says it should be
a General’s command to be done properly, with proper officers under
him; others say the old artillery officers have rather changed their
sex, and are somewhat of old women.

Lord Wellington seems to favour the latter opinion a little. I conclude
that he finds it answer in practice. As an instance of this, it may
be stated that in the pursuit after the battle of Vittoria in the bad
roads, Lord Wellington saw a column of French making a stand as if
to halt for the night. “Now, Dickson,” said he, “if we had but some
artillery up.” “They are close by, my Lord.” And in ten minutes, from a
hill on the right, Lieutenant-colonel Rose’s light division guns began
bang—bang—bang! and away went the French two leagues further off. I
fear if there had been a General, that we should have had, instead of
this, a report of the bad state of the roads, and the impossibility of
moving guns. In fact, this same brigade of guns, with their mounted
men, took the last French mortar near Pamplona, and Lord Wellington
passed whilst they were putting it to rights to proceed. They had
killed two of the horses in it the day before.




CHAPTER XV.

 Fall of Pamplona—Deterioration of the Army—Duke of York’s
 Orders—Orders of Merit—Church Service—Capture of French
 Redoubts—March of the Army—Incidents of Foreign Service—Frequency of
 Desertion—Wellington and the Lawyers.


  Head-quarters, Vera, Nov. 5, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

Here we are still, but rather nearer a move than when I wrote last.
Between business and my chum ——, who is still here with me, I could
never spare a moment to write. Even now, at three o’clock, I have been
five or six hours at work.

The weather has improved, however, these last two days, and now tends
to frost. Anything is better than the incessant wet we have here, up
to that part of the army at Roncesvalles; perpetual torrents from the
north-west, almost night and day, so that the roads have been nearly
impassable. At Roncesvalles they have had snow in the valley fourteen
inches deep. So close as in the valley of Baztan, at Elisondo, it has
been as rainy as here. We have now cold, thick, November, London, foggy
mornings, until nearly eleven o’clock forenoon, and then a clear fine
day, but not yet absolute frost. Thermometer about 36° or 37°. Meadows
all swampy. On the whole, however, the snow gentlemen have had much the
best of it, though a little uneasy as to their supplies just now, from
the fear of snow stoppages.

Pamplona has at last fallen, as you will have learnt by the last mail,
for I believe Lord Wellington kept the packet on purpose back two days.
The garrison, four thousand two hundred, it is said, are to embark
to-day at Passages if possible, at least as soon as they can be got
ready. Don Carlos made them submit to his terms, as we hear, _in toto_.
They were even compelled to give up the Juramentudas, besides the
fortification artillery. Report says fifty-seven field guns have been
found there. This shows us the danger we escaped by Lord Wellington’s
presence of mind, and the bravery of our men on the 28th of July last.
Had the French got a league further, they would have found this fine
field train all ready, and a reinforcement of near five thousand men
in the garrison. No one can tell how this might have changed matters.
We have still eighteen guns here, with the horses living on leaves,
fern, and corn, but ready to play upon a new star-work the French are
every day making more of, on a hill close to La Rhüne, which they still
occupy near Sarré. I think these guns will surprise them a little. At
present, I conclude, from general report, that we are only waiting for
the rains to run down and the roads to dry a little; and if the weather
of these last two days continue, every one says that we shall soon make
a push on.

Our men have had a miserable time of it lately; and when uncomfortable
and idle, I am sorry to say, they always make work for me. We hear of
daily losses, plunder, &c., and the Spaniards perform their part well
in this respect. General O’Lalor yesterday found his secretary had
run away, down towards Madrid, with nearly two thousand dollars, for
he trusted him with everything. Last time I dined at head-quarters
Lord Wellington got into a long conversation with me for nearly two
hours about the poor-laws, and the assize of bread, about the Catholic
question, the state of Ireland, &c., just as if he had nothing else
upon his mind. In many points we agreed very well, particularly as
to what would be necessary to be done in Ireland—if anything; but
he thinks nothing should be done at all. He is still alarmed at the
separation spirit which he thinks exists there, and the remains of a
Jacobin feeling in the lower classes in England.

_6th November._—Poor —— must pass an uncomfortable time with me here,
and yet I suffer much more from having him, and he is little aware how
inconvenient he is to me.

To-day, 6th November, I received three letters from England. I see
there is a magnificent order of the Duke of York about parcels to
the army, up to a ton weight, being forwarded to officers by the
Commissariat. A few parcels would make the Commissary stare a little,
when, with nearly twelve thousand mules, we can scarcely be supplied
with bread and corn, and not with forage. You seem to know so little
about the real state of things here in England, that I think the
General, who came half way up from Lisbon to review, and then gave it
up, should be employed to explain the difficulties in the duties of
office. The Commissary-general says that it will take him an entire new
office, which he must write home for, to keep the accounts which this
new plan will require.

Our troops at Roncesvalles have been terribly off; some of the guns
are buried in the snow there; some Spaniards, as well as English,
have perished by the cold, and one picket was obliged to be dug out.
I hear that they are now moving away, and that an attack by that pass
must be abandoned; but we shall soon know for certain if this dry
weather lasts. Our great men were all in the front, peeping to-day into
France from the mountains which surround this hollow. Our army-post
to one division, with the dragoon carrying it, was caught two days
since,—picked up, probably, as I was; he had got a little out of his
way, somehow. I hope no letters of importance were caught; but it was
provoking. The French, it is said, sent back one letter to General
Oswald, opened, and said that the rest were all immaterial; however,
they did not return them. The aide-de-camp of the late governor of
Pamplona has been here for the last two days, Monsieur Pomade, a
gentleman-like man; he says when the Vittoria army arrived at Pamplona
on June the 24th, the garrison was three thousand strong, and the
place provisioned for one hundred days complete, but that that army,
_en passant_, gave them a thousand more effective men and five hundred
sick. This caused them to give in sooner than they otherwise should. He
says that they never expected their present fate, but that they knew
nothing, and never had any communication whatever with France or Soult;
that they sent out several times, but never got any one in. This is
more than we can say at St. Sebastian, and does Don Carlos some credit.

The new crosses for the victories are very handsome—the medals so
so—and the former will look strange with a whole row of clasps, which
I suppose Lord Wellington must have now, for he has already two, up
to Salamanca, in addition to the cross. I think the thing is either
too general, or not enough so—a selection of distinguished men, of all
ranks, would be better than a general distribution to all of certain
ranks and situations. It now shows little more than that a man had a
certain rank in such a battle, and not that he performed anything more
than his neighbours. A selection might have descended with advantage
even to the privates. Of course many grumble, and are disappointed that
others have more marks and clasps than they have; that, however, would
always be the case.

_Sunday, the 6th._—Post-day for ordinary men—to-morrow for Lord
Wellington; so I proceed. For the first time these fourteen months I
have to-day been to a military church; I found that the service was
in-doors, and ventured, but was much reproached by my doctor. We were
in the newly-repaired large public town room, which has just been made
water and wind tight, as well as all the rooms round about it, for an
hospital, and will soon, it is to be feared, be filled with wounded.
So we go on clearing away one set of hobblers, and destroying houses
on both sides, then repairing and cleaning for the new set we are
about to make; and then clearing off again, and so on! This town is
just now clear of all the old wounded; and the large room was washed,
Dr. M’Gregor told me (though I should not have discovered it), for
those soon expected. I believe he wished not a little that we had gone
somewhere else to pray, and not made a dirt in his department. The
service was short, plainly read, but tolerably well; the sermon homely
and familiar, but good for the troops, I think, and very fair and
useful to any one. Lord Wellington was there, with his attendants, a
few officers, and our new staff corps.

On my return home, lo, and behold! I found —— very alert, waiting for
breakfast, as he had orders to march on to the front in half an hour,
and in less than that time, before breakfast was over, I saw Lord
Wellington and his suite all off on horseback to the front, to peep
again. It is not likely, however, anything can be done until to-morrow
at soonest, and it will be stiff work if the French do their duty as
they ought.

I now suspect that the packet will be kept until the result of what
is about to be done is known, unless there is another ship ready. My
letter must, however, go to-day; but I will try and send a line off, if
possible, by the same conveyance as the despatches. As I must not go
and peep, for fear of being picked up again and carried off further
next time, my communications will be dull and uninteresting now. A move
was becoming very necessary, for sickness had just commenced, and in
the mountains on the right horses were dying fast. If we can but beat
them well, we have a chance of some quiet quarter. Merely beating them
back, in my opinion, will not do for us; and if the French defend their
new works with as much steadiness as they have shown activity in making
them, you will have a long _Gazette_. We all think that their _morale_
is much shaken, and that the old soldiers will not stand now; if so,
the young ones will not hold out long, though it was observed that they
fought best on late occasions.

——, the last thing before he left, was at me again, about procuring his
brother to be made a Captain in the Navy by Lord Wellington’s interest,
though it might be thought I had sufficiently put him aside the first
time, as I have no humbug in these matters. It now became necessary
to refuse him in direct terms, assuring him that Lord Wellington had
continually said to me, “I never interfere with the Navy, when I can
help it, in any way; I let them have all their rights, that I may keep
all mine; and as I do not wish them to meddle with me, I never meddle
with them.” I should never have thought of asking Lord Wellington for
anything now except upon public grounds, such as repaying the Bayonne
banker, &c., as it is not my doctrine that because a man has done you
one favour you are, therefore, to ask him to do you another.

_Twelve o’clock._—Six more guns are now rumbling by through this place
to go up the pass. B——’s have been off some time; six more will, I
hear, be soon up, and these eighteen are all to be collected to play
upon the French new work, where they had yesterday got about twelve
together. It is feared that we must begin from the ground at too great
a distance, thirteen hundred yards, but I hope closer quarters will be
come to soon, for in my opinion the French succeed best at cannonading
and sharp-shooting, and we at the hand-to-hand work.

_Two o’clock._—The mail is said to go as usual, so I must close
directly, but I have no doubt the packet will be kept, as every one
says publicly that the attack is to take place to-morrow morning.
General Cole has just told me to go up to the top of La Rhüne, where I
must be safe, and must see everything. I shall not go, however, unless
I find all the quiet steady ones do the same, for though you may see
all, and if knowing, may be down again in time, yet mistakes may be
made by the unknowing, and I shall remain quietly here.

_Head-Quarters, Vera, November 9th, 1813._—I have this moment received
your packet of the 26th ult., with all the kind enclosures from aunts,
cousins, &c. The attack never took place on Monday the 8th, as I told
you in my last; the roads, from the wet, being so bad that I believe
the army could not be collected in time. To-morrow, however, is now
said to be the day, as the two last days have continued fine and mild,
the wind south, and the thermometer up at 52° again. It now looks
like rain, but is fine, and holds up as yet, with a wind south and
south-west; whilst all the rain came with a cold north-west wind. It
will not do, therefore, to make use of English weather-wisdom here.

Your English mail is thought nothing of. A _Gazette_ of the 25th had
got here first, and forestalled it; and we have to-day much greater
news from the French side, which is believed by every one here, and by
the French army as we are told; namely, that Bonaparte is beaten back
to the Rhine, with the loss of three divisions cut off by blowing up a
bridge too soon, &c.; one General taken, and one drowned, &c. This puts
our party in spirits for to-morrow, and will, I hope, damp the French
if believed by them, as the deserters report it to be.

The Portuguese are most anxious to enter France, and are in high
spirits; the grave ones, however, expect a great number of broken
heads, unless the French turn tail shamefully. You ask me about Baron
de Trenqueléon, and whether I thought of him whilst I was a prisoner.
I certainly did at Mont de Marsan, and found that I was within thirty
miles of him; and an emigrant there advised me to apply to go over to
see him, but I thought it might do us both harm, and, therefore, never
said a word upon the subject to any one. Major D—— had serious thoughts
of going as my servant with the baggage to look about; but it would
have been a dangerous experiment.

_The 10th November._—I dined with Lord Wellington last night, and staid
there till near ten. He was all gaiety and spirits; and only said on
leaving the room, “Remember! at four in the morning.” Monsieur Pomade,
the aide-de-camp to the governor of Pamplona, was there, and I sat
next to him and had some conversation with him. He had been told that
operations were going on, and that that was the reason he could not be
sent in yet to the French. To show what he expected to be the result,
he told me (when I begged him to tell the banker at Bayonne that all
his letters had been sent safely) that except from necessity and orders
he should avoid Bayonne, as he was not ready yet to be shut up again in
another town.

To-day every one was in motion here two hours before daylight; and
part of the cavalry passed through here at five o’clock. I got up, and
had all packed ready by daylight, and found that every one was gone
to see the glorious attack—even the doctors and the two parsons: so I
determined to venture up to the top of La Rhüne in the way General Cole
recommended. The day was beautiful. I passed the camp of the latter in
my way up, and should have heard there of any check. I then pursued
my way, and staid on the top from about eight until two, hearing and
seeing fire and smoke all the way along the hills from St. Jean de
Luz to near St. Jean Pied de Port. The whole was visible at once; and
I could see the men even with the naked eye, by the glitter of their
arms, for a considerable way. The French redoubts crowned the tops of
all their positions with deep ditches; and they had full shelter in
woods and houses; but our men slowly beat them on and on, from place
to place, forcing their way until all the right of the position seemed
ours. Two redoubts on the hill below me I saw abandoned shamefully,
when our men got round them. A large star fort on the top took more
time. The men from the others tried to make for it, but failed; though
mostly got off on our side. Those in the fort I left surrounded by our
men, who ran up in four or five directions to within about fifty yards
or less, firing as they ran; and then bobbed all down for shelter until
all were ready. They lay in this way nearly an hour. When satisfied
that the men shut up must be prisoners (as I hear they were) I returned
home.

On the ridge of hills all along the right, the rows of huts set on
fire added not a little to the scene. By whom they were burnt I know
not. The cannon roared away in the mountains. On the hill, amongst
others, I met Lord E. Somerset, the Cavalry General, gone up to look
out, with Colonel Vivian and Mr. Heaphy. He was there before me, when
the fighting was nearer, and declares that he saw one English soldier
bayonet two French officers who attacked him when advanced from the
others—first one and then the other. I hope that our loss has not been
severe, considering what the position was.

I believe we were to have moved to Sarré; but General Giron has taken
seventy houses there for his staff; and the rest are full of wounded.
From what I have heard, our officers think themselves well out of the
scrape. The left of our army towards St. Jean de Luz was refused;—that
is, the French were not pressed there much, in hopes of forming the
right so rapidly as to cut off a good lot on the left. That will not
probably be the case, but that they must move off to-night to a new
position, and not having such another line of works, the French must
stand to-morrow if attacked openly on the hills, or run for it. I have
seen no one yet, so only give you my own views, which may be probably
very wide of the _Gazette_. It was a terrible fag for my new mare, and
at top cool, and no room to walk about: I have in consequence a new
fidget, in her refusing her food. The troops will devour all the forage
in front, and I do not know how we shall get on at all. Adieu.

_Head-Quarters, St. Fé, November 12th, 1813._—At seven, yesterday
morning, we received orders to march; all the baggage to assemble at
Sarré, and wait there for orders. We did so; and on our way crossed
the first French redoubts and positions, and began to see our wounded
and the stripped dead lying about as usual. So starved and weak were
many of the animals, and so clayey and deep the roads, that the scene
had almost the appearance of a retreat, except that we passed all the
wounded and prisoners going to the rear, instead of marching with them.
The Spanish oxen were so starved, and thin, and weak, that during the
first league I counted probably about eleven lying down to die, whilst
every now and then a sergeant with his pike, or a soldier gave them
a stab, half out of humanity, and half to see the effect, and from a
sort of love of mischief. Then there were ten or fifteen poor women
belonging to the baggage of the division lamenting over their dying
donkeys and mules, whilst others were brutally beating some to death,
because they would not go farther. In every direction baggage was
falling off, and the whole formed a glorious scene of confusion. Near
Sarré I was caught in a violent storm, but got to a house for shelter
before I was wet, and there stood in the doorway of a deserted house,
with three dead bodies on the ground close by me; one certainly that of
an officer, from his clean skin, neatly-shaven beard and whiskers, and
from every remnant of his dress having been worth stealing. The other
two were Spaniards.

The Spaniards behaved tolerably in the field, but not like the fourth
and the light division. In plundering and mischief, however, they
excelled them. I found them, on passing, breaking and plundering one
of the best houses in Sarré. Our own people are grown expert hands at
this, and Lord Wellington threatens hanging, and, I believe, has hung
a few, but in vain. The people in general have fled, and the Spaniards
come in to carry off pots, pans, dishes, chairs, tables, &c., to
refurnish their own houses. At Sarré, I found the civil departments
were to stop there, and the military to come on to this place. My
baggage had gone by in part before I knew this; and besides that,
nowhere could a house be found by me. The Spaniards were in possession,
and firing, plunder, and confusion, were all around; I determined,
therefore, to come on here, and take my chance.

You will advise me to keep well in the rear for safety; but the
most knowing ones (in which opinion I agree) consider the rear as
the most unsafe place of any. All the vagabonds, plunderers, and
rascals—followers of the army—stick to the rear, and look about to do
mischief as soon as all the troops are passed. Besides which, it is not
clear here that the peasants, who all fly, may not return, and knock a
few on the head, though at present they seem terrified and excessively
alarmed. I found no quarters for me here; but at a little village
close by, where there were only the Commissary-general and a few of
his department, I took possession of a deserted house, which had been
ransacked, and cleaned it out a little in one place. Finding abundance
of food left for my horses for two or three nights, I thought myself
well off, though I was somewhat alarmed at having possession of the
last inhabited house on that road, lest any straggling attack should be
made, or the owners should come back in the night. There was, however,
no alternative. All the immediately useful part of my baggage was
behind, and never arrived at all, having been turned out of the road
by a Spanish division. Unluckily my neighbours were nearly in the same
state. Sir Robert Kennedy had barely enough for his own eating, and
went to bed leaving his servants to do the best they could.

H—— had nothing, his baggage not having arrived. Mr. H——n had one
half-loaf, and that served us all. Mr. M——, the storekeeper, had got
some mutton for Lord Wellington to-day, and he spared us a little bit
each; so I got one mutton chop, which was very lucky.

Between four and five, Henry went to inquire about marching, and,
finding no orders, we remained quiet. About seven or eight, he found
my two stray mules, and I got a loaf of bread and some potted butter
out of my stock, and made my contribution to the party, which was very
acceptable. I have since been down to head-quarters to know what is
going on; but can learn nothing except that we are ready now to cross
the Nive, and are prepared for that step; particulars I can hear none,
for only the clergyman, the doctors, and a straggling civilian, with
the provost guard, are to be seen.

I returned, therefore, to my deserted, desolate home. In my way I found
one of the owners of a house here who had been shot through the thigh
by a Portuguese; I got him to an hospital to be dressed, in the church,
where French, English, and all were lying to wait their turn, with now
and then a dead man. As soon as they are dressed, they are packed off
to the rear on mules, &c. So we go on!

The famous French bulletin has now been seen. Some say Bonaparte is
at Paris, and some think that he will come here. Others have a notion
that the people beyond Bayonne are ready to join us, if we proceed
on. I fear, however, the runaways will not encourage this much with
their exasperated stories of our conduct in their villages. To-day is
a very fine day again, and will, I hope, assist our operations much.
It is said that when our officers went up to the men in the star fort,
to call upon them to surrender, the Colonel commanding said, like the
governor of Pamplona, “Yes, on the terms of parole, not to serve for a
year and a day.” “No, no,” says the Englishman; “_prisonnier_.” “_Eh
bien, donc je ne me rends pas_,” says the Frenchman. “But you must
and shall, or you will all be murdered,” says the Englishman, and
then turned away. Upon which the Colonel very sulkily returned and
consented; and when his soldiers began to rejoice, and to quiz the _ré
papé_, and say, dancing about, that it was time it should all end, he
was most indignantly sulky, and has remained so ever since, complaining
of being sent off to England as a prisoner.

I have now under my window a characteristic scene. A short Portuguese
lad, bloated out with ration beef, with an old French helmet on, a
great red grenadier’s feather, and an old French uniform jacket and
pantaloons, with a dragoon broadsword, cutting down cabbages and apples
in the garden for his brother Portuguese, who has his apron ready to
receive them, whilst a dirty, brown, snuff-coloured Spaniard is looking
about on the other side with an old French musket trying to shoot
something eatable.

The mixture of the silence of a deserted village with the occasional
riotous noise of muleteers and stragglers, Portuguese and Spaniards,
as well as a few swearing English, is striking; but to a person not
actively engaged in what is going on, by which all minor considerations
vanish in the dangers and anxiety of the scene, there is a sameness of
misery and starvation, of wounds and of death, which, when the novelty
of the scene is over, becomes very unpleasant, especially without any
rational companion to talk to on what is passing. This appears to be
the house of a curé, for there are the remains of many comforts, and of
some books, chiefly religious, some crosses, &c.

I just now met a man who spoke English tolerably, and French well, but
would address me in Spanish, to say the people were plundering all the
flour at the only mill in the place which was at work, and he requested
a guard and wanted the Commandant. I luckily noticed by his feather
the Superintendent of the provost guard entering a house opposite, and
procured him a guard directly. So that one can be of some use without
meddling much.

I have just now had a Spaniard at my door to inquire how he could
get back safe to Spain, as he had wandered here alone, and dared not
return, and had nothing to eat. I have sent him off with a small bit of
bread and a shilling, and advised him to go and remain near the provost
guard, and keep with the first escort of prisoners which sets out for
Spain.

Nearly all the houses about me are empty, and I do not much like my
situation, but it is just now like that of a wife—for better, for
worse; so I must submit. I do not think we have a hundred men within
three miles, and not one soldier within half a mile, only commissaries
and young doctors, and a stray shot is fired every three or four
minutes. My own muleteers I have just stopped.

_November 13th._—Here I am still in my solitary abode. It has rained
all night, and the roads are running watercourses, which will, it
is to be feared, impede our progress. All, it is said, however, is
going on well. I have not seen a creature, or been out; only sent to
the Commissary-general, my neighbour, to ascertain whether we are not
to march, lest I should be left behind here. Several of the elderly
owners of houses have returned, but mine has not. Lord Wellington
has ordered what forage can be regularly used, and collected, to be
paid for punctually, and I understand has determined to send back at
least a part of the Spaniards, on account of their abominable conduct,
Longa’s people in particular. I am not surprised at it, but it spoils
all our plans. We were admitted quietly into St. Jean de Luz, and the
inhabitants remained there. The mayor offered to exert himself to
get what he could collected, to supply the troops regularly; and Sir
John Hope flogged the two first men he caught taking some wine—this
instantly; so I hope that town will be preserved.

We can never do well, if we go on driving all the population before
us. The few old people left here, and who are coming in, speak only
Basconee and a little Gascon, and no French. There is no making them
understand anything.

To-day would have been dreadful in the mountains, so we have at least
that reflection to comfort ourselves with. I send enclosed Lord
Wellington’s letter to me and Count Gazan’s. Pray keep the former, as I
shall always value it.

_4 o’clock, afternoon, November 13th._—It has been raining so
incessantly ever since morning, that I have not stirred from my hole,
and have, therefore, seen no one. I understand that all the grandees
were to have gone to the front at five this morning, but from the state
of the weather, they have all stopped at home—not for the fear of a
wetting themselves, but most likely from the impossibility of getting
through the country, and across rivers, when in such a state. It is
only wonderful how our men got on, as they did up the hills on the
12th. It was as much as I could do with my horse singly on a slippery
clay, either so hard that a horse could not stand on it, or so deep
that he was up to his knees, between the hard places. We are now,
however, nearly out of the Pyrenees, and I hope the roads will mend,
but from what I saw of the high road, this is doubtful.

_November 14th._—Still here at St. Fé, so the place is called in an
excellent old French map. Still rain, and nothing new, except that the
French have been well frightened, and mean, we are told, to quit the
new position they have taken, with their left on Bayonne, as soon as it
is attacked; that is, as soon I conclude as the roads will permit us to
move. The communications here are almost as bad as in Spain, and from
hence to St. Jean de Luz almost impassable. The Marquis of Worcester, I
have just heard, goes to-day in an hour.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, November 24th, 1813._—Having a little
leisure, I begin my weekly journal. The weather continues beautiful,
and I generally get my hour’s walk, and my hour’s ride daily. A brig
from Dartmouth sold off an immense stock of good English moulds
yesterday, in the morning, at 2_s._ 6_d._ a pound, by order from
head-quarters, and about five tons of potatoes, besides quantities of
porter, ale, beef, cheese, &c. The scramble of officers on board to see
and buy would have astonished you not a little. We have also some good
white wine.

Since our move from the mountains our men are all behaving much better:
they were becoming very bad; and desertion, even from the English to
the French, was frequent. The temptation of the old gentleman in the
high mountains was too much for the men. It has now almost ceased.
I hope, therefore, when we are a little quiet, and my arrears are
cleared off, that I shall have much less to do. The reports here now
are that Bonaparte’s aide-de-camp is at Bayonne, and that he himself is
expected. If so we may probably have some work to do here again, unless
he has been obliged merely to show himself here to convince his army
that he is still alive and well.

We had a little affair yesterday. Some of the light division were
ordered to drive in the French pickets in one place where they were too
forward, and our men being too zealous, pushed too far. In trying to
prevent this, a fine officer of the 43rd was taken, and a lieutenant
badly wounded, and some men lost. The only annoyance I suffer at
present in my quarters arises from the multiplicity of inhabitants,
namely, three old women, seven children, three dogs, two cats, and a
fair allowance of fleas, whom this late fine weather has revived. We
have lately had an arrival at Passages of a hundred and fifty oxen
from Ireland for the army, and are promised the same supply weekly.
This will do something; but our consumption is, I believe, about a
thousand a week. Our forage in this nook of France is as bare as in
the neighbouring parts of Spain; every field is eaten close down, and
all straw of corn and maize consumed. I sent twelve miles for straw
yesterday, and the mules have returned to-day empty. I mean now to try
bruised furze, to mix with their Indian corn, so as to hold out until
some more hay shall reach us from England.

_November 25th._—I have just heard that about two thousand of the
inhabitants returned here last night, but Soult would not suffer them
to carry much with them.

_November 26th._—There was no time for more yesterday, and to-day I
have nothing to add. I have still not heard anything from you later
than the 3rd, but we have papers here to the 13th. I cannot understand
how this has occurred. Through France we have news still later, and
have heard of the surrender of Davoust’s corps at Hamburg, on terms of
not serving for a year and a day. It is to be hoped that the terms may
be kept. I had a droll _malheur_ again to-day. Riding my pony into the
sea, into about six inches water, to wash his legs, a wave came, the
sand gave way, and he sunk up to his middle, so that my legs were up
to the calf in sand. I jumped off, and went over his head to run out,
fearing that he could not rise. We thus both got safely out. The poor
pony much more frightened than I was.

I conclude that everything goes on well, for Lord Wellington and his
gentlemen were out to-day with the hounds. He told me that I kept him
up reading Courts-martial until twelve o’clock at night or one in the
morning; and this every night. I hope, however, that this will not
last long. The Prince of Orange has got a complaint in his eyes, but
I believe only a cold, and he seems better. Nearly all our great men
except Lord Wellington have been ill.

Send me some law news, and good, for Lord Wellington expects me to
tell him who all the new judges are to be, &c., and is very fond
of discussing legal subjects. At first I was generally right in my
speculations: but I have now no means of knowing how things are going
on unless you keep up my credit; it must not be, however, by loose
reports.

I have a poor young Commissary, B——, under charges, who has, I think,
been very ill used by a Spanish alcalde. I fought his battle with Lord
Wellington to-day to get him released from arrest. He is very well
spoken of, and said to support his two sisters. Can he be a brother of
the Miss B——’s whom you know? I detected the Spanish General F—— in
a little bit of a fib on this subject. His excuse for not answering
my letter for eight days was, that it had been delayed in the post. I
complained, and his receipt for the letter was produced the day after
it was sent—this on the back of the cover.

_Sunday, November 29th._—Still no news, and no accounts from England.
We are all anxiety. I have just returned from church at the drum-head,
on the sands by the sea. Two brigades of guards present in their best,
and white trousers, &c., and Lord Wellington and his staff here. It was
rather cold work. The weather is beginning to change again, I fear, for
rain, just as the roads were becoming passable. You have no conception
how soon fifteen thousand sharp-footed heavy-laden mules in rain, cut
up a road in this country, even when at first tolerably good. We have
been amused with Cobbett’s attributing all Bonaparte’s misfortunes
to his being grafted into the old stock. If he can now manage well
he may, I think, still get his little king Pepin graft to thrive in
France, and beat Mr. Knight and our gardeners. The true cause of all
is, however, that the _morale_ of the people of Europe is changed. It
was France, army and people, against mere armies and bad governments,
whilst all the people in Europe were indifferent at the least. This is
now reversed; and it is now a mere French army against every people and
army; and Frenchmen at least quite indifferent.




CHAPTER XVI.

 News from France—Lord Fitzroy Somerset—Departure of the Prince of
 Orange—Exchange of Prisoners—Proximity of the two Armies—Wellington’s
 Cooks—Warlike Movements—French Attack—The Guards—-Deserters—More
 Fighting.


  Head-quarters, St. Jean de Luz,
  December 2, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

At last we have got a mail from England. Your papers give us little
public news, that is, news to us, for you have no late accounts from
the Allies, and French papers we always get sooner this way. Thus we
have long known of Bonaparte’s arrival at Paris, which you only just
now communicate to us. Lord Wellington has, I understand, news of a
rising in Holland; and this has been confirmed by our reports through
the French, who, in conversation with Dashwood yesterday, when he went
in with a flag-of-truce, and a parcel of women, seemed to admit it. We
had had this as a report before the arrival of the packet, and Major
Dashwood therefore tried to pump them on the subject. We have also had
a report here that Admiral Young had taken the Texel fleet; but as no
news of this sort has reached us from you, we fear from dates that this
must be all false.

This is only a Passages report from some straggling ships, not French
news. The deserters who come in also from Bayonne, and the returned
inhabitants, all state that the Italian regiments here have been
removed to the rear; at least all Italian officers have given up their
lodgings and have packed up. I think now that they will scarcely
rely much upon the Dutch either, and there were some line men and
several good officers of that nation here. I told you that the only two
officers who were disinterested, and most uniformly civil to us whilst
we were prisoners, were two Dutchmen of the 130th regiment.

The Burgundy side of France (Switzerland being with us) is certainly
as unguarded as this frontier, except by a naturally strong country in
places. Strasburg, almost the only strong place except our old friends
Huningen and Kehl, is far removed, and the latter may probably be left
on one side, but for all this the French Italian army must be well
disposed of first.

If Lord Charles Somerset deserves promotion as well as our Military
Secretary here, the grumbling you mention against his appointment must
be unfounded. The latter gets through a great amount of business with
little assistance, and always quite in public, almost in a common
coffee or lounging room, in the midst of talking, noise, joking, and
confusion. The Prince of Orange left us yesterday. As he used to be
one of the above loungers, this put me in mind of him. He has had a
complaint in his eyes, and could not embark before yesterday, when he
did so with a fair wind. His arrival, however, and all news about him
will precede this. The French, yesterday, when told that he was going
off for England, said, “Oh they supposed that it was in consequence of
what had happened in Holland.” In short, the French seem still (as when
I was in France and now even more so) willing to listen to all bad news
against Bonaparte, and do not make the least of it at all. All exchange
of officers here has now, I fear, at last been broken off, and angry
letters have passed. How fortunate I was! I will send in your French
Captain Le Fevre’s letter concerning his exchange, if an opportunity
should offer soon, and it is permitted.

_Friday, December 3rd._—I find Lord Wellington’s news about a Dutch
insurrection came to him by a telegraphic note from Mr. Croker, dated
the 20th ult. This is a grand point. Next for Italy, and then we shall
do; and after twenty-three years of murder, we have a reasonable chance
of being able to give the military word when things go wrong,—“As you
were.”

The Prince of Orange, from all appearances here, where the sea has been
tremendous, must have had a most famous passage; but I should think
a quick one, as the wind has been fair. We have a notion that he has
been chased by four French frigates which have escaped from some French
port. I yesterday gave a grand dinner at the French café here; the
dinner was abundant, and from the paucity of materials the variety was
surprising. Ten dishes for the first course, two removes for the soups;
ten for the second course, rotis and sweets together; ten for dessert;
and we were ten in company, and two excuses—dinner for twelve. Some
dishes were admirable, particularly all the patisseries. The champaign
excellent; Madeira and sherry very fair; port and claret very moderate.
I am now paying the bill, and the _tout ensemble_ is forty dollars.

I spoke to Lord Wellington this morning about the French Captain’s
letter you sent to me. He laughed and said, “Yes, when you can, you may
send it; but the whole matter is now at an end, and your companions are
all sent to the rear, as Bonaparte has refused to let the exchanges
take place, unless three French go for one British, one Spaniard,
and one Portuguese. The old squabble in Mackenzie’s negotiation, and
though very flattering to us as English, very unpleasant to our poor
prisoners.”

We have a most tremendous sea here—now worse than ever. The waves
at high-water break every time almost over an old wall about twenty
feet high on the beach, and come over the stone walk; they roar most
furiously, and are beyond anything I have seen. A Paymaster here
declares that he saw a brig go down, and disappear instantly, about
nine or ten o’clock yesterday, near Andaye. We shall be long, I fear,
before we hear again from you in England. I do not think that any ships
will venture near us now, certainly not to Passages or here.

_Post-day, Sunday, 5th December._—The storms have now subsided, and
the sea has become calmer; but the mischief already known has been
considerable. The vessel which I mentioned was seen to sink got at last
into the Bidassoa; but four transports, it is said, have been lost in
Passages harbour, together with several lives. One vessel drove into
a house and knocked it down; most of the shipping there is damaged,
and many of the boats have been crushed between them. An English
merchant-vessel, it is reported, also went down at the entrance of
Bayonne. The air is now colder, almost frosty, with a dry wind; the
mountains all covered with snow; I only hope this may last. No more
news from you, and we are here in a very odd state—I mean that our
armies are. A few years back the British were uneasy, in Spain, when a
French army patrolled within thirty miles of them. Now we have all got
quietly into quarters—are nearly all housed; and three-fourths of us go
to sleep tranquilly every night, while our front is within sixty yards
of the French.

Colonel S—— tells me that he went to breakfast with Colonel H——, the
Assistant Adjutant-general of the sixth division, at Ustaritz, and
there they were in a house with their breakfast-table within about
fifty yards of the French sentry, and within about two hundred of the
whole French picket, who, by one volley, might have broken all their
cups and saucers, if not their heads. The other day a Portuguese
brigade had a field-day close to the river in the meadows, and all
the French came down to look at them, and I have no doubt, from the
general report, to admire and approve; whilst, on the other hand, in
the meadows on the French side, the French conscripts are brought down
to be drilled; sometimes five or six squads are seen at once, and any
of the serjeants might be knocked on the head all the time by our
sentries; but this is now all well understood, and we thus quietly
bully or bravado each other.

Another party of inhabitants have come in here—women and children;
the men Soult detains. We shall thus add to our female stock, and to
the seven hundred Portuguese women and four hundred Spanish, who are
already in this place and the environs as suttlers, _vivanderas_,
washerwomen, &c. In short, here we are in quiet winter-quarters, for
a time at least, with head-quarters within seven miles of the French,
and yet we are all so at our ease, even in France, that the baggage
animals of head-quarters are gone now beyond Tolosa, forty miles and
more to the rear, for straw to feed the horses. Lord Wellington told me
yesterday there was no forage left here; and I suppose so large an army
never staid so long in these mountains. But yet, if a spring campaign
comes, no doubt we shall, somehow or other, find all our animals
forthcoming, and in a state for service.

The Irish oxen sent out for the Commissariat have proved very good,
excellent in comparison, and are served out as a _bonne bouche_—a
pound or two with five or six of the country beef. In short, we have
occasionally, of late, had the London alderman’s cry of more fat.
Without joking, Lord Wellington’s table is now very good in every
respect; and I think his aides-de-camp will be ill with excess, who
have this daily fare (unless there is a move), especially if the roads
remain too bad for exercise. Lord Wellington has now three cooks, and
an English and Spanish chief share the command, and, by dividing the
days, vie with each other.

More rain, more rain! I am sorry to say. I have just seen Lord
Wellington; he is much annoyed. A poor Commissary under charges has
fallen sick. I reported that he was at Passages, too ill to move to
be tried, and that I have two certificates of medical men of the
necessity of his going to England. Lord Wellington told me to tell the
Adjutant-general not to let him get away; and that if he remained too
ill to move, we must try him at Passages. It was for violent conduct to
another Commissary.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, December 8th, 1813._—A packet is just
arrived, and I have letters from you of the 22nd ult. and papers to the
same date. Letters and papers are, however, here by the same vessel to
the 25th. A most remarkable and astonishing paper!

I hope this fine weather will give us some hay from England, for I have
now nothing for forage but furze and bran by way of substitute.

By this packet came a long letter from ——; they want me to ask for
Captain ——’s promotion. It is my determination not to ask favours,
even if I supposed it would be of any use. One promising young officer
has, I trust, been saved by me, by inducing him to make, and another
to accept, an apology, and Lord Wellington to agree to this. He would,
otherwise, most probably on trial have been broken. My letter ordering
the Court to meet was taken by the French. This gave time, and opened
a long correspondence, which has given me much trouble; this, however,
I shall not regret, if it ends well. I must now go and prepare charges
against a German doctor for to-morrow, and against two Portuguese for a
highway robbery. So adieu.

_Thursday, 9th._—All peaceable business has ceased; and here I am in
an enemy’s town quite at ease. All the troops advanced about four this
morning, and we have here only a provost guard of about forty men, a
few straggling guards, and the muleteers, servants and civilians. The
French dared not to have remained so in any town in Spain, much less in
Portugal.

I went out to my morning’s walk on the beach. I had it to myself
nearly, and heard a sharp firing of both guns, and particularly
musketry, sounding quite close to me. Our present object is, I believe,
merely to move up our right, for we are much pinched in our present
position. We are now with our right at Itoasso, Espellette, and Cambo,
on the Nive; our centre at Ustaritz and St. Fé; and our left by Bidart,
Ahetze, and Arbonne, all on the Spanish or south side of the Nive. Our
object now is to move up the right, nearly or quite to the Adour, most
probably, only making a feint at Biaritz and Anglet, near Bayonne, on
the left, unless good fortune puts more in our power. We shall then be
more at ease, cover more ground, and open a little country on the right
for our cavalry to get quarters and accommodation, at least that part
which is still with us in front. This, it is believed, is all that is
intended at present.

Should the report of the French mayor here prove correct, or the
deputy major rather, for the chief is off, namely, that there is an
insurrection at Bordeaux, and that the Allies are within fifty leagues
of Paris, it may soon be _autre chose_; but at present we are only, as
I hear, taking elbow-room for winter-quarters, and putting ourselves in
a position to start when advisable. We shall also see how the French
are disposed to fight, and judge a little what forces are gone to
the rear. How angry it made me to observe the nonsensical reports in
England of our being not only in Bayonne, but in Bordeaux, and this
given out formally at the playhouse! To exaggerate just now is so
unnecessary, so unreasonable, and so injurious to those who do so much!

_Three o’clock._—The firing has continued more or less the whole day,
but has now become more distant, and the great guns near Bayonne are
heard occasionally. As yet, however, no news, except from a wounded
guardsman, just come in, shot in the hand, who says that the Guards
are advancing and the French retreating,—I conclude into their lines
opposite Bayonne. A fleet of twelve sail, or perhaps fifteen, in sight.
Hurrah! for hay and money, we all say! The army is only paid up to May,
and the staff to April. It rained much in the night, which was against
our movements, but has nearly held up since, though it has just dropped
all day.

_Friday, the 10th._—Lord Wellington did not return last night, nor the
Adjutant-general and grandees. I hear but little except that we crossed
the Nive well on the right, but did not make much progress in the
course of the day. On our left we did rather more than I expected, and,
it is said, pushed on to within a mile of Bayonne, with some loss; so
we rested last night, and we have had constant showers, very heavy at
times, ever since. This is very much against our arrangements.

_Four o’clock._—Here I have remained quiet all day, but in a fidget,
for from eleven o’clock there has been continual firing in our front;
and, as might be expected, though within six or seven miles of us, we
have had all sorts of reports, some rather alarming—to me at least, for
I believe Lord Wellington is on the other side of the Nive, with our
right, and I have not the same confidence in any one else, especially
as only a part of our army is on this side the river. The communication
is troublesome, and the French have evidently made a push here to-day
in force, whilst our brigades are all separated. The Guards came back
here last night to their positions and quarters, and the 5th division
to Bidart and its environs. Some Caçadores were surprised, and some
were made prisoners, and the French showed themselves in force in this
line, and have pushed us back to our old ground before the troops could
be collected again.

At two o’clock the firing was so loud, and so near in appearance, that
I began to look to my baggage, especially as an order came from the
Guards here to turn out again and advance. I have, however, just seen
the Commissary-general, Sir R. Kennedy, and he says there is no danger,
for he left the French checked by our works on our old position, and
met four brigades on the road advancing to assist. He was, however, a
little surprised himself at the end of his ride, to see what was going
on, for a fire suddenly began across the road where he was looking,
near our cavalry, and when he turned about, our guns began across the
other way, and he was obliged to get away. One never can be quite
secure in these attacks.

I am told that a note was taken from the French General Gautier to
the Duke of Dalmatia, which was sent to tell him that a deserter had
come in from us at two o’clock, and told him of the intended attack
yesterday, and complaining much of desertion on his side. It is very
provoking, that our men should betray us in this manner; but it seems
to have been of no consequence.

_St. Jean de Luz, Head-Quarters, December 11th, 1813._—From report
to-day, there were some slight grounds for my uneasiness yesterday. The
French made a bold push with nearly four divisions on the high road.
We had only one division, or only part of one, at hand ready. Some
Portuguese in advance were surprised, and lost prisoners and baggage.
The French regained all that they had lost the day before. At about
two o’clock they made a push at our position. A Portuguese brigade
suffered very much, and it is said dispersed. An English brigade also
is reported to have been unlike the rest of late: that is all I can
say. Lord Wellington had heard the firing and received intelligence of
the attack; he came across the river Nive instantly, and halted the
sixth division on this side, which was going over by former orders to
act on the other, on the right. The fourth was ordered up to support
the light division. Wellington himself was foremost in trying to rally
the Portuguese. Both he and his staff were much exposed, and had not
often, I hear, been in a warmer fire.

The French were induced to attack our redoubts and position by their
successes and numbers. Our reinforcements came up; they were repulsed,
driven back with loss, and the ground which we had already gained and
lost once, was nearly all in our possession again last night, at the
close of day. They talk of a thousand wounded, probably more, on our
part. We have taken some prisoners, and many wounded French; at one
time, however, a whole regiment of Portuguese, and some English also,
were nearly being made prisoners. The Guards, or as they are called
here, “the gentlemen’s sons,” were too late, as they had so far to
march. They will never learn their trade of being killed properly, if
they are thus nursed up in the rear. Their great grievance at present
is the order about horses and mules, limiting the numbers to the old
regulations, on account of forage, and allowing subaltern officers only
their one animal, so that if they ride, they cannot carry anything. If
they carry baggage, they must walk; and then when they come into their
quarters, and their real duty towards the men commences, they are unfit
for anything. The regulation is therefore severe, and most think that
it is unnecessarily so.

On the other hand, the present establishment of the Guards is
absolutely ridiculous. Every subaltern officer has his two or three
horses, and his three or four mules, as much as any staff-officer ought
to have. He carries his bed out to the guard-house, or picket, and
has his canteen fit to give a dinner and every luxury, whereas one set
of canteens per company would, in my opinion, be a liberal allowance.
Their General has given them six weeks to comply with this order, but
somehow or other they will contrive, probably, to evade it, or they
will be the most miserable animals in existence. Whilst they were in
camp, they left one officer with the men in camp, and the rest got
into houses, whilst in many instances at that time even the Generals
in other divisions commanding brigades, were out under canvas (then
in the mountains), or at most in huts. Both men and officers are only
fit for our old style of expedition,—a landing, a short march, and a
good fight, and then a lounge home again. The men were yesterday all
sorefooted with their march, but at church last Sunday, in their white
linen pantaloons, they looked in high order; and the appearance of
the men, the care of their dress, their discipline and general good
conduct, is admirable, when in quiet quarters here.

I met young ——, an ensign in the Guards, yesterday, a son of Lord
——. He is a very gentleman-like stripling of nineteen, talks of just
remembering Sir John Moore’s death, as the beginning of his political
knowledge, and something about General Castanos, and the first Spanish
publication of Cevallos, but is quite in a wilderness when you talk
of the old state of Europe before the French Revolution. He now
principally talks of the table, and who gives best wines and dinners,
and found fault with General ——’s, which I must say appeared to me most
luxurious, and reminded me of fine dinners in London.

_Ten o’clock._—Hurrah! hurrah! I have just been called out to see three
small battalions of deserters pass by with drums beating, and colours
flying, with their arms and everything in the highest condition, and
clothing nearly new. Two battalions of the regiment De Nassau, and one
of the regiment De Frankfort, in the whole twelve hundred men. This
is a grand consequence of our push, and must alarm the French not a
little. I should not be surprised now if we advance soon, whatever
might have been our former plans. Lord Wellington was out again in the
front this morning, up at three and out in the dark. He returns to
dinner to-day, and has invited the German Colonels and the Majors, six
of them, to dinner, to which he means to return. He has also desired
that they may now have their breakfasts, the whole remain in quarters
here for the night, and proceed to-morrow for Passages, I presume,
though it is several miles off, as the Spaniards occupy all the places
between, except Irun, which is voted unwholesome and feverish. Irun
will scarcely give a quarter to an English officer, and not to our
detachments coming up to join, who have to march through here always;
so I conclude that they would not do more for the Germans who have once
served with the French. The only drawback to these good tidings is the
thought of the poor wounded, crawling in, on foot, or on cars, and on
mules, crying with the pain of the motion. It is now quite fine, and I
must take my promenade by the sea; so, for the present, adieu.

_Later, the 11th._—Major D—— has found a friend in the Colonel of the
regiment which came over, and who has told him how it happened and
was managed. An officer from the North had found the way to him (the
Colonel) all through France, with an order from his real sovereign to
go over to us, and come and join him. He communicated his plan to no
one but the Major (one Major). They waited their opportunity, and when
it arose last night, he called the officers together, told them his
order and his resolution, and proposed it to them, but said he should
force no one; it must be voluntary. All agreed—and the men were too
happy to join in the plan. One officer was sent to give us notice and
clear the way, and to prevent any resistance or confusion. He was also
to make terms that they were not to be compelled to serve, &c. The
officer, however, did not like going back, and before any message was
sent, over they all came. On their arrival here to-day, just out of
the town, they halted, and put on their best clothes to pass through
in parade order, and very well they looked I assure you. They say that
there are many Spanish, and two good regiments of cavalry who would
probably come over if a pardon were held out to them, and that there
are a number of Dutch all ready to do the same thing, but they are
principally officers, and are not in a body. They are tumultuous and
troublesome, and only wait the proper occasion.

The Colonel, K——, has written to Marshal Soult, telling him why he came
over; that he was ordered so to do, and after reminding him that so
long as they were French, and he with the French, he had done his duty.
In return, he requests (rather an impudent request) that the women and
the baggage, or at least the baggage soldiers and servants, may be
allowed to join the regiments. He also asks that his band, which he
says was excellent, as it was his hobby-horse, and which was of course
left behind, may be allowed to join the rest. Of this, however, he has
no hopes, for his band was always a subject of considerable jealousy to
the French before he left them, and he is sure they will keep it now
for themselves.

I also hear that our staff officers were obliged to exert themselves
very much in consequence of the dispersion of the Portuguese, and the
reluctance of some of our own forces. Colonel Delancey took one colour,
and rode on before the regiments to carry them on. General Hope was
much exposed, and got two blows; one on the shin, and one on his side,
but of no consequence. General Pakenham had a horse shot under him—his
best charger. General Robinson is shot through the body; a bad wound.
Two of General Sir S. Cotton’s officers, his aide-de-camps, who were
there as amateurs, suffered. One coming home was shot in the thigh.
Many others had narrow escapes, and Lord Wellington remained exposed,
untouched! This is really wonderful.

To-day again there was some fighting, but only on our left, a sort
of trial of the French strength. We lost, I hear, however, several
men, particularly of the 9th. On the whole, with wounded and sick,
we shall be much reduced by this week’s work, and I still think can
scarcely advance safely any further, unless you send men here instead
of to Holland, or unless we can get a good corps of Spaniards to join
us under officers who will keep them in order. O’Donnell, the Condé
D’Obisbal, is come up again, and will do, for he will hang his men
until he gets order and obedience. Lord Wellington has also got his
full powers renewed by the Spaniards, and may now perhaps try them once
more, if tempted to advance after what has happened.

_Sunday, 12th December, 3 o’clock._—Every one has gone out again, but
nothing expected to be done to-day. The French attacked us after sunset
last night in force, in hopes, probably, of catching us napping again,
and getting more baggage, but it did not succeed. The Germans are kept
here to-day. My first letter, up to the 11th, I have sealed and sent,
and keep this open in case of more news, for which I must hunt, and
then come in and finish this, and after dinner divide my prize maps of
this canton, and of the whole seat of the northern war—French maps of
this year; great prizes. For the present, adieu.

_Five o’clock._—More fighting again to-day. The French columns
appeared, and we threw some shells amongst them. This brought on a
quarrel, and we skirmished sharply for a long time; the Guards were
principally concerned; the Adjutant killed, Lieutenant-colonel, and a
Captain. I hear of no advantage gained on either side—mere fighting.
Our entrenching tools are sent for, so I suppose we are going to make
ourselves snug to remain quiet.

_Six o’clock._—No more news, and no more fighting, but I have just
heard that Lieutenant-colonel D—— W—— is shot in the head, and some
say killed; some contradict it altogether. I had told Miss W that he
was well, in a letter just gone to the post. The Paymaster-general and
several amateurs got suddenly into fire without intending it the other
day. It is better now to stay at home, for one fight is much like any
other, and I have now seen some of the best which are likely to happen.




CHAPTER XVII.

 French Attack—Plan of Desertion—Excesses of the French—A
 Basque Witness—Sir John Hope—Movements of the Army—Sale of
 Effects—Wellington’s Simplicity of Character—A French Emigré—Return of
 Soult to Bayonne.


  Head-quarters, St. Jean de Luz,
  December 14, 1813.

  MY DEAR M——,

As every one is still in the front, and I have now but a few letters to
write on business, I shall proceed in writing to you, and, if possible,
send this by the delayed packet. Yesterday morning, the French were, I
believe, to have been attacked again in our front, in order to drive
them back into Bayonne. In the morning, however, they were off, and had
disappeared from the disputed ground, and only appeared in the Bayonne
works. This made us suspect an attack from them on General Hill, who
was on our right, with only some Portuguese, and his two divisions on
the other side of the Nive. Reinforcements were ordered accordingly,
and all the grandees and amateurs went that way. So it turned out; the
French came in large masses and attacked us there, just as we were
moving about in our position.

At first they drove the Portuguese brigade there back from a knoll.
They rallied, however, returned, and recovered it. By that time the
rest of the two divisions were up ready, and the French came on in more
force. The attack now became general along the line, and the French
were beaten back on all sides with very considerable loss, and without
the reinforcements, which were not in time. I know no particulars at
all, for Lord Wellington did not return last night to this place;
but some who did, say that the French were very thick, as they came
forward in such masses, and some of their own disheartened prisoners
talk of four thousand men and more as their loss. These daily desperate
attacks, first on their right and then on their left, and the accounts
given by the German Nassau officers, make me suspect very much that
Soult will after this be off altogether further to the rear after
having obeyed his order, by a desperate attempt to drive us back into
Spain again. I hear that he wrote to Lord Wellington before these five
days’ fighting, to say that we must positively quit France, and that,
to save bloodshed, he wished Lord Wellington would retire of his own
accord. I did not learn this, however, from the very best authority.

The day before yesterday I met at dinner the Major of the Nassau
regiment, a very pleasant gentleman-like man, aide-de-camp to the
Prince, and the very officer who brought the secret verbal orders to
the Colonel K—— to take the steps he has done. The Major arrived six
weeks ago, but they never found the opportunity until now. Similar
orders are gone to another battalion with Marshal Suchet, and to a
corps of Nassau cavalry there, and we have sent word to our army on
that side to endeavour to let them know that these three battalions
have succeeded. The whole was very near failing even this time: he gave
us all the particulars.

The French towards evening thought things were not going on quite
well, and ordered up all the reserves. Amongst the rest were three
battalions, and that of Baden, which lately had been kept much in the
rear. When they were all retiring towards their quarters again at
dusk, General Villette (Colonel Downie’s old enemy), who commanded the
reserve, was obliged to retire to the rear being wounded. He left
orders with a stupid old General who succeeded him in command. The
Colonel of the Nassau regiment was directed by the old man to retire
along the great road. He represented the numbers going that way and
the delay, and proposed a side road. The old man said, “Well, you will
do your best.” The Colonel then thought all would do, and was about
to march off, when up came the 34th regiment, all French, and their
commanding officer said, “_Monsieur le Colonel, j’ai mes ordres de vous
suivre sur votre route_.” This was most perplexing. The Colonel then
made an imaginary obstacle at the head of the column, and desired the
men to file one by one slowly. This tired the patience of the French,
who had been out all day. The Colonel then proposed his plan to the
officer commanding the Baden regiment. To which he replied, that he had
received no orders from his Sovereign, and, after hesitating a little,
declined. Colonel K—— then ordered him to take another road, and told
the French, as they must divide to get home at all, they had better
follow the Baden regiment. The French 34th did so; and the others soon
began to incline towards the English, firing away, however, but in
the air, to deceive any who might be observing them. They soon found
themselves near enough to send in the officer first, and the regiment
followed in spite of some shots from our people. The astonishment of
many, who not being in the secret, found themselves within the English
picket, and fancied they were all about to be made prisoners, was very
considerable; and their joy was as great when they were told the true
state of things.

The Major told us that they had seen constant service in Spain, that
their Sovereign’s contingent for Spain was about two thousand men,
but that the French kept it up whenever they could to nearly three
thousand, and more at times. He was at Talavera, and the bugle of one
of the battalions which sounded as they left, and marched through, was
English, and I understand was taken from us at the battle of Talavera.
He confessed the horrors committed in Spain was “_Nous autres_” (as he
was constantly expressing himself), forgetting that he was no longer
French, and then correcting himself, said, “_par les Français_.” He
said that it was a practice when the orders were issued to plunder and
burn places which had been deserted by their inhabitants, to make a
great fire near the place so as to make the inhabitants think a battle
was about to begin, and lead them to retire to some spot near, out of
the way of the fire, but never intending to desert their homes. The
troops then voted it a deserted town, and begun first to pillage, then
to burn. He described the French army as being now about fifty-five
thousand men, after this affair, of which, however, only about
twenty-two or twenty-three thousands were soldiers, that is veterans;
the rest raw recruits and conscripts, of which Bayonne was full; and
there you might now see, he said, even the blind and the lame compelled
to come forward and serve.

He said they were ill supplied with everything, and had no forage
at all; that one great store of biscuit was spoilt in the church
at Bayonne; and that the roads in the rear were so bad that hardly
any supplies could arrive but by the river—at least not without the
greatest difficulty and labour; that the Dax and Tartas roads were
infamous, and the one I went by, Peyrorade and Orthes, very bad.
Allowance must be made, I think, in regard to these accounts.

Soult was enraged with the inhabitants for wishing to return home
within our lines, and was much provoked at our not having behaved much
worse in this country. I have also understood from officers who went
with flags-of-truce, that the French are excessively angry with their
women for all desiring to come here to us. The Mayor of Biaritz, I
believe, is denounced, having given us assistance, and ordered to be
seized as soon as discovered. The French were two or three days since
in one attack actually in his garden, but could never get into his
house. Of course he had removed many of his goods, and was on the
alert. He has had a picket always in his house, and been very liberal.
Near that house our guns and the French were within three hundred yards
of each other, but neither could get at the opponent on account of the
formation of the ground. There was a small wood in the neighbourhood,
which was a strong point. Lord Wellington, &c., have just returned. I
must go and pick up news.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, December 15th, 1813, Wednesday._—We
are now all returned to our civil business again, and I have just been
to the Adjutant-general and Lord Wellington, as usual, to congratulate
them on their safety, at the same time to make my reports, and receive
fresh instructions.

All the reports confirm the account that the French got a severe
beating on our right the day before yesterday, and that our loss was
not that day so severe in comparison with the other affair on our
left. Our present position is close round the French and Bayonne, in
a semicircle from the sea to the Adour. The advanced posts being from
the front of Biaritz and Anglet, on the sea on our left, and so through
Arcamgues, Arrauntz, on the Nive, the centre, where our boat-bridge is,
and then through Monguerre, Petit, and Vieux, to La Home, on the Adour,
on our extreme right. Some alarm us by a report that head-quarters
are to be moved in consequence to Ustaritz, as being on the Nive, and
more central, and near the bridges. We all, however, hope otherwise.
Some Spaniards are come on now also, and more cavalry are ordered up.
Our abode here has quite spoiled us for the wretched places we must
crowd into at Ustaritz, down in a muddy hole, with the roads almost
impassable around it.

Unless you have a good map, you will find but few of the places
mentioned by me, and yet I have omitted two or three in the circle.

[The places were all found in old maps by Robert, a French geographer.]

I must go to work to draw charges, so adieu.

There is a most eloquent French, or, rather, Basque witness here, who
has been robbed, and whom I am keeping here to give evidence. He pays
me daily visits, and acts over the scene in question, and several
others, in very high style. The Basques are as proud as our Welsh of
their antiquity, and when asked if they are French say, “_Oh, que non
Basque_.” He tried to insinuate himself into my favour, by reminding me
that this country was once all English, and that the inhabitants had
still the memory of that, and favourable feelings accordingly.

Sir John Hope was, including his dress, touched in seven places,
besides a shot in his horse, and through his large hat. The skin wound,
though slight, is the only wound that gives him pain. Lord Wellington
blames him for exposing himself; with what face I know not.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, December 16th, 1813._—Though you will
have heard from me by the detained mail, which went yesterday, you will
expect something by the next, so I begin my work in time; concluding
that it will go Sunday as usual again. I have just heard that the
packet which went from hence the 22nd, with our letters to the 21st of
November, was found deserted at sea, and letters, &c., supposed to be
taken, or most likely sunk. I sent you two long letters by that packet,
with a plan of my house here, and sketch of it, and the largest
proportion of prize Spanish maps, taken at Vittoria; begging you to
keep them, and those that come after, safely. It was in that letter
that I told you of my narrow escape at St. Fé from being shot through
the head by a dragoon whilst I was writing. The ball went between my
pen and my nose, and where my head had been two seconds before: one
cheek was spattered by the door splinters, and the other by the wall
plaster where the ball struck.

We have just got a most alarming report, as far as comfort is
concerned, namely, that we are to move to a little dirty village,
called Arrauntz, on the Nive, worse almost than Frenada, with the
exception of one good house, where roads are impassable—almost up to
the knees in mud. I believe this was certainly determined, but Colonel
Campbell told me just now he believed the order was deferred; I hope so
most sincerely, for we are here rather in a state of civilization and
comfort.

I dined yesterday at head-quarters, and who should I meet but Count
de Gazan’s _ci-devant_ aide-de-camp, a fine gentleman-like young
man, with whom I dined at Count Gazan’s house at that time, Lord
Wellington’s now. He was then very civil to us. We dined yesterday in
his _ci-devant_ apartment. He was about to join Marshal Victor in the
north, as his aide-de-camp, when I last saw him; but being promoted to
a chef-de-battalion, this induced him to stop and take the command. It
answers to our Lieutenant-colonel; and he commanded a battalion against
General Hill in the last attack. Finding his men running away too fast,
he kept in the rear to encourage them, and give them confidence; stayed
there too long, and, in a word, was caught and taken prisoner. He is a
tall, stout, good-looking man of twenty-eight, and speaks English well,
having been in England some time before for education.

I gave him a good breakfast this morning before he set out for
Passages, got him a letter to the principal Commissary at Passages, and
handed him my father’s direction at Somerset House; desiring him to
let him know where he is ultimately quartered in England, and whether
my father could serve him in any way in London. So be prepared for a
letter some time hence from my French acquaintance. He is a staunch
Frenchman in everything, but I do not like him the worse for that, or
for avowing it openly.

He told me that we were not quite so secure in Holland, and that we
were not near a peace, but had much yet to do to obtain such a one as
we required, for Bonaparte was ambitious and unreasonable, and we were
unreasonable also. In some respects I agree, and only hope the Allies
will continue moderate. I offered him money, but he said he had lost
nothing, and did not require it, and declined any assistance. He said,
at the moment he was vexed that our men did not plunder him, as he knew
his own people would have done so by us. He seems a shrewd fellow, and
was therefore ordered off directly from hence.[7]

Lord Wellington looks thin, but was in high spirits yesterday. We have
more artillery and ammunition passing up to-day to the front, and,
I hear, they are making works to strengthen our position, and to be
prepared against any other desperate attack. This may be only Lord
Wellington’s usual prudence, as it does not look like a move further in
advance. Other circumstances, however, do rather look like a movement
forwards, and the strengthening this position may be either for the
present security, or for a position to retire to in case of accidents,
as we have now two rivers in our rear; or, which may be most likely,
for both. The fact is, we have above twelve hundred men digging away,
and artillery is going up.

My French witness here tells me a friend has just arrived from Bayonne,
who informs him, that whilst the movements were going on some days
since, Marshal Soult told the leading people of Bayonne, that all who
intended to move their valuables to the rear should do so by water
immediately, if at all, as circumstances might soon make it impossible
for them to do so by water, and the road would be entirely required by
the military in certain events. This does not look like much confidence.

_Friday, December 17th, three o’clock, and Sunday, December 19th,
Post-day._—A report of more work on the right, and we fancy we have
heard much firing. Lord Wellington is gone off. If matters have not
gone on well, or the horses get tired, we shall have a move yet, I
fear very soon; but hope otherwise most sincerely, that is, if it be
a move of head-quarters only. A forward movement of the army will be
another matter, as it will prove to me Lord Wellington thinks something
is to be done by it. Our cavalry is moving up fast. This looks like a
movement. It spreads out by Cambo on our right. I am also assured by
a French officer here in our service in the Quarter-Master-general’s
department, that the French cavalry are fast filing to the rear, and
have already passed Mont de Marsan, my former abode; and that many of
the old soldiers are from necessity sent back to Bordeaux to compel
some refractory conscripts there to move, for they are a little wilful.
He also told me that the loss of the French (desertion included) in the
late affairs last week, was, in the whole, about thirteen thousand men.
He is, however, a sanguine man; remember that. We are also said to have
taken two or three boats on the Adour, above Bordeaux.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, five o’clock, Sunday, December
19th, 1813._—I have just come from the sea-side, where we can now
scarcely stand for the wind, and are, on the high walk, quite wet with
the spray. A violent gale of some hours has caused this, and I have
been watching a vessel off here for a long time which has been in
considerable danger, but is at last safe in Sacoa harbour. She was most
uneasy at sea, made signals of distress, and the pilot-boats ventured
out, and by their help and working hard with the capstan on an anchor
carried out, she has at last worked her way in.

I met yesterday at dinner Colonel Barnard, who was lately shot through
the body. Colonel Rooke is dead. I feared it must be so, from what was
told me yesterday. He could not eat anything, grew rapidly weaker, and
the suppuration formed a mass clear through his body from one orifice
of the wound to the other, and not properly round the ball so as to
facilitate the extraction of it. Lieutenant-colonel West is well. I saw
him to-day: he was not touched. The report of his being killed arose
from his having sent a horse to the rear—I believe to walk. At the sale
of the late Captain Watson’s effects, I bought a very tolerable saddle,
with holsters, about half worn, for eighteen dollars, which is here
considered cheap. I bid 15_s._ for a curry-comb and brush, bad, but of
English make, and in England worth about 3_s._ or 4_s._—it went for a
guinea! I also bid for a Suffolk punch horse as high as two hundred
dollars, but Major Daring outbid me, though it was certainly very dear.
Captain Watson was of the Guards.

A party of Bayonne sailors have just arrived here I am told, who have
come over to us. Bayonne envies this place now. If we stay, and have
money, things will come in here soon from the French, for the geese
they bring in sell for four dollars instead of 4_s._ before we came,
and so with other things; we have also got some good French cattle to
eat.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, December 21st, 1813._—The furious
stormy weather continues, with almost continual rain, attended
yesterday by a most violent clap of thunder; such repeated gusts of
wind I scarcely ever witnessed. The inhabitants say, that it will last
so long as we have the wind from the sea. At the same time it is not
at all cold, and I have no fire except when I have been caught in the
wet, and am very damp. This happens if you stir for five hundred yards,
as the rain comes with a gust in a few seconds. The thermometer in
my room, without a fire, has been constantly almost above temperate,
and at times above sixty. We are at present all quiet again here, and
invitations are flying about for Christmas dinners on Saturday next.

Marshal Soult is angry with the inhabitants for being friends with us.
He is now circulating proclamations on our right, exhorting the people
to form Guerilla corps and to turn brigands. If we continue to behave
well, he will not easily persuade them to do this. The Spaniards who
demand rations and contributions against orders, and are not so orderly
as they might be (the few that are in France, that is), may perhaps
provoke them to arms, but I hope not. We now go about the roads here as
safely as in Spain; the only marauders indeed are the followers of our
own army and runaway Spaniards and muleteers. Our own army is behaving
particularly well, and now give me a little leisure occasionally.

To my great joy to-day, and still more, I suspect, to that of my
horses, I have got a good truss of English hay—140 lbs. weight. This is
a treasure. But to balance good and evil, the Commissary has given us
no corn during the last three days. So we go on! Many of the cavalry
horses get neither, so we must submit.

In spite of the rough weather, we yesterday got a packet and English
mail, and I received a letter from you of the 6th and 7th December, and
papers from the 4th to the 7th. You confirm our accounts of the loss
of the mail of the 21st November, and of two letters of mine to you. I
only hope they are sunk, though I recollect nothing particular in them.

I have no doubt —— plays the great man very well, and puts on all the
dignity of a Jack in office. He likes the thing, and has a turn for
humbug, of which there is so much all over the world in every line,
and which is often of such infinite use to those who can adopt it. I
think it very tiresome, and only rejoice that it is not the fashion
here at head-quarters. From Lord Wellington downwards, there is mighty
little. Every one works hard, and does his business. The substance
and not the form is attended to; in dress, and many other respects, I
think almost too little so. The maxim, however, of our Chief is, “Let
every one do his duty well, and never let me hear of any difficulties
about anything;” and that is all he cares about. I suppose one should
fall by degrees into a love of representation, and keeping one’s self
up in the world, as it is called (by those who have not much else to
float them), by habit and practice. I must say, hitherto, I continue to
think it far best to be able to do what you please, as you please, and
when you please, provided that nothing is ever done which in the least
approaches to a shabby or ungentleman-like action—so that the opinion
of those whose opinion is worth having is secured. The sort of incense
which is often obtained from the silly majority through exterior humbug
is not worth the price at which it is purchased. My vanity takes a
different turn, and I pique myself upon other things.

I attended another sale yesterday of Colonel Martyn’s effects. It was
quite ridiculous to observe the price at which some old things sold.
Two second-hand nightcaps, which cost about 1_s._ 6_d._ each new in
England, fetched 13_s._ This results partly from distress, partly from
fun in the bidders. Old towels 5_s._ each; blankets 25_s._ I always
feel hurt at seeing all an officer’s stock sold in this way, even
to his ragged shirts and stockings, tooth-brushes, &c.; everything
ransacked. This was very near being my case, also, when I was taken
prisoner. Mr. Jesse’s stock was sold, and he is not a little distressed
in consequence. I have received a note from Lieutenant-colonel E—— to
dine with him on Christmas-day, and have accepted, though probably
I shall lose a great party at Lord Wellington’s by so doing, for he
generally asks heads of departments on those days. I own, however,
that I prefer his smaller parties, when fewer grandees are there, and
Lord Wellington talks more and we drink less. A great party is almost
always stupid, unless there is good singing or good speechifying; and I
have now seen all the lions likely to be there. By-the-by, our Spanish
lions carry their heads wonderfully erect now, and are prouder than any
peacocks; or rather, I might say, they are now true Spaniards.

Yesterday I dined at Lord Wellington’s, and had another adventure. I
recognised an emigré friend at Mont de Marsan, of whom I had been,
during my stay there, very shy, fearful lest a malicious report should
get about that I was intriguing with the royalists. I reminded him of
his questions, &c., and of his speaking to me several times, and I now
explained myself and conduct. He was much surprised at seeing me in my
red coat, but immediately recollected me, and said I had given him then
all the information he wanted. My answers were short, but all true,
certainly. He has brought some congratulations to the Comte de Grammont
from the persons now on his _ci-devant_ estates, and their wishes for
old times and old landlords. He had got some money here, and is, I
suppose, to go to work somehow for the good cause. He is very sanguine;
but though I like and respect the _emigrés_, I always mistrust their
view of things.

A foolish Portuguese, who was sentenced to be shot, escaped three
days ago, and was off; but like a fool, he boasted in Spain of his
performances, was in consequence retaken, and to-day is to be hung.

_December 26th, Post-day._—Another of my French friends came in from
Bayonne yesterday—the principal banker at Bayonne, who gave me money
for my bill; was so friendly to us all and to me in particular, and
for whom I loaded my pockets so quietly with so many letters, above
a hundred in number. He has ostensibly come to receive the 110_l._
still due to him from five of our officers, and which Lord Wellington
intended to send him on my representation: but he has also obtained
leave from Soult to supply us with claret, &c., and is partly come
about that. The French, I conclude, are compelled to try this method
of making a little money; and Marshal Soult being, no doubt, ill-paid,
will go halves in the profit. I suspect my friend, however, may have
further views also, as he is a Spanish and English merchant as well as
banker, and of course a decided enemy to Berlin and burning decrees,
and to war in general, which is now nearly synonymous with being an
enemy to Bonaparte. Lord Wellington sent him to the Commissary-general
to talk matters over.

We have been all quiet here this week, except a little cavalry skirmish
on our right. The French cavalry, I hear, had driven in some of Don
Murillo’s Spaniards, with Hill, in that quarter, and two squadrons of
our 18th Hussars were ordered to drive the French back. This they did,
as they were ordered, without loss, but as usual would do more, and
pushing hastily on fell in with the French infantry support, which is
generally near at hand to the cavalry advance, got a volley or two, and
lost a captain and several men in consequence.

Our people will suppose that the French lurk about the country without
system or order as they do; whereas, however cowed and beaten they may
be, the system, order, and habitual rules, remain.

Some more of Don Carlos d’Espagne’s troops filed up from Irun
yesterday, and turning off about a mile short of this place, went
through Ascain towards our right—about five thousand in the whole.
Several of Murillo’s people are put under arrest by Lord Wellington
for misconduct. They complain that the men get sick in consequence, to
which he replies, “Then behave better, and that will not be the case.”

Some of our artillerymen have by accident burnt one of the best of the
few remaining houses at St. Sebastian, worth twenty thousand dollars
the Spaniards say, and about to be let for six hundred dollars a-year.
This will be quite convincing to the Conciso at Cadiz, and perhaps to
the regency, that we burnt the town on purpose, and are now finishing
our job. It is unlucky to give this handle to these most unconquerably
jealous Spaniards, and already the engineers and few English at St.
Sebastian are most unpopular. The weather is now much improved, and
has turned to frost for the first time this month, which improves our
roads, our spirits, and our prospects. The sea, however, has been for
these last two days tremendous, and washed over the stone bulwark
where we walk, and has cut off our supply of corn these three days
from Passages. I was yesterday caught there when walking with General
Pakenham and General Murray: the Quarter-Master-general ran one way,
the Adjutant-general and I another; the former escaped, and so did the
latter and I, though the foam and surf burst upright, close to us,
above our heads, and then washed our legs midway up; but the force was
broken, and we were not moved, only wetted. The natives and many of our
officers think this roaring ocean predicts more bad weather here again,
but I hope it only proves a storm some two hundred miles off in the
main ocean, as I have always observed there is little connexion here
between our land-storms and the state of the sea, which seems to be
moved by other causes, of which probably one is the agitation caused by
the flood spring-tides.

_Monday._—Marshal Soult has returned again to Bayonne. Lord Wellington,
&c., are all out with the hounds.


FOOTNOTES:

[7] He made no application to Mr. Larpent’s family, nor did he call at
Somerset House.




CHAPTER XVIII.

 Reports from France—More Desertion—Anecdote of General
 Stewart—Wellington and his Casualty Returns—The Courtesies of
 War—Scarcity of Transports—Wellington and the Trial-Papers—Sir G.
 Collier.


  Head-quarters, St. Jean de Luz,
  January 1, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——,

Many happy new years to you and all your party! We are now quite quiet
here, and have no news to communicate. We have repeatedly received
reports of the arrival of an English mail, but it never comes. This
may, however, arise from our having had three of the vessels at once on
this side of the water.

You will be surprised to hear that I had an old French woman, and a
young Spanish girl to breakfast with me this morning, on their way
through to Bayonne, from Bilboa. I had made arrangements for six mules,
and an ox-car to carry their baggage, but they mistook the tide in
their directions, and the baggage is only just arrived, so that they
cannot go until to-morrow. They are the wife and mother of a Monsieur
Dabedrille, at Bayonne, _ci-devant_ principal _Directeur de l’Octroi de
Bilboa_, who fled so quickly after the battle of Vittoria, that he left
all his baggage and females behind him. He was very civil to Colonel
Fitzgerald, who had undertaken to obtain for him the restoration of his
wife; and as the Colonel was not exchanged, I undertook it, got Lord
Wellington’s leave, and here they are, so far on their way safe. Not
having just now much business, I have had time to attend a little to
these good ladies, and they are really very pleasant and well-bred, but
just now the worse for having been six days on board a Spanish coaster
(of Bilboa), to get here.

We have just now got beautiful weather, clear frosty mornings—that is,
white frost, the ground just crisp, a little fog early, and a cool
breeze from the Pyrenees, from the south-east, and a bright sun during
the day.

The only news we have here is a report of the defeat of Davoust,
through the French, and an account which General Wimpfen has just given
me of the Austrians having taken possession of Switzerland. The French
here are hard at work, drilling conscripts, who arrive in considerable
numbers, and turning up the ground as usual in all directions. I
suppose we shall also, as usual, wait until they have nearly done their
task, and by that time, when the ground is dry, turn them out of their
laborious defences. It is quite extraordinary how all their former
position was covered with the effects of their labour.

The inhabitants continue to come in here to us every day, and now by
degrees we get cattle, &c., from them. Desertion from the French has
also been common, five or six men a-day, and many French, not Germans,
young lads, sick of their work. I now hear that the Swiss have declared
against France; that is one step more gained, if true. An officer, who
was prisoner at Bayonne, on the 13th, the day of General Hill’s affair
on the right, states, that the French were most sanguine that morning
at Bayonne; they said that two of our divisions were caught in a trap,
and that they would, General and all, be taken prisoners. They were
quite in spirits, but towards evening, when the officer inquired where
our General was, he could get no one to answer him, or talk on the
subject. All were sulky. Report says also that Soult is gone again,
and farther back; some say that he has been sent for to Paris.

One of the hay vessels, bringing hay to us, in order to plague us, had
got into Bayonne, and the French officers at the outposts taunt us, by
saying that they find English hay very good. This is very provoking,
for in consequence of this we have now nothing again to give our
animals.

_Sunday, Post-day._—I understand that there is no packet as yet at
Passages, to go with the letters. I have, after three hours’ trouble,
packed off my party this morning; four great trunks, two old women, and
one young one, in an ox-car; and four more large trunks, and a quantity
of bedding, and _et ceteras_ of all kinds, on four mules; and one lady
and a man-servant, on horseback. My old French woman, now she is safe
out of Spain, does nothing but abuse the Spaniards, their language,
their manners, their country, and, above all, their stupidity in
society.

I must now return to the work of drawing charges, which must be done
immediately. I hope there is not another task for me now passing my
window, for there is an uproar, and seven Spanish prisoners going along
bound to the provost guard.

We have now established a sort of little telegraph of signals to the
right and in front, to acquaint Lord Wellington immediately should
anything be going forward.

P.S.—I don’t think you heard a little anecdote of General Stewart, who
is brave, and consequently always gets his aide-de-camp, &c., into some
bad blows, if he does not get one himself. The people about him on the
13th were all touched, and he was nearly alone. An officer of the name
of Egerton went up to him, and whilst there a shell burst between them.
“A shell! sir: very animating!” said Stewart, and then kept Egerton
there talking on.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, January 4th, 1814._—Here we are still
without any news from your side of the water, and of course most
anxious. On this side we seem, however, to be preparing something for
you to talk about; at least, appearances look like another battle. The
day before yesterday (Sunday) all was quiet, and on Monday (yesterday)
Lord Wellington ordered out his hounds, and went off early himself. In
the middle of the day, however, the signal was made that the French
were in motion; Lord March and Gordon went off to Lord Wellington, and
he did not return last night. To-day the troops have all been on the
alert, for the French are said to be still moving on our right, and
in fact rather on our rear. The Guards were off early from hence to
replace the light division, who went to the right, and all seems moving
in that direction. No firing has, however, been heard; and I understand
nothing has been done to-day. I went as far as Guethary, and up to the
church-tower, whence the view is very extensive, but saw nothing in
particular. The last report was, that the French still advanced on our
right. If they persist in this, it is my opinion that we must have a
fight, and a sharp one probably, on that side to-morrow, but as the
staff are all out, I know nothing certain.

Two or three days since we took a little island in the Adour, almost
without loss, which will enable us to molest the navigation more
effectually than we have hitherto done, though already it is rather
impeded, even at night, and almost totally by day. A contest about the
island was rather expected, but not this bold move of the French in our
rear. If they persist and fail, I think with the two Gaves in their
rear, we may, perhaps, make them suffer severely for their enterprise.
Marshal Soult’s supposed absence looks now rather like a _ruse de
guerre_.

We have Spaniards on our right, and in the valley of Bastan, who
perhaps may now come in again for a little fighting; and it is to
be hoped they may, for if the French work constantly on the British
and Portuguese, and you continue to send men to Holland, we shall by
degrees get too weak for our situation.

Lord Wellington at dinner on Sunday directed some jokes at Major D——,
who makes out the returns, because he wanted to make a grand total of
wounded, &c., after the late five days’ fighting. He laughed, and said
that all might go wrong from this innovation, but he was determined he
would have no more grand totals until he got another Vittoria without
more loss; that the loss was always great enough in all conscience,
without displaying it in this ostentatious manner, and that he would
not have every drummer and every officer, &c., killed or wounded in
the five days, all added up in one grand total, but that at least
the croakers should have the trouble themselves of adding up all the
different losses, and making it out for themselves.

The weather is just now delightful, and we have had as yet nothing
which can properly be called winter. During the last ten days the sea
has been quite smooth, and we have not even had a white frost. The
people say they think that the first bad season is over now, and we
shall not have much more bad weather until near March: I only hope this
will prove correct.

A French carriage and a car were waiting at the French outposts to
receive my ladies, and they all got in safe. This was managed by
sending in a message the day before. A certain communication with
Bayonne is also now open; for yesterday we had an arrival of French
watches, rings, trinkets, and silk dresses. We carry on war in a
very civilized manner, especially if a little anecdote related to me
yesterday be correct. One of our officers, it seems, I believe Major
Q——, was riding a troublesome horse close to the French pickets,
and partly from the violence of his horse, and partly from his own
inadvertence, he got close to a French sentinel. The latter called out
several times that he was French, and ordered him off, and at last
presented his bayonet. The horse still plunging on, and the officer
apparently not understanding the man, the French sentry turned the
horse the other way by the bridle, and sent him back without offering
any harm to either beast or rider, though he might have killed or taken
both.

This morning we had another instance on our side. A French officer’s
wife came in from Bayonne to follow her husband, a prisoner in England.
We had a boat in from Sacoa to take her upon the beach, to carry her
round by sea to Passages, and an order from Lord Wellington waiting for
her there, for a passage to England as expeditiously as circumstances
would permit.

_Wednesday, 5th January._—No one came back last night, and St. Jean de
Luz is almost deserted; scarcely a red coat to be seen. The ladies are
in some alarm, and only some inquiring doctors and commissaries are to
be seen about the streets. I have in the mean time such an accumulation
of business for Lord Wellington that I shall be almost fearful of
seeing him—five Courts-martial, one of about ninety pages, another
eighty. He always complains, and yet I think he likes to read these
cases, and know himself exactly all that is going on. I have just been
out to pick up news, but in vain, and have been driven back by a slight
shower. Money has been so short here that I could only tempt them to
give me some doubloons immediately by accepting a part of my pay on
England in another Treasury Bill.

_Friday, January 7th._—Lord Wellington is not yet returned here, and we
are, therefore, still deserted; but nothing has been done. The French
have been manœuvring for these three days on our right flank, but in
vain, as our General was ready for them. Yesterday, however, he was
nearly bringing them to blows. A part of their force remained on our
side of the Adour, between the Nive and the Bidocque. This was too near
our position, and they were to have been driven across, but prudently
went away in good time of their own accord, consequently nothing was
done, and I think nothing will be done just now.

The French head-quarters here are at (I believe) Peyrehorade, a town
on the Gave, of some little river commerce. In our present suspense we
were at last amused yesterday by the arrival of two mails, and I have
got letters, papers, &c.

You kill men for me faster than I do in reality, and that is enough. I
am only aware of forty-one having been shot or hung since my arrival
in the country; and that is quite enough too, you will say, almost as
many as you hang in all England in a year. You were quite right about
the lost letter from me; it contained a full description of St. Jean
de Luz, and of my horrible muddy journey from St. Fé to this civilized
place, with a sketch of my house and its vicinity, &c., a ground plot
of my quarter, which, if time and room permit, I will repeat. And as
you do not congratulate me on my escape from being shot, I suppose that
story was there also.

_Later._—As Lord Wellington is still away, I continue to scribble to
you. This place has been a very flourishing town, and of considerable
trade, but is much in decay; this partly before the late wars, from the
bar having increased, so that only small vessels can get in now, and
the evil still increases. At low water the river only ripples over the
bar of sand, scarcely a foot deep, and at times the river is choked up
by the sand, so that it cannot make its way out, and floods the town.
This happened twice last year, but has not recurred this year, though
at times the bed of the river has been quite changed, and the water
nearly stopped.

Sacoa is a very safe harbour; for small vessels drawing under ten
feet, quite safe. They lie there high and dry, according to the tide.
The houses of the former merchants are rather magnificent, though some
are in ruins, and their number, for the size of the town, considerable.
It has been called a sort of little Paris for the Basques. Near the
sea the water has been, and is, gaining on the town and bay. There are
many ruins; one is part of an old convent, now beyond the sea-wall,
and almost in the sea, and some say a whole street has been washed
away. The great sea-wall made by Bonaparte, six hundred yards long, was
constructed to save the town, and makes a good dry walk.

Sibour is also a very large village, or small town, of inferior houses,
where at present two brigades of Guards are, and two other regiments
of Lord Aylmer’s brigade, besides some staff cavalry, &c. Most of the
better houses have French papers from Paris, and it looks very well.
The whole wall forms one landscape, like tapestry—sea-ports from Vernet
or Claude, &c.; some in colours, some in bistre or an imitation of
Indian ink, some Chinese, but in better perspective. The brown and
black are very pretty. Most of the walls are papered. The lower parts
of the houses are all a sort of warehouse (where they are not shops);
this serves us for stabling, but they are flagged, which having no
straw is noisy, and they smell much also. Almost all the men of a
better sort went away from St. Jean de Luz; several women, for the most
part old, stayed, and many have since returned; but no society, or
anything of that sort, is as yet set on foot here. The deputy mayor,
who stayed, sold all the wine he could appropriate, his own, and all
unclaimed, as well as other things, and is, I believe, making money
of us very fast. The town is now all a market or fair, and full of
Spaniards and Portuguese, as well as French and Bascos, all pillaging
poor John Bull, by selling turkeys for 25_s._ and 30_s._, and fowls for
12_s._ and 14_s._

The people from Bilboa have been most active. Little has arrived from
England or Lisbon as yet, which is extraordinary; but the danger of the
coast is, probably, the cause. During the bad weather ten vessels of
ours found their way into Bayonne, one with fifty-two Irish bullocks,
by which we lost part of the best beef we ever get, and one with
seven hundred trusses of hay, others with biscuit, &c. This is very
provoking. The Bayonne mayor showed us the post-list of the whole taken
in each ship. How we shall get on with our animals I know not, for they
tell me that they hear from England, in the Commissariat, there is but
little hay on the sea for us, from want of transport, and there is no
straw to be got at all now within thirteen leagues, or about forty
miles, from hence. I am, however, advised to send for it; and if this
movement shall come to nothing, will do so to-morrow.

It is fortunate that we are so near the sea, and have some advantage
as to transport in the river Nivelle also, for our transport is much
diminished by desertion of the muleteers from want of pay. The army is
more numerous than when at Frenada and in Portugal, and our transport
is now less. Were we to wander into France (as you suppose), away from
the coast, we should find it difficult to live at all. The boats of
this place are famous, and the men stayed here, or have escaped here,
and are all in our pay now, and thus things are brought round from
Passages here by sea, and then up to the division by the river as far
as Ustaritz, where they are then distributed to the mules of each
division. Even with this help the army cannot be supplied with rum,
except by buying it very dear on the spot of the suttlers, for nearly
all our remaining mules are required for bread and a little corn for
the staff. The meat supplies itself in a way—that is, about two-thirds
only of the flesh which leaves Valencia, &c., in Spain, arriving here,
falls under the butcher’s knife, besides the number which die on
the road; and yet all that can be stopped, when fagged or lame, are
distributed at the stations on the way. The suttlers, by the great
profit they make, can pay the muleteers as high as two dollars a-day
for each mule to carry up their produce, making us pay for it in the
end. This evil increases, for our muleteers, who only have one dollar
a-day for each mule (and enough in all conscience), are tempted to
desert and get into the service of the suttlers, who thus supply the
men with rum only at a dear rate, when we cannot do it. The pay of our
muleteers is now over-due twenty-one months for each mule: they have,
therefore, their own way, and are under no control at all. Nothing but
a sort of _esprit de corps_, and the fear of losing all claim to the
debt, makes them keep with us at all; and we must submit to their fraud
and carelessness, for we have no remedy.

As an instance of this, it may be mentioned that one brigade of mules,
which had twenty-four thousand pounds of barley given to them to bring
here, five leagues from Passages, only delivered eighteen thousand, and
almost openly admitted that they had taken the rest, which I suppose
they had sold to raise money. We could only set off the value against
their debt, for fear of losing them without getting others. There was
a grand consultation the other day, at which Lord Wellington, the
Commissary-general and his people, General Alava the Spanish General,
and most of the principal Spanish Capistras, or directors of the mules
and owners, were present, to settle what could be done. They resolved
to make the arrears all a debt, to acknowledge it, and then begin a
sort of new score. This is in imitation of the Portuguese; only they
do not pay the debt at all, but wipe off the arrears. One month’s pay
was also given by bills on the Treasury at a great discount, still
this was something to go on with, and we have not Marshal Beresford’s
absolute power to control these Spaniards, as he does the Portuguese.
Somehow, however, you see we get on.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, Sunday, January 9th, post-day
again._—As to length, at least, you shall have no reason to complain
this mail, though I am at work again at business; for on Friday night
all our warriors returned home to their respective quarters, and the
Commander-in-Chief to his papers. The latter had so increased upon him
in his five days’ absence, that he was quite overwhelmed; and when I
went in with a great bundle to add to them, he put his hands before his
eyes and said, “Put them on that table; and do not say anything about
them now, or let me look at them at all.”

This week’s manœuvring has not this time ended in smoke, but without
smoke, as nearly as possible, for our men could not get within a long
shot of the French, without following them beyond what our present
plans would admit. They remained a short time on our side of the river
Arrun, as it is called, in Casini’s great map, and Gambouri, in my part
of the French National Atlas, a small river which runs by La Bastide
and falls into the Adour, near Urt, a place half-way between Bayonne
and where the Gaves fall into the Adour.

We collected on the heights above Bastide, and made the signal by
a little mountain gun to advance. The French made use of the same
signal to commence their retreat across the river, and scarcely a shot
was fired. La Bastide, which is on this side of the river, we never
entered: but remaining satisfied with that line, the matter ended
there. A change of weather, to rain of no trifling kind, will probably,
I think, oblige both parties to be quiet for some little time again,
until sun and air return to us without wet, and dry roads enable the
troops to move a little this difficult country. It is at present very
hard work to get on, even in the best roads, and across the country,
which is much intersected with streams and rivers, and has only clayey
poached roads, and strong fences of hedge and ditch; it is almost
impassable. Lord Wellington, I believe, always went back to his brother
Marshal, Beresford, at Ustaritz, to which place he sent for some
English hay for his horses. The Adjutant-general’s department remained
mostly at Hasparren, which is, it is said, a very pretty small town in
a rich cultivated valley of meadows, where they fell in with a small
stock of excellent hay, not quite eaten by our cavalry, who are in that
part of the country.

All the people at head-quarters have come back safe and sound; but with
horses a little knocked up, and rather stiff with riding about twelve
or even fourteen hours a-day. Most of them, however, look the better
for the exercise. The most fagged of all I saw was our naval hero, Sir
G. Collier, with his lame leg. He had ridden everywhere after Lord
Wellington in hopes of seeing a fight, and coming in, I suppose, for
another knock on shore, but all in vain. He says, that the French never
will stand when he comes, and nothing is ever done. He is about to
leave this station.

And now for a little account of the Spaniards, in order to show you how
they plague Lord Wellington. We have undertaken to assist and direct,
with our engineers, in putting St. Sebastian into some order, and into
a state of defence. The actual working-party are, however, nearly all
Spanish. These have nearly all deserted, and little or nothing is going
on but quarrels between our people and the Spaniards in authority, who
thwart them. At first Lord Wellington thought that we were to blame,
and seemed angry; but he told Col. E—— at last, “If they go on so, d——
them, they may finish the work for themselves; but go over and see
about it, and make a report to me.”

_Later._—Another English mail arrived, and another letter from you
of the 27th and 28th, with papers to the 27th, &c. The great news
which yours contained as to Lord Castlereagh we had heard through the
French outpost five days since; but the report only stated that he
had actually landed at Morlaix, on his way to Manheim, to the general
Congress, for a peace. This was believed before your account came, as
it agreed with the general tenor of the late English news; at least I
thought so, for one. Whether it will end in a peace, however, is very
doubtful, especially if Bonaparte finds that in consequence of this
negotiation he keeps all quiet in France, and the conscription goes on
without resistance, and his armies in March next will be formidable. If
he can once assume an imposing position, it is doubtful in my opinion
whether he will come into the terms of the Allies. _Mais c’est à voir_,
and he has much to do to put himself in such a position.

Many of the French conscripts here join almost without any uniforms
or necessaries for a soldier, yet every deserter who comes in has
everything nearly new, and is better provided for than any of our men,
except the few who have just had their new clothing, &c., of which the
Guards, who, by the by, returned here last night to their old quarters,
form part. Just now the Italians begin to desert the French, and say it
is in consequence of their having heard that their division, which was
marched to the rear some short time since, was all disarmed and treated
as prisoners of war. This may not be fact; but the effect is that many
Italians come over to us.




CHAPTER XIX.

 Rumours of War—The Rival Dinner-Tables—“Slender Billy”—Bonaparte’s
 Trickery—Spanish Violence—Wellington with the Hounds—French and
 English Aspects; the Outsides of the Nations.


  Head-quarters, St. Jean de Luz,
  January 11, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——,

Fine weather is now returned, and no doubt before we have been quiet
another week, should it last, we shall be stirred up a little by the
French. At present, all our usual avocations are proceeding, and all is
quiet.

The only event in my own establishment which has occurred is my taking
into my service a Spanish lad, in addition to my other servants, but
it will end in my getting rid of an idle Portuguese, who does nothing.
I found the lad begging and in misery, by the sea-side, and asked his
history. He told me he was without father and mother, and came from
a village two leagues beyond Madrid; that he had been under-stable
servant to a French Commandant, who had gone wounded from Bayonne to
the rear, towards Paris, and had turned him off. He therefore came back
here, towards Spain. At first I only gave him food, and then, that I
might not have to try him, took him to General Alava, who promised to
send him to General Frere, to make a drummer of him. The next morning
he called upon me before he started, and, being prepossessed by his
looks, I have taken him on trial. He seems active and useful; and I
hope will not return my charity by robbing me, of which there is some
risk.

A party of our suttling merchants here behaved ill the other night,
by insulting a sick officer; the worst among them escaped. One is
now in confinement, and I have sent in his charge. They are all in a
terrible fright of military law. Most probably he will not be tried if
he makes an apology; but it has answered Lord Wellington’s intention
by convincing these men that there is law here, and that they are
followers of the army and liable to that law.

On the neutral ground, on the great road to Bayonne, between our
picquets and the French, in front of Biaritz, there are at present,
in one of the houses unoccupied by either party, three young damsels
alone. They are rather pretty and interesting, and all say very modest.
For a time General Stopford, I believe, out of gallantry, put a
safeguard there, but it was considered out of our position, and there
was some quizzing. So the damsels are left quiet and alone again. They
come daily into our lines, to bring milk, &c., and some flirtation goes
on; but there they are safe. This is creditable to both sides.

I am told that the people at Hasparren, when the French approached the
place last week, and it was thought might occupy it, were manifestly
alarmed and dissatisfied, and wished us to stay. This might be from the
fear of a conflict there, or from the benefits now derived from us,
when the first irruption and mischief are over. Fowls are still, near
there, to be had for 2_s._ each, and turkeys from 7_s._ to 9_s._; but
this will not last, as people here have given, and others now ask, as
much as 12_s._ for fowls, and 30_s._ for turkeys, or even more. General
Cole, as we advanced, bought nine geese, at a dollar each; and this was
grand pay, and not from fear. Here they are 25_s._ each.

_Later._—How uncertain everything is with us! Marshal Beresford’s
aide-de-camp is just come in to Lord Wellington, and there is some
stir on our right again. Lord Wellington and several others are off
in that direction, and I am told the former stays out all night; this
looks as if something was suspected. I dine to-day at head-quarters,
and am to go as usual, though the chief is away. He asked me yesterday,
but I told him that General Hill had asked me three days before, and
expected me. “Very well,” said he, “but I advise you to come to me,
nevertheless, as you will get a much better dinner, for General Hill
gives the worst dinners going.” To General Hill’s, however, I went; and
though plain fare, compared to Lord Wellington’s, whose table is just
now very good, and much improved, I got a very good dinner.

If any dependence could be placed on appearances, I should say nothing
important was going on to-day; for I saw Lord Wellington after he had
seen the aide-de-camp, and he read a long letter quietly through,
seeming quite at his ease; but he takes all that arises so coolly that
this proves nothing. A sudden change again to rain will, in my opinion,
damp the plans of the French, if they had any, as well as give all
those gone off to the right a miserable ride, as it seems well set in
for the day. Wind and wet seem here to be winter.

What a change has arisen for our young Prince of Orange who was here!
I only hope he will not be spoilt by success and prosperity. In a
little time, after all, it would not surprise me to hear of his looking
back to the time he spent here at head-quarters as the pleasantest
part of his life. Slender Billy was his nickname with those who were
intimate with him, and he knew it; for one day, at dinner, Lord Fitzroy
Somerset, not knowing that he was present, said, “Where is Slender
Billy to-day?” Upon which the Prince put his head forward, and called
out, “Here I am, Fitzroy; what do you want?”

_January 12th._—Lord Wellington and his party came back to dinner
yesterday. The cause of the bustle was as follows. We had in our
possession a mill which belonged rather to the French position than to
ours; they attacked it, and, after some brisk firing, it was abandoned
to them, and then all was quiet again. This news passed Lord Wellington
on the road, but missed him, or he would not have gone on as far as he
did. Ustaritz is about fifteen good miles from hence, and the road in
parts almost up to a horse’s belly. Lord Wellington rode there in the
rain in two hours and ten minutes, and back in two hours and a half, up
and down hills and through the clay: this proves a horse.

The next piece of news you will, probably, hear first: but if you
should not, you have to learn that the cunning Bonaparte has been
making a treaty with King Fernando VII. privately about a peace with
Spain, and that he has sent it to the Cortes for their approval, and
has appointed an ambassador for that purpose to Madrid. The gubernador,
or preceptor and major domo of King Ferdinand, is either at Madrid or
on his way thither. Spain, and Madrid in particular, is said to be in
much agitation. The Cortes are to meet the 15th of January. This is a
very artful plan to create jealousies between us, if not to procure
a partial peace. We shall see now of what the Regency and Cortes are
made. They have in professions bullied much, and resolved never to
treat at all whilst a Frenchman remained in Spain. How they will act up
to their resolution is now to be seen.

_Friday, January 14th._—We have now French papers up to the 3rd from
Paris, and have got Bonaparte’s valedictory address, on setting out
for the army in France, to fight on old French territory. This, I
think, if the Allies persist, must end the business soon, for if he
is well beaten, there must certainly be a rising in France; and if he
beats the Allies, we shall in my opinion have a peace, except that he
seems determined, even now, not to give up Holland, and that we must
at all events retain, if possible. The crisis is, however, apparently
approaching, and that rapidly.

We remain here in _statu quo_. French desertion is diminishing, and
seems for the moment quiet. The only event of interest has been the
folly of two Portuguese officers near the Adour. They had had a long
parley with the French, were, it is said, drinking together, but
were somehow persuaded by their French new acquaintance to pass over
the river for a dance, or wine, or some reason of that sort, under a
promise of being allowed to return safe. They went, however, and have
never got back. Lord Wellington has written to Gazan, reminding him
of his having sent back six French soldiers, who were taken by the
Portuguese in the heat of the campaign, owing to a similar promise or
understanding, not having been known to them as made to the French.
Lord Wellington claims the two Portuguese in the same way, as being
taken by a breach of faith in the French officers. If this be not
acceded to, he then requests that the two officers may be put for some
time into close confinement or arrest, which, he says, they deserve,
and might probably meet here if restored. As yet no answer is arrived.

A French dragoon of the 21st chasseurs, a deserter, came in yesterday,
giving a curious account of his reason for deserting. He says he had
been fourteen years in the French service, and was now a corporal;
that his own captain’s nephew had lately joined as a private in his
troop, and that he, the corporal, had to place this man on duty; that
he was not tractable or obedient, and that he was obliged to strike him
with the flat of his sword; that the nephew told the uncle, and, when
they returned, the captain, as soon as he met the deserter, gave him a
severe blow in the face with his fist; and that, in consequence, he
immediately got on his horse, and came off to us. He is a fine-looking
soldier: and, though he has sold his horse for a hundred dollars, says,
that he now repents much what he was induced to do in the heat of the
moment; but it is now too late—the deed is done, and he must persevere.

I forgot to tell you, in my last, of an act of Spanish violence at
Vittoria, which has caused a strong sensation in the English army,
especially at Vittoria. The Honourable Captain G——, of the 94th, was
quartered there, and had had some intrigue with a girl. He at first
took her home to his quarter. Her friends had recourse to the police.
The armed police came, and were in the house to take the girl: Captain
G—— resisted, and the police were fairly turned out again by him and
his servant. When out of the house, they are said to have formed, as
it were, and then to have fired in through the door in cool blood,
and with no particular object as to taking Captain G——. The latter
was shot, and died almost immediately. Had this happened during the
conflict, it might have been correct enough, though rather harsh and
unnecessary in an armed police against an individual for comparatively
a trifling offence; but as the story is told, it is quite inexcusable,
and seems to have been merely an act of spite and vexation, at having
suffered themselves to be repulsed by the captain. It was revenge for
having exposed their cowardice.

The fox-hounds were out yesterday, and killed a fox; but had not a
very good run. Lord Wellington wore the Salisbury hunt-coat, sky-blue
and black cape. The Spanish General Frere accompanied him, and as
formerly he was a general of cavalry, and the fox soon took to earth, I
understand Frere kept up, but all his staff were distanced.

I feel now quite at ease about my animals, for I have collected straw
and hay, and furze enough for about eight days, which is with us
looking very forward, as much so as is prudent. My Spanish boy, after
being here a day or two, told me he would rather set out and try to
find his way to Madrid, so I dismissed him, lest he should take a horse
or mule to expedite him on his journey.

We cannot prevent the Spanish boats from still getting down the Adour
to Bayonne, though it is not quite so easy as it was to navigate the
river. If all remains quiet, Lord Wellington talks of giving a ball
here on the 18th of January, the Queen’s birthday, but nothing can
be settled long beforehand. The English ladies will be few, and all
married women. We have still only four of the legitimate kind. The
mayor of the town says that a number of the ladies who frequented the
balls before we came, and of whom I found a list in my quarter, are
still here, and will be forthcoming if called upon.

I find my French “seat of war” a most useful acquisition, as it now
contains the whole war, except our own, and that I have in the map of
this department, which is on a superior scale.

From four to six o’clock our promenade on the wall is quite gay, for
all the great men of business, including Lord Wellington himself,
generally appear there at that time, and the Guards also, though the
exertion of walking, to which we men of business are accustomed to take
at a true twopenny postman’s long trot, is too great for them; yet they
are formed about in knots and groups, sitting on the wall, or gently
lounging on it, and add to the gaiety of the scene. We soon perceive
when their turn of duty at the outposts takes them away to the front
for a week.

As a proof of the supine and inactive state of the Spanish government,
bread and corn are so cheap and abundant this year in the Castiles,
that they are quite without demand, and it even answers to bring
Spanish bread up here to sell, above fifty, and, I believe, a hundred
miles; and yet the Spanish nation, relieved from the French army
and our own, cannot supply the few men we have in front with us, in
France and on the frontier, with money or anything. To prevent their
plundering, we now not only have clothed Don Carlos’s soldiers, near
Hasparren, but have given them a month’s pay, and provided them with
rations of biscuits from England. With such a nation, and such a
population, the state of the Spanish army, and the supplies, which get,
I think, worse instead of better, is most provokingly disgraceful to
their government and leading men.

I have been much struck with the change in the appearance of this
town, when French head-quarters were here, and now that it has become
the head-quarters of the English. It shows the difference between the
two nations. When I was last there, all was gay and glittering, full
of chattering officers in their best uniforms, with gold lace and
ornaments, and prancing country steeds with housings and trappings
of all kinds. The shops were crowded with sky-blue and scarlet caps
embroidered with silver and gold, and pantaloons the same, smart
cloaks, trinkets, &c. The road was covered with long cars, bringing in
supplies drawn by mules gaily ornamented, and with bells, and waggoners
with blue frocks, and long smacking whips, whilst the quay was nearly
deserted, only a few boats to be seen which had just returned from an
unsuccessful attempt to send in shot and shells to St. Sebastian; the
sailors idle, and scarcely the appearance of a port visible. Bread and
vegetables were abundant; other eatables, not so.

Now we have, on the contrary, a different scene; not a piece of
finery is to be seen, no gay caps, no pantaloons, no ornaments. The
officers all in their morning great coats; Lord Wellington in his
plain blue coat, and round hat, or perhaps in his sky-blue Salisbury
hunting dress. The streets, full of Spanish mules, with supplies, and
muleteers, &c., all running against you, and splashing you as you walk;
every shop crowded with eatables—wines, sauces, pickles, hams, tongues,
butter, and sardines. The quay is now always a busy scene, covered with
some rum casks, and flour casks, and suttler stores; the sailors all
in our pay, at work constantly and making fortunes; the pilots in full
hourly employment, bringing in vessels here or at Sacoa. The latter is
full of masts and sails from Passages, Bilboa, Lisbon, or the West of
England. The prices are still enormous, and of course, the activity is
the result. The French peasants are always on the road between this
place and Bayonne, bringing in poultry, and smuggling out sugar in
sacks on their heads.

The Basques must have been a very happy race twenty years since,
for though generally a poor country, there is plenty of their
usual food—Indian corn, and excellent meadows by the rivers, which
are numerous. Fish is easily procured—the houses are spacious and
comfortable, and the children seem numerous, well-grown, intelligent,
and healthy. The men are tall, straight, and active; the women, stout
and useful, and rather good-looking. Nor was any great deficiency
of young men observable; the proportions seemed much the same as in
England, though certainly there are not so many tall idle fellows about
as in Ireland. The town, however, had evident marks of a tendency to
retrograde and decay.

_Later, the 16th._—By the last French papers (which we now have to the
8th, and which bring us the good news from Genoa), I find the accounts
of Bonaparte setting out to put himself at the head of a hundred and
eighty thousand men near Dijon or Maçon, is at least premature, for he
is still reviewing at Paris. We have stories of disturbances arising
out of the conscription, but nothing certain seems known about them.
The French, a few days since, surprised a few of our forage mules near
Lahoupon; I believe only eight. Lahoupon is a place which neither party
is fixed in, but both patrole through occasionally.

P.S.—Notwithstanding Cobbett says, we men from the Peninsula must never
think of marrying English women, we may at least be anxious about our
friends; for we are not, I conclude, worn out for friendship, as well
as for love. Tell me all you can, as usual, about every one in your
world.




CHAPTER XX.

 State of Feeling in France—Rocket-Practice—The Prince Regent’s
 Hobby—The Mayor’s Ball—The Flag-of-Truce.


  Head Quarters, St. Jean de Luz,
  January 18th, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——,

After two or three days’ continual rain, we have at last a clear
beautiful day; thermometer in my room at 63°.

In the midst of a terrible storm the day before yesterday a little
cockle shell of a sloop arrived in the open bay here, with the Count
de Grammont on board and Colonel Abercrombie, with despatches and a
paper of the 10th. This told us the principal news. We have thus heard
that the Danes are with us; ideas of peace thrown aside, and the Allies
across the Rhine. This is popular news here; for almost all are against
a peace with Bonaparte, partly from public feelings that such a peace
would be injurious to England and the world, partly the fact that any
peace would not be desirable to our military men, especially to those
on the staff, whose splendour would be much shorn by it. The civilians
and regimental officers, who are not on the eve of a step, are alone
inclined to a peace; to many it will be ruinous.

We again hear of refractory conscripts, and men refusing to march, in
the right of the department de Landes and elsewhere, and I believe
it in some degree. But this alone will not do without a more general
feeling and even then scarcely, unless a portion of the army takes a
part and declares its views against the common enemy Bonaparte, whom
all Europe are now hunting like a mad dog.

The Count de Grammont has made a most expeditious trip. He had had
communications with the persons on his former property here, and I
suppose his visit home was connected with this, to know what line to
pursue, &c. The feelings of this part of France seem, as yet, to be
still the same: all desire peace, and for that purpose are eager to
get rid of Bonaparte; but there is no feeling manifested towards the
Bourbons, not hitherto, at least; and I really believe the military
men, and even many civilians, would rather have Bonaparte if they could
be sure of a peace with him. He has done much for them, and on a great
scale. The Code Napoleon has been a great work, and from what I hear
is much liked. Instead of being governed, and oppressed in fact, by
the rich, as they were before, they are now governed by the law, and
that a good law; and as the mayor here and several others say, well
administered, when the state was not concerned. The only defect seemed
to be that the magistrates having been latterly ill-paid, a temptation
to corruption on their part existed; and this was a change from
anarchy, and therefore the more felt, as then the strongest (I mean
in means and territory) was everything and the poor man nothing. In
short, the only really great grievance felt at this distance from the
court of the tyrant seems to have been the horrid conscription and its
tremendous increase of late, and the want of commerce. Nor would the
French feel either of these so much as any other nation in Europe. The
first she would not feel so much, on account of the natural tendency of
the inhabitants to a military life and habits; the last, from the great
internal resources of France in other respects, making loss of commerce
of much less importance to her than to almost any other power which
had been accustomed to enjoy them. I do not mean less than Austria,
which has been so generally shut out from commerce to any extent, but
compared with England, Holland, or Sweden.

_Thursday, 20th._—Another change again in the weather. Yesterday it
was quite a fine, sunny, warm day, till one or two o’clock, like our
May, and we were all out, witnessing some experiments made with the
rockets, about two miles off, when a storm gathered, and soon the rain
and wind came, and has continued to this time. The night has been very
boisterous, and one of our Commissariat transports has been on shore
in the bay here, stranded, and it is feared that five or six lives are
lost: all hands are now at work moving the stores—corn and hay.

All the military men in the vicinity were here with Lord Wellington,
including General Frere, the Spanish General. The ground-rockets,
intended against cavalry, did not seem to answer very well. They
certainly made a most tremendous noise, and were formidable spitfires;
no cavalry could stand if they came near them, but in that seemed the
difficulty, for none went within half a mile of the intended object,
and the direction seemed extremely uncertain. The ground was very bad,
and on a flat, or along a road, where they would ricochet or bound
along straight they might do very well, but in the present experiment
they went bang into the ground, sometimes within two hundred yards, and
sometimes one way and sometimes another. Some of them, instead of going
fourteen hundred yards, as intended, were off in a hundred, and some
pieces of the shell came back even amongst us spectators, one very near
Dr. N—— and me, whilst we were standing on one side, out of the way as
we thought. The fire, however, seemed very strong, as one got into a
green hedge, and set it in a blaze directly; the furze and heath were
on fire, and only put out by the rain. Those which were let off at an
elevation supposed for burning towns, &c., were much more successful,
and some went very near the spot, compared with others; that is, I
think they would have hit Bayonne, for instance, somewhere or other,
and no doubt have set fire to the town; but the part of the town you
could not very well choose, for their power seemed very different, and
the wind at times carried them three hundred or four hundred yards away
from the direction intended.

Upon the whole I do not think they were much admired, though in
certain cases they might be useful, especially when the enemy are in a
mountainous track, like at the battle of Pamplona, and near us. Where
guns could not be got up without great difficulty, these rockets could
be carried by hand, or on mules, and being let off near, would have
tremendous effect even upon infantry when in column. General ——, who
is very wise and knowing in the secret views and springs of everything
(or at least would be thought so), says that all that fuse of the Crown
Prince and Sir Charles Stewart, as to the effect of the rockets in the
North, was to please the Prince Regent in England, the great patron of
the rockets.

The stranded ship was, I hear, driven out of the harbour of Sacoa by
the gale. This is quite extraordinary, for the vessels are there quite
shut up. The place is, however, too full by far, for no transport likes
to move again when once safe there. The packet lost in the harbour of
Passages last week shows you the sort of gales and seas we have here.

This morning, a French picquet of about thirty men were marched off
from hence, prisoners; they were surprised by us two nights ago. We got
close, and when challenged, an old Highlander called out “deserter,” so
the sentinel did not fire, and our men got in among them and carried
off the picquet. I am not very glad of this, for I fear it will lead
the French to try and return the compliment, and make the outpost duty
much more dangerous and troublesome than it has been. If it only leads
to their shooting our next deserter, so much the better. Deserters
continue to come in and tell strange stories. They say that Marshal
Soult has issued orders, that whenever a foreigner is to be on outpost
duty, all his necessaries, knapsack, &c., are to be taken from him,
and he is besides to be watched and placed with others. They even say
that a German posted on sentry has his shoes taken away from him. This,
barring exaggeration, no doubt is nearly true.

It is reported that last week three hundred young conscripts belonging
to one regiment were employed to carry bread to the brigade, and that
when near one of the French sentinels, they were challenged by him, but
from not understanding matters, they made no answer, and advanced; upon
which he fired at them, when the whole three hundred threw down their
bread and ran into camp, crying, that the enemy were coming.

But the best story of all, if true, was told by the mayor of Biaritz,
who states that he understands three French divisions are under orders
to proceed direct to Lyons, whether to meet Schwartzenburg or on
account of disturbances does not seem clear, even if the story be true.

_Friday, January 21st._—In spite of the wet yesterday, Lord Wellington
having heard of the surprised picquet, set off to the front to inquire
about it, or, as he said last night, to know if it was worth while to
surprise it again, as it has been renewed by the French; but he thought
not, and was back here to dinner, and in the evening at a ball at the
mayoralty. This ball was an attempt to ascertain how far anything
of the sort would answer. The mayor was to manage it, and ask all
the ladies, and a list of the officers to be asked was given to him,
and tickets sent out, and he was to provide the best entertainment
he could for a dollar-a-head from the gentlemen only, which will be
collected accordingly. It went off, however, but ill, and will not in
my opinion be renewed. There were about a dozen or fifteen elderly
women, French, who have remained here, and who seemed of the better
order, but who came in our country town fashion, with the cloak, the
woman servant, and the large lantern, only many of them brought the
maid in with them to sit behind and look on. Then there were about
sixteen or eighteen younger ladies, French, but who seemed to be nearly
all the tradesmen’s families in the place, none of the better sort,
but from behind the counter in the morning. They were, however, well
dressed, and danced tolerably for French—for English very finely. About
half a dozen old Frenchmen, some respectable; and about eight young
beaux of the place, who had escaped the conscription, and who had
remained here, made up the French party. There were six English ladies
altogether, but who, excepting one, declined dancing French dances or
waltzes, and there was nothing else but one country dance, which went
off ill. I have no doubt the French either thought them excessively
fine, or that they could not dance. There might be quite as much of the
latter as the former. Then to complete the assembly, came about two
hundred officers, all in their best, and forming a very smart squeeze.
What would your fine ladies in London have not given for such a display
of gentlemen? All the field officers of six battalions of the Guards,
and about fifty other guards’ officers, and all the head-quarters’
staff, generals, aides-de-camp, were there.

I think Cobbett would have admitted that, with so many fine young men
there, the whole Peninsula squad could not be quite so despicable in
the eyes of the English fair. Three sets of cotillions were formed, and
some waltzes, but the whole went off but indifferently. A Frenchman
of about forty or fifty, one of the police of the town, volunteered a
hornpipe, which was tolerably good. About 12 or 1 o’clock a long table
was opened for the ladies, covered with pastry of different shapes:
no meat—the wine, claret. At half-past one I came away, leaving the
dancers rather beginning to romp. This will not do, because the belles
are not good enough to please in a sober way, and if liberties are
taken they would be offended, or at least their male relations would be
for them. Lord Wellington was soon off, and whilst there seemed to be
principally occupied with little military arrangements. He, however,
seemed pleased with the thing, and asked me as I passed, if I thought
Gazan ever had a better ball? I only said, “I am sure there never
were so many gentlemen in the mayor’s house before.” Better dancing,
however, there may have been.

Still rain, without ceasing. I have been skipping with one of my mule
ropes, instead of my walk to-day with my umbrella. I got to the wrecked
ship yesterday. The best account seems to be that she pulled up the
post to which she was fastened in Sacoa harbour, and drifted out; the
captain was on shore; the missing are three men and a woman, and they
are supposed to be lost, and it is believed that the men were in the
rigging trying to make things right, when the mast broke. The Guards
were set to work as fatigue-parties at low water, and the cargo removed
on shore, consisting of hay and biscuit, not much damaged by the wreck.
The hay, however, of which one truss fell to my share, was previously
almost mouldy with wet, perhaps a little taste of salt may give it a
relish, and any how it is as good as coarse straw and furze, and better
than nothing, which is my mules’ long forage at present. The muleteer
is so popular, the Portuguese give him so much drink to make him dance
and amuse them, that he is very ill with it, and lying below with a
blister and emetic; and the mules therefore get no grass, as I cannot
turn them out; and straw I cannot afford them.

Another ingenious trick has just been told me of the French here. They
advanced towards Murillo’s Spaniards,—the latter fired at them; they
sent in to say they were very much surprised, for they understood they
were at peace with the Spaniards now, as a treaty was signed. Murillo
sent back for answer, that he knew of no peace, and that, if the Cortes
or Regency had signed such a peace, still he should continue to do as
the English did, and fire at the French until orders came to him to the
contrary, and that regularly through the Duke of Ciudad Rodrigo. This
is all as it should be, but the trick is a curious one.

_Saturday, 22nd._—The weather is now more like winter than it has yet
been. At St. Jean de Luz we have a raw, cold air, no sun, a damp fog.
La Rhüne and all the hills round are covered with snow; nothing but a
little sleet has fallen here.

_Sunday, Post-day._—A fine day, but really like winter; the coldest we
have had, and a north-east wind, which will, I think, before it arrived
here, have frozen you all up stiff in England and in Holland. We were
all yesterday surprised by the news that the French picquets were all
withdrawn near Bayonne on our front on this side, and that we might
proceed close in to the works round Bayonne. What this exactly means
we none of us know; Lord Wellington, however, was over immediately, to
have a peep into the town on that side. Careless about himself, he got
so close, that I understand there were some French in a house within
about forty yards of him; nor did he move until he thought a French
frigate lying in the harbour seemed to be making preparations to fire
at the party. I mentioned to you it was on the 10th of December, in
front here, that he got quite in the midst of the broken Portuguese,
where there were cross fires on all sides, and was fearful on moving
off quickly back, even though he wanted to go and order up fresh
troops, lest the bad example might increase the disorder, and throw
the men in greater confusion; so he went leisurely back, until out of
sight, and then cantered off to the unbroken part of the column.

We have more reports of insurrections in France, and the French have
been circulating the story, that the preliminaries of peace (a general
peace) are already signed, and have sent the report in here. I suspect
that it is all a trick, for all shifts and schemes are now resorted
to; amongst others, Bonaparte has sent back Palafox to Spain—it is
concluded, to intrigue, for he is well known now, and the Cortes
have, I am told, refused to receive him or take any notice of him.
The promotion of O’Donoghue as Lieutenant-general, and his quitting
the situation of War Minister in consequence, is considered a sort of
triumph on our part, for he was suspected of being inimical to Lord
Wellington and the British interests. Of his successor, Moreno, I know
nothing, except that he has generally been of the War Council, and in
civil-military employments, and has not seen much service.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, January 26th, 1814._—I have now
another letter to thank you for, of the date of the 11th instant, and
papers to the same period, for which my best thanks are also due. These
arrived by the sloop of war, with Colonel Bunbury, and are particularly
acceptable, for (except Lord Wellington), no one has letters by the
packet, or papers later than the 5th. Colonel Bunbury brought one of
the 13th for Lord Wellington. In some degree, however, all your papers
now lose their interest, for we have a sort of information through
Paris very much quicker, and though not very much to be depended
upon, and not very full or accurate, yet it gives us, making all due
allowances, a tolerable insight into what is passing. We have thus now
papers of the 17th from Paris, from which it appears the Allies have
been at Besançon, Dijon, and even Langres, whilst your accounts only
carry them to the frontiers of Switzerland.

The deficiency of my Spanish maps does not signify, for I merely sent
them home as a sort of memorial of Vittoria. All I had were only about
the tenth part of Lopez, and nearly one-half of what I had are gone to
the bottom in the little Catherine, in which I sent two parcels.

General G—— was always famous here for hospitality and very large
parties. The only objection to them was the too great crowd at dinner.
From what I saw, however, I liked him extremely. There was a wide
distance between him and Lord Wellington in material points for a
Commander-in-Chief, though I believe he was more popular with those
under him, and particularly with his staff.

You need never apologize for forwarding a letter by any officer sent
out express in a ship of war, and direct to head-quarters, for that is
the best of all conveyances when available. They are sure to use the
greatest expedition, and to have the best sailing-vessel. An officer
coming out with convoy in a transport to join his regiment is quite
_une autre chose_, and to be as much avoided.

We have for the last three days had a touch of your late weather, and
have had snow on the ground to the sea’s edge every night fresh, and
remaining all day on the ground. It is still not very cold in reality,
and indeed less so than could be wished, for if colder, we should feel
it less. This seems paradoxical, but the truth is, that the ground here
is not hard, and the snow, when trodden upon in the streets, melts, and
forms a most chilling mud, and there is a cold evaporation going on
worse than a hard frost. It is here every day like the first beginning
of a cold thaw.

Yesterday one of my deputies, passing through here, dined with me. He
is a very gentleman-like, quiet, and most diligent character, and I
only hope my mention of him, in particular to General Pakenham, the
Adjutant-general, coupled with that of Colonel Royals, whose Adjutant
he has been, may do him some service. He has been down at Coimbra,
and elsewhere. His name is Arden, and he is a lieutenant in the 61st.
He was last from St. Andero, and told me a curious story about a late
flag-of-truce there.

Much of our clothing was, you may have heard, carried to Santona,
near there, as a prize. Many of our men were, consequently, in
absolute tatters. Lord Wellington proposed to Soult to buy it at a
valuation, and let the Governor of Santona have the money to pay his
garrison. Soult agreed, and gave an order, with a pass. Mr. Drake, the
Commissary, was ordered to go into Santona, in consequence, with a
flag to treat. Instead of one trumpeter, five persons improperly went
with him. The French officer on the post came out, told him he did
not understand a flag-of-truce with five persons, and the Spaniards
drawn up so near, that he might suspect treachery, and must do his
duty, though Soult’s orders and pass might be all regular. In short,
said he, “I return in, and in one minute I fire a gun at you; so make
the best of your way off.” Though the party offered to be taken in as
prisoners, the Frenchman went in; so off they ran, and just as they
turned the corner of a house, a twenty-four pounder was after them.
The Governor was angry with the officer. A new flag with one person
advanced: Drake was admitted, but was blinded for nearly a league; and
yet the person near him and another, let in afterwards, were permitted
to see all. When the mission was understood, and the party discovered
to be civilians, the Governor was very polite. He gave them good wine,
but bad bread and meat, which the power of fancy made Drake think
was horseflesh. He then said that the shoes, gaiters, pantaloons, and
some of the caps, his men then wore, so that as to those the mission
was too late; but the jackets they were welcome to purchase, with some
other things, and a bargain was soon made. The Governor then said,
“I know your road home is infamous to St. Andero—you shall return in
our privateer row-barge.” This they did in a very short time, and the
finale was a formal complaint from the Spanish authorities at St.
Andero, against Drake, for having dared to let a French row-boat enter
St. Andero without their leave and their pass. When in the town all the
children, &c., crowded round Drake and his party to see an Englishman.
This made the Governor very angry, and he had them dispersed, asking
them “what there was to look at in an Englishman?” at which they
shouted under his nose—“_Viva los Ingleses! Viva! Viva!_” I wish the
higher class of Spaniards were as staunch as the peasantry and rabble.

_Saturday._—Our regular mail has not yet arrived; so your papers up
to the 11th have been in most constant request; for, though there
was one here up to the 13th, there was no regular set to the 11th.
The snow has ended in torrents of cold rain again; the roads, almost
more impassable, if that be possible, than they were before, of
course impede all movement, even if intended. Nothing but a rising or
commotions, would tempt us out, and that must be without cannon in a
great measure, and dependant for provisions principally on the country,
as our transport diminishes daily in the army, from the death of mules,
or desertion of muleteers.

The life of the subaltern officers just now is very arduous and
unpleasant; winter quarters they certainly have, but that is all; four
or five in a room, comforts very few, a great deal of duty with forage
parties, and going to Passages for corn, bread, &c., and always in the
wet, and up to the knees in mud. Matters, however, must, in my opinion,
end soon.

We have French papers to the 20th, and by them find the Allies at
Langres, Dijon, and Lyons; we are told that they are well received.
Upon this it must very much turn at last. The news from the French
camp and from Bayonne is of peace. Our mayor has had a letter from
his confidential friend at Bayonne. The basis was at last agreed
upon on both sides, and a congress to take place at Basle. This may
be fabricated, for the purpose of keeping the country and army here
quiet until the event be really so. The French must now or never get
rid of Bonaparte, if they wish it. It is not very flattering to the
Bourbons, that even the repeated sufferings and disasters the nation
has endured from Bonaparte scarcely seem to be able to rouse up the
least attachment to them; and that even the last necessity seems hardly
to make the people willing to run any risks for the old royal family.
Yet I am almost sure the feeling would rapidly spread, from the sort of
despair now prevailing as to _la pauvre France_, if a good beginning
could be but once made.

You must remember the article of capitulation as to the _Commissaire
de Guerre_ and his family, the brother’s wife, and two daughters, &c.,
at St. Sebastian. They have never yet returned to France, and are now
here. The exchange of the _Commissaire_ could never be arranged; and
the ladies, though offered to return without him, would not do so,
expecting that he would every day be able to accompany them. Lord
Wellington let them remain at Passages, until the matter was finally
settled; and there they have been all the time in the same house with
one of our Commissaries, Mr. M——. And now, when they were all to go
back, the latter has declared himself the admirer professed of the
youngest girl, and they are after all halted here at St. Jean de Luz
until he can marry her, and then the rest of the party pass into the
French lines. I met them at dinner yesterday; they are a pleasant
family. The girl pleasing and rather pretty, and in the English style;
the mother a clever woman; the other girl not pretty, but odd, and, I
think, clever.

Our new Admiral is arrived, having left England on the 21st. All our
mails are thus forestalled, as we have still only mail papers and
letters to the 5th. We are told that there is no news in particular,
but that all is warlike. Our story here is, however, of a still later
date, and may possibly still be true. The only other news we have
is from Catalonia; and that, it is to be feared, is bad. You will,
however, get it before you have this, I conclude, from the _Gazette_.
General Donkin told me his letters stated that we had made an attack
on Moulins del Rey on the Lobregat, near Barcelona; that the Spaniards
were to cross the river and turn the French: that they were too slow
and too late, and so the whole plan failed; but that we suffered but
little, and that the loss was nearly all Spanish, who lost two colonels
killed. I do not believe that all Spain would drive Suchet or his army
out, except by time, and wear and tear—never by force. The Government,
however, have behaved well, I believe, as to the late French attempts
through Ferdinand, and through our English hero—Palafox.

I am sorry not to be able still to admire the latter. It is mortifying
to strike out the name of one of the few Spanish heroes which this five
years’ war has produced. I am now, however, satisfied that the Spanish
insurrection, and all its good consequences, was owing to the thorough
ignorance and want of calculation, and of information and judgment of
the Spaniards. If they had had more common sense, and knowledge of the
true state of things, even their zeal and patriotism (which I admit
were considerable) would never have induced them to adopt a course
so devoid of all prospect of a favourable result, and which every
thinking, impartial, able man must have pronounced a desperate mad
scheme. We owe it principally, I am sure, to their excessive pride and
ignorance, their good opinion, yet want of knowledge of themselves. And
this accounts for the most able men at first all going the wrong way.

_Sunday, 30th, Post-day._—Nothing but wind and rain, wind and rain
for ever, and no more news. Some of the deserters say that the French
head-quarters are removed to my old place, Mont de Marsan; but I
should think that this can scarcely be yet. The new Admiral dined at
head-quarters yesterday, but I understand, has brought little news.
One ship under his orders, it is feared, has been lost already, as we
have a report of a sloop of war, _The Holly_, lost at Passages, and
several of the crew with it. This is certainly a terrible coast. There
is now a vessel riding in the bay here, very uneasy, and cannot enter;
and one was as nearly as possible lost yesterday morning close to
Sacoa; the surf broke over her. The exertions of the French pilots were
astonishing.

_Sunday, later, 5 o’clock, 30th._—We have two French officers come
out here from England to seek a better fate by a little _intrigo_, I
suppose. One is a Basque of this country on half-pay from our service,
and the other, a Monsieur La Fitte, I believe a clever man, and a La
Vendée hero.




CHAPTER XXI.

 Army Supplies—Offending Villages—Symptoms of Work—Arrival of the Duke
 D’Angoulême—The Bridge across the Adour—Wellington and his Chief
 Engineer—His Activity.


  Head-quarters, St. Jean de Luz,
  February 2, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——

Here we remain absolutely tied by the leg by the horrible state of the
roads, and weather, and without any regular news from England. Nothing
but reports on the side of France which would encourage us to proceed;
and, on the sea-side, of heavy gales, and lost vessels. I am just now
driven in by a furious hailstorm, and yet the weather is mild, and has
been till this moment pleasant enough. We have two ships in the little
bay here; one full of hay, which has been four days nearly within
three hundred yards of the shore, and in hourly danger of drifting
on the beach—yet we have not been able, in spite of our distress, to
get out a truss; and the other a brig transport, empty, and driven in
here by stress of weather. A frigate was also off here all yesterday,
apparently labouring much, and fearful of the coast. We certainly have
undertaken a bold thing in wintering in such a place, but it was a
choice of difficulties.

If we had money we should do well, but that is as scarce as anything
else. Plenty of supplies would come in from the right from the French,
had we cash to give in return. As it is, in consequence of the little
ready money we gave at first, a great quantity of cattle, food, &c.,
has been obtained, but now we are reduced to Treasury Bills, and that
cannot last, and the loss is very great. Even the muleteers get a past
payment now in those bills, and the consequence is that a person may
buy them with dollars at the rate of 7_s._ 4_d._, and, I believe, 7_s._
6_d._ a dollar. The army is also six months, and the staff seven months
in arrear of their pay.

We have, however, I believe, plenty of bread and biscuit, and meal for
a month with the army and corn at Passages in abundance. The short
transport from thence is almost too much for us, and the supply is by
no means general to the animals, whilst long forage is quite a rarity.
The destruction in the oxen is frightful in the rear. Our great depôt
is as far back as Palencia, and even there, in store, the cattle die
very fast, and the moment they march they fall away to nothing and die
by fifties. Our Commissary-general almost despairs of getting more up,
although he has made depôts of bran and straw, &c., on the road, to try
and obviate the total want of food. It is now in contemplation to ship
cattle from St. Andero, where there is a store; but then we have rather
a scarcity of naval transports also. Cattle would come in as fast as we
wished from twenty leagues to our right, could we but pay for it. As it
is, I am almost inclined to think that we shall, as a choice of evils,
be obliged, in spite of the roads, to move towards our right in quest
of food.

Two of the villages in that direction have justly incurred Lord
Wellington’s displeasure by plundering and seizing our forage parties,
of which we have lately lost several. One or two were taken by the
peasants of those two villages, and Lord Wellington has issued a
proclamation addressed to them and that country, reminding them that
he told them to remain at home, and be quiet, and to take no part,
and that if they did so he would protect them; but that he would not
have this treachery in return. If they did not like this proposal,
well and good, then let them quit their _foyers_ and leave their
villages, and take the consequence, and he should be prepared to
meet them as enemies; but they must make this election. The curé
of one of these villages was carried off as a hostage for their
good behaviour in future. We have strong reports of commotions and
internal dissatisfactions in France, and that Bonaparte is reduced to
concentrate his army round Paris. If this be true Lord Wellington must
be half mad about the roads. I find he is gone out to-day to look about
him. Two nine-pounders have just drawn up opposite my windows with
eight horses each, and the men have left their guns under the charge of
the Provost guard. I suppose they are on the march. I must inquire what
this means.

_February 3rd._—The artillery is said to mean nothing; but still I
think if we get fine weather for a week we shall have a start. In
confirmation of what I have written above, as to the loss of cattle,
I will give you two instances: three hundred and sixty head of
convalescent bullocks, which had been left at Vittoria to get into
order, were marched for the army; sixty only have arrived thus far,
all the rest have been left at stations between, or been given to the
different alcaldes, and receipts taken for them—a new mode lately
adopted. Five hundred of another lot of fresh bullocks, collected at
Palencia, were marched all this way, three hundred only have reached
Vittoria, and all the bad road and scarcity of food is yet to come.
This is really quite alarming.

_February 3rd, later._—I find the guns mean nothing; they are only
going on to the front to replace two now there, which are to come
back to refit. Still, however, if we could but get fine weather, I
think we should make a stir. Bets were going on as to a peace, or our
being at Bayonne and across the Adour in six weeks; and symptoms of a
move shortly are perceptible. The rain, however, continues. Colonel
Bunbury made one attempt to go to the right of our army the day before
yesterday, but only got half way, and is unwell in consequence. He is
to leave this either in Lord Wellington’s carriage, or to go round by
water to Passages. The sea is, however, quiet, and now only torments
our anxious curiosity by throwing up parts of wrecks and bodies. A
ship-cable, with the G.R., was found at Bidart, and three men and a
woman. Some say that the latter had silk stockings on. One body cast up
here was half eaten, and I saw a backbone only yesterday. The bodies of
the mules float in and out every tide.

As a proof of the state of forage here, and of the manner in which we
are imposed upon, five shillings were yesterday demanded for a sack of
chopped furze from the surrounding hills, and thus sold in the market.
Straw fetches two shillings for a small handful, of which a horse would
eat two or three in a day.

I have just seen a Spanish Captain who was taken prisoner little more
than three months since. He has been to Maçon on the Saone since,
where the Allies now are, about six hundred miles from this, having
been first plundered of his great coat and pantaloons. He was about
thirty-five days getting there on foot all the way, staid there forty
days, and then was about thirty-six days more returning here, also on
foot, having been exchanged. He says the notion is that we have the
Duke d’Angoulême here, and that very many wish it to be so. This is
like my finding many persuaded that we had the Duke de Berri with our
army when I was a prisoner. I suspect, however, we shall in part verify
this notion now, as I just hear one of the best quarters in the town is
to be cleared immediately for an unknown great man, now at Passages,
and just arrived from England. At first they even talked of moving the
Adjutant-general, Pakenham, to make room for him. This mystery will,
however, soon be cleared up. Rain, which is never pleasant, was never
so disagreeable as now. The fate of France may depend upon it.

The owner of my house is a well-bred woman, who lives in a great house
opposite. She lives in one corner of it, whilst General Wimpfen and his
staff, and Colonel M——, his wife, and three children, occupy all the
best part. She has, she told me, thirteen houses round here, five are
burnt, and two coming down, and yet she seems resigned and satisfied
that we have really behaved very well; that it is the fate of war, and
owing to the ill fortune of having property in a frontier country near
armies, and is quite inevitable. She only exclaims, “_Oh la pauvre
France!_” This is a novel language to the French of late.

_4th, Friday._—Still rain, rain, rain, all night. All yesterday, all
the night before, and still continuing. Oh! that we had your frost
instead; all things would have been very different.

The great man just arrived, and now here, turns out to be the Duke
d’Angoulême, and Count Damas is come out with him, but till the plot
thickens the Duke is _incog._

Our pontoons from the Bidassoa are now passing over the St. Jean de
Luz bridge. This looks like something, and we have to-day at last a
dry day, or at least a half day, for I must not be too sure yet. The
wind is getting round to the north a little, or north-east, and if that
remains it will do, especially as it is full moon; though I have not
much more faith in the moon, in respect of weather than Lord Wellington
has, who says it is nonsense. In addition to all your news, we have
French news of a battle at St. Dizier, near Chalons, and that the
Allies have been beaten. It is to be feared that it is not all to go so
smoothly as hitherto, unless a rising takes place.

All odd strangers who come to head-quarters here have been long
called tigers. Of course we now have “The Royal Tiger.” This is a
head-quarters’ joke for you. We have had for some time here a Madame
de ——, the wife of the Commandant of ——, come to make arrangements
beforehand, and here she certainly has been making many little
arrangements not much to the advantage of her husband, and not quite
consistent with conjugal fidelity. When the Commandant arrived
yesterday at last, she immediately began to blame him for his
unnecessary delay, and insinuated that another lady was the cause. This
is very hard upon a poor old man, but I suppose the lady thought it
right to take the initiative.

The publication of the Leipsig letters, which George mentions, of
Murray’s, will be very curious, but I think it is not right to let
these be published. Similar letters were taken in Spain more than
once, and police reports. The old letters which were too late (those I
mean from you) were from the Secretary of State’s office, not from the
Judge-Advocate’s office. They were probably mislaid at the former.

_Sunday, Post-day._—A bright sun and a smiling sky, with a smooth bay
covered with ships, quite a Vernet. I have just returned from the
church service on the beach, in a square of about two thousand five
hundred guards, and all the staff here present. As I returned I picked
up your letter of the 26th, and papers at the post-office. I have just
got some business come in, for desertion has commenced again now that
we are quiet and idle. A corporal and twelve men all went off together
a few nights since, all foreigners, and I believe French. Our people at
home are very careless in selecting soldiers to enlist into our corps
from the prisons. What can be better for a Frenchman in a prison-ship
than to receive 4_l._, new clothes, arms, &c., and then to be sent into
his own country, and put in a situation to join his comrades, with
only the difficulty of watching a good occasion. In yesterday’s return,
however, nine men have deserted, mostly English. Your English news is
all good as far as it goes, and if this weather will but hold a little,
you will hear of more glory and more broken heads here. In addition to
the pontoons which have passed up, scaling-ladders have gone through
here. If we could but cross the mouth of the Adour below Bayonne,
and get at the citadel at once by scaling and storm, there would be
something like a blow, and the town would be at our mercy immediately.

We have some gentlemen here, but very few, who begin to find the work
too warm for them. I have been saved two cases of this sort, very
awkward ones, by resignations, and have been consulted on two others
by General Cole, very suspicious ones, but not so clear as the other
two who are let off thus, to save the reputation of the regiments. An
officer should think a little before he engages in service, such as we
have had here the last few years.

More business, so I must put an end to this quickly. I have not seen
the Royal Tiger, but am to dine at head-quarters to-day, and hope he
may be there. The French ladies are staunch Bonapartists. They say we
shall have another Quiberon business, and that the Allies are coming
into France the same old road as twenty years since, and will return by
it.

I have been so pressed to change my old mare, which was in high
condition, that, to oblige Major D—— of the Guards, I have done so,
and taken “Mother Goose” (a pet name of General Hulse’s formerly) in
exchange, and fifteen guineas to boot. Mother Goose is a very good
mare, but never would stand fire. She is not so large or showy as my
old lady, but I like her much. She was valued at eighty-five guineas,
and has always sold for that. I put mine at a hundred guineas. I gave
more—four hundred dollars; as dollars cannot be had under 7_s._, and
the exchange is still higher on the muleteer Treasury bills. These,
however, I should not think it right to deal in.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, Thursday, February 10th, 1814._—Thus
far the week has passed without my having commenced my usual Journal to
you; for I have had a return of business, and also several gentlemen to
swear, and certificates and affidavits to make out, to enable friends
to take out administration in England to deceased officers’ estates. We
have also again had two fine days, and I have been able to get a ride
or two in consequence. On Sunday, at head-quarters, I met the Royal
Tiger at dinner—the Duke d’Angoulême and Monsieur Damas.

Before dinner I got into conversation with the Duke, without knowing
who he was, for they were both dressed alike in a fancy uniform,
very like our navy Captain’s undress, a plain blue coat, with two
gold epaulettes. He seemed much pleased with his prospects, and very
sanguine as to the result. The day was fine; he was sure the weather
would last a month. I said that the natives told me we should have
rain, and no settled weather until March was half over. He was sure
I had been misinformed; the fact was, however, that it rained half
that very night and the whole of the next day. Every day he expected
to proceed to France, and saw all difficulties vanish. “_Les pauvres
conscripts de Bayonne fondaient comme la neige; ils étoient presque
tous à l’hôpital_,” and so on.

That we shall make a dash soon, unless peace prevents it, I fully
believe from all I see and hear, and an embargo which has been laid on
all small vessels in the river here confirms this. We have also to-day
an order for twelve days’ hay at Passages, for which we are to send to
the ships ourselves, as Government have just now sent us out a good
lot of English hay, and if we march it must be all left behind, for we
have no means of carrying it with us. At least the animals will thus
all start with a belly full, which is something, and to many a novelty.

I do not think much of the little Duke; his figure and manners are by
no means imposing, and his talents appear not very great. He seems
affable and good-tempered, and though not seemingly a being to make
a kingdom for himself, he may do very well to govern one when well
established. Lord Wellington was in his manner droll towards them. As
they went out, we drew up on each side, and Lord Wellington put them
first; they bowed and scraped right and left so oddly, and so actively,
that he followed with a face much nearer a grin than a smile.

They were at church on Sunday, but I cannot learn with any effect;
hitherto we cannot judge, for this small corner dare not speak
out their minds, if they were in his favour. We hear of a strong
disposition at Bordeaux and in Brittany. I have as yet seen only apathy
and indifference, but I still expect a burst if the war should last.

I must now go to Lord Wellington about a poor old Doctor, who has been
charged with having a soldier servant. I expect a jobation for what I
shall state in his favour, for this is a very heinous offence in the
eyes of Lord Wellington.

_Same day, later._—Lord Wellington, as I supposed, insisted on the
Doctor’s being tried, but was good-humoured, though just going out
with the hounds, when in general he does not like interruption. This
particular Doctor had a right to a servant of his own regiment, but
he had one of another. I suggested that he had never joined his own
regiment since he was appointed, and could not, therefore, have one
of that corps. “Then he should have gone without,” was the answer,
and as for the Doctor’s good character, that went for nothing. Lord
Wellington never attends to individual hardships, but to the general
good, and as many abuses go on at depôts in the rear, every time he
discovers an instance he is inexorable in trying to punish, especially
when he finds it out himself, as he did this in another trial of the
same poor Doctor, by some of the evidence. The Doctor, foolish man,
desired it might be put on the minutes that he would ask such a witness
no question, as he had been his servant at the time, and was so still.

I have just heard an anecdote which shows strongly the Spanish
character, and also why Lord Wellington likes Colonel Dickson as his
chief artillery officer. On the 9th of November last the order was
given for the troops to march to the attack at four the next morning.
This was when we were at Vera. Every one had known for weeks that
this was to take place the earliest moment it was possible; and that
the fall of Pamplona and better weather were the only reasons of the
army being in such a position as we then were, perched up on the
sides of all the mountains so late in the year, with the prospect of
snow daily. At nine that night General Frere, the Spanish General,
who is considered to be one of their best, sent word that the Spanish
army under his command was without any ammunition, and could not get
any up in time. At ten o’clock Dickson was sent for, just as he was
going to bed. Instead of saying nothing could be done, or making any
difficulties, he proposed giving the Spaniards immediately the reserve
ammunition of the nearest English division, and said that he would send
out orders instantly, and undertake to get the English reserve replaced
in time, and this was done.

Poor E—— got a very loud discourse all the way home from church
last Sunday. The oxen of the pontoon train were all dying, and in
cross roads were useless, for they could not move singly except
with difficulty, much less draw a pontoon of two tons weight. It
had been reported in consequence that three troops of artillery
must be dismounted to draw the pontoon. Lord Wellington was vexed
excessively. “Where are the pontoon horses?” “None were ever sent out
from England; never had anything but oxen, and five hundred have died
since we left Frenada.” This answer still did not satisfy him. He
must, notwithstanding, have known it from the returns which he sees,
but still he seemed, though he could not tell why, to think poor E——
blameable. The latter said that he had no orders to send to England for
horses, and no one seemed to think they would be necessary, and he had
never had them.

_Friday, 11th._—I went last night to our third ball, in hopes of seeing
the Duke d’Angoulême there, and to observe how he was received. He did
not attend. All our other great men were there—Lord Wellington and all
the French, as yet very few in numbers. The owner of General Cole’s
quarters near Ustaritz, I believe named Larrique, was there. He had
come over to pay his respects to the Bourbons. He was always royally
disposed, and had been once imprisoned for this inclination. I am told
several others have been to the Duke to pay their respects merely, but
this is all they dared do as yet. They assure him the landholders and
peasantry further on only wait our advance, and the absence of the
French army, to rise and declare for the Bourbons. If they do not take
this line soon, and that decidedly, peace may make it too late, and
frustrate all these petty plans of counter-revolution in the bud. The
Duke seems quite ignorant of the people here, and of the country, and
those Basques I have talked to do not seem to know much more of him.
The few squires left may, however, give the tone to the rest.

I hear that we have quite ruined Bayonne market by our higher prices,
&c., and things are not only dear there, but not to be had, for no
one will there give the price we do for such luxuries, as poultry,
vegetables, &c., certainly are; and therefore they are brought here.

_Saturday, 12th._—The news now is, that Soult and about three thousand
infantry, and one thousand eight hundred cavalry, are gone off to the
rear, and it seems to be believed; for it has come through so many
channels to us. Another report is, that seven of the thirty tyrants
(senators) have gone over to the Allies, to pay their respects to the
Bourbons; this is not in such credit as the other story. In short, we
have what the military men call “shaves” (I suppose barbers’ stories)
every day and every hour. The best fact I can tell you is, that we
have had three days’ fine weather now together, and this last is
absolutely warm, I only fear too warm to last; thermometer in my room,
window open, and no fire, 58° in the sun. I rode a league out and back
yesterday almost without a splash. The mule roads across the country,
though improved, are, however, still very bad; three more such days
will, nevertheless, do wonders, and about that time I hope we shall be
ready.

All the carpenters, &c., are ordered from the Guards to the front. The
Rocket Brigade also went up last night; and ships are ordered round
from Passages. Dr. Macgregor, who was there yesterday, tells me that he
thinks it will be three days before they will have procured ropes and
all they require with them. This smiling sun makes every one cheerful,
though it prognosticates many broken heads.

The only thing, it appears to me, the Guards look blue about, is the
prospect of an aquatic expedition. Our sick, though nothing compared to
last year, have increased this last month. To show you how much depends
on seasoning them, two regiments, the 84th, and, I think, the 62nd, who
came out two months since, and have scarcely had any work, but arrived
after all the bad quarters in the mountains, and have not marched
forty miles and been generally housed, are absolutely unfit for the
field. One has four hundred and more sick out of six hundred. They are
obliged, in consequence, to be sent in a body, as regiments, to Vera,
one of the hospital stations. They are, I believe, two battalions, and
mostly young lads or elderly men, neither of which class of soldiers
can stand this work at all. Some of our old regiments have scarcely
a man in the hospital, except the wounded, and it is astonishing how
well some of the Portuguese regiments stand it, who are more exposed
than our men. The last month’s rest, and the new clothes, which most
regiments have now received, will revive the army amazingly; some who
are still without their clothes are, to be sure, absolutely in rags, or
like the king of the beggars.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, Sunday the 13th, Post-day, 5
o’clock._—Our “shave” of to-day is a Congress. Yesterday the Allies
were at Paris. I am sorry to say the sea has risen, and the wind
changed, and the weather threatens again. All are hard at work,
however, at the bridges, &c. It will be a ticklish thing to cross at
the mouth of the Adour.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, February 15th, 1814._—The plot now
thickens a little. Lord Wellington was off at three in the morning
yesterday for Hasparren, for two or three days, to superintend a
movement which is to take place: first, on our right, to drive the
French divisions of General Foy and Harispe across the Gave d’Oleron,
and prevent their molesting our right flank, whilst the passage of the
Adour is attempted on the left. The accounts this morning are, that
the troops assembled for this purpose yesterday, but that no affair
has hitherto taken place. General Pakenham was yesterday at Passages
to see to the shipping there, and clear out the hospital; and to-day
he has gone over to the right, to report to Lord Wellington and to
assist there. All is in motion: two bridges are preparing, one, as
I supposed, below Bayonne, and another above; the former will be
accompanied by an aquatic expedition.

With regard to this grand bridge, a most provoking occurrence has taken
place. An embargo was laid on about twenty-four vessels in the St. Jean
de Luz river to form this bridge, and to assist in the conveyance of
troops, &c. Old Ocean, however, did not approve; and as he is not under
Lord Wellington’s orders, and seems, like the Spaniards, to like to
thwart Lord Wellington a little, he (Old Ocean) threw up the day before
yesterday such a mound of shingle at the mouth of the river, that he
has most effectually embargoed the whole shipping, and made a dry
bank, a hundred feet wide, quite firm across the entrance, which all
yesterday was used as a road backwards and forwards from Sibour to this
place. From the present state of the tides there was no prospect of an
opening in the natural way for a week and more, until the springs; so
to-day a fatigue party of the Guards are at work digging and shovelling.

In my early walk this morning I found them at it, with a young engineer
officer, doing it, it struck me, very ill. I could not help meddling;
however, I had no weight, until an old Frenchman came, sent by the
mayor, to whom I advised them to apply; and then, as the young engineer
did not understand French, I acted as interpreter. The old man’s plan
and mine agreed, and so I carried my point. It is hoped we shall be
able to dig a way through by this evening, and to-morrow to let the
shipping out. It has never happened before since we have been here,
though very often the river is nearly dry.

One brig of war has arrived and the _Gleaner_ ketch, and Lieutenant
Douglas is on shore here superintending the fastening together of a
quantity of masts, &c., to form a boom, I believe, across the Adour—I
suppose to prevent anything floating down from destroying the bridge.
I heard yesterday, what one can scarcely believe, that the naval
officer asked leave to survey the mouth of the Adour, but that Lord
Wellington told him to go to the engineers, and they would give him
plans and soundings, &c.: that he went to E—— accordingly, and found he
had none at all; and Toffini’s coast stops short at Passages!

It is surely very odd, now that we have been in front of Bayonne for
three months, that no plans should have been sent out, without being
asked for, from England. I since have heard from E—— that he did write,
and has nothing in consequence but a little printed plan of Bayonne,
and no soundings, &c. I trust still that Lord Wellington will poke out
his way across. Our outposts’ reports to-day are that the Cossacks are
close to Paris, and Fontainebleau pillaged by them. I am sorry for
that, as that palace escaped the Revolution almost entirely. The truth
of the whole story may well be questioned.

_February 16th._—No news from the right; no one returned yet; the
reports are, that the French do not stand, but retire before us. In the
mean time things are going on well here. The weather is fine again,
the sea quiet, the river has quite cleared his course, and to-day the
navigation is open. The fort at the mouth of the Adour sent a few shots
against the _Lyra_ brig when cruising yesterday to inspect; but no harm
done. Every one is busy.

Poor —— does not seem to draw well with Lord Wellington. The latter
received him so queerly at the last interview, that —— says he shall do
all he can to execute what he is ordered, and be quiet. Lord Wellington
never consulted him, and has never even told him exactly where the
grand bridge which he is preparing is to be; and the consequence is,
the width of the river has not been precisely ascertained at the place
intended, where the engineers have instruments which would do it in a
minute, if they were ordered. Without orders they cannot, as it would
require a guard of three hundred or four hundred men to go near enough,
and that can only be with orders. But then, were I ——, I should ask for
the guard and do it, propose it first, or try and get it quietly from
the Adjutant-general without troubling Lord Wellington, and let him
find the thing done. —— seems to be too much of the English official
school; has too much regard to forms and regular orders. All this
_entre nous_. Elphinstone of the Engineers tells me he wrote for a plan
of Bayonne four months since, and has only received a very miserable
one, of scarcely any use.

The grand bridge is to be formed of the largest vessels now in the
harbour—about fifty of them. Pontoons would never do. They are to
be about 25 feet or 27 feet apart, and cable bridges between to
communicate with planks, each vessel carrying its own materials to
plank, &c. This is a grand plan, but rather arduous. I hope it may
answer, as it will be an event in military matters, crossing a great
river at the mouth below the fortified town, and that in the hands of
the enemy on both sides of the river.

_February 17th, Thursday._—Still fine weather, and no one returned,
and no news from Lord Wellington. I had a report here through the
emigrés, and _son Altesse Royale_, as he is now called, that the
Allies are within a league of Paris. “_Quelle mauvaises nouvelles! ils
m’ont dit._” Their alarm at the reported Congress at Chatillon sur
Seine, and Lord Castlereagh, has to-day of course a little subsided in
consequence. A peace with Bonaparte would ruin them for ever. If Paris
now declares itself, on the other hand it will spread, and the whole
business, in my opinion, be at an end in their favour. If not, it is
clear that their party is very small, and their interests forgotten.

_The 18th, Friday._—Still Lord Wellington not returned; but we had
some news of what has been done on the right. The French retired
skirmishing, but would never stand to let us charge. They were obliged
to remain longer than they wished to cover some guns which they carried
off; and also, the evening before last, they intended to take up their
ground for the night in a position which Lord Wellington thought it
would suit him to drive them from. By doing this late in the day they
were obliged to resist more than they probably otherwise would, if
they had expected it, and been prepared for the retreat. We have taken
about ten or twelve officers prisoners, and about two hundred men. Some
say that we might have had as many thousands, could we have been two
hours sooner. These things are always, however, said. Supposing that
we had been two hours sooner, the French would have been just where
they were; and it is forgotten that if we had moved sooner, they might
probably just have done the same thing. We have ourselves sustained
some loss, and that in a greater proportion of officers than men. I
am told, about a hundred and twenty men. General Pringle is shot in
the breast,—an awkward place, but they hope not badly, considering the
situation. General Byng’s aide-de-camp, Captain Clitherow, is killed,
and, I believe, Lieutenant Moore, of the Artillery. Aides-de-camp
and Brigade-Majors have suffered much of late; Lord Wellington’s are
uncommonly fortunate. I have heard also that Lieutenant-colonel Bruce
is wounded, a Bevan (Major or Colonel in the Portuguese service),
and some subalterns of the two brigades of General Byng and General
Pringle, the only two engaged.

By the last accounts Lord Wellington’s head-quarters were at Garris,
near St. Palais, and the French are driven across the Bidouge, a
river that runs into the Adour below the Gaves, and near Grammont’s
place, Guiche, of which he is duke. The French have only picquets
on our side the first Gave—the Gave d’Oleron, when they are driven
across. I think Lord Wellington will return here to-morrow to inspect
the grand bridge and the operations on this side, which are the most
ticklish. Elphinstone would have his bridge ready to-morrow night if
the materials get round in time from Passages, and provided one vessel
is got out from our river here, for one could not be moved over the
bar yesterday, from its having the guns on board, which are to be
dropped into the Adour, to assist in moving the vessels of the bridge.
By taking out the guns this difficulty may be got over, but the wind
is not fair from Passages. This is the worst part of the business,
for though the elements alone may be to blame, still Lord Wellington,
if his plans are thwarted, will be in a rage with ——. He banishes the
terms difficulty, impossibility, and responsibility from his vocabulary.

The moment he has done on the right, he wants to be ready here, as he
knows that so long as he remains there, the attention of the French is
drawn that way, and the same when he shall return here. We have now
no troops here. The guards have moved into Bidart, and we have now
permanently occupied Biaritz in front of Bayonne; General Vandeleur
sleeps there, and all his horses are unsaddled. The light division
have crossed the Nive. The fifth moved a little more to their right,
to occupy part of the ground of the light near Arbonne and Arrauntz,
towards Ustaritz; and the third division, under General Picton, have
gone up to St. Jean Pied de Port, but hitherto without opposition.
The Adjutant-general, when he went himself over to the hospital
stations of Fontarabia and Passages, routed out about fourteen hundred
convalescents, and malingerers, and they passed through here for
their regiments yesterday, for every man is wanted now. Unluckily, no
reinforcements have arrived from England; why we cannot say, for the
wind is fair, and the papers say they sailed a month since, and the
regiments have had notice of their intended arrival. The artillery
also expect five hundred horses, which would now be an inestimable
treasure, as many are going and getting weak. There are also about six
thousand Portuguese ready to join in Portugal, but who remain for want
of transport, as I am told: this is unlucky, as they were well-seasoned
recruits.

It is curious that even latterly, ever since we left the mountains,
almost all our advanced troops—the advanced line—have been Portuguese;
they not only stop our deserters, but go off very much less themselves.
From the terrible loss of oxen, we are all now, officers and all in
this neighbourhood, living upon salt rations, sea-beef and pork.
Luckily for me, however, we can now buy a little fresh meat. I am very
much vexed with myself for not having desired you to send me out a good
map of France, for I have only the department on this side the Adour,
and the whole seat of the war is now France. I should like to have got
the abridged or reduced Casini, which is used here, and liked, a map
about five or six feet by four or five, and Stockdale’s vicinity of
Bayonne, taken from Casini’s large one. These two would have been a
treasure, now that we are likely to move; and I conclude Stockdale will
go on publishing some more of Casini to follow us up.

We have begun to establish a recruiting-party at head-quarters, to
select out of the French deserters good subjects for the _Chasseurs
Britanniques_, &c. I hope it will answer, but I have my doubts. In the
mean time, I shall have to play the part of a magistrate, and swear
them all in. The news from Bayonne to-day is, that a courier arrived
yesterday express from Paris in sixty hours; of course he brought
something very important. The story in Bayonne is, that the negotiation
and Congress is broken up already, and this is now considered most
excellent news here, excepting by a few soldiers of fortune, and real
lovers of their trade, who think it would flourish much better after a
peace with Bonaparte than with the Bourbons. What a contrast between
the _Moniteur_ a year and a half since about Moscow, &c., and the late
ones about the works round Paris, and the room left—eighteen inches—for
the _piétons_ only to pass, &c., and the immense zeal and activity:
_Dejà on voit les embrassures pour quatres canons_. You will have seen
all this, however, and have been as much amused, no doubt, as we have
been.

I have just seen Major D——, who is returned from the right. He says
that we have been well received in general, and found a tolerable
supply of everything in the new country we have been in. If the
inhabitants will but stay, they will find a good market for everything;
instead of losing the produce for nothing; and stragglers, single
plunderers, dare not commit depredations on the houses in that case.
The people here are in despair at the expected entrance of the
Spaniards. We have now shops in abundance, and a good market, and can,
with plenty of money, procure most things; and now we are on the point
of being off.

_18th February, later._—I have just been with Elphinstone, and seen all
his drawings and plans for the grand bridge. They seem very good, and
the whole will be ready by Sunday morning, provided the naval gentleman
can carry his vessels in; but he thinks that will not do on account of
the tides before Wednesday. Six or seven small boats are to be carried
from here on carriages; these are to be launched, and are to tow across
the first party on rafts, which are made by some platforms placed on
the pontoons. This first party I would rather not accompany. To show
you how little Lord Wellington listens to objections, and how he rather
likes to cut up the routine work, I may mention that Elphinstone told
him the quantity of plank necessary would take time, and make a delay.
“No,” says he, “there are all your platforms of your batteries which
have been sent out in case of a siege. Cut them all up.” “Then when we
proceed with the siege what is to be done?” quoth Elphinstone. “Oh,
work your guns in the sand until you can make new ones out of the
pine-wood near Bayonne.” So all the English battering platforms have
been cut up accordingly.

At Elphinstone’s I met the Admiral, who came round to-day to assist,
and some small vessels have arrived with him. We have now Sacoa choked
full, and quite a flotilla in the open bay, with a wind right on shore
into the bay. I only hope it will not take to blowing hard in this
direction whilst our operations are going on. The battering train and
siege apparatus have also arrived at Passages from St. Andero. This has
been done quite snug; even Elphinstone did not know of their coming
until here they were.

Letters have come in from the right; all has gone on well there. The
French are driven quite across the Gave de Mauleon or Soiron, as it
is called in my map, a little river which is the left branch of the
Gave d’Oleron, and runs into the Gave d’Oleron below Oleron town. The
Adjutant-general writes, that the French have given up all that at
present was wanted in that direction. Adieu!

_Saturday the 19th._—To-day we have a French bulletin sent in to us of
a victory over the forces of the Allies, the Russian army destroyed,
and the French in pursuit—baggage, cannon, all taken. This is awkward
when we expected daily to hear of the Allies in Paris, and it will
have a bad effect on the cause in France, even if it is only a slight
check to the allied armies. The French here have their proclamations
printed, and _fleurs-de-lis_ are being made. Lord Wellington says that
they must wait until he is more advanced before they begin to circulate
them. He is expected back to-day. The weather has been very cold
again, and sleet or snow has just begun to fall. I have also to-day to
acknowledge a letter from you of the 8th, and papers from the 2nd to
the 8th inclusive.

I am just interrupted by a noise at the Provost guard opposite, and
the arrival of about a hundred and eighty French prisoners escorted
by a party of the 57th regiment, who might with great advantage
change clothes with the French. The latter are in general very well
clothed, and very fine young men, a few older soldiers amongst them
in particular. The young conscripts look rather pale and sickly. Our
57th men are absolutely in rags and tatters, here and there five or
six inches of bare thigh or arm are visible through the patches; some
have had only linen pantaloons all winter through. They all get their
new clothing to-morrow at Sacoa; the whole regiment comes down here for
that purpose, and then nearly the whole will have had their clothing
this year, all but one or two regiments.

_Later, 4 o’clock._—Lord Wellington is just returned from the right,
and so eager is he when anything is in hand, that I saw him going round
by the Admiral’s and Colonel Elphinstone’s before he went home on
horseback, after a tolerably long ride too. The Admiral he carried off
with him.

_20th February, Post-day._—The first thing I saw this morning in my
walk on the wall was Lord Wellington looking at the sea at half-past
seven. The wind was strong, right into the bay, and not a ship could
stir. He soon saw the Admiral come out also to look, and carried him
off home. I saw Lord Wellington about some Courts-martial just now,
and expected to be rather snubbed; but he was in high good humour,
and I was, of course, as short as possible. The moment is, however,
ticklish. Had the gale this morning increased, none of the ships in
the bay, in my opinion, could have stood it. It was right into the bay
against them, and they were anchored within two hundred, three hundred,
or four hundred yards of the shore. The slip of an anchor or breaking
of a cable would have been destruction, and we have now a wreck on
each side of the bay, which is ominous and terrific to strangers and
new-comers.

_Later._—Lord Wellington is already beginning to provide against the
failure of his bridge plan from winds and tides, and I understand
will not wait above a day or two on this account. Arrangements are in
consequence being formed to make the main movement still by the right
altogether, and to come round on Bayonne in case the bridge scheme will
not very speedily answer.




CHAPTER XXII.

 Movements of the Army—-Narrow Escape of Wellington—Anecdote
 of Wellington at Rodrigo—Novel Scaling Ladders—Sir Alexander
 Dickson—Wellington’s Vanity—Operations resumed—Spanish Officers—The
 Passage of the Adour—The Road to Bayonne—Death of Captain Pitts.


  Head-quarters, St. Jean de Luz,
  Tuesday, February 22, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——,

As the movements going on give me now a little more leisure, and it
is impossible to say how soon my opportunities of writing may be
arrested by a march, I begin my weekly despatch early this week. Lord
Wellington, when he returned from driving the French across the Gave,
found his expedition here could not leave port owing to bad wind and
tide, though all was ready. He therefore instantly set about new
arrangements, so as to be independent in a great measure of the result
of this grand bridge.

All the divisions of the army consequently moved towards the right
yesterday, except the Guards and the rest of the first division, which
remain in our front backed by a corps of Spaniards at Guethary and
Bidart, in advance of St. Jean de Luz, through which place, however,
they did not march. To superintend this movement Lord Wellington was
off again yesterday for Garris, near to St. Palais, with most of the
head-quarters’ staff, Adjutant-general Pakenham remaining here on
account of a slight illness.

The last move left us in front of the Gave, the French still strong in
Sauveterre and on a ridge of hills and strong ground running between
the two Gaves d’Oleron and Pau. The plan is now, it is concluded, to
drive them across both Gaves, and then make good our way round to the
other side of the Adour and the citadel of Bayonne. In the meantime,
as the plan here is still expected to take effect to-morrow morning
early, we are all alive; the little bay full of shipping and small
ships of war, which cruise backward and forwards, or anchor there, with
carpenters, sappers, soldiers, &c., on board, and all the flotilla
ready in Sacoa, and the Admiral superintending.

Head-quarters are come home delighted with the country on the Gaves,
and with their reception. The people in many instances come in numbers
to meet our troops instead of offering resistance. The prisoners also
many of them say they are ready to serve _son Altesse Royale_, but this
is rather too soon to begin, it is thought, for this may be only to
escape and return to their old army.

One young man, who was of the country, ran into his father’s house
as they were marching by, and all the family were found around him.
He was separated and marched off; but the story has been told at
head-quarters, and General Pakenham has sent for the man back (who was
on his way to Passages), and means to send him home to his friends.

I was talking to General Pakenham yesterday about forming a French
royalist corps out of the prisoners and deserters. It must be done
very cautiously of course at first, but it would in my opinion have a
good effect and soon increase. At present the idea that all deserters
must be sent away from their own country to England deters many from
deserting, who would otherwise be willing. This object would also do
away with the disgraceful ideas naturally attached to desertion in a
soldier’s mind.

Reports say that Lord Wellington had a narrow escape with his staff,
whilst reconnoitring on the right in the late move. He is said to have
been going up a hill when a French cavalry regiment was coming up
on the other side. The engineer officer was going round and saw the
regiment; upon which he galloped back to give information, but before
he could reach Lord Wellington they were just close to the top of the
hill, and Colonel Gordon, who was in the advance, saw some of the
French videttes close. He gave the alarm, but they all had a gallop for
it, pursued by some of the dragoons.

Though the English horses were most of them well tired, they were soon
out of reach of the French, and all escaped. Lord Wellington relies
almost too confidently on the fleetness and excellence of his animals,
when we consider what the loss would be if he were caught; he is,
however, now rather more cautious.

A few days since I heard an anecdote about the siege of Rodrigo, which
shows the man. Scarcely any one knew what was to be done; the great
preparations were all made in Almeida, and most supposed, as I believe
the French did, that everything which arrived was for the purpose of
defence there, not of attack elsewhere. On a sudden the army was in
front of Rodrigo. A new advanced work was discovered, which had to
be taken before any progress could be made in the siege. To save men
and time, an instant attack was resolved upon. Scaling-ladders were
necessary; the engineers were applied to; they had none with them, for
they were quite ignorant of the plans—an inconvenience which has often
arisen in different departments from Lord Wellington’s great secrecy,
though the general result, assisted by his genius, has been so good.
The scaling could not take place without ladders; Lord Wellington was
informed of this. “Well,” says he, “you have brought up your ammunition
and stores, never mind the waggons, cut them all up directly, they
will make excellent ladders—there you see, each side piece is already
cut.” This was done, and by the help of these novel ladders, the work
was scaled forthwith.

At Badajoz, he found so little to be had in the regular way for a
siege, from want of transport, and so many difficulties in consequence
from the regular bred artillery generals, that he became principal
engineer himself, making use of Colonel Dickson, the acting man,
as his instrument. These sieges procured Dickson his majority and
lieutenant-colonelcy; and though only a Captain in the Royal Regiment
of Artillery, he now conducts the whole of that department here,
because he makes no difficulties.

In one instance Lord Wellington is not like Frederick the Great. He
is remarkably neat, and most particular in his dress, considering his
situation. He is well made, knows it, and is willing to set off to the
best what nature has bestowed. In short, like every great man present
or past, almost without exception, he is vain. He cuts the skirts of
his own coats shorter, to make them look smarter: and only a short time
since, on going to him on business, I found him discussing the cut of
his half-boots, and suggesting alterations to his servant. The vanity
of great men shows itself in different ways, but in my opinion always
exists in some shape or other.

_February 22nd, 5 o’clock._—The flotilla has just got out of Sacoa Bay
preparatory to the operations to-morrow. A beautiful sight! Six or
seven ships of war, and fifty other vessels—everyone alive! Forty form
the bridge. I hope it may succeed, but many doubt it.

P.S. Lord Wellington is moving on the Gaves with seven divisions. The
cable bridge is in the boats, and the engineers on board. The affair is
to begin by driving in the picquets, when five hundred men are then to
be sent over on the rafts, the guns of the French battery spiked, the
French corvette burnt, and then the bridge is to be thrown across!

_February 24th, 1814._—I rose at half-past four, to go over and see
the crossing of the Adour yesterday, and the formation of the bridge.
At daylight I discovered that the whole flotilla had been dispersed by
the gale of the night before, and no part was near the mouth of the
Adour. Several officers returned in consequence, declaring that nothing
could be done. Thinking otherwise myself, and that this movement would
somehow take place, being connected with Lord Wellington’s movement on
our right on the Gaves, I went on, and found all the Spaniards on the
road in front of Bayonne, but doing nothing. All was quiet for a very
long time. About twelve o’clock, however, they were ordered to move on
and make a feint, and an attack was made by our great guns and rockets
at the same time, on the French armed corvette and gun-boats, to
destroy the latter, and at the same time to draw off the attention of
the French from the mouth of the river below Anglet, where we intended
to cross on the rafts.

The Spaniards were not much opposed, and went on boldly enough, as far
as was intended, and had a few wounded. The sharp-shooting, however,
was very slack. The fifth division at the same time, made a show on
their side, between the Nive and the Adour, but not with any serious
intention. I then went into an empty house with Dr. Macgregor and some
others, to make a fire and get some breakfast, which they had brought
with them; and adding our several stocks together, we fared very well.
We then made our way through Anglet, and across the sands, and through
a pine-wood, to the river’s mouth. A brigade of Guards, another of the
King’s German Legion, the Light Battalion (most excellent men), and a
Rocket Brigade, were there all ready to pass, but from the immense
difficulties which had been met with in the transport of the boats and
pontoons over land, only two of the light companies were over about one
o’clock, when I arrived, and a temporary suspension of the passage of
men had been ordered by General Hope.

The order, however, had just come again to pass over as fast as
possible, and before I left the spot (about three o’clock) three rafts,
formed each upon three pontoons, and carrying each about fifty or
fifty-five men, were at work ferrying across on a cable, and the six
small boats were also plying, so that about five hundred men were then
nearly over, and they were going at the rate of two hundred, or two
hundred and fifty per hour. I left the rocket men, each with one rocket
ready in his hand, and three on his back in a case, with three poles on
his shoulder, just going to cross.

Elphinstone had been quite in despair; the pontoon car sunk so much
in the sand, that at last thirty horses would not move them, and for
the last five hundred yards they were conveyed on the shoulders of the
guardsmen; twenty-six men to a pontoon. At length all his difficulties
were thus overcome, and the non-arrival of the bridge, of which we
could see nothing, was not his fault, but that of the weather.

I helped the engineering again a little, by joining the party who were
endeavouring to find the best place to which to fix cables against
high-water—as I discovered the last tide-mark in the sands, and thus
found a landing-place and post, clearly above high-water mark; for the
springs were past, and of course every succeeding tide would rise to
a less height. We then proceeded along the river towards our battery
on the bank, which was firing at the corvette, &c. When we had gone a
little way through the pine-wood, we found all the roads almost stopped
by trees cut down by the French, and the road we took near the bank,
which was clear, carried us opposite a smaller French corvette and
three gun-boats, which had just placed themselves in the river. At
first we thought them a part of our intended bridge, but soon found it
otherwise, and that we should be fired at, for our small party on the
other side the river had not advanced, and all the opposite bank and
village, as well as the boats, were still in possession of the French.
We therefore turned, and at last made our way through to the battery.
There we learnt that the guns and rockets had sunk one gun-boat, and
frightened away the rest and the corvette, which had all been hauled up
close to the bridge under Bayonne, where we saw them.

I could not understand that the rockets had done more than cause some
alarm, though twelve had been fired at once at the shipping, and from
no great distance. Only one, or at most two, had fairly struck, and
nothing had been burnt. The heavy guns had struck the corvette, but
could not do much damage before she was off, and just at first the
corvette and battery on the French side seem to have had the best of
it. Count Damas, who was there with the Duke d’Angoulême, looking on,
told me that the artillery had knocked off the colours of the corvette
whilst he was there, and that one of the light Germans had jumped into
the water, had fetched out the colours, and had presented them to the
commanding artillery officer. Others say that these colours were on the
gun-boat. The French were so alarmed at the rockets, that the vessel,
when struck, was abandoned.

Close to our guns we found the other brigade of Guards, &c., making an
immense fire with the fir-trees, which had been cut down on all sides,
for the day, though fine, was very cold. Dr. Macgregor, one or two
others, as well as myself, went up a little sand-hill near, just to
look round, when a twenty-four pound shot from Bayonne came close to
us point blank. The horses turned right round, and the Doctor losing
his hat, I thought at first that he had been struck. Of course we soon
beat a retreat, and found we were in a spot where this was the usual
reception, and a position of which the French were jealous.

Just as I came away, a little before five, I saw a column of French,
apparently about seven hundred, going very quickly through the wood on
the opposite bank from the citadel towards our men, who had passed to
attack them. I knew that we had nearly a battalion across, about seven
hundred men, and did not feel much alarm with regard to the event. I
pitied the men more for the cold night they were likely to pass on the
bare sands, without baggage, &c. This morning I have heard an attack
was made just afterwards, but that some of the rocket skirmishers were
put in advance with the other skirmishers on our side, and the French
were so alarmed that, though much superior, they would not advance, and
our men beat them off.

The flotilla was this morning collected near the mouth of the Adour,
and, I suppose, before this the bridge is begun. At any rate we could
have passed across as many men as we wished before this. No one has
returned to-day to this moment, and as I had business, and one of my
horses was a little sore in the back, I staid at home. My grey pony
started before six yesterday morning, and I was not at home till past
seven at night, having ridden above thirty miles.

Some of the Spanish regiments were very fine men, and well equipped
in every respect, much better than some of our poor fellows; but the
officers looked very bad indeed; and when the men advanced, they were
led on by their officers with cloaks on, folded over their mouths,
looking as miserable as possible.

The men also, like the French, always march with their great coats on
over everything, so that our good new clothes were all concealed by
their own old threadbare overcoats. On the other hand, none of our
men had their coats on, cold as it was, and everyone was alive and in
activity. I stood next to Don Carlos d’Espagne, and heard him receive
his directions and information as to what parts we occupied and what
the French, &c. General Hope (though not well, and too soon, I believe)
came on to take the command, of which the division were very glad.

I fear the Spaniards, though better than they were, and though only the
best were in advance, will soon begin to do mischief. As I returned
here I saw all their stragglers about the houses near the road, and
telling every one that in Spain _Francesi roban e rompen todos todos_.
They soon soil our new clothing, and go about with dirty and scowling
discontented faces, like some of our good countrymen in Ireland. The
industry of the French on the sand-banks had been very great in the
cultivation of the vine. The south-east side of the very bank on which
the sea beat on the north-west, a pure white sand, was divided with
square reed enclosures, and covered with vines. The Anglet wine (which,
as a very light wine, is in repute), I believe, is there produced. Many
of the inhabitants at Anglet and the neighbourhood, remained, and, in
general, seemed glad the movement was over. One old woman, in a house
that was near the river’s mouth, said she was most happy to see us,
as she had been for the last two months in complete misery, not being
allowed to speak to any strangers by the French, nor even allowed to
go to Bayonne to buy a few sous-worth of snuff. I suppose they feared
the spread of information, for this was close to the spot intended for
our bridge, of which I understand, and have no doubt, they had a very
clear knowledge. Two persons of the better class have come in here by
sea from Bordeaux, round by Passages, to pay their respects, and give
information to _son Altesse Royale_. Colonel La Fitte told me that they
were as anxious there for Lord Wellington as the Jews were for the
Messiah, so sanguine are the emigrés.

_February 26th._—All accounts now agree that the French have from
ten thousand to above eleven thousand in the town and citadel, three
thousand in the latter, the rest in the town and lines. Another show
was made against our people the morning after they crossed, but no
attack. Considering that the French had eleven thousand men, that it
was eight or nine hours before we had above five or six hundred men
across, this passage of the Adour and our establishment on the right
bank is most disgraceful to their troops, or to their General, and
proportionally creditable to ours. In the evening of the 24th our
flotilla crossed the bar and got into the Adour over a most tremendous
surf. Several accidents ensued in consequence, and many lives were
lost; some say as many as forty in the whole, of all nations. I believe
about fifteen English sailors were lost. None but the English sailors
would have dared to enter at such a time. Five boats were upset, most
of them very near it, and one brig, with stores, aground, as well as
one small ship of war, a gun-vessel I believe. Some of the flotilla
never got in at all. The place fixed for the bridge was not so wide as
was expected and prepared for, so sufficient boats are ready, and last
night all but about three were moored in their berths ready, and, in my
opinion, the bridge would be passable to-day.

The loss of the French in the gun-boats and corvettes was greater than
we supposed, for the inhabitants inform us that a Captain of cannoniers
was killed, and several men, and the Captain of the corvette lost his
arm. The rockets also did mischief on shore: one man who is now in
here, had both legs carried off by a rocket. I have been since told,
the French lay down on their faces, and then ran away from them. An
order has been issued in Bayonne for all persons who have not and
cannot procure six months’ provisions to quit the town, and numbers
were coming this way along the road yesterday. I went out that way
on purpose to meet them, and talk to them. They all agreed in the
number of men, about eleven thousand, but said that a great part were
conscripts and weakly.

This I concluded to be the case, as all those unequal to an active
campaign would be naturally left in the walls for quiet garrison duty.
The alarm had been terrible in the town, where an attack was expected
two days since. Every householder was ordered to have an immense tub
filled with water, ready at his door, &c. Count Reille has gone to
the rear, some said ill, and Thouvenot commanded again, and most said
that Marshal Soult was gone to Paris, some to Mount Marsan, and that
Count Gazan commanded. A Frenchman, who came yesterday, told Monsieur
d’Arcangues, an inhabitant here, that he had just passed through La
Vendée, and that that country was in arms again; that he had himself
seen several armed parties, amounting some of them to seven or eight
hundred men. This will at least stop the conscription a little.

I communicated this good news to _son Altesse Royale_, and at the same
time made him a little _cadeau_, by begging that he would permit me to
send him King Joseph’s saddle-cloth, which I had picked up at Vittoria,
but had never used, as being rather too splendid (blue with a very
broad gold border). He was very civil, and in return lent me a paper
of the 11th, which he had just got out with his baggage from England,
a second edition of the _Courier_, containing in the corner a notice
of the arrival of the message through France from Lord Castlereagh,
a piece of news which alarmed him not a little, though our French
accounts still say that the negotiations are broken off, and the
Allies close to Paris.

General Harispe had raised about three thousand or three thousand
eight hundred of his countrymen, the Basques, a fine race of people,
but since our late move most of them have run home, and his corps,
the maire here told me yesterday, is reduced to about five hundred.
Our officers remain delighted with their reception on the right. They
all say that every one talks with horror of making war in an enemy’s
country; but they can declare from experience that they never wish
again to make war in a friendly one, if this is to be the manner of
making war in an enemy’s. Nothing has been done on the right of any
consequence yet, merely preparations in case this bridge had failed; if
so, I think we should now have Lord Wellington back here directly from
Garris, where he has been, and the move will at last take place.

I have just got my mules back from Passages, with six days’ hay, and
am now ready, though my Guardsman tailor has carried half my new
clothes with him across the Adour, and I never expect to see them
more, and have a Frenchman at work. Considering your lost box and all
contingencies, my last suit will probably stand me in about 35_l._
sterling!

The ride along the high road to Bayonne yesterday was interesting. The
refugees from the town, several of them very pretty Basques, were all
coming this way, laden with the little baggage they could carry off;
our artillery all moving up the contrary way; as well as the Spanish
troops; and hundreds of Basques, men and women, with great loads on
their heads (like our Welsh fruit-women going to Covent-Garden), only
their baskets were full of bread, biscuits, &c., and all in requisition
for the Spaniards. The bât animals and baggage parties of the Spaniards
are not a little amusing, and their led chargers with their tails
buckled up, and in swaddling clothes, with dirty magnificent housings,
dancing about half-starved, with their heads in the air. Every fifty
yards a dead bullock or horse, but chiefly the former, and every two
hundred, an ox dying, and a Spanish muleteer or straggler waiting until
the bullock driver abandoned him, to turn him up, and cut his heart
out, before he was dead, but when in a state too weak to resist. The
heart alone seemed to be worth the trouble, as nothing else could be
cut off from the bones, and bone and all did not pay the cutting up and
carriage.

The destruction and present price of cattle are tremendous, and I hear
we have been obliged to give the Spaniards some of our best Irish
cattle, as we had no other at hand. The only meat they seemed to have
with them was a number of ox cars with sides of Spanish bacon; this,
and sardines, seemed to form their supply. The men, however, are very
fine men, and in my opinion, were they well commanded, would make
excellent troops. Nevertheless, I was by no means sorry to find that
we had still an English brigade of about twelve or fifteen hundred men
(Lord Aylmer’s) between us and the eleven thousand French at Bayonne,
for I am sure five thousand French would force their way through the
fifteen thousand Spaniards if they chose to try, though we should in
the end prevent their return. At any rate we should have early notice,
and alarm from the runaways. The French beat our men at that, for we
cannot catch them, and the Spaniards would not be easily caught by the
French.

We had a most anxious scene here two nights since. Just as our vessels
got into the Adour, a suttling brig, Dutch-built, and very strong, to
save pilotage fees, tried to get into this river without the pilot
boats. The boats towing missed the mouth, were both swamped, and the
men in most imminent danger, as well as the vessel, which was driven
in without guidance, aground for an hour, but saved, and at last all
lives were saved, or at least all but one. When the boat was filled,
another wave drove it against the ship, and three caught hold of the
ship-chains and got in; the fourth was knocked about in the water
between the ship, the boat, and the wall, but at last got his chin on
the sinking boat, came up the harbour so, was hauled in and saved. In
my morning walk on the sea wall, I found another ship on shore, a large
brig with a valuable cargo, a private speculation. This will be the
third wreck, but considering how many vessels have been here, and how
they have been all exposed, and half of them absolutely at the mercy of
any north or north-west squalls, we have been most fortunate.

_Later._—In my ride to-day I met about thirty or forty wounded men of
the Buffs and 39th, second division; but this is the consequence of
the last move, I believe, as they told me they were wounded at or near
Cambo. We have reports of an affair, but here nothing is yet known. We
are becoming, instead of being like head-quarters, the centre of all
good information, a mere hospital station in the rear, and famous as
usual for ill-founded reports, which the medical men probably invent
from _ennui_ on these occasions. A large brig has arrived from Bordeaux
with wine, but, in my opinion, almost too late for the speculation.

_Sunday, 27th February, Post-day._—In my walk this morning I saw
another boat swamped, trying to get out of the river over the bar. It
was actually worked by the surf into this position, with the stern
stuck into the sand of the bar, and fairly went over, with the five
men. For some time all five were visible, two swimming, and three
clinging to the keel of the wreck, which was bottom uppermost. Another
boat, which had intended to follow this one out, was fortunately close
at hand, just out of the reach of the surf, and by this means the
two swimmers were saved by giving them a rope’s end, and also one of
the three from the wreck, as it floated inwards. There was a struggle
between the three, when a wave came, and two appeared no more. The
relations of the two men witnessed their loss, as well as myself, for
we were standing on the edge of the wall within ten yards of the men,
but unable to help them. The distress you may conceive. We become in
some degree hardened by seeing death so continually, and in so many
forms, as we do here.

I have also this morning met with five English seamen, part of the
crew of one of our provision ships, which were lost some months since
on this coast. The master and four men, being from St. Andero, and the
French having heard of the fever there at that time, they were put
under quarantine on the coast, about forty miles on the other side of
Bayonne. Afterwards they escaped, and lived among the inhabitants, who,
they say, treated them well, as the master had money. At last, hearing
from the French that we had crossed the Adour, they made through the
woods this way, and fell in with our cavalry about three leagues on
the other side of Bayonne, General Vandeleur being on that side of the
Adour, with two regiments. They mention that they saw on the road going
to Dax a number of the wounded French from Bayonne, and also troops
retiring that way, they were told, to the amount of fifteen thousand,
but the number must have been considerably exaggerated.

The servant of Captain Pitts, of the Engineers, came in yesterday with
an account of his master’s death. Captain Pitts was one of General
Cole’s staff, and a most spirited, zealous, skilful, and promising
young man. He was killed on the right a few days since, when our
men had driven the French over the Gave d’Oleron. He went down to
reconnoitre, and take a sketch of the banks, and make observations
with a view to the formation of a bridge. His servant says that he had
finished, and was looking round just before he came off, when a ball
struck him on the head. General Cole’s staff have been very unfortunate
this last year, and indeed the loss of officers in his whole division
has been very considerable. I used to think that it sometimes affected
his spirits, though it never induced him to endeavour to diminish it,
for he always was and would be foremost in danger.

Count Damas has just informed me, that Lord Wellington has now crossed
both the Gaves, and is near Orthes; but we have no authentic news from
him. All accounts agree that General Picton was wounded in the affair
on crossing the Gave; but, it is said, not badly.

I picked up this morning a Spanish paper, and on making it out,
found that it was a letter from a Spanish officer in camp, near
Bayonne, telling some friend in the rear that Murillo and Mina had
beat the French across the Gave, and were in pursuit along with two
English divisions, having taken forty guns, &c., and adding that the
inhabitants were _muy malos_, but that we treated them as well as
Spaniards, and that they, the Spaniards, were ordered to do the same,
but that we should see, &c.

_Head-Quarters, St. Jean de Luz, February 28th, 1814._—Lieut.-Colonel
C—— has now returned here, and we have at length some authentic
accounts of what has passed. Lord Wellington was at Orthes, where
he left him, intending to stay there a short time to arrange
communications with General Hope’s column, &c. Our men forded the Gave
de Pau, and drove the enemy from Orthes. As they made some stand in
that town, it was a little _rompé’d_, as we call it. General Picton
was not wounded, and our loss has been inconsiderable upon the whole.
Colonel C—— returned by my old road through Peyrehorade, Ramons, and
across the Adour, at Port de Lanne, and so to Bayonne, and then across
the new bridge here. He found the first division driving the French
from the heights above the citadel of Bayonne, close into the town last
night. This was done, but with some loss and much firing. Those hills
are important, for in some measure they command the citadel. To-morrow
we march to join head-quarters. I believe we shall not pass the new
bridge, as a Spanish army crosses that way, and will occupy it all day,
and the road also; in addition to which, we have hitherto only cavalry
patroles along that road, and the French have halted a force at Dax,
or Acts, or Ax (in the different maps). I understand that we are to
go by Ustaritz, Hasparren, Garris, Sauveterre, and Orthes. This is a
roundabout bad road, but will be a new country to me. The weather most
luckily continues fine hitherto.

Our accounts from the interior are, that Toulouse and Bordeaux are
both ready to hoist the white flag, and only wait for our sanction and
declaration. This point of etiquette may spoil all. I think we should
declare our readiness to support them the moment they declare publicly
their readiness to take that part. This is a critical moment. Many are
alarmed at Schwartzenburg’s not having made more progress; he seems
to have hung back, for his army was stronger than Blucher’s, and was
forwarded six weeks since, and yet we only hear of Blucher being near
Paris. I must now prepare to “_romper de march_” as Jack Portugoose
calls it. So adieu.




CHAPTER XXIII.

 Passage of the River—Start for Orthes—Effect of the Battle—Feelings
 of the French—Wellington wounded—St. Sever—Church and
 School—Aire—Wellington on the Conduct of the Allies—Indurating effects
 of War.


  Head-quarters, St. Sever,
  March 5th, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——,

Here I am with head-quarters, and within two leagues of my old quarter,
Mont de Marsan. We have had a most unpleasant, and, for the baggage
animals, a most laborious journey, from the terrible state of the
weather—hail-storms, rain-storms, with violent south-westerly winds
almost all the time. By warm clothing and good living I have escaped
with only one day’s return of rheumatism, which has now gone off, and I
feel in very tolerable repair.

On the 1st of March we left St. Jean de Luz, and passed the grand
bridge below Bayonne, in sight of, and I really believe within gunshot
of the walls. We all filed over in safety, and then along the sea-wall
for half a mile, with water on both sides, to Boucaut. I was surprised
that the animals were not more alarmed.

The bridge answered perfectly; it consisted of thirty-six two-masted
vessels, with anchors across all the way at the head and stern of
each; a strong beam across the centre of each, between the masts, to
which the cables were fastened, to form the road, so that each formed
a separate bridge, and the destruction of one cable only affected one
space. The boards were then fixed on these cables, and were interlaced
all the way by small cords, through notches in the boards; and thus we
went safely along between the masts, in a road about twelve or fourteen
feet wide, differing, however, from a common bridge, for the arches
between the boats (from the stretching of the cables) formed concaves
instead of convex arches, some of them descending nearly to the water’s
edge. It answered, however, perfectly, and will continue to do so,
unless the Spaniards suffer the Trench to come and destroy it. Of this
I have my doubts. The crews were living in their vessels at the head
and stern, cooking away and going on as usual. Five or six gun-boats
were moored about it, then came the boom and boats ready to tow ashore
any fireship.

At Boucaut we found Sir John Hope and his staff, so we were ordered to
the next village on the road. Our managing Quarter-Master clumsily went
to a bad village of a dozen houses, out of the road, when there was a
very good one on the right road, only a few miles further on. Several
of us had no houses, and were told we must find them for ourselves.
After waiting for some time until my baggage came, I determined to go
on the right road until I found a quarter vacant, trusting with full
confidence to the good disposition of the inhabitants, which is most
excellent towards the English. After looking into five, I found a
vacant one a mile and a-half off, no officer within half a mile, and no
English troops within two miles, and none at all towards the interior
of France on that road. The people expected some one, and a bed was
ready, and a hearty welcome I received.

In my way I went round by the picquet, within about eight hundred yards
of Bayonne citadel, where my tailor was on fatigue-duty in the works,
and I thus recovered my clothes. As I was just going to bed at eight
o’clock, a violent cannonading and sharp musketry commenced sounding
close by us. I did not think it prudent to go to bed until it ceased,
for we were within about a mile and a-half of a garrison of eleven
thousand men; but suspecting what was the case, that it was only our
people driving the French out of a field-work on the hill, and hemming
them in closer to the citadel, I was little alarmed.

My host and his family were great royalists in their professions, as
they had for the last six months been more than usually oppressed by
the French. He had a house and ten acres of land; the house probably
worth about 10_l._ a-year in England. The rent of his land was one-half
the produce of corn and maize; the taxes on his house had been already
that year sixty francs, and his contributions fifteen bushels of maize
and, I think, ten of corn. He said that no one could live if this
continued, and that all the young men were carried off. He had one
quarter to pay still, but expecting us every day, he put it off from
time to time, though much threatened, and now thought himself safe.

From thence we started early for Peyrehorade, rather a large place,
nearly as large as Kingston-upon-Thames. It was a market-day, and the
people of the country crowded in as usual. They all stared at us, most
saluted us; all were civil, and we got our quarters with much more
facility, and met with ten times the civility we had ever done in
Spain. I never witnessed a single quarrel, though the town was crowded
as it is during an election with you, and we had only about twenty
dragoons to protect all the twelve hundred animals and baggage of
head-quarters.

My host was particularly civil, and gave me a very good apartment and
an excellent dinner—some roast beef _à l’Anglaise_, a duck, and a fowl.
The whole family dined with us, wife, mother, and two daughters. The
eldest son, who had been intended for an attorney, had been taken as
a conscript, and was wounded at Leipsic—since that time they had not
heard of him. I comforted them by suggesting that he must have been
left at Mayence. The next son was sixteen, and at school at St. Sever;
next year it became his turn to take his chance as a conscript. You may
well conceive that we were considered as welcome guests; independently
of the expectation of having coffee and sugar cheap for grandmamma, and
English linens, muslins, &c., for the two ugly misses.

On the 3rd of March we started again for Orthes, the scene of the
famous battle, of which you will have heard before you receive this
letter, and of which we received several imperfect accounts as we went
along. The reception all along the road, and at Orthes, was the same as
at Peyrehorade. Dr. M—— and Major G—— just stopped in the stable of a
château for shelter, when the owner came out and took them in, and gave
them cold turkey and champaign. At Orthes I got an excellent quarter
at the house of the _Juge de Paix_, who was very hospitable as usual;
and as the weather was so excessively bad, and my Portuguese almost
dead with their walk of twenty miles in the rain and mud, I stopped the
night there, notwithstanding the head-quarters were regularly eight
miles further at Soult. I knew the latter was a miserable place, which
was another inducement with me to remain.

At Orthes I found about two thousand wounded, one thousand English,
and the others French and Portuguese; the latter had behaved well, as
usual. I found the Adjutant-general, Pakenham, confined to his bed, ill
at the inn, but, at nine at night, and this morning, very much better.
The hospitals are all established, and in full activity. Lord March was
shot in the chest, but the surgeon hoped he would do well, and thought
so; he could not, however, find the ball, but had reason to think it
had not passed the lungs. Colonel Brook’s brother (a schoolfellow of
George’s) was shot through the lungs, and there is little hope of him.

The affair at Orthes was quite unexpected; as they had suffered our
army to pass all the rivers, no one expected this desperate stand, for
such I am told it was, the French having seldom fought better. They
stood some time after they had ceased to fire, and it is therefore
concluded that they had had no ammunition left; and even after our
cavalry (who behaved well) was in the midst of them cutting away. At
last they gave way, and then fled quickly. Their loss no one knows, as
the wounded got off to the villages round; but all say that their army
is actually reduced above eight thousand men, as the conscripts are
all running home as fast as they can. Above twenty had come back to
Peyrehorade; and one gentleman-like young man I met at my quarter there
was a convalescent conscript, and such he said he should now always
remain, unless affairs took another turn again.

Our state here is most curious; all riding about singly, entering any
house we please, and well received everywhere, the baggage straggling
all over the country; every one declaring that one man had caused
all their misery for the last three years. The Bourbons are almost
forgotten; and few, even of the better sort of people, know who the
Duke d’Angoulême is. All want peace, and, therefore, wish him well. The
French people are just now humbled to a most astonishing degree—I could
scarcely have believed it possible.

I went about talking to the people, and explaining a little who our
“royal tiger” is, and why he came as he did. At Flagenan I found the
_maire_ and townspeople waiting to pay their respects to him in form.
This was bolder than at most places; and I was sorry to mortify them
by telling them he had already passed. At Peyrehorade, when the French
army went by, every place was shut up; when we came, every place and
all the shops were opened.

Their horror of the Spaniards is, however, very great. Still the people
would take no active part; they remained quiet, hoping for peace. At
Orthes Marshal Soult ordered the inhabitants to arm and assist; and
the action was so close, on a formidable position on the hills above
the town, that several balls fell into the houses; but instead, the
inhabitants all shut themselves up, and there waited the event. He
vowed vengeance, and declared that the town should be pillaged in
consequence. Of course they wished us success, as you may well conceive.

In many places the French have done much injury to the inhabitants
as they went off, burning mills, bridges, forage, and the suburbs of
Navarens, on military accounts, but plundering also very considerably
on private accounts. The people now fear that we are too weak, and
begin to tremble.

It is a trying time for them. The schoolmaster here has rubbed out his
_Collége Impériale_. This may be his ruin if matters change again.
At Mont de Marsan, as I expected, we have found immense stores. This
place, St. Sever, is larger than Orthes or Peyrehorade, and is said to
have had much _émigré_ and _ancienne noblesse_. The reception, however,
as to quarters, has not been quite so good as hitherto, more from
alarm, probably than anything else.

Lord Wellington and General Alava were close together when struck, and
both on the hip, but on different sides, and neither seriously injured,
as the surgeon told me who dressed them. Lord Wellington’s was a bad
bruise, and the skin was broken. I fear that his riding so much since
has made it rather of more consequence; but hope the two days’ halt
here will put him in the right way again, as all our prospects here
would vanish with that man.

From this vicinity the French took the road to Toulouse, and, you will
observe, made another stand near Aire. The Portuguese, I am sorry to
say, ran at that place; and we were at first repulsed, but General
Barnes’s brigade came up, and set all to rights, by driving the French
on again, and taking some prisoners. Our way here has been in some
degree difficult and dangerous, from the flooded rivers and broken-down
bridges, which have been hitherto only slightly repaired, so as to be
just passable. At the Adour, it is reported that we have here actually
been delayed two days. At Port de Lanne, we passed it on two large
rafts, and two ferry-boats, with some risk: my boat was nearly over,
from two spirited horses being on board; and my little mule, with his
panniers on, jumped into the water. This put my linen and sugar, &c.,
in a pretty mess, as you may suppose, and drowned the live fowls on his
back. At Peyrehorade I also lost a mule, and was obliged, consequently,
to overload the rest.

At this place I last night recovered my mule, and lost nothing on
the road, except the drowned fowls, which can now be replaced here.
The history of all the mishaps on a march is curious. I dined at the
ferry-house, and did not go away till all my own nine animals were
clear over. Some persons have never heard of their baggage since, and
are now here without it: it will turn up soon, no doubt, at least in
great part.

My old host at Mont de Marsan has sent to inquire after me. One feels
now quite strange in an enemy’s country, meeting deserters around on
the road, gens-d’armes, the same conscripts going home, and a stout
peasantry with great Irish bludgeons, all very civil and friendly;
and Lord Wellington, by proclamation, ordering the _maires_ to form
an armed police, and protect their own districts themselves from
stragglers, muleteers, &c.

I always expected that Soult would retire towards Toulouse, to fall
back on Suchet, and either hang on our flank, if we should go on to
Bordeaux, or draw us from the sea and our supplies if we follow him up.
We can push on to Bordeaux and the river, in my opinion, and then sweep
on before us towards Toulouse. Time will show Lord Wellington’s plans,
which no one can do more than guess at. In the end I was right as to
his crossing the Gaves in force.

I have just met with the Baron de Barthe. He tells me that all prospers
with the royal cause, and that the French provinces of Poitou, Guienne,
Brittany, &c., are all in open insurrection, and the white flag
flying. P——’s account of the state of France on his side coincides,
as you must observe, almost precisely with mine, as far as I have yet
seen. The people are all at market here to-day, just as if nothing
were the matter, and we were not here. Hitherto there is only hatred
in many of the lower classes and a few of the higher to Bonaparte;
but no effort for the Bourbons, and much alarm in the purchasers of
national property. The _ancienne noblesse_ is beginning to talk and
to stir a little, and the _nouveaux riches_ are by some laughed at.
Public opinion begins to dare to vent itself, and the minds of the
people at large are, I think, veering fast. Many think us too weak at
present. It is said that we move to-morrow to Aire, on the Toulouse
road; but nothing is fixed. I went to inquire after Lord Wellington
to-day; he was busy writing, and said he was better, and looked well
enough. The Duke d’Angoulême has sent to Mont de Marsan as his agent a
_professeur_, who was despised there, and this has given offence. The
truth is that he does not know where as yet to find men of weight and
talent.

_St. Sever, March 6th, 1814._—The mail is to be dispatched to-day,
so I add a few lines, as we halt here again to-day, and probably
to-morrow, owing to the flooded state of the river, and the enemy
having destroyed the bridges in their retreat to Auch, where we are
told they now are. Marshal Soult, it is said, finding that the Italians
also are now beginning to desert since Murat’s new alliances, has
ordered all Italian soldiers to be disarmed. Another story current, but
not so much to be relied on, is, that Bonaparte has been badly wounded,
and desired General Macdonald to put him out of his misery; and that
the latter took him at his word, and shot him.

The Duke d’Angoulême was at high mass again to-day, at which some
hundreds of the new levy attended, my hosts tell me, known by their
short cropped heads. Our situation here is so different from what it
was in Spain, that it is quite droll. I have a general invitation from
my host whilst I stay. To-day I go to Lord Wellington’s.

_Later on the 7th._—We stay to-day, as the bridges are not repaired
and the floods have not quite subsided. I walked down to the bridge
with Lord Wellington yesterday, and observed him limp a little, and he
said he was in rather more pain than usual, but that it was nothing. At
dinner yesterday, he said he was laughing at General Alava having had a
knock, and telling him it was all nonsense, and that he was not hurt,
when he received this blow, and a worse one, in the same place himself.
Alava said it was to punish him for laughing at him. At dinner we had
the new Swedish tiger, the Prince’s aide-de-camp, who had been here a
few days, covered with gold. His pantaloons are most _magnifique_. He
seemed a good-tempered man, but I did not think very much of him.

Two of the Bordeaux people were also there, who are to return to-day,
and General Frere’s aide-de-camp from Peyrehorade, as he is marching
up that way by Orthes. The people in office at Pau sent to say that
they were ready to declare for the King, and Count Damas boldly enough
went over there to see the state of things. He has come back safe, and
reports them ready, but that they cannot take any public step until
we are in force there. Amongst other opinions and feelings here, we,
the English, have our partisans. Many say they should like an English
Government, and Lord Wellington told me, laughing, he believed we had
almost as many friends and partisans as the Bourbons. Peace certainly
is by far the most popular project of all. I am excessively hurried
with business to-day, and must prepare to see Lord Wellington.

_Head-Quarters, Aire, March 11th, 1814._—By a sudden order we moved
from St. Sever to this place yesterday, so far on our road to Toulouse,
and the scene of the battle a few days since, when the Algarve brigade
(all Portuguese) took to their heels, and the English brigade of
General Barnes behaved so well.

We are now playing a bolder game than usual. The French, as I
suspected, took the Toulouse road from St. Sever, and have a column in
our front on the road to Auch, I believe, and another near or towards
Tarbes. This leaves Bordeaux open. To take advantage of this, we have
also divided two divisions under Marshal Beresford; the seventh and
the fourth are gone to Bordeaux, and must be by this time close to the
town, which is said to be ripe to join us, and declare for the King,
The Duke d’Angoulême is gone that way.

In front here we have Sir Rowland Hill’s corps, the second and sixth
divisions, and also the third and light divisions; and General Frere’s
Spanish army of twelve thousand men, to be fed by us, is on its road
up, and to be, it is understood, at St. Sever to-day; and to support
this main movement against Soult, who is said to be near Auch. In the
meantime, General Hope remains with the first division, including all
the Guards and German Legion (the choice men and in high order, and
undiminished by service nearly), together with the fifth division and
General Don Carlos d’Espagne’s Spanish brigade, and, it is believed,
also Lord Aylmer’s British one, to blockade and take Bayonne. It
is most unfortunate that so large a force should be required for
that object; but we dare not trust, I conclude, the bridge and our
communications to the Spaniards’ keeping.

Great preparations are making against Bayonne, and the garrison have
been driven in very close to the citadel; but no steps have been
hitherto taken for the actual siege by regular approaches or batteries.
Our army is thus very much divided just now, and the communications
would be difficult, except that the country is with us. All the French
posting establishment has remained, and nearly everything goes on as
usual. The people quietly suffer us to take our own measures, and
offer no opposition, though not openly declaring or helping us. It is
remarkable that we go about as if in England, and yet no mischief has
been done either to officers, men, or baggage. If the country people
had been like the Spaniards, and against us, what we are now doing
would have been out of the question. Half our army, by straggling
about, would have been knocked on the head. We have, fortunately, just
now plenty of money, and pay for everything; and the English are in the
highest repute.

In general, also, we have behaved well. There are, however, many
instances to the contrary; and many more, I am sorry to say, amongst
the Portuguese. When the Spaniards come, I am afraid things will be
much worse. The mischief done by, and injury arising from, the passing
through a country of the very best disciplined army is considerable.
The people feel that, and are ready in general to submit to much,
especially as the French army has been so much worse than ours, and
does not pay for anything, whilst, on the other hand, we enable many to
make almost little fortunes against quiet times; and Lord Wellington
begins upon a plan, which I hope he will have funds to continue, of
paying for all damage done when fairly stated. Some most exaggerated
and unreasonable demands have been made to him in consequence. Guineas
are already spread all over this province, and pass most readily.

I am at an apothecary’s here, who was, I am sorry to say, robbed by our
men just after the attack. Lord Hill offered to send him the money,
nearly 15_l._ and a watch; but he declined taking it.

Lord Wellington has a cold, but rode here yesterday in his white cloak,
in a terribly cold day, with the snow directly in his face; for we have
now got another little winter here, which is unusual.

At the latter place there was a large church which was built by the
English. In general, it is exactly in the style we call Saxon, or Old
English, circular arches and Saxon ornaments. I suspect, however, it
must have been built just as the Gothic style was coming into fashion,
as the side aisle arches and part of the body of the church were
Pointed or Gothic; and this did not appear to have been, like some
of ours, a subsequent alteration. A handsome small old Corinthian
façade was inserted within the large Saxon heavy arch, which formed
the original entrance of the front of the church. In the town was a
very good school, called _Le Collége Impérial_. About ninety-two boys
were then in the school, who all remained, and were very civil to our
officers whenever we went there. The boys seemed to wish us well; and
they do not usually conceal their real opinions. The establishment
was in an old Benedictine abbey, and was exceedingly good. The lower
cloisters and the great church, gutted at the Revolution, formed
excellent play-places; and all the great corridors above were half
enclosed by small wooden rooms for the boys, each having one to himself
about eight feet by five, holding his bed, his chair, table, and box;
and, by being all open at the top to the gallery, they were airy and
yet retired and private. The expense of this school is about 400
francs, or 20_l._ a-year. For this, Latin, writing, French, geography,
music, dancing, and a little mathematics were taught. Some boys could
read Livy, Tacitus, and Cicero. The dinner and other arrangements are
cleanly and good. Napoleon gave them the building. The funds were all
private, no foundation, lands, or allowances from Government.

The road from St. Sever here was through a rich flat bottom near the
Adour, with a high bank all the way on the south side, with several
chateaux. We crossed the Adour to come here at Sever, over our
newly-made bridge; came along the great road on the north bank, and
recrossed again at a ferry at this place, this for the fourth time
since we left St. Jean de Luz. The country seems well cultivated, and
not unlike parts of the Bath road, in Berkshire—a flat corn country,
with wooded, rising grounds and villas at some distance, which
formed the valley. We passed Grenade, rather a large village, about
eight miles from St. Sever, and a large chateau about six miles off,
belonging to the Marquis de St. Maurice, the chateau deriving its name
from him. We also passed a small village, about four miles further on,
called Cageres; and four miles more brought us here. The bridge at
Barcelonne is about a mile and a half higher up, over the Adour, and
has not been destroyed by the French; they only broke one arch of wood,
which we have repaired. We were to have crossed there to get hither,
but I came almost the first, found a ferry just re-established, and
came over; most followed the same way.

Aire is not so large a town as St. Sever or Orthes; it is about the
size of Epsom. It is close to the river, is old and dirty, and half
deserted. Several good houses gutted, or, at least, without furniture;
and the ruins of a very large modern-built bishop’s palace, destroyed
during the Revolution, when this place suffered much. At Upper Aire,
which stands well on a hill half a mile above this, is a celebrated
school or college, or rather two united. It was first formed about
sixty or eighty years since, a handsome building erected for the
purpose, and well contrived—in plan much like that at St. Sever. It
was in great repute before the Revolution, but was then destroyed, and
almost completely gutted. Within the last ten years, the professors
and clergy have by degrees, by charities, charity sermons, and
great exertions, nearly restored the whole again without Government
assistance; and, before this late attack, above two hundred boys were
there. In one building there are above a hundred boys, all destined
for the church; in another, above a hundred for lay employments. An
old church built by the English, but much altered, and in a much later
style than that at St. Sever, stands between the schools, is used by
them as a church, and unites the two establishments. The whole has
a good broad play-terrace on the brow of the hill above the river.
Education here is cheaper than at St. Sever, though there are no
Government funds at either. The yearly cost is about three hundred or
three hundred and fifty francs. I rather think clothing was, however,
included in the estimate at St. Sever, and that would make the two
much alike. The studies are the same. It puts me in mind of Maynooth
College, near Dublin, and seemed what our colleges were three or four
centuries ago.

My patron or host at St. Sever is a sort of small landholder and
noble, with his house in town and villa two miles off, which dated,
as he took care to tell me, 130 years, as the builder’s mark and
his ancestor’s name proved, and therefore, “_C’est clair, mais ce
n’est rien pour moi, c’est bien vrai maintenant, que ma famille est
supérieure à celle de M. le Maire de notre ville_,” &c. M. le Maire
had made most of his money by dabbling with national property during
the Revolution, and succeeded better than many others here. “But,”
continued my host, “as I have always been considered one of the
noblesse, I have suffered accordingly; _mais n’importe_—I am grown a
philosopher. I never can see such times as Robespierre’s again; so
I see English, Spanish, Portuguese, and all with indifference, and
remain quiet. At the same time I am now English (he always said _nous
autres_, which often puzzled me), and I wish the cause well, and
would contribute much to its success.” He seemed surprised that this
contribution of maize for our horses was all paid for instantly, and
that in gold, and at a fair good price, even though M. le Maire, who
managed it (no one knew for what), detained eleven sous out of every
eighty from all to whom he made payments. M. La Borde de Menos was my
host’s name. He was very civil, and I dined with his family—his wife,
two daughters, and a son—whenever I was not engaged, which happened
only twice, at Lord Wellington’s. He also gave my men wine, &c.; in
short, I believe he rejoiced much at the change he had experienced in
having me instead of a whole company of officers, men and all, which he
had one day when we first came.

In return for his treatment, I bought toys for the lad; gave some tea
to Madame in case of sickness, and a pretty cadeau to Mademoiselle. In
a word, we parted excellent friends. The many stories he told me of
what had passed in Robespierre’s time were curious. M. La Borde was
obliged to act with the Representant, and attend all meetings, to be
only pillaged and abused by every one, and to bow and say, “Thank you
all,” with his hat in his hand; and this was to prevent their having
an excuse for guillotining him, as thirty of the principal people were
put to death in the small town of St. Sever. The living alone and
staying away was of itself a heinous offence, and every requisition of
a cart for a day’s use was called for _sous peine de mort_. That was
the form of all demands. A ball was given by the Representant. Every
one was obliged to go or be suspected. Madame went. She had a valuable
gold watch-chain; but not daring to show it, she went with a cut steel
one. The Representant said, “_Mais où est donc votre chaine d’or? Le
publique en a besoin._” She was obliged to swear it had been stolen,
and to hide it ever afterwards. The Representant seemed incredulous,
and the risk of this fraud was great, but it answered. Monsieur was not
so lucky; he had a valuable ring, and attended one of the meetings with
it on. The Representant said, “_Tu F—— Noble, donnez moi ta bague, ce
n’est pas pour des gens comme toi; le publique en a besoin._” He took
it off and gave it up, and some months after saw it on the finger of
one of the Representant’s relations.

I have now a will to draw up in case of accident, for Sir N. P——,
bart., to secure 10,000_l._ to each of his younger children. He is here
with his regiment; so adieu.

Lord Wellington abuses the Allies for having been beaten when they
had the game in their hands; and says, one ran his head against the
Marne, and the other against the Seine, and the whole was ill-managed.
We have the further news of a French column having made its way from
Lyons to near Geneva again; but a report still later, that the Allies,
under Blucher, got into Bonaparte’s rear. These checks are, even if
they end in nothing, of the greatest use to him. They deter people
from declaring their opinions; may make every difference in that way
here and at Bordeaux; and I should not be surprised if they encouraged
Marshal Soult to make another stand near here, on this side the
Garonne, which I do not think he would otherwise have done.

I am told that he is in a position at present from Tarbes to Plaisance,
on a ridge of hills, and that the country is full of positions. My
news is from M. D——, the husband of my young Spanish Bilboa lady, who
came to me to-day. They have left Bayonne from fear, and are waiting
the events of the war at Pau, whence he came over here—and like a true
placeman, thinking matters were about to change, he insinuated to me
that he should like an appointment under the new order of things—under
the direction of the Bourbons or the English.

He also wanted a passport for his little wife’s brother to go back
to Bilboa, from General Alava. This I have obtained for him; but on
condition that the civil authorities are written to, and the brother
examined on his arrival, as to his conduct, &c. M. D—— was Colonel
F——’s friend and not mine; and to confess the truth, I had no great
opinion of him, but thought he was only attentive to Colonel F——
to serve his own purposes, and seemed to be rather an intriguing
gentleman. It is, however, quite my principle that every one should be
allowed to go home, and go about his business; and I am sure that Spain
will profit by the residence of any one who has lived at all with the
French, and acquired some notions of what mankind are capable of, and
of human exertion.

In my walks to-day, I met a poor gentleman who told me we had taken all
his forage, and that his oxen were starving, and that he must sell
them; he was going to a contractor for that purpose. I advised him to
go to our Commissary Haines, to whom I took him, for I thought each
would gain by a bargain direct. His oxen are to be inspected to-morrow.
During our conversation, he told me that he was the brother-in-law of
Dulau, the French bookseller in Soho Square, and that the latter had no
nearer relation, but that he could never hear of him, or write to him.
I undertook to send his letter. If such a letter is enclosed to you,
therefore, you will know all about it, and my poor man may get a legacy
or something by it, from the great Mr. Dulau, for such he must be.

_Saturday, March 12th._—We remain here to-day, and shall do so probably
for a few days, unless the French move off. We seem to be moving up.
A brigade of artillery and some troops were yesterday taking the
direction to Pau, to secure that town, I conclude, as we have now only
artillery there, and also, perhaps, to turn the left of the French
position at Tarbes. Lord Wellington is better; his hounds go out
to-day, and I should not be surprised at his being out with them. As a
proof how savage war makes every one, even an English soldier, I may
tell you that poor H——’s body was stript by the English soldiers of his
own division, to which he was acting as Adjutant-general, and almost
before his body was cold. I believe two or three men have been flogged
for this. By degrees we all get hardened to anything.

I find the same sort of custom here as to letting land, as is to be
found near Bayonne. The landlord puts a peasant into a little farm,
furnishes it, pays the taxes, and finds the necessary cattle, beasts,
and horses, for the cultivation of the land; in return, he receives
the full half of the clear produce as rent, but in kind, and very
little money is seen. Before we came, bread was three sous the pound,
which would be about sixpence three-farthings the quartern loaf. A
goose has been five francs of late, but that is dear. Fowls are now
only half-a-crown or three shillings each, and very good even to the
English. If we remain long in a place, we soon cause the prices to
rise.




CHAPTER XXIV.

 Reports from the Seat of War—The Duke d’Angoulême—The German
 Cavalry—Misconduct of the Spaniards—Attacks on our Grazing
 Parties—Movement of Head-Quarters—Death of Colonel Sturgeon—Visit to
 the Hospital—New Quarters—Skirmishes—Wellington and the Mayor.


  Head-quarters, Aire,
  March 16, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——,

Here we remain still, and probably shall do so for a few days, for the
French Marshal not only keeps his position near Conchez, across our
road to Tarbes and Toulouse, but does not seem disposed to go beyond
demonstrations, and cannot muster courage to attack us, and we, I
believe, are not quite prepared to attack him. The glorious reception
Marshal Beresford met with at Bordeaux, and the spirited and decided
conduct of the _maire_, &c., there, you will have heard by the last
mail, for the news came after my letter, but before Lord Wellington’s
bag was dispatched. We have all sorts of reports from the vicinity of
Paris, about the battle at Meaux, of a large French corps having gone
over to Bernadotte. There are reports from Bordeaux, but all uncertain;
I think, however, that the _maire_ must have had some good intelligence
to induce him to take the line he has done, which must be his ruin, and
that of all his friends, if we make peace at last with Bonaparte.

The Duke d’Angoulême, at first, it is said, declined a burgher
guard, and preferred an English one. This will not do: he must show
confidence and spirit, and rely upon his French friends, and give no
offence by partialities for the English. This was bad advice in some
one about him, for I understand he personally has always wished to take
a decided line, and risk his personal safety for the cause.

We hear the Royalist party are beginning _à la lanterne_ again, but I
hope this is not true. The inhabitants of Bordeaux must arm and protect
themselves. We shall leave but a small force there. The river and their
own people must be their chief reliance. Lord Wellington has sent for
the fourth division from Marshal Beresford to help here. Canning went
off at four o’clock on the 14th, with these orders (as I understand);
he was sent from Gartin by Lord Wellington, eleven miles from this in
front, and was here in an hour. Whilst he was dressing and getting a
fresh horse, I got him his money from the Paymaster, and he was off,
remounted for Roquefort, twenty miles; and thence he was to post the
other seventy miles all night to Bordeaux. He was heard of at Langon,
about three or four in the morning, so that by nine o’clock on the
15th he would be in Bordeaux; and as the fourth division, which was at
Langon, would march that day, in about two days more they will be here.
All our 18-pounders and some other reinforcements will arrive, and then
Soult must be off, or I hope get another beating.

The heavy German Cavalry (for by its name they wish to be known, for it
carries credit with it), went through here two days since in admirable
order, the horses in particular, but the latter are altogether too
slight for the men, who are all large, bony, heavy men, of a certain
age, and experienced heroes. It will not be easy by a royal order, and
light jacket and caps, to transform these gentlemen into light Germans,
nor do the corps like it at all. Ponsonby’s heavy brigade is also close
by, fresh from Spain, like the Germans, and in the same excellent
condition. Nearly ten thousand Spaniards, very fine-looking men, and in
good discipline, are also two miles from this, at or near Barcelona.
Hitherto they have behaved in general much better than was expected on
the march; but we feed them, as they have no transport. If they will
but fight a little in return, and take their share of loss, we should
do famously.

Murillo’s Spaniards, I am sorry to say, have begun very ill in our
front. The day before yesterday, Soult made an advance against them;
when they were ordered to fall back a little to a rivulet, and there
defend themselves. Once with their backs turned, however, away they
went, and never stopped until the Buffs were ordered up to stop the
French, who, the moment they saw the red coats coming on, were off home
again very quickly, but not quite so rapidly as the Spaniards had run
from them.

The Portuguese cavalry had a little affair, and behaved well. The 14th
Dragoons had also an affair the day before yesterday. Half a squadron
under Captain Babington were ordered by Colonel Harvey to drive off
a French half squadron, and then halt until he came up. They upset
the French, saw another whole squadron beyond, were tempted to go on
by their first success, and succeeded in a great measure again, but
Captain Babington was taken. The wounded French dragoons of the 5th
regiment, brought in here prisoners, are all very fine men, and the
whole regiment are said to be the same sort of men. They came in much
cut about the head and hands.

The forage animals of head-quarters were yesterday very nearly getting
into a terrible scrape—about two hundred and fifty animals, and two of
mine in the number. They foolishly went in front of our picquets, or
nearly so, though regularly under commissariat directions. Whilst they
were loading at a farm, one peasant slipped away, and it is concluded
told some French dragoons near what was going on, whilst the other in
the house gave some of the party wine. There were four artillerymen
unarmed in the house, and about six Portuguese, one of whom was mine,
when a French officer of cavalry, with his sword drawn, came to the
window, told them all to come out, and that they were prisoners. When
they came out, seeing that he was alone and his party three or four
hundred yards off, they mounted their mules, and nearly all got off,
with the loss of, it is said, only one man and two or three mules.
Some fellows galloped all the way here without their loads or cords,
and at first spread an alarm that all were taken. They arrived home in
the course of the day, and my Portuguese brought home a load of good
hay and two deserted ropes in triumph. It is thought that the party
should have brought off the officer prisoner, but most are satisfied
with having got their own property back again. He cut one of the
artillerymen on the finger, who put up his arm to save himself.

Another party of muleteers with stores from Mont de Marsan to Bordeaux,
with supplies for the seventh division, to which they belonged, were
attacked three days since on their road near Roquefort, quite in our
rear and on our communications, by some French partizans, a sort of
guerillas called _La Bande_. These now, it is said, are employed by
Soult: they were formerly a set of _douaniers_, or smuggler catchers.
Several mules were killed and wounded, and, I believe, some muleteers
killed, and some of the money taken. It is to be feared that the
Spanish muleteers will begin to be alarmed at this. We have cavalry,
however, on the road, and they will now be more on the look out in
future.

This place is now much crowded. Three new Generals came in yesterday
and to-day,—Sir Stapleton Cotton to-day, with, about a hundred animals
belonging to himself and his staff. I was turned out of my stable in
consequence, though but a very bad one, and my animals are now in a
back kitchen turned into a stable. At Barcelona the Spaniards turned
out the cavalry with much less ceremony. It is said that a company,
with a Captain at their head, gallantly charged Captain S——’s horses
and bâtmen (General C——’s aide-de-camp), and were very successful. One
little blood-horse kicked about, broke loose, and made a good defence,
without injuring himself; but another horse, not so quick in his
retreat, received two slight bayonet wounds, and a slight cut with a
sabre, and the Spaniards carried the day, behaving like heroes!

Our people are all moved in consequence, and I hope that these
_valorosos_ and blood-thirsty gentlemen will soon be allowed to contend
with a more glorious enemy, and will behave with equal spirit when the
opportunity shall arrive.

The Swedish (Bernadotte’s) aide-de-camp is, it seems, to campaign with
us; he is buying horses, &c., and preparing for the field. He is a
great talker, and, I understand, of this country. From his conversation
he seems to have served against us under Massena in Portugal, but how
he is what he is I do not exactly understand.

The weather is still very cold. Lord Wellington would not even
condescend to-day to go and look at the French. He only sent Colonel
Gordon to go on to Gartin, and report.

_Head-Quarters, 17th March, Aire._—About three o’clock yesterday we
learnt that the French were off, and filed through Conchez, apparently
on the way to Tarbes. I think they will not venture to go too near the
mountains, but must make for Toulouse. If not, our fourth division,
which, it is said, will be here to-night, will make us strong enough,
I hope, to push a column through Auch straight to Toulouse, while the
rest follow Soult, and we should then be at Toulouse first. I conclude
he will turn that way from Tarbes. General Hill moved a little after
the French yesterday to keep them in sight. The rest of the army will,
in my opinion, get in motion to-day or to-morrow, and head-quarters
move on very soon afterwards. About fifty prisoners were sent in here
last night, mostly dragoons.

We are all alive again with regard to the Allies, and the stories from
Bordeaux are most animating. In addition to this, we move after Soult
to-morrow. Head-quarters to be at Viella, nearly three leagues in
advance, towards Auch. I fear we shall, as part of head-quarters, see
neither Toulouse nor Bordeaux; for if my generalship correspond with
Lord Wellington’s, Soult will in my opinion cross the Garonne, and our
right will go to Toulouse, and we, as part of head-quarters, shall
pass the river by some bridge to be laid down below near Agen,—more
towards the centre of our movements. The scene at Bordeaux I much
regret to have lost. We already hear of disturbances at Toulouse, and
even reports of Louis XVIII. being proclaimed at Paris. From the want
of a popular Bourbon cry at Bordeaux, I hear they have set up “Henri
IV.,” and “Gode sav de King.” The weather to-day is delightful: I only
hope it will last. We are told that Suchet has offered to withdraw all
his garrisons from Spain into France, and give up the towns in their
present state; this has been referred, it is said, to Lord Wellington,
and by him refused, as only releasing so many men for present use, who
must sooner or later, if we persevere, be prisoners. This is quite
right no doubt for the common cause.

_Viella, 18th._—I have just time to add a few lines at this place,
which is about nine miles from Aire, on the road to Tarbes, and our
head-quarters to-day. It is a small scattered village, so much so that
I am at a farm at least two miles or more from the main village, and
nearly by myself at the last house in the commune. I have, however,
a doctor and a commissary within a quarter of a mile, and as we are
fortunately well received, and welcomed everywhere, it does not
signify. I feel quite at ease.

We had a tiresome march here, for the third division, the sixth, and
the heavy Germans with the baggage of all three, the whole of the
pontoon train, the artillery of the two divisions, head-quarter’s
baggage, and eight thousand Spaniards all went the same road, over our
newly-made bridge across the Leis, a small stream which falls into the
Adour, near Barcelonne. The French, in destroying this bridge, had not
blown up or burnt the main centre pier, so that about twenty-five elm
trees, about twenty-five feet long, and bundles of fascines, about
twelve feet long, placed crosswise, and then covered with dirt, in two
days’ time made us a famous bridge.

Some time hence, when the fascines get rotten, some luckless car or
horseman will no doubt go through into the water, which is deep, and
about twenty feet below. The high roads are excellent, and the country,
though not a rich soil, very pretty and loveable. Almost every drain
under the road, or a small arch for streams to pass under, had been
broken down; some left so from neglect of late, some I believe just
made on purpose to delay us: faggots, and a little mould, with a few
small trees at bottom, soon made a passage, but created delays.

_19th, 7 o’clock._—To-day we move to Maubourguet, nearly in the Tarbes
road. This looks as if Soult was making for Tarbes, and not Toulouse.
I can scarcely believe this. If he places his rear on the mountains,
he gives up Toulouse, and the richest country; and if beaten when up
there, will, in my opinion, escape with difficulty. He may expect some
reinforcements from Suchet that way, but still must go to Toulouse.

We, however, have now a chance of seeing the latter, whereas I thought
we should have crossed nearer Agen, lower down the river.

My patron here is very friendly. The French plundered him terribly,
and all his neighbours. They call them brigands, and dread them
more than our army. My man let five Portuguese dragoons through his
premises, and, he says, saved them. He is of a class of men that
existed in former days in England; the owner and cultivator of eighty
acres of land, partly corn, partly wood, partly vineyards, and partly
meadow—thus he has all within himself. He has a wife and four children,
two women servants, two pair of oxen, of which he has been obliged to
sell one pair to pay the French contributions. He has two labourers,
both deserters, for keeping whom he knows he is liable to a fine of
from five hundred to three thousand francs, and to be confined five
years, but he can get no other servants, and of course these are
faithful.

His land, he says, is worth about 50_s._ an acre. It requires much
labour, but when left alone he says is good enough to make them very
happy. In spite of all that he has suffered, and his earnest desire for
peace, he is certainly no friend to the Bourbons. He curses Bonaparte
for his ambition, has a tolerably just notion of all his losses in the
North, and in Spain, from the soldiers; but still, would rather, in my
opinion, have Bonaparte and peace than the Bourbons. I can never get
him to say a word, good or bad, as to the latter. At the same time,
like all the rest of the French, he would just now submit to anything
for peace. All have the highest respect for Lord Wellington, which they
say they learn from the French army, high and low.

_Maubourguet, 5 o’clock._—We left Viella at nine, and after a tiresome
ride through baggage the whole way, arrived here about four o’clock,
though it is only about fifteen miles. The bridges were all broken
down, and nearly every gutter across the road, but this only caused
delays, and was quite ineffectual. The troops and artillery waggons all
found some way round or through. When about twelve miles on our road,
we found the last three miles quite choked with all the baggage of
head-quarters and the troops. At first I conceived the delay arose in a
broken bridge being repaired, and was patient; but a sharp firing and
cannonade soon commenced in front of Maubourguet, near Vic, and then,
guessing that it was an intentional halt, I made my way through it
here, and found every one in front, and a sharp firing about four miles
in advance, near Vic Bigorre.

I met also a party of the fine German cavalry wounded going to the
rear; they had had an affair the day before yesterday in advance of
Madiran, half way between that place and this, and with two squadrons
instantly upset four squadrons of French chasseurs, took many horses,
and cut up many men, but the French ran too fast to leave any
prisoners. This tempted the Germans to attack yesterday a very superior
force, it is said three times their number—three French regiments; and
I hear they suffered much.

In the first affair they had about four killed and eighteen wounded.
We were at first without orders as to staying here and unpacking, but
a report soon reached us that the French would not stand, and were
off. So we all unpacked quietly before the firing ceased, and prepared
for dinner in this town, where five hundred French cavalry had passed
the night, and had only departed about eight in the morning, with the
curses of the inhabitants. Our Portuguese were principally engaged, it
is said, yesterday, and without much loss. The sixth division entered
Vic last night.

_Maubourguet, 7 o’clock, 20th, Sunday._—No orders last night. Lord
Wellington very late home; but I have just learned that we are to move
to-day to Tarbes, taking it for granted that the French will be out to
make room for us. This is very strange, and so is the confidence of our
men. When we halted yesterday the bâtmen were saying, when within three
miles of this place, the head-quarters, “We must only wait a little
till the troops have cleared our quarters for us and made room.”

I now cannot understand Soult’s plans. He seems to be making for the
mountains, and to have suffered us in some measure to cut him off from
Toulouse. Colonel Canning arrived last night from Bordeaux with an
account of a grand defeat of Bonaparte, and that he had fallen back on
Orleans. This I expected if he were not killed, as I concluded he would
try and unite with the Lyons army and Soult’s, and make one more stand
in the heart of the kingdom. If this be true, Lord Wellington must be
careful as to passing the Garonne; Soult’s junction, nevertheless,
will at any rate be doubtful. Our men are in the highest spirits, and
driving all before them; weather fine.

_Tournay, March 21st._—At nine left Maubourguet; about four miles
further I stopped at Vic Bigorre, to see poor Colonel Sturgeon’s
body. He was a very clever man and officer, and particularly skilful
as a bridge engineer, and in all languages. He went too close to the
skirmishers, to reconnoitre, and was shot in the head just under the
eye. I also went over the hospital, to assist Dr. M’Gregor in giving
directions to the French as to arrangements, to talk to and satisfy
some wounded French officers, and to get bedding, straw, and help from
the _maire_ by requisition instantly. We had about two hundred wounded
there of all nations, many Portuguese, one of whom was undergoing
the operation of amputation of his leg and thigh, very high up, and
seemed in great agony. The French surgeon thought that Dr. M’Gregor was
finding fault, and stopped, and turned to us to explain. I understand
he was doing it in a clumsy way, but Dr. M’Gregor begged me to praise
him highly, or he would be alarmed and do it still worse. Close to
Vic, by the road-side, were about a dozen bodies of men killed by
cannon-shot, and terribly mauled.

Having loaded a mule with oats from a French store at Vic, I proceeded
towards Tournay. The road was crammed, and some sharp skirmishing going
on about three miles beyond the town, which had commenced on the Vic
side. The French only left the town about nine o’clock, and tried to
blow up the bridge, but were stopped by two or three gun-shots. They
stood their ground tolerably, on a very strong ridge of hills, until
night, and remained _en bivouac_ on them last night. At three this
morning they were off; and here we are after them again, about nine
miles on the road to Toulouse, at this place, Tournay, which was last
night Marshal Soult’s head-quarters.

Tarbes is a good town and contains a number of good houses. From the
houses being large, and having yards and gardens, and from there being
one or two large open spaces or squares, it covers a good deal of
ground, but does not count, I understand, above ten or eleven thousand
inhabitants. The people received us in general very well, but were
quite passive, taking no part in any way. They had been kept quite in
ignorance of all that was going on in the north, and at Bordeaux in
particular—at least a great part of them. I explained, and harangued
all I could in order to set them right. My own patron was, it struck
me, a strong Bonapartist, and I took some pains to plague him a little
accordingly. We have had no sort of interruption to-day, except from
the multitudes passing, which form a continued stream, from five in the
morning, along a wide road, until about four or five in the day. The
fine weather has unfortunately turned to rain, but I hope will return
to us again.

You will see by the map that Soult has taken to the Toulouse road at
last. He is at Mont St. Jean to-day, it is said; and that, as usual,
when inclined to run, the French beat our people in marching, and we
cannot cut him off. He has run some risks by going this roundabout
road; and had we been strong enough to have pushed along the Auch road
also, we should have puzzled him a little. We shall now, most probably,
drive him gradually to the Garonne. It is likely, in my opinion, that
he will make another stand. I have been turned out of my stable, and
had much trouble with the _maire_, so have only time to seal up.

P.S. The country, from Maubourguet to Vic, Tarbes, and part of the
way here, was all a flat, of rich country, like the country between
Bridgewater and across into Somersetshire; except that half the meadows
at least were vineyards and orchards in one, and interlaced very
prettily; the fruit-trees kept small, about ten feet high, and the
vines trained off at about six, and all intertwined and furled together
with withy-bands. This was famous cover, as no musquet-ball could pass
far through the trees; a few common shot had destroyed the quincunx
regularity in many places. The water meadows were very beautiful,
and the system seemed to be understood and well managed; the streams
beautifully clear. The background of this large flat was all the way to
the Haute Pyrenees covered with snow; but the higher Pic du Midi was
never visible, always in the clouds; the lower one was. The Alps are
far superior, as far as I can judge. Adieu.

_Nine o’clock at night, Isle en Dodon, March 24th, 1814._—Our post
and movements are now so uncertain and sudden, that I know not when
or how to write to you, and fear that my last was sent too late, and
may probably be sent with this, by which means all the zest of late
news from the army will be lost. I have just heard, by accident, that
a mail will go to-night, and have only time to scribble a few hasty
lines immediately after dinner. My last finished at Tournay; thence
we proceeded the next day to Galan, a poor village, and rather a wild
mountain road, the short cut to Toulouse. Our second division and
cavalry followed the enemy along the high road by Lannernezon, Mont St.
Jean, and St. Gaudens. One corps of their army went also through Galan.
The _maire_ of the latter was a fine old man of eighty-two, and a good
friend.

I was at a miserable half-furnished house, and my baggage being stopped
by the Spanish troops, it did not arrive until seven o’clock; luckily
it came in time for me to dress, in order to dine with Lord Wellington,
a mile off, in the rain. The _maire_ had been an hour in the room with
Lord Wellington before he found him out, talking by the fire in his
quarter, until at last Lord Wellington, having let him go on some time,
asked him to dinner. This staggered him, and led to an explanation. The
_maire_ said, that the night before he had had Generals Clausel and
Harispe, and that they only ordered a dinner to be prepared, and did
not ask him to eat part of his own, or thank him, or take the least
notice of him. He could not, therefore, believe that Lord Wellington
was the enemy’s General, after having been so treated, as he said,
“like a dog,” by his friends.

My own patron was a half-starved apothecary without medicines or
drugs. He offered to dress a fowl for me, but was very willing instead
to sell me one for twice its value, for dinner the next day.

_23rd._—We moved again to Boulognes, about sixteen miles, rather a long
march, and in part bad road, though in general the roads all over this
part of France are very much superior to ours in England; compared with
our best roads, they are very superior to any in the distant counties,
and to many of our main and best roads, even in the neighbourhood of
London. The light, third, fourth, and sixth divisions of cavalry, and
about eight thousand Spaniards, all move with this column, and we
reach of course by mid-day, when all is in motion, with the artillery
and baggage, about ten miles. The second division and cavalry follow
the French. At St. Gaudens the 13th Dragoons came up with the French
rear cavalry, formed just outside the town, charged, broke them, drove
them pell-mell through the town on their reverse beyond it. There they
re-formed; the 13th charged again; then the French ran, with the 13th
after them, for two miles. The result is said to be a hundred and
twenty prisoners and horses, besides killed.

From Boulognes we to-day marched to this place—Isle en Dodon. The
majority of the people here seem to be friends of Bonaparte, and the
assistant _maire_ in particular, with whom I had much conversation; for
he gave Doctor Hume and me a joint billet at the empty house where he
gave out the billets, and no stable at all. As I was obliged to have
him in the room so long, I determined to work him a little for treating
us so ill.

The _maire_ of Boulognes ran away at first. At night he came back
and went to Lord Wellington, who showed him his proclamations and
regulations, &c. The _maire_ said he had taken the oath to Bonaparte,
and would not act. “Very well,” said Lord Wellington, “then the
people must choose another; but now you have taken your line, I must
take mine, and send you over the Garonne into the French lines.” He
gave orders accordingly, to Colonel S——. The _maire_ ran away, and
could not be found. Colonel S—— took up the father, to march him off
until the son appeared. This brought him out; he remonstrated with
Lord Wellington, said he was one of the first men of the country, and
should be ruined by this. Lord Wellington said, “He should have thought
of that sooner, and he must go;” and to this place he came to-day a
prisoner.

We have just received orders to march to Samatan to-morrow. All here
have a notion that Suchet’s forces join Soult near here; that is, have
done so, or are to do so; but we are a little in the dark, and the
ignorance of the French about everything is astonishing: they seem
quite stupified. But Bonaparte has many friends still, and the reports
in the French papers, though upon the whole good, are not decisive.
The armistice seems to have gone off from the arrangements about
Italy. We are living, like the rest of the armies and the French, by
requisitions; but we hitherto pay in money, which others do not. We
consume everything, however, like locusts.

Lord Wellington popped between Colonel G—— and me as we were discussing
the allied battles this morning, and suddenly took a part, to my great
astonishment, in our conversation.

On leaving Tarbes a party of civilians went round by Bagnières to see
the baths, the rooms, &c., a sort of Spa, about twelve miles round,
and where no troops had been; not an Englishman there, but they were
told they would be well received, and so they were indeed. The _maire_
addressed them; the people were in crowds, so that it required force
to enable them to pass. The National Guard turned out and presented
arms to them: it was like Lord Wellington’s entry into Zamora, they
say, such an outcry! such a display! A ball was proposed, but as there
was a French garrison about six miles off, and no allied troops near,
the party declined staying, and went off highly pleased with their
excursion. This is very odd, for on the road we go, all is stupefaction
and indifference. I should have enjoyed this, but am obliged to be very
prudent now, after my late escape. Adieu again.

The schoolmaster, or _prêtre_, at Boulognes had written a long poem
entitled “_Mon Rêve_,” a prophecy nearly of everything which has taken
place, and containing much in honour of Lord Wellington. He said he had
long had it concealed, and volunteered spouting it out to us, to his
own great satisfaction, and it really was not bad.




CHAPTER XXV.

 Difficulties of the March—Failure of the Bridge of Boats—The
 Garonne—Excesses of Murillo’s Corps—Bad News—Exchange of
 Prisoners—Arrival before Toulouse—A Prisoner of War—Anecdote of
 Wellington.


  Head-quarters, Samatan,
  March 25, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——,

At eight this morning, we left L’Isle en Dodon for this place, about
eight miles nearer to Toulouse, from which we (the head-quarters) are
now only distant about twenty-six miles. Our troops at St. Lys, and St.
Foy, and that vicinity, are within eleven miles; our right is still a
little more in the rear on the St. Gaudens’ road, near Martres, under
General Hill.

I have just met with a corn-factor who left Toulouse this morning.
He says that Marshal Soult arrived there with about eight thousand
men last night. The same number were expected to-day, and a force
of twelve thousand men from Suchet’s army was expected to join, or
rather, the twelve thousand men were to be principally a reinforcement
of conscripts, collected by the Imperial Commissioner Caffarelli. A
small bridge, called St. Antoine, near St. Martin, about a mile from
Toulouse, was destroyed on the road from Isle Jourdain to Toulouse, and
some works were being formed, and an appearance of defence was being
made near to St. Martin, at a place where three roads branch off, a
mile from Toulouse, and called La Pate d’Ore. The narrator, though no
judge, thought the works could not be completed in time, and that if we
pressed on we should pass them without much difficulty. The bridge, he
said also, was mined; it is a very noble bridge, but it was reported
that there was a ford passable so near, that it was thought the mine
would not be made use of.

The news from Paris had ceased for some days, and this gave rise to
many stories of Paris having been taken, &c. I am lodged here with some
very civil good people, and who, in my opinion, really wish us well,
and are very different from the _maire adjoint_ at the last place,
who seemed a good Bonapartist, as are many of the people at L’Isle en
Dodon. About six miles from that place, and ten from this, we passed
through a very good old-fashioned town, larger than this, called
Lombez, where the people, in spite of having had a division of troops
quartered in their houses and in the church, seemed to wish us very
well.

The country in this neighbourhood is a wide flat near the river, with a
gently rising boundary of hill and good corn land, the soil heavy, and
the roads very deep in consequence. I always expected my horses’ shoes
to be sucked off every ten minutes by the strong clay.

The _maire_ of Boulognes continues his route with us, looking very
forlorn, and with three staff corps men round him, our gens-d’armes.
He began to repent to-day, and offered to act as _maire_, but Lord
Wellington said it was too late. He then wrote to his wife, saying, “He
was a martyr to his principles,” &c., when his offer had been refused.
So much for the principles of this good friend of Napoleon! Had his
offer been accepted, he would have gone on as _maire_. His friend
Bonaparte was, however, I really and truly think, never greater than he
has been in his adversity during the last three months. The manner in
which he has fought against all his difficulties is very astonishing,
and it would not surprise me now if he succeeded in fighting himself
into a tolerable peace. His boldness in finding fault with his
generals, &c., and having them disgraced and tried at this moment, is
very striking. In short, I am almost inclined to believe that his own
spirit, the bad conduct of the Cossacks, and the wavering policy of
some of our Allies, will enable him to keep his place amongst the list
of sovereigns, though never to triumph over them all, as he intended,
and very nearly managed to do.

There are several good chateaux near here I am told: one of these is
occupied by Major M——, in our service, who was a prisoner of war, and
thought it the best way to pass his captivity in double chains, or
rather to cast off one chain by taking another, and by marrying an
heiress, enjoy himself whilst here. I understand that he has served as
_maire_ of the place; General Pakenham and Colonel Campbell know him.

The army is now almost entirely fed on the country, and the rations
paid for in bills or ready money. Our transports, such as they were,
are quite outrun by our continual marches and distance from the depôts.
We do not even resort to our grand prize-magazine at Mont de Marsan. We
are also boldly isolated in the country, with scarcely five hundred men
the whole way between this and Bayonne; and between this and Tarbes I
believe none at all. Were not the general disposition of the people so
good, at least so submissive, the stragglers and parties joining the
army would be all destroyed; as it is, we have had few accidents. An
affair is expected in a day or two near Toulouse, but this is doubtful.
In the meantime King Ferdinand must be in Spain, as he long since
passed through Toulouse on his way there.

_9 o’clock at night._—Later accounts from the front say that the French
are leaving Toulouse, but I think they will make a show of resistance
at least. Lord Wellington said at dinner to-day he feared that they
would blow up the bridge, but that he had his pontoons with him, and
by showing the enemy that he could pass either above or below the
bridge, he would try to save it. To-morrow will determine much, as
head-quarters move four leagues to St. Lys, within about three leagues
of Toulouse, and the troops are to move down into the plain in which
the town stands. This is hard work for the men and baggage-animals, as
the roads are excessively deep, and it is said will be worse to-morrow
than to-day. We pass through St. Foy. We cannot learn where Marshal
Suchet is; Lord Wellington does not know. He received despatches by a
courier from Catalonia after dinner to-day, dated the 16th of March.
It was not known there for certain that he had quitted Catalonia;
several here say positively that he is gone towards Lyons. The post
goes to-morrow early. You probably get two or three of my letters
together, for we have now no regular post-day, and I am often quartered
at a distance. I do not know when the mail leaves head-quarters, and by
wishing to send you the last news, I may miss the post altogether.

_Head-Quarters, St. Lys, March 27th, 1814._—To-day, Sunday, we make a
halt here, which most of the army is very much in need of. This is in
order to enable Lord Wellington to make arrangements and reconnoitre,
&c. Four divisions are in our front, and General Hill on our right.
Nothing has been done to-day but the driving in of some French picquets
on this side of a little stream about two leagues from hence, and
half-way to Toulouse, and we are now placed on that stream. There
seemed to be but little firing. I saw it from the top of the tower of
the church here, but it was soon over. From the same place the view
all around was very extensive and magnificent; Toulouse was plainly
visible, and much of the country beyond, together with a number of
villages, chateaux, &c., in the large plain through which the Garonne
takes its circular course from the Pyrenees. The snowy summits of the
latter closed the prospect with their heads in the clouds.

Having had some trouble to mount to this gallery round the church, by
means of the bells and their scaffolding, for there was no ladder, I
was up there for two hours with my glass, in a tolerably clear and
fine day. Of the importance of the latter you have no idea. Yesterday
was entirely rainy, and our road was, perhaps, as bad as any we have
ever passed with artillery, and that is saying much. The troops were
splashed up to their caps, and hundreds were walking barefoot in the
clay up to the calves of their legs for about five miles, whilst the
best of the road was that like to Hounslow in the worst season after
a thaw. Lord Wellington said, the French, after consultation, had
determined that this road was not passable for their artillery, but by
means of lighter carriages and better horses, five brigades of our guns
have got over this difficulty.

To give you a notion of it, I may mention that Lord Wellington’s
barouche was three hours stuck fast in it at one place; one hind wheel
up to the axle, the other in the air. No one was in it except General
Alava, who was unwell. I left them endeavouring to move it by means
of four artillery horses, in addition to his own six mules, but in
vain; six oxen in addition at last got it clear. Lord Wellington is
gone to-day round by Plaisance to the right, to General Hill on the
St. Gaudens’ road, as that division is now approaching near us. I am
always afraid of some accident in these parties in an enemy’s country,
for there is generally no escort—only a few officers and two or three
orderlies at the most.

In a Toulouse paper of the 22nd, which I saw yesterday, I was amused
with observing, among other articles—“Bordeaux, 12th March. By
accounts from this place troops without number are pouring through to
join the grand army under the Duke of Dalmatia. The disposition of the
people is excellent.” Then again, “March 15th. The prefect is taking
measures for a number of improvements in the different communes.” These
lies and frauds are curious. We also notice, that in publishing Soult’s
proclamations in the Paris papers, in which he calls Lord Wellington
the commander of brigands, the introductory part relating to the battle
of Orthes is omitted altogether. It does not appear that any battle has
taken place at all. We hope the silence as to Schwartzenburg means as
much, and that the truth will be a set-off to any check given to St.
Priest.

Bonaparte’s movements to Rheims and Chalons we cannot here comprehend.
Many of the people here talk such bad French that I am often taken for
a Frenchman, and my patron here told me that I need not be afraid to
own it, for he was a Royalist, and always had been so. His simplicity
yesterday provoked me excessively. I gave him some of my old silver
spoons to take care of. Thinking all soldiers and followers of an army
virtuous and honest, he left the spoons, with a loaf, in his kitchen,
and left his door open, to let every one in who chose. On my return,
his loaf and my spoons were gone. This vexed me excessively, but
redress was in vain.

_Seisses, 28th March._—At daybreak this morning head-quarters moved
to this place, most of us, in my opinion, fully expecting to be in
Toulouse before night. We arrived here, within a league of the Garonne,
by eight o’clock, when, to our great mortification, the part of the
second division which had left this village at ten last night was just
returning here again after daylight, owing to the bridge of boats
having been too short, and the troops therefore unable to pass the
river.

This is most vexatious, for the immediate passage of the Garonne
without a halt, and triumphant entry into Toulouse would have been an
exploit worthy of our General. With five more pontoons the whole would
have been effected, and, most probably, with little loss. In front of
Toulouse the enemy had been left quiet, and pressed but little; the
grand movement was to have been on the right to the banks of the river
near Portet. Just below where the Arrige and the Garonne unite, a
league above Toulouse, the bridge was to have been laid in the night,
and half the army over or ready to pass by daylight. The width of the
river was supposed to be about one hundred and forty yards, or four
hundred and fifty feet, the stream strong; for this we were prepared.
The boats were in the river, the cables, I believe, fixed, and every
precaution taken for secrecy, when the discovery was made that five
more pontoons would be necessary, as the river was twenty yards, or
about eighty feet wider. The boats were all withdrawn, and the troops
all in their way to head-quarters again before daylight; but it was a
_grand coup manqué_. Apparently there must have been great inadvertence
somewhere, though it may have been that no measurement was allowed, or
even close observations, for fear of exciting suspicion.

I think it will be a triumph to E——, though I am sure he will not
feel it as such. He told Lord Wellington at St. Jean de Luz that, in
consequence of some order of his, the pontoon train would be rendered
imperfect, and that if the army met with a wide river it would be
stopped. Thus it has happened, and Lord Wellington, though in general
so much a gainer by his decision and resources in getting rid of
difficulties, has for once suffered for not attending to the counsel of
his more steady and regularly-bred scientific advisers.

As the troops were not yet ordered out of the town, and were in
possession of the houses, we remained for some hours with our baggage
standing loaded, until our billets were settled. Most part of this time
I spent in surveying the immense plain covered with farms, villas,
villages, towns, and chateaux, in the neighbourhood of Toulouse, as
well as the town itself. The number of apparently splendid mansions
was considerable, some belonging to merchants of Toulouse; some to
the old nobles who had not emigrated; some to the _nouveaux riches_
of the Revolution and Bonaparte. The latter were much abused, the
_fournisseurs_ of the army, the intendents or tax-gatherers, &c. I
believe there was much fraud in the management of the collection of
contributions; and of late, particularly, much more was collected under
the pretence of the necessities of the army, and to provision Bayonne,
than ever reached its destination; and being but ill paid regularly,
the managers took the liberty of paying themselves well irregularly.

Murillo’s corps has plundered again of late, and was guilty of some
excesses last night. One man was caught in the fact, stealing wine, and
brought forward. Lord Wellington had him shot in the most impressive
manner this morning, before all the corps, after a solemn admonition,
and much parade. The man, it is said, appeared absolutely dead from
fear before a musquet was fired. He was unluckily one of the least
culpable, for he had only taken away a bottle of wine by force; but he
was caught in the fact, and suffered for the sake of example—as the
least guilty in reality often do, from the most guilty being also the
most knowing.

Lord Wellington has not yet returned; he must now exert his wits, to
cure this mishap, which will not, in my opinion, put him in the best of
humours.

The Pyrenees were to-day perfectly clear, and very striking. An immense
snowy barrier almost entirely white, with scarcely any bare rock
visible. They are not by any means so picturesque as the Alps. They
form a large mass, without much variety of form and character; and have
not that contrast of pointed, craggy, fancifully-shaped rocks, rounded
lower hills covered with verdure, and fine forest scenery, which is
seen in Switzerland.

Two of the medical officers and one of the 42nd of the sixth division,
taken at Hagenau, have escaped and come into us, but plundered of
everything. The French marched them seven or eight leagues a-day,
nearly thirty miles; and the one I spoke to had been concealed four
days after his escape with scarcely anything to eat, until he had an
opportunity of joining our corps under General Hill.

_Head-Quarters, Seisses, March 31st, 1814._—Our disappointment in
crossing the river on the 28th has kept us here ever since: and the
halt has given me employment, which has prevented my writing to you.
As soon as we become quiet, I am set to work in order to prevent all
arrears, and to let punishment follow the offence as fast as possible.

Our General has spent his mornings in riding all over the country to
reconnoitre; and he dispatches all his other multitude of business
at odd hours and times. The new plan was at last resolved upon, and
last night the execution of it commenced. The divisions on this side
Toulouse are pushed in close to the suburbs of St. Cyprien, near which
the French have been for some days most busily at work, fortifying
themselves to defend the bridge. Finding the river so wide below the
junction with the Arrige at Portet, General Hill (with great difficulty
owing to the rapidity of the Garonne, caused by the last two days’
continual rain) succeeded at last, in pursuance of his orders, in
fixing his pontoons across that river above the junction with the
Arrige; and having been nearly all night at work, began to cross about
four o’clock this morning, and has sent word that he is over. A ridge
of high land forms a sort of tongue between the two rivers. This he
is to take post upon immediately, and march off a corps as rapidly as
possible, about three leagues, to a bridge over the Arrige, which he is
to surprise and preserve if possible, and defend, thus fixing himself
securely between the two rivers, preparatory to further movements of
the rest of the army. The Spaniards under Murillo crossed with General
Hill. General Frere’s Spaniards move into the ground which General Hill
leaves.

I was upon the church-tower early this morning, and saw the Spanish
column moving all along the plain, headed by some of our heavy
dragoons; the fog on the river prevented my seeing more. On descending,
I found Lord Wellington and all his suite, just about to be off, when
the arrival of an English mail to the 16th, stopped him. By this
we have your very bad news from Holland, and many private letters
accounting for the failure. All here are open-mouthed at the reported
consequences; namely, that the reinforcements intended for Lord
Wellington are going to Holland. This is worse than the defeat. Very
little was ever expected here from that army from various causes; it
was always considered as so many men quite thrown away, as regards the
main cause. I thought them, latterly, worse than inefficient, after
they had once given the Dutch an opportunity of arming, by clearing
their country, for they have the effect of preventing exertion on the
part of the Dutch. The moment they had cleared Holland they should,
in my opinion, have been sent to us, and thus by a sense of pressing
danger, ought to have roused the sleepy heavy Dutchmen to do something
for themselves when once well in the scrape, getting only arms and
artillery and stores from England.

By the exchange of prisoners, the officers so much wanted by the
French, whom Lord Wellington has taken here, will get back again by
these losses in Holland, another way in which that army has done more
harm than good. It would have been better to leave our people prisoners
than to release French regular officers at this moment, for their value
in the newly-raised corps is immense, and considerably beyond that of
ours to England. Besides the numbers in the town would have hastened
its surrender, or compelled the governor to send them out without
exchange.

This is, however, reasoning upon general principles, and not upon
personal feelings as to the officers taken: I do think, however, that
this exchange was permitting humanity to have more weight than policy.
There seem to have been much blundering and confusion in the execution
of our attack, and from what I can hear the plan was allowed to fail
just when the difficulties were nearly all over. It is always to be
regretted when our people are ordered to run their heads against stone
walls and heavy guns, and that even here, for I think the French seem
to understand that work best, and we lose more in one of these affairs
than we do in gaining a great battle in the fair field, where the
French cannot be brought now to stand against us. On this ground, I
feel a little anxious, even as to Toulouse, supposing the French to
remain firm, which is doubtful, and still more as to Bayonne.

Mr. C—— and a commissariat officer arrived here yesterday from
Bordeaux: the accounts they bring are bad enough. The National Guard
are disarmed; no arming of any consequence going on; no efficient
English naval force has arrived; and the people, though they shout
for the King at the opera, &c., are all in a terrible fright lest
the French should return, since we have so small a force there; and,
according to report, many repent of what they have done.

The Duke d’Angoulême does not appear to me to be made of stuff to gain
a kingdom, though he would have kept one and been popular, from his
amiable qualities. He has committed many blunders, I am told, and the
white cockade gentry, like the _emigrés_ of old, amuse themselves with
inventing lies concerning Bonaparte and his armies, which the _maire_
of Bordeaux publishes in a bulletin, which Bonaparte’s bulletins, lying
as they are, effectually and satisfactorily contradict the next day.

The _maire_ is becoming daily more unpopular. We have an account
of Augereau having been defeated—which I hope rests upon better
foundations; as well as private accounts from Paris of the great
reduction of Bonaparte’s forces by his various rapid marches, continual
fighting, and desertion. Almost the only town in this country,
excepting Bordeaux, which has been active in the Royal cause is
Bagnières, which has proclaimed the king; no troops of either army have
passed that way.

The rest of the population in our rear are in general quietly waiting
the event, and are now with a very few exceptions only on our side,
because they think they see an end to the war quicker that way. But I
am sure, from personal observation, that let Bonaparte be successful a
little, and Lord Wellington be compelled to retreat, and let them only
see the same prospect of peace by Bonaparte’s means, and three-fourths
of the population would all be against us again.

The sulky _maires_, and other public functionaries, now all submission,
would then become active enemies, and all the _pensionnaires_ and
_douaniers_ and national landholders who are now really frightened to
death, would be roused into activity. This is a picture, however, which
I hope never to see realized; and if Toulouse and Lyons can be induced
to enter into a common cause with Bordeaux, the events will, it is to
be hoped, be far different. Had I the Duke d’Angoulême’s stake to play
for, I should somehow have raised a force before this at Bordeaux, and
should certainly have been over here post to enter Toulouse, and have
paraded through Pau, Tarbes, &c., in the way, and tried to do something.

The only great hit he has hitherto made is to get the new prefect of
the department des Landes to publish and circulate his proclamations,
and sign them: this certainly is a beginning, and it is said that
some have found their way into Toulouse. The _maire_ of Galan, who
was really in my opinion a Royalist, pointing to his head, asked
me, speaking of the Duke d’Angoulême, whether “_il y voit quelque
chose là?_” of which he seemed to have doubts. The lower, and older
population in the villages certainly, though knowing nothing of the
Bourbons, have a sort of vague wish for old times again, and therefore
were friendly. The middling classes are not by any means so favourably
disposed.

You have no conception of my obligation to you for sending the
newspapers so regularly, and getting them forwarded in Lord
Wellington’s bag. On the march in our present state, by this means
I have my letters and papers sometimes almost a week before any one
else; for the public bag has been lately obliged to come up, for want
of transport, in a bullock-car, with one weak soldier of the guides as
a guard. When we are stationary I sometimes suffer by this plan, for
single papers are got a-day or two later than my letter, but now I am a
great gainer, and my newspapers are in the greatest request.

_Head-Quarters, Seisses, April 1st, 1814._—Here we are still in front
of “the great big town where the French are,” as the Irishmen call
Toulouse. The French yesterday moved about four divisions out of
Toulouse after General Hill’s movement, and in the evening went back
again into the town. This I believe made Lord Wellington suspect that
Soult intended to try an attack upon the columns of the British who
remained in front of the town on this side, and he would have wished,
in my opinion, for nothing better, as we had a rising ground commanding
the roads where they must make their debouches, and cannon ready
placed to give them a warm reception instantly. In consequence of this
expectation, Lord Wellington and his staff were off early to the front;
about eleven o’clock, finding all quiet, they returned, and we remained
_in statu quo_ for the day.

I never expected that anything would be done if it depended on the
French, for their game seems to be merely to endeavour to keep us on
this side of the river, and to leave us to get over the difficulties
as we can, and not to run any hazards by molesting us, or giving us
even a fair chance by an attack on their posts. It is said that after
all it is found that General Hill’s road would lead us so much round,
and that the roads round that way to Toulouse would be so bad, that
the plan mentioned in my letter under date of the 31st is abandoned;
that in consequence General Hill will be ordered to return across the
river to-night, and that the pontoons will be taken up afterwards, and
an attempt made to place them lower down the river at last, and below
Toulouse, which, if it succeeds, will place us at once upon the main
good road to Bordeaux. Time will show whether this information of mine
is correct. If this plan be practicable, it will be far better than
the other. In truth the Garonne is a formidable barrier just now, when
there are no fords.

The disappointment of not having Graham’s army here is very great, much
worse so if the reinforcements intended for us should go that way. So
much did Lord Dalhousie with his weak divisions at Bordeaux expect
General Graham’s army, that I am told he has twice sent to the coast
in expectation of their arrival, together with a naval expedition, on
a report of some distant sails being seen. This last _Gazette_ is a
woeful contrast! The importance of that ten thousand men at Bordeaux
is immense, and all agree that the country northwards would be ready
to come forward and join us if we were stronger and dared advance.
The weak state of our force at Bordeaux alarms them all, and keeps
everything back; a naval force to co-operate and to assist against the
castle of Blaye, was also expected to be ready the moment the news
of our arrival at Bordeaux was received, as it must have been such a
probable event. As it is Lord Dalhousie was about to make some attempt,
I understand, to take a position across the Garonne, between the
Dordogne and the Garonne.

I have just been told another piece of news—unpleasant if it be true.
It is said that the Duke d’Angoulême’s new _Préfet des Landes_ ordered
the _maire_ of St. Sever to proclaim Louis XVIII., and that the old
maire, a prudent sly fellow, who has made much money in the Revolution,
declined to do so unless by Lord Wellington’s orders, and wrote to
Lord Wellington to know if he was obliged to do what he was desired.
It is said that Lord Wellington replied “No,” and suspended the new
préfet for giving the order. This is a most awkward state of things;
each town, each _maire_, is allowed thus to take this strong step if
they please, but there is to be no influence used, so that all prudent
people naturally enough will remain quiet and do nothing, and the
desperately zealous alone will act; yet so long as the conferences
remain in existence, this cannot be otherwise.

Some more Spaniards are ordered up whom we are to feed also; how far
they will come I know not. The siege of Bayonne is, it is understood,
at last determined upon in earnest; as yet only preparation of
fascines, &c., have been made. I am told now, that the horses of the
brigades of artillery of General Hope’s column, are sent down to
Renteria to bring up the heavy battery train and siege stores. The
Guards begin to talk of more “bloody work,” but I sincerely hope not
another Bergen-op-Zoom! That left column once released, would set us
quite at ease here. Just now, our necessarily-divided army cannot be
so efficient as from its numbers compared with the French it might be
presumed to be.

For fear of being too late for the post, I shall now seal up my three
letters in one packet and send it off.

In appearance, the size of Toulouse is very considerable, particularly
its length. It seems much larger than Bristol; whether really so or not
we have not just now conveniently the means of ascertaining.

All who come from Bordeaux are in ecstasies with the place and the life
there. It seems everything a bachelor officer with a little money could
wish for—everything to be had, and everything (except maps now) very
cheap.

_Head-Quarters, Grenade, April 5th, 1814._—In pursuance of the change
of plans as to the passage of this formidable river, the Garonne, in
the face of thirty thousand men, under the command of Marshal Soult, we
very suddenly moved on Sunday morning, the 3rd, to Colomiers, a poor
dirty village on the high road from Auch to Toulouse. The pontoons had
been previously moved in the night from the neighbourhood of Carbonne,
where they had been previously fixed, and where General Hill had passed
over to the vicinity of Grenade. On the night of the 4th, about eight
or nine o’clock, the whole army, excepting General Hill’s columns, were
put in motion towards Grenade, the pontoons were launched in the river,
the bridge successfully formed during the night, and about ten thousand
men passed over without resistance by daybreak. It rained furiously
almost all the night, and a failure was in consequence much apprehended
by many, from the increased rapidity and breadth of the current of the
river. Hitherto all has gone on well. General Hill’s corps remained in
front of the suburbs and bridge of St. Cyprien near Toulouse.

Lord Wellington and his staff were all off about two or three o’clock
in the morning, or rather night, for the river side near the bridge,
and passed over early in the morning. Lord Wellington reconnoitred
yesterday on the right bank to within about five or six miles of
Toulouse, and did not return here until after dark. Civil departments
and baggage were ordered to move across the country to Corn Barieu, a
poor dirty place on the cross-road to Grenade, at daylight, and there
to remain loaded till further orders. It was only four miles of bad
road, and we were there about half-past six. I conclude we were kept
at that point so that we might be secure, and away from the high road
out of Toulouse, in case of accidents, and at the same time ready to go
into Toulouse, in case the French should abandon the town and bridge on
hearing of our passage of the river; whilst, on the other hand, if they
remained fast, we were ready to come on here.

The poor mules remained loaded until near two o’clock before they
were ordered on, and afterwards fell in with such columns of baggage,
cavalry, and troops, particularly Spaniards, all converging to the
bridge, that they did not arrive here until about seven or eight
o’clock at night, having had to pass a deep cross country, by a clayey
unformed road, in places sinking up to the middle, for the night’s
rain and quantity of animals passing had quite cut it up. I left the
printing-press and Mr. S——’s carriage fast in the mud, and many a load
upset; at last I believe all arrived safe.

Whilst we were waiting in suspense, as I dare not again go much to the
front, Dr. M’Gregor and several other civilians and I passed our time
pleasantly enough. There was a chateau on a hill close to us, which
commanded all the country, and particularly Toulouse. To that we bent
our steps, and finding a young lad, son of the owner, in the house,
we got our horses into the stable, bought corn for them, and from
the Doctor’s canteen made a good breakfast, and then posted ourselves
with our glasses to see what was going on. Had there been any fight
we should have commanded the whole scene beautifully. As it was, we
only traced our columns of baggage, Spaniards, and cavalry across the
country, in two lines of about six or seven miles’ length, all moving
gradually to the bridge. We also saw some large fires in Toulouse, but
have not yet learnt whether they were anything in particular. About
half-past one we set out again, and fought our way through mud and clay
and baggage and Spaniards for about ten miles; and I am now again in
a civilized home, but with rather a forward tradesman, who gave me a
roast fowl for supper, but took his place and had his full share with
me. It is odd enough that a man of his description, in a large good
house, stables, and three or four horses, should boast, as he does,
that he can talk French, and that his daughter of eight years old has
learnt to talk French, and can speak and understand it a little when
she chooses. Their patois I can scarcely make out, certainly, not so
well as Spanish or Portuguese.

The country is all very rich and populous, and covered with villages
and chateaux. The former are generally in evident decay; the latter are
large and showy on the outside, but for the most part old, dirty, out
of repair, and nearly unfurnished inside, with none of the comforts
even of a cit’s villa, and still less of a great man’s house in
England. At the same time one cannot but feel how much of what we in
England think necessaries are mere superfluity. One cause of their
present appearance in part may be, that the owners generally live
from seven to ten months in the year in the great towns, Toulouse in
particular, and only spend September and October in their chateaux to
see to the harvests, so that they, somewhat like the Portuguese lords,
when they do come, bring nearly all their furniture and comforts with
them. By this means, luckily, we have not done these chateaux much
damage. The young man whom we found in the chateau near Corn Barieu,
had been sent out just before we arrived, to see what was going on, and
to protect the place. He had not been able to hold any communication
with his friends in Toulouse since, and I dare say, as I told him, they
were in a terrible fright, and thought the Spaniards had roasted and
eaten him up.

It unfortunately rained again all last night. This has swelled the
river, and alarmed us a little, for there are at times such floods
here that our bridge would not stand them, and we are now half on each
side. This was also very unlucky for the troops, many of whom must have
bivouacked without their tents and baggage. I have hitherto heard of no
ill consequences, and it is thought that the French must either come
out and fight us immediately, or be off and leave us at our ease for
a short time to try and refit and get shoes for our poor barefooted
soldiers. In the meantime we are here with no other orders than to
be ready packed to march at ten o’clock, but not loaded. It is now
half-past ten, and I have been quietly writing this, and four letters
on business, since breakfast.

When last at Seisses I met at Lord Wellington’s Major M——, of the 53rd,
the _ci-devant_ prisoner and French squire, whom I mentioned before in
my letters. He was at Toulouse when we came by his former house, and he
took the opportunity of our pontoon bridge at Carbonne to come over to
us, for to go out he was compelled.

I do not quite understand his own story, so as to make his conduct
correct. He was always on a sort of parole in Languedoc and Gascony.
On our coming near Toulouse he was told that he must retire towards
Montpelier. He asked delay on the plea of health, got a day, and
was then ordered to move post by Carcassonne. He went two stages,
then turned to the right, came over to us, and now rides about, a
strange figure, in a new handsome 53rd uniform, and a great French
cocked hat, with his English loop and button. He is, moreover, a round
broken-backed country-squire volunteer sort of gentleman, on a high
white tumble-down French nag. He was of course full of information and
conversation, but I rather doubted the accuracy of the former.

He told us that Bonaparte was making for Metz, giving up Paris; and
that he intended to relieve his garrisons in that direction even
as far as Wesel, and then to try and bring the war to the frontier
again. This would be giving up nearly all France, and putting himself
between the Crown Prince at Liege and the Allies near Paris; whereas,
if compelled to leave Paris, his line, in my opinion, must be to fall
back towards Lyons, and to endeavour to unite in that direction with
Augereau, and even with Soult, who will very likely fall back that way
also. If Bonaparte were to go to Metz, Lord Wellington said he thought
then the Allies, on entering Paris, would probably let the King be
proclaimed, and that he should not then despair of seeing Bonaparte
a grand Guerilla chief on a large scale, fighting about for his
existence, which he had never expected to happen in his lifetime. Major
M—— also said that Soult’s plan was, if obliged to give up Toulouse,
to go towards the Black Mountains, and retreat by way of Carcassonne,
making his stand there in a country where our superior cavalry could
not act. If he does this, I think half his men will desert, and the
remainder be in jeopardy, unless Suchet brings him more assistance than
is thought possible. Suchet is said to be withdrawing everything, and
to be mustering all he can. Oh that we had your English reinforcements,
and General Graham’s army! for our own real English army dwindles
away very fast in this active service, and ten thousand men may make
all the difference in regard to the event. The 53rd regiment and the
eighteen-pounders are, I hear, hutted at Tarbes, to try to reduce
a small garrison at Lourdes. The Householders are also arrived, I
believe, as far as Tarbes.

On the 23rd of March, Caffarelli sent his orders to all the communes
round Toulouse, for a considerable distance (about fifty communes),
to send men to work at the fortifications in front of Toulouse. The
numbers to be sent by requisition were very considerable; but we have
rather disturbed the march of the larger half. He also called upon all
the inhabitants to arm, and to make the town a second Saragoza.

Major M—— says he was told that there was not the same motive. I
understand they have been obliged to arm by compulsion, but it is
supposed will do nothing. Some old French officers also came to Soult
to offer to raise Guerillas corps in our rear. Major M—— said that
their offers were to be accepted; but, except a few for plunder, I
do not think, as yet, they will find many followers. Lord Wellington
makes the _maires_ responsible for any disturbances in the rear, and
threatens garrisons, as on the French plan, _garnissaires_, in case of
a breach of order. To execute this duty the _maires_ are allowed to arm
guards in their communes. All the communes around here were to have
_garnissaires_, in case the workmen did not arrive—that is, soldiers to
keep in their houses gratis.

_One o’clock, same day._—Here we are still; and I hope shall not move
to-day, unless to go into Toulouse, for there is a report that the
French are moving off now, and that we have taken two cars of money.
This I will not vouch for. What is more certain is, that our pontoon
bridge is on its legs again by land, and moving towards Toulouse, to be
laid down nearer the town, to make our communications shorter between
the two parts of our army, on the right and left bank. This, it is
to be feared, may draw head-quarters into some little dirty village
near the bridge; and I should like to enjoy the tolerable clean brick
room which I have to myself, and a little stable with some hay for my
horses, for one day, if it suits our plans.

At first I was surprised at Major M——’s boldness, and, as it appeared
to me, folly, in going about in his uniform, in a way to do no good
to anybody, and possible harm to himself. I have now heard that he
has been divorced from his lady, and of course by the French law from
his _château_ and _terre_ also, and that now he has nothing whatever
to lose. He may as well make a merit of his love of England and the
Bourbons. His daughter, about sixteen, is married, and the property
goes with her. A party of five dragoons took yesterday a messenger from
Montauban to Soult. It was known by eleven o’clock at Montauban that we
had cut off the communications on the main road. The messenger was sent
round a bye-road but was caught. His despatches were, it is reported,
principally complaints that the people would not arm for the fight,
and were not very material. I pitied the man. He was a respectable man
of business in Montauban; but being told that unless he became a civic
soldier he must be a regular, he put on his sword “by compulsion,” was
sent to carry these letters, and thus fell into our hands. He says
that it will be his ruin to send him to England as a prisoner; and I
hope, though he is threatened with this, that Lord Wellington will
soon release him. This is to be hoped, for I believe his story to be
true, for the Préfet of Montauban is reported to be a most furious
Bonapartist, and that he compels the people to take up arms in the
cause, and even threatens their lives if they do not. All here profess
great friendship for us, and I believe, at present, are sincere.

_Six o’clock._—About two o’clock I saw Lord Wellington come in, and the
real news was, that all was quiet on both sides the river, but that
the floods had carried away or sunk one pontoon, and that the bridge
was impassable. It was just on the point of being moved higher when
this happened. Just now, it is not safe to place it anywhere. We have
only three divisions and three brigades of artillery across, and two
or three, it is believed, of cavalry. The Spaniards are not over, as
I supposed, but were to have gone over this morning. Unless Soult is
an arrant coward, he must now attack these men, and it is to be feared
that we shall have sharp work. A position, however, may be taken near
the river, so as to enable our artillery on this side to assist. The
river has fallen above a foot since morning, as it has hitherto been
fine to-day, but I am sorry to say it has now begun to rain again, and
it looks very much like another bad night. Rain upon the present river
would be tremendous. A quarter of an hour after Lord Wellington came
home from Toulouse, I met him going off again to cross the river; it is
to be concluded, therefore, that something important had happened.

_6th of April, 9 o’clock at night. Head-Quarters at Grenade._—My
principal occupation to-day, when not engaged by business, has been to
watch the river. It continued to fall many hours after the last rain
had ceased, and began to rise at ten to-day, about fifteen hours after
the last rain commenced, and five after it ceased; at this rate it will
continue to rise until six or eight to-night, and then fall again; and
if the weather relent a little, to-morrow, probably, our bridge will be
restored.

Marshal Soult has left our three divisions quite quiet on the other
side. If he knows their numbers this is playing the game of a coward.
At present he seems to think of nothing but fortifying Toulouse with
ditches and works, and his men are hard at work. This makes the delay
very unfortunate for us. It has, indeed, been so on every account, for
we have to-day received accounts which appear to be believed, that
twelve hundred French cavalry, cuirassiers, from Suchet’s army, joined
yesterday; and that he is endeavouring to gain time; and the elements
seem to favour his obtaining it.

The only two events here to-day have been, first, the arrival of the
pontoon which was lost and floated away. Lieutenant Reid, of the
Engineers, galloped to Verdun, two leagues down the river, offered a
reward of _cent francs_, or five pounds, to any inhabitants who would
get boats and stop the pontoon and bring it ashore: the deserter
was thus secured, and to-day brought back in triumph by a party of
soldiers. The other arrival astonished us all. A troop of the Royal
Horse Guards Blue arrived with drawn swords and a Captain’s guard
escorting a carriage. Some said that it was the Duke d’Angoulême, some
one great person, some another. One officer asked the Captain if it
was King Ferdinand? This was a hoax. At last it was discovered to be a
_maire_ of a small commune near Tarbes, and his wife. The _maire_ is
supposed to have been endeavouring to favour a guerilla system, and
exciting the people to arm. He was in consequence ordered to be sent to
head-quarters. The Blues were in high condition; and Lord Wellington,
when he was told of the French cuirassiers, said, “Well, then, we must
have the Householders for these gentlemen, and see what they can make
of them.”

I must tell you two little anecdotes about the pontoon bridge. The
French were very jealous of any attempt of the kind, and had cavalry
videttes, &c., all along their banks of the river. The engineer wished
to measure the breadth of the river at the spot intended; and for this
purpose got into conversation with the French vidette a long time, but
had no opportunity. At last he pretended that the calls of nature
were imperative. The Frenchman, out of decency, withdrew. The engineer
popped out his sextant, took the angle, &c., and was off.

Lord Wellington himself, with two other officers went to the spot also
to reconnoitre with his own eyes. Concealing his General’s hat with an
oil-skin, he got into conversation with the French vidette, dismounted,
got down to the water-side, looked all about him, saw all he wished,
and came away. This was, in my opinion, risking too much; but no French
soldier would have any idea of the commander of the Allied Forces going
about thus with two attendants. Lord Wellington was yesterday over
alone on foot, and went on upon a horse of General Cole’s, as horses
could not pass. Even General P—— was a little uneasy, and sent about
eight o’clock to know if he had come back safe. He returned about seven
o’clock, when it was dusk. To-day he has a great dinner in honour of
Badajoz.

_7th April, Grenade._—We have at last a fine clear day, and warm. The
river is falling rapidly. By this evening probably our bridge may be
re-established, and to-morrow I conclude that we shall pass more troops
and advance against Toulouse and the French marshal, who is digging and
working away as usual. The French made several attempts to destroy our
bridge before the floods did the business for them. They sent us down
all their dead horses, several trees, &c., and a large old boat, which
struck a pontoon, and went down itself instead of the pontoon. They
sent down also a sort of armed log stuck round with swords, and rolling
round and round in the stream as it went along, like a great fish, in
hopes that the swords would strike and cut the cable which holds the
boats.

Major M—— has just told me that he has had news from the interior of
another defeat of Bonaparte at Arcis-sur-Aube, and of his having lost
one hundred guns, &c., and being then manœuvring in the rear of the
Allies. This seems probable. He has also an account of the departments
in the west of France having all sent in to the Duke d’Angoulême at
Bordeaux for orders; this is also probable, and that the Royalists gain
ground fast. His accounts add in the postscript,—“The Allies entered
Paris April 1st.” This ought to be, I think, from former accounts,
and I hope it is so. The last _Moniteur_ we have of the 30th talks
of Bonaparte’s return to Paris to cover the city. How he could then
get there seems the difficulty. Lord Wellington also had yesterday a
private letter from the interior, in which it is said, “_un événement
bien imprévu est arrivé à Paris_,” and no comment. He guesses it to be
the flight of the Empress. You see what confused accounts we get of all
late events!

_7th (6 o’clock.)_—In addition to the above we have now news that the
Bourbons have been proclaimed at Paris, and that in the name of the
Emperor of Austria the house of Napoleon has been declared to cease
to reign. I must now seal up, for Lord Wellington has written his
English letters to-day, Thursday, although Saturday is the usual day.
In addition to this, I think, from many symptoms, that we shall move
to-morrow.

P.S.—The _maire_ brought in with such a magnificent escort, is now
quietly walking about here with his wife and no guard. The bridge is to
be fixed nearly in the same place again to-night.




CHAPTER XXVI.

 Uncertain Intelligence—Capture of Toulouse—Wellington at the
 Theatre—The “Liberator”—Ball at the Prefecture—The Feelings of the
 French—Soult and Suchet—Ball at the Capitole.


  Head-quarters, Grenade,
  April 10, 1814, 1 o’clock.

  MY DEAR M——,

Here we are still, away from all that is going on, but expecting every
moment an order to enter Toulouse. The day before yesterday the bridge
was re-established (the 8th), and by one o’clock the Spaniards had all
passed over. The order then came for a brigade of Portuguese artillery
to do the same. They were passing when I went there, soon after one
o’clock; and just as a gun was quitting the last boat to ascend the
bank, down went the boat; the gun, however, run off safe, but two of
the Portuguese pontoon-train sailors got a ducking, which was all the
mischief except a delay of about two hours to fish up the pontoon, drag
it on shore, turn it upside down, to clear out the water, and then
launch it again, and refit the board.

By four o’clock I left the remainder of the guns going over. The
head-quarters of Lord Wellington remained at St. Jouy that night, and
last night Lord Wellington has only pushed the troops on a little,
to reconnoitre, and in the evening the 18th Hussars, under Colonel
Vivian, had a brilliant affair. They charged the French cavalry on
the high-road, broke them, sabred several, and took about seventy
prisoners, with the loss of a few officers wounded, and, it is
believed, only about six or eight men. Unluckily, Colonel Vivian
received a ball in the arm, which, it is feared, will render amputation
necessary. Yesterday (the 9th), the bridge was taken up very early,
and ordered to be immediately fixed about four miles nearer the town
of Toulouse, at a little place called Assaic. The light divisions
were close to that point, on this side of the river, as a security in
case of any attack on the second division, near St. Cyprien and the
bridge of Toulouse. They were ordered to cross the river as soon as our
pontoons were ready, and a movement was intended, and ordered yesterday.

From some difficulties, or bad management, the bridge of boats was not
ready until nearly three o’clock, when it was thought too late. Lord
Wellington was more vexed, and in a greater state of anger, than he
usually is when things go wrong, even without any good cause. He said
that his whole plans for the day were frustrated and nothing could be
done; and the light divisions were counter-ordered to remain where they
were on this side the river, and head-quarters remained at St. Jouy.

The French, it appeared, while still keeping a force to defend the
bridge of Toulouse, had before this taken a strong position on the
hills beyond the town, and had made there some strong works, upon
which they were constantly busy. The last two days and nights their
main body rested on the hills, bivouacking in this position, and in an
uncomfortable state, hourly expecting an attack. This morning about
seven it commenced: the firing was heavy for about two hours, until
nine, and has continued partially since. As I dare not cross the river
and go to the front, I went with my glass to the highest look-out here,
and saw the French redoubt very plainly, firing away briskly: since
that all has been silent here, and free from smoke. The stories of the
people here are that, with the loss of six thousand men, we have taken
the redoubt and thirty-six pieces of ordnance.

The former, from the direction of the fire, it is certain, is a
lie, and perhaps the latter. As, however, we have now some sort of
official news that the Allies are in Paris, and the Imperial Court at
Orleans, and as there is no account of Bonaparte, the French here will
probably not fight much; and if beaten, it is certain that many, nay
thousands, will run home, and the army be much diminished. I suspect
that Bonaparte will try to unite his corps and all the remains of corps
near Paris, and Augereau’s from Lyons, and Marshal Soult’s and Suchet’s
from Provence, towards Montpelier; but it is to be hoped that even
regiments, and perhaps Marshals, will begin to desert, when it is found
that Paris is taken, and the royal party proclaimed and gaining ground.

We certainly are in a very odd state just now in France. Our military
chest, Paymaster, Doctors, Commissaries, &c., and nearly all our
money, are in this place, which is altogether without troops; only
about a dozen staff corps men, and about ten of the paymaster’s
ordinary marching guard. The whole army is nearly four leagues in
front, and our only protection is the good-will of the people, and
the river. Yet we are told that there are French troops at Montauban,
about four leagues off, and nothing between us except the river. All
feel, notwithstanding, quite secure, and have no anxiety but to enter
Toulouse.

In the mean time Lord Dalhousie with a part of the seventh division
has crossed, not only the Gironde, but the Dordogne, and we are told,
is to take Fort Blaze by storm: I suppose his whole force is not above
three thousand five hundred men. Bayonne has not yet been seriously
attacked, nor do we hear of any very great distress in the town, which
is surprising, considering the length of the blockade.

In the attack to-day, it is said that the third and sixth divisions
were to form the right of the attack on the river, the fourth the
centre, and the light and large body of Spaniards to make the flank
movement on the left, to get on the hills and turn the French position,
whilst the cavalry advance also in that direction, to be ready to take
advantage of the enemy’s retreat.

_Five o’clock, same day._—No one returned, and no news: and yet no
firing heard, and no orders. I fear that the resistance has been
greater than was expected, and begin to be fidgety and uneasy. The
reports are now, that eight thousand English wounded, and fighting
in the streets now going on. If such complete ignorance of the truth
exists within ten miles of what is passing, you may judge how false
reports circulate: we receive contradictory rumours every hour. All
we know for certain is, that two hours ago Lord Wellington’s baggage
remained at St. Jouy without orders; I despair, therefore, of seeing
Toulouse to-day.

_Grenade, April 11th, 8 o’clock, morning._—The firing continued all day
yesterday, and until past eight at night, and began again at four this
morning, and has continued to this time, but has now lessened. Several
of our civilians returned home here last night. I understand our loss
is very considerable. We drove the enemy from all the heights, but
with difficulty. The Spaniards failed in the attack of a redoubt, were
put to the rout completely, and, it is reported, would have lost their
guns, which the French were within two or three hundred yards of, had
not the Portuguese stepped in to their support, and enabled them to
rally again.

This is really too bad—my friend says the ground was covered with dead
Spaniards, and that he saw but few French; this is generally the result
of alarm and flight. The redoubt was taken, but not by the Spaniards,
it is said; the fire close to Lord Wellington was most severe. Near
the town the French fought very hard in the houses, particularly at
some houses near the lock of the canal close to the river. We each
occupied some of the houses, and fired continually; the French houses
were loop-holed, and they had the best. We were obliged to bring guns,
&c.; and, unfortunately, the most successful shell fell into one
of our own houses, and burnt out our own people. Among the killed,
&c., I hear, is Colonel Coghlan of the 61st, an excellent officer,
Lieutenant-colonel Forbes, Captain Gordon, 10th Hussars. Colonel
Fitzclarence is wounded in the thigh: he charged with his troops two
French squadrons, he says, up a hill, beat them, but on the top was
received by infantry: the first shot carried away part of his sword,
the second hit him on the thigh, and they fell back. We were close to
the town and to the bridge last night on all sides, and had moved our
bridge up within two miles of the town. The French have barricaded the
houses and streets, fixed swivels on the tops, lined the roofs with
men, &c., and seem determined to defend the town with desperation. An
officer deserted yesterday, and says he will serve no longer under a
man who acts like a madman, as Soult now does, in defending a town like
Toulouse in such a manner.—It is madness.

Four Spanish officers came in here yesterday, who had escaped from
Italy through Switzerland, and had walked here. They seemed in great
distress. We had no Commissary here: I therefore gave them eight
pounds of bread and a dozen eggs, got them a quarter for the night,
and advised them to stay here until this morning, and then proceed to
head-quarters. One had served in Colonel Roche’s corps in Catalonia,
and spoke English tolerably. Our delay here, and in taking the town,
has alarmed the people very much. All who have relations and friends in
Toulouse are terribly frightened. The officer who deserted says that
many will do the same as soon as the business is over, and occasions
arise. Captain O. K——, the French-English officer from Toulouse, who
came over to the Duke d’Angoulême at St. Jean de Luz, arrived here
yesterday from Bordeaux. He says, that things are going on well,
especially since the news from Paris; that the Duke has now eighteen
hundred men formed; and that French officers come in every day with
fleur-de-lys embroidered on their Napoleon uniforms, and thus tender
their services. O. K—— was here on his road to Aurillac, to Auvergne,
&c., where, he says, a party is formed and ready to rise. He must take
care of his head, for he goes about talking very imprudently.

_Head-Quarters, Toulouse, April 13th, 1814, Section 3, No. 676._—To
give you any notion of what we have all felt from the changes which
the last thirty-six hours have produced, you must go back to my first
sheet, and you will feel more as I did, by reading in succession what
has occurred than by anything I can now write. I was about to destroy
the first sheet, as much of it is now not worth the trouble of reading;
but thought it would give you a better idea of the feelings, from day
to day, of the army.

An order came for civil departments to march, to cross the pontoons,
and to proceed on the high road to Toulouse to a church only three
miles from the town, and there halt and wait for orders. We were off in
ecstasies, expecting all to dine in Toulouse, and that the French were
off, and our men after them. Judge of our vexation, when, on arriving
at the church, we were all turned back off the road, to a miserable
village of about ten houses, called St. Albains; and were there to
find quarters for the night, in places just quitted by the plundering
Spaniards, and left nearly in the state in which the French left the
houses in Spain as they passed.

When we arrived, we found many of the Spaniards still in possession,
and four of us disarmed and seized three of them in the act of
plundering. The people were screaming in every direction, the houses
abandoned, and the inhabitants just beginning to return to witness the
mischief done. Everything had been ransacked—all the closets, &c.,
broken open; the rags and remnants on the floor, mixed with hundreds of
egg-shells, and the feathers of the plundered fowls, &c. Much linen was
carried off, the sheets and heavy articles in the yard; the tables were
covered with broken dishes, bottles, bones, and twine; and the cellars
with the wine-casks running. In about two hours we got possession of
the quarters, and got the inhabitants in to clean them, and by five
o’clock had divided the places among us. My whole baggage lost its
road, and did not arrive at all—five mules and a horse loaded.

You may conceive the disappointment and the vexation we experienced.
Dr. M’Gregor said that our loss was terrible! He was just returned
from collecting all the wounded in villages, and, by Lord Wellington’s
desire, was hurrying every one possible instantly to the rear. They
were passing all night in cars. The Spaniards were moaning and crying
most desperately, and were to reach Fenoullet that night, Sole
Jourdain the next, and then to be sent on further if necessary. The
accommodations were very bad. The accounts from the town were that
the French were continuing to barricade every house and loophole, and
arming to defend themselves to the last.

The army was said to be now much weakened; the Spaniards could not
be depended upon; the reinforcements were not come up from England,
and a story was going about and believed by many who ought to have
known better, that we were out of ammunition, and could not use our
artillery. You may conceive that I went (without my baggage and
comforts), with this news, sorrowfully to bed, ordering my servant to
be off at five in the morning in search of my stragglers.

On the 12th, at 6 o’clock, I was up and wandering about alone,
listening to an occasional heavy gun, seeing wounded men pass, and
waiting for the return of my man. About eight I saw Henry returning
alone, and was expecting more bad news, when he told me that the French
were off, that we were to march for Toulouse directly, and that my
baggage was all safe at a house a league off on the road; and that,
therefore, he had ordered them to pack and be off with the rest.
Think of our sensations on hearing of this welcome change! The last
twenty-four hours had been among the most critical of the war, and
now all was safe and right again. I found out the clergyman, Mr. B——,
got a razor and a cup of tea, whilst my horse was getting ready, and
was then off, to go round by head-quarters and to enter Toulouse with
Lord Wellington. About eleven I arrived at the fortified entrance, and
found, instead of the enemy behind the new works, the _maire_ of the
town, almost all the officers of the _garde urbaine_, a considerable
number of national guard officers, deserters, &c., and about two
hundred smart but awkward men of the city guard, and a band of music,
all with the white cockade, and a great crowd of citizens besides, all
waiting with anxiety to receive Lord Wellington, and carry him in form
to the mayoralty. Unluckily, from some mismanagement and mistake, he
went in at another entrance, and passed on, almost unknown. Hearing
this, I went to the mayoralty with General Packington’s aide-de-camp,
and found it was so; and, therefore, we went back to inform the mayor
officially, and to beg he would return to the _maison commune_. He
did so, though an immense crowd entered the mayoralty in form, and an
introduction then took place, and Lord Wellington showed himself at
the window, amidst the shouts and waving handkerchiefs and hats of
every one.

The procession then went with Lord Wellington to his quarters, the
Prefêt’s palace, amidst the applause of the inhabitants all the way.
Nothing could be more gratifying than his reception, and that, indeed,
of all the English; the most respectable inhabitants, many of them, not
only anxiously showing us the way to our billets, but offering their
homes without any billets, or receiving us with a sincere welcome as
soon as the paper was delivered. Lord Wellington announced a ball in
the evening at the Prefecture, and left Marshal Beresford with three
divisions and cavalry to follow Marshal Soult for the day.

We thought nothing could make us happier, when at five o’clock in
came Colonel Ponsonby from Bordeaux with the Paris news, which you
know. He told us that the official accounts would arrive in an hour or
two. Ponsonby came through Montauban: the French officer commanding
there taking his word, and letting him pass. I had been, at Colonel
Campbell’s request, examining General St. Hilaire and his servant. St.
Hilaire was found, under suspicious circumstances, in the town, and was
just put under arrest, and Campbell luckily asked me to dine with Lord
Wellington, which I should have been very sorry to have missed.

Just as we were sitting down to dinner, about forty of us, General
Frere, and several Spaniards, General Picton, and Baron Alten, the
principal French, &c., in came Cooke with the despatches. The whole was
out directly, champagne went round, and after dinner Lord Wellington
gave “Louis XVIII.,” which was very cordially received with three times
three, and white cockades were ordered for us to wear at the theatre
in the evening. In the interim, however, General Alava got up, and
with great warmth gave Lord Wellington’s health, as the _Liberador
del’ Espagna_! Every one jumped up, and there was a sort of general
exclamation from all the foreigners—French, Spanish, Portuguese,
Germans, and all—_El Liberador d’Espagna! Liberador de Portugal! Le
Liberateur de la France! Le Liberateur de l’Europe!_ And this was
followed, not by a regular three times three, but a cheering all in
confusion for nearly ten minutes! Lord Wellington bowed, confused, and
immediately called for coffee. He must have been not a little gratified
with what had passed.

We then all went to the play. The public were quite in the dark as
to what had just arrived, but Lord Wellington was received in the
stage-box (where he sat, supported by Generals Picton, Frere, and
Alava, &c., and also the _maire_) with no little applause, I assure
you. At the door the people would scarcely take the money from us;
and in the opposite stage-box the French left the box themselves, and
made room for us. We had the white cockades on the breast. The English
officers in the house stared, and did not know what to make of it.
Some thought it a foolish, giddy trick. In about ten minutes Lord
Wellington turned his hat outwards to the front of the box: it was
seen, and a shout ensued immediately. The play was “_Richard, oh mon
Roi_,” which was fixed upon really before the news came. The “_Henri
IV._” was played, and then the new French constitution was read aloud
from one of the boxes. The people most anxious, and in general pleased;
in some things not. I think most of it very good, if the French can
enjoy anything so like our own constitution, for such it is, under
other names; but this is doubtful. The article worst received was that
leaving all the sales of emigrant lands to stand good; and it does
appear to me that, when, by means of paper, an estate had been bought
for the price of a team of horses, an equitable arrangement would
have been better, to be settled by Government Commissioners. This
was followed by “God save the King,” which was received with great
applause.

When the play was over, we adjourned to the ball at Lord Wellington’s.
The only drawback was our meeting on the way the cars of the wounded
in the streets, now moving to the excellent hospitals here. This on
consideration was also a satisfaction, for many lives will be saved by
the wounded being brought here, instead of being sent to rear. You will
now guess what we felt, and what a species of trance we were in.

Here we are halted, whilst the news is sent on to Soult, with whom
Marshal Beresford could not come up. The arrival of the news was at the
moment we should have selected, except for the loss of life. For Lord
Wellington’s character, however, even that was good, and eight hours
sooner it would have been said that the late battle was no victory on
our part, and that we should never have entered Toulouse, nor would the
real sentiments of the town have been known.

On inquiry, I find that the French loss has been great. General Taupin,
one of my friends on La Rhüne, killed; General D’Armagnac, who took
me, wounded; Harispe wounded, and here a prisoner; two other Generals
wounded, &c. Our loss fell principally, you will see, on the sixth
division, and the Scotch Brigade in particular, and on the Spaniards.
With regard to the latter, it is said that, upon the whole, the men for
a long time behaved well, and that if General Frere had been as skilful
as brave, and the officers better, they probably would have succeeded
in their object, which certainly happened to be the most arduous duty
of the day. They arrived on a sort of smooth glacis below the French
works, under a fire admitted to be more severe than almost any since
Albuera. Decision and skill and rapidity were then required. The men
were kept too long in this fire—they broke—and then ran like sheep. One
French regiment, it is said, drove more than four thousand of them, and
in such a manner that they almost upset a Caçadore Portuguese regiment
by main force. Three companies of the latter stood firm, beat back
the Spaniards with their firelocks, laughed at them, enjoyed it, and
completely checked the French. The redoubt was afterwards taken by our
men, with great loss, as you will see. General Frere was in despair;
he exerted himself to the utmost to rally his men; at last, by his
exertions, assisted by Lord Wellington in person, one or two Spanish
companies were formed, and became steady. Upon this the rest soon
followed, and formed up also. The Spaniards had then a less arduous
post assigned them; all went on well again, and I believe they behaved
fairly enough. Their loss is considerable.

This morning the whole conversation of the officers turns upon half-pay
and starvation. With some, want of preferment; with others, promotion;
and with those who have promotion, a determination to enjoy themselves
now that all is over, and their dangers and sufferings past. As to my
own prospects, they are so completely in the air, that my being never
much of an architect for building in that element, I go quietly on with
my work, and trust to the future.

I shall defer any account of this place, &c., for fear of being too
late for the despatches, and now say adieu.

Pray forward the enclosed two letters, which are from Madame de Baudré,
my hostess at Mont de Marsan, who desired me to take care of them, and
enclosed them in a letter of great professions of kindness for me, only
exceeded by the most romantic ones for the Bourbons, and stating the
great losses her family and connexions have lately sustained.

_Head-Quarters, Toulouse, April 15th, 1814._—Here we are quietly
waiting the result of the communication of the late news to Marshal
Soult, &c. Cooke has come back from his head-quarters. The Marshal
hesitates a little at present. He objects that he has no authentic
documents from Bonaparte or the authorities whom he represents, and
seems to have some doubts of the extent of the late news—or pretends
to have. In short, as yet he takes no decided line, but it is said has
applied for an armistice, probably wishing to gain time, to consult
Suchet, &c., and learn more of the state of things.

Colonel Gordon was sent to him yesterday by Lord Wellington with
a flag-of-truce; and it is understood that a positive answer and
determination was required, and the armistice refused. Lord Wellington
and all the officers yesterday attended Colonel Coghlan’s funeral in
the morning, at the Temple, and went from thence in procession to the
Protestant burial-ground out of the town.

In the evening Lord Wellington gave another more magnificent ball at
the Prefecture. It was too crowded to dance much, or well, but went
off with great glee and general satisfaction. The ladies were very
prettily dressed, in general, with the exception of a few of the high
ugly bonnets, and there were several very pleasing-looking girls, and
good dancers; but I do not think that in general the women are handsome
here. I met with one very good-humoured chatty lady, about eighteen
probably, who said she had only left her “Maman,” with whom she had
always lived near Carcassonne, one month, and that, in that time she
had witnessed many strange things:—the ravages of the French army,
the passage of our army over the Garonne, a great battle (which was
all visible quite plainly from the churches here, and even from the
houses), the preparations for a siege, the retreat of the French, our
triumphal entry, the change of the national government, and her own
marriage.

Captain Tovey, of the 20th, taken at Orthes, has escaped, and came in
here yesterday. He would not give his parole, and made several attempts
to be off. In consequence he was hardly treated, but is now safe. He
met with every assistance from the French inhabitants; and at the
last house he was in, the owner made him leave his peasant’s dress,
and equipped him in a new suit, boots and all, French cut, to pass our
lines, and go to head-quarters in. The villages through which he passed
were proclaiming the King; and he was told that Soult’s house, near
Carcassonne, had been destroyed by the mob.

The French here discover the same volatile character as ever. _Vive le
Roi!_ is shouted as vigorously as _Vive l’Empereur!_ was, I am told, a
few years since, when Bonaparte made his then really popular entry, and
gave his fêtes here, of which the most fulsome _procès verbal_ still
exists, signed by a maire-adjoint of the same name as the one who now
signs the King’s proclamation, and I believe he is the same man—Lameluc.

The inhabitants are all at work as usual, and very active.
Fleurs-de-lys are now upon the skirts of the coats instead of eagles,
and last night on the theatre dropscene. The busts of Bonaparte are
smashed. The Capitolium ornaments are all undergoing a change. All
the N.’s and B.’s, &c., are effaced; and the workmen are now busily
employed working round the cornice of the great staircase at the
Capitol, changing all the alternate ornaments of a handsome cornice,
every other one having been a _bee_. The English are everything, and in
general estimation. To return the compliment of our wearing their white
cockade on our black one, they now wear a black one on their white.
The Spaniards are considered much as the Cossacks. The Capitolium is a
very fine building, and as the splendid velvet and gold canopy, and the
throne of Bonaparte at one end, had no decided emblems except that of
authority generally, it has, after some doubts, been allowed to remain,
and is not destroyed. We are to have a grand ball there, it is said,
given on Sunday, by the inhabitants, if approved of, and we stay.

The theatre is about the size of the Haymarket Theatre; in width rather
larger, but much deeper, and something in the improved shape of Covent
Garden. The actors are tolerable. It is, however, inferior to the
Bordeaux Theatre, and certainly to that of Lyons.

The stone bridge over the Garonne, of seven arches, is very solid and
substantial, wide, and upon the whole a splendid work, but not very
graceful in its architecture. It is like Kew bridge in general shape,
but in much heavier and substantial proportions.

Several improvements have been some time since commenced in the city,
but most of them are now at a stand, and have been so for some time.
The cathedral of St. Etienne is an unfinished Gothic building, the
great aisle being wanting to the new building. Instead of this, a large
sort of Westminster Hall, of more ancient date, joins the cathedral on
one side. This was originally intended to be pulled down or altered.

There is some good tapestry and fine painted glass, which have escaped
here, as in several other churches, the revolutionary destruction.

The streets here are like the old parts of Paris, in general narrow,
with a gutter in the middle; and the houses very good, but high shops
below, and three stories of good rooms above. Several handsome hotels,
with their great gates and small gardens. I am in a dirty place, but
tolerably well off. The people are civil; I have good stabling, and one
comfortable room, now it is cleaned.

C—— gives rather a strange account of our Allies, but seems to think
from their numbers, and the general feeling, that the business has at
last been well-blundered through. There is a good story told of an
incident which happened at the interview with Soult the other day.
The substance of the news somehow got wind, and the army, whilst the
Marshal was closeted with C——, gave a loud shout. The aide-de-camp
went to inquire the cause, and returned saying, “_Ce n’est qu’un
lièvre, Monseigneur_.” You ought to know that nothing causes a louder
shout amongst troops than a hare crossing them. General M—— said the
aide-de-camp should have been asked whether it was a Leipzig hare? If
Soult does not declare himself, his army will, I think, desert him. I
have now only just received a letter from you, of the 22nd March, and
papers.

The French works at the entrance of the town, by the bridge (_tête de
pont_), were very strong, and cost much in labour and materials, for no
use. They were formed by close piles of timber like the caissons for
the foundation of a bridge, filled up with earth, and the tops lined by
barrels of earth, with a ditch and guns, &c., placed, and the walls of
the buildings round all loop-holed.

I rode all over the positions of the battle yesterday, on the hills,
and examined all the forts and the monuments of French industry and
British courage. They were most formidable places to approach, for the
hills formed a regular smooth glacis from the works at the top to the
valley below, and half way down were long low heaps of sod, or turf,
made up to protect the advanced sharp-shooters, who were lying safe on
the ground, protected behind them, though the barrier was not above two
feet high. A church and a house loop-holed, formed the sort of citadel
to two of the forts or redoubts for musquetry, with the guns around
the outside. The ditches were not so deep, nor the works so complete
as those near Vera, where the French had more time, nor were the roads
or mountains so difficult to ascend; but there was less shelter to
approach, from the greater smoothness of the ground. Almost the only
chance of safety was following some hollow roads, and a ride or two on
the hills.

_16th (4 o’clock)._—I have just heard that the mail goes in half an
hour. There is, therefore, little time to add to this. Colonel G—— is
come back: Soult very civil, but high and proud in his manner, not yet
satisfied, and so circumstanced, does not yet join the royal cause; the
consequence is, I hear, that the troops move to-morrow morning, and I
fear we shall do the same then or soon after. This is very provoking,
for the general result seems clear, and all bloodshed now useless. I
suspect the truth of the hare story, as it is said that Soult’s army
is still ignorant of what has happened, at least, nearly so. Pains
are now being taken to circulate the proclamations, news, &c., in all
directions round him, that the troops may learn the real state of
things. I have to-day received the parcel from you, letter to 29th, and
newspapers. Many thanks.

The museum here contains but a bad second-rate set of pictures. About a
hundred have been carried away during the month of March, no one knows
where; but I presume they were the best of those which were portable
from their size.

There has been some difference of opinion, and confusion, we hear, at
Montauban about royalty. Bayonne, it is to be feared, will abide by
Soult, and do nothing yet.

_Head-Quarters, Toulouse, April 18th, 1814, 5 o’clock._—The troops
moved as I told you yesterday, and the order was actually out for
head-quarters to move to-day, when Count Gazan came in yesterday, about
mid-day, to announce Marshal Soult’s submission, I believe, to the new
order of things, and to arrange cantonments, &c., for the two armies.
He was closeted with General Murray a long time, and arrangements were
made. He returned this morning to have the articles ratified, and
to-night Lord G. Lennox has orders to be in readiness to go to England
through Paris with the news. This last fact you will, perhaps, have
heard, and probably before you get this.

We had yesterday a grand _Te Deum_, a most strange noisy military
and religious ceremony attended with all the drums and military band;
French civic soldiers, with their hats on, hallooing, shouting,
singing, organs, &c., an immense crowd, and great cordiality.
Unluckily, Gazan passed the door as the crowd was coming out; he was
hooted, and saluted with “_A bas Soult!_” &c. This was a pity, but
these changeable gentlemen are all in extremes. The troops are all
going into cantonments immediately, and we shall for some time, I
conclude, be quiet.

The bad news from Bayonne is very unlucky. General Hope is, I hear, not
dangerously wounded; and his aide-de-camp is gone to Bayonne to comfort
him in his confinement, which I trust will now be soon over. The affair
seems to have been a surprise in a great measure, and the chief loss
was in regaining the church, &c., of St. Etienne, which had been easily
lost at first. Lord Dalhousie, on the other hand, seems to have gone on
well alone, across the Dordogne.

The arsenal is here on a very large scale, and would have been a very
great acquisition, were the war to have gone on. The French carried
away almost everything but materials, of which there is abundance of
wheel carriages, &c., and all the forges, &c., in order.

_Head-Quarters, Toulouse, April 23rd, 1814._—Our life has now fallen
into the old routine way again, and not only without daily events and
little incidents to excite the mind, as has hitherto been the case,
but also with the additional flatness and indifference, which cannot
but be felt so immediately after a succession of such occurrences as
have taken place within the last month. You will now have only the
tittle-tattle of a country town (a French town certainly, and therefore
somewhat novel), with which you must be satisfied. When Count Gazan
came over here, to settle the terms of the armistice and line of
demarcation, &c., with Generals Murray and Wimpfen, he was so much
engaged that I could not see him, as I wished to do, and he went very
suddenly back again. The terms you will see in the papers.

When all the Spanish garrisons are collected in France, this southern
French army will again be respectable. Our troops are all moving into
their cantonments along the Garonne on the left bank, except a few on
this right bank, within the department of the Haute Garonne, which
remains nearly all ours for the present. We have had a variety of
strangers—the two Sir Charles Stewarts the first place. The Lisbon
minister only stopped here one day on his way to Holland; the other Sir
Charles, from Paris, came, as it is whispered here, to signify a wish
on the part of the Allies that Lord Wellington would be the English
commissioner at the general Congress. If so, and this seems very
probable, I think he does well to refuse, for he cannot stand higher
than he does. Were he to go, the other diplomatists would be surprised
at his method of getting through business. We should certainly have a
general peace many weeks sooner, if not months, than we are likely to
have otherwise.

I was walking with C—— in Lord Wellington’s garden about eight o’clock
in the morning, three days since, when we saw a queer-looking figure
approach, of whom we could make out nothing from the complete mixture
of undress and magnificence—a pair of not clean overalls on, a common
short pelisse, and a foraging cap, but the whole breast covered with
stars and little crosses, and swords and orders of all sorts.

I was not a little surprised at being introduced to Sir Charles
Stewart. He had arrived at two in the morning and had gone to bed,
without sending word to Lord Wellington, depending upon finding him at
home at eight o’clock, when to his mortification he found that Lord
Wellington had been since five in the morning out hunting; and when
Sir Charles asked where he could go to meet him, the best information
he could get was, that it was in a forest somewhere about eighteen
miles distant, but no one knew exactly where, for the only persons who
knew, about four in number, were out with him. Patience, therefore, was
his only remedy; and instead of being off again in two hours as he said
he had intended, he was obliged to stay long enough to give us a few
anecdotes from the Allies. Two of Marshal Suchet’s aides-de-camp, and
two or three French colonels from his army and that of Soult, have also
been here.

With one of Suchet’s aides-de-camp I had much conversation. He is a
gentleman-like young man. He told me that Suchet was at Perpignan
when he heard of Soult’s affair here; but that he then thought it
prudent to hasten to Narbonne, and there he was when the news from
Paris arrived. Had the war gone on, therefore, we should evidently
have had a dance, as I expected, to the Mediterranean, on the road to
Montpelier, after these united marshals, and should have required your
utmost exertions and reinforcements from England; as it is, all is
well. Suchet’s aide-de-camp said that he found very different feelings
towards Soult in this country from what there were towards his master
in the districts where he had commanded, and that he feared Soult had
conducted himself very badly. The two marshals are, I understand, very
jealous of each other. I asked him if Suchet had the least notion or
expectation previously of what has happened. He said, “No: who could
expect such a change in the minds of every one, and such a revolution
in seven days’ time?” Then he laughed, and said, “At present we were
_à la mode_;” and as I met him at the grand ball at the Capitole here
again, he said, “There, you have nothing to do now but to make the most
of your advantages, and amuse yourselves: all the beauties have now
declared for you.”

I rather pitied him, when at that meeting a number of pert apprentices,
with immense white cockades on, and some still with Napoleon buttons
and smart civic uniforms, were continually coming up to him, and
reaching about up to his chin, asking him, pertly, “Oh! are you Soult’s
aide-de-camp, or Suchet’s? Well, how do you like what is going on?”
fellows, that a month ago would have almost cleaned his shoes had they
been asked. Some of them even thought he was English, and in bad patois
French, complimented him on the progress he had made in the French
language. His military pride was much put to the trial, and he could
hardly smother his feelings. He then asked me to show him his new King,
of whom there was an old picture hung up, as he said it was now time
to make acquaintance with his new sovereign, as well as with this new
state of society.

The grand ball given by the town at the Capitole on Thursday went off
well, except that it was just such a crowd as an Easter Monday ball at
the Mansion House. The rooms were very handsome, and the five hundred
English, Spanish, and Portuguese officers added not a little to the
effect of the scene. Nearly the whole were generals, aide-de-camps,
staff-officers, or at least field-officers, and every order and
ornament of every nation was worn. Lord Wellington was most splendid.
The amusement commenced by leading him into the Salle de Trone
_ci-devant_ Bonaparte, where, over the vacant chair in the centre, was
the picture of King Louis XVIII., and on each side that of the Duke
d’Angoulême, and one of Lord Wellington himself—the latter a hasty
caricature likeness taken by a painter here at the play from memory. He
was then entertained with a short concert, principally consisting of La
Chasse d’Henri IV., and “God save the King,” sung by the public singers
from a gallery, amidst the clouds—goddesses and cupids painted above
them.

I had got Mr. K——, the famous English officer singer, to go with me
to the leader of the band, and to give him the catch-club harmony of
“God save the King,” and we wrote them down full instructions, and all
the words for the song, solo, trio, chorus, &c., the words spelt also
according to the French pronunciation, while the musician caught by the
ear and scribbled down all the parts, one by one, from K——’s singing.
It was an interesting scene. They had a rehearsal, and Mr. K—— gave the
_prima donna_ a few private lessons, and the whole in consequence went
off really surprisingly well. The supper-tables were filled by about
four sets successively, the English having the preference, sentinels
letting us in, and keeping out the French until the last. This went on
until there was not even bread and water remaining.

The press, now, is at work here, printing Cevallo’s old history of
the conduct of the French in Spain, and a variety of things, which
to the natives are news. There seems to be a disposition to buy the
books and read; nothing, however, will make the French what Cobbett
calls us, “a thinking people.” They seem to be as frivolous as ever.
The next thing wished for here, and at Bordeaux, is to get rid of this
new constitution, and have the Bourbons as before; at least the party
is strong for this line, and, unless something decisive is done soon,
and the old military dispersed about, and gens-d’armes, I think they
will even yet have a squabble about several things among themselves,
which makes me wish that we should be off as soon as possible, and
have nothing to do with them. As soon as all the foreign garrisons are
withdrawn, and the line of the French empire settled, the faster we
withdraw from within it the better. I always expected the royal cause
would gain ground as it has, when once fairly tried. It was the only
source of peace, and that was what all wanted, on any terms. Of course
the acceptance of the Bourbons made it all easy; but I believe all the
southern departments would gladly have been English, to secure peace,
and get sugar, sell their wines, and get rid of conscriptions and
acquisitions.

Lord Wellington gives another grand ball at the _ci-devant_ Prefecture,
now Palais Royale, on Monday next. On Tuesday, he resigns his place
there to the Duke d’Angoulême, and as there is an old adage about two
kings of Brentford, I suspect he will soon afterwards take a trip
somewhere else, at least for a time. I doubt, however, his leaving the
armies altogether, while they remain in force, and the French marshals
likewise.

Bordeaux must be very proud of the example they have given to France.
They must take especial care to conceal their subsequent alarms, and
half-repentance of what they have done.




CHAPTER XXVII.

Toulouse—Its Churches—Protestant Service—Libraries—Reception of the
Duke d’Angoulême—The French Generals—Popularity of Wellington.


  Head-quarters, Toulouse,
  April 27, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——,

Though I have nothing now to amuse you with, but the result of my
morning walks and inquiries in this town, I shall proceed as usual,
more with a wish to preserve my own crude observations, than hoping to
interest you much by the perusal.

My last was finished on Saturday. On Sunday, about half-past eleven, I
attended the service at the Protestant chapel, established under the
sanction and patronage of Bonaparte, as a sort of church-wardenish
gold-lettered record informed me. The service began with a prayer
by the clerk; he then gave out a psalm, more noisy than musical,
and without the accompaniment of the organ. I was astonished that
such a small congregation could make so much noise and discord. One
greasy-headed, methodistical-looking man, near me, continued in an
unceasing roar, bearing much more resemblance to a well-known noise
with which our mules so frequently indulge us, than any known harmony.
A short prayer, and a long chapter from the New Testament, with the
Commentary, as printed in the book, was then delivered from the pulpit
or reading-desk (for there was but one) by a clergyman, who then
entered. Another psalm ensued. The organ then played to introduce a
young preacher, who took the reader’s place, and gave us a prayer and
the Ten Commandments, and another psalm, partly to the organ; but
before half a stave was finished, the organist found that his notes and
the vocal ones were so different, that he ceased playing, and though
he made two or three attempts at a single note afterwards, he found it
would not do, and gave it up.

The young preacher then read a text from the Bible, and gave us a
very good extempore discourse about half-an-hour long. The subject
was the vanity of this world, and the danger of temptation and evil
communication. The language and delivery were clear and distinct; there
was no rant, but much propriety of manner. A psalm followed, and the
organ was not so much distanced; then the Lord’s Prayer and Belief, and
a prayer for all descriptions of persons and denominations, like that
of our own Church praying for dignitaries, &c. And then another psalm,
at last, in tolerable harmony, but very noisy. A blessing concluded the
whole.

At first there were only about forty-five persons; some half-dozen old
gentlemen were in the seats near the altar. These had backs. About
twenty-five women were in the right-hand seats; and about fifteen
men in the left. The side-seats were chairs placed in rows, and all
fastened to each other. In the course of the service, the numbers
increased to about sixty or seventy. The congregation appeared to be
nearly all of the middling class of tradesmen; only about three of our
poor men took their allotted seats, quite at the back. As no one ever
knelt down, there was no occasion for either room or cushions for that
purpose. The men sat with their hats occasionally on and off, and legs
crossed, at their ease, in the style of the House of Commons; but were
attentive to the sermon. The three poor men all fell asleep, snoring
so loud that a sort of beadle was obliged to awaken them. I was not
much surprised on the whole, comparing this scene with that in the
Roman Catholic churches, that the proselytes amongst the highest and
lowest classes were not not numerous. This service suits neither. It
is most adapted to an independent tradesman, who thinks a little for
himself, and can see the errors of the Catholics, and likes the economy
of the chapel. It might be accident, but I saw scarcely any white
cockades,—only one or two of the elder, and I suppose richer, members
of the community wear them in their hats.

On Monday I looked into nearly all the churches, present and
_ci-devant_, of Toulouse. The cathedral of St. Etienne I have already
mentioned. The next in size and consequence is St. Saturnin, or more
commonly called St. Surnin. This is a curious building, in the dark
heavy Saxon style (reminding one of the early attempts at Grecian
revival, and the introduction of the Gothic), all circular except the
angular main pillars of the centre of the cross, which were heavy
octagons; the roof circular, and upper windows double circles. Except
the pillars, nearly the whole is made of the flat tile or brick,
which is curious. It was built in the present form about the year
1160 to 1190. There are monuments of the Earls of Toulouse, &c., of
founders, and in a dark vaulted chapel under the grand altar are relics
innumerable—of the thorns in the crown placed on the head of Christ;
the heads of Barnabas, of Simon, and of Jude; parts of their bodies
also; parts of Peter; besides bishops, &c.; the body and figure of
Thomas Aquinas; and an English saint, a king, whose name I could not
make out. We heard much of the riches with which all these relics were
formerly surrounded. It is said that the revolutionists carried off
four hundredweight of gold, besides silver. All the most valuable part,
however, as the good Catholics are bound to think, were fortunately
spared, and still remain in excellent preservation, and tolerably fine
with gilding.

The general effect of the building is gloomy and superstitious, and a
strange unpleasant smell, which some say proceeds from large vaults
underneath, which are filled with bodies which do not corrupt, makes
one glad to get out of the building as soon as curiosity is satisfied.
They do not bury their dead in the church now, and the vaults I
mentioned are walled up. In the remaining churches now in use there
is little worthy of notice, but there are two very large _ci-devant_
convent churches. That of the Jacobins is worthy of notice; one long
building only, like King’s College Chapel (not a cross), and with one
lofty row of circular pillars all down the centre. This forms as it
were two equal main aisles, and no side aisles. On the sides are rows
of chapels and a large cloister. Almost the whole is in brick, except
the centre pillars. It is now regularly fitted up as cavalry barrack
stables; and they are excellent, easily containing in the whole, I
should think, about seven hundred horses. There is an octagon building
adjoining, with a slender pillar, fitted up the same. Near this is
another large, long, similar building, formerly a chapel, but without
the centre pillars, and the scale of course somewhat smaller. This
is the forage store for the cavalry barrack. We have them now both
in use, as the French had. I must now go in my best to meet the Duke
d’Angoulême.

_Friday, the 26th._—About two o’clock on Wednesday the most interesting
scene commenced since that of the first day of our entrance, and a
more splendid one still. Lord Wellington, surrounded by about three
hundred horsemen, composed of general officers, aides-de-camp, and
staff officers of all descriptions, and of the four nations, Spanish,
English, French and Portuguese, went out to meet the Duke d’Angoulême,
all in their best uniforms, on their best chargers, and covered with
white cockades. The only French general of the opposing army who came
in time for this was Clausel, and he was for some time side by side
with Lord Wellington. When we had gone about six miles, and arrived at
a sort of triumphal arch on a hill, the Duke appeared, escorted by a
guard of our heavy dragoons and a double French guard of honour from
Bordeaux and Toulouse. We drew up on each side, after the interview
with Lord Wellington, to let them pass, and then all joined in the
procession to the town.

The sides of the road were crowded with carriages and people, and the
enthusiasm of the lower classes, and of the women in particular, was
excessive. The Duke and Lord Wellington, after being joined by more
guards of honour and more suite, as we approached the town, entered the
street over the grand bridge, amidst the shouts and acclamations of a
multitude crowding every window. The scene reminded me of the London
streets at Lord Nelson’s funeral. From the _tête de pont_, which still
in part exists, over the bridge, up to the cathedral through all the
principal streets, was a double line of English troops, between which
the procession passed. Several of the regiments had got their clothing,
and they looked admirably, especially the Scotch 91st.

A sort of moveable _garde urbaine de l’infanterie_ on each side kept
also with us all the way. White flags, exhibiting French ingenuity
to the utmost, were hanging from every window. Sheets, table-cloths,
towels, &c., covered with green paper fleurs-de-lys formed excellent
standards, and paper flags were innumerable. The women, and some of the
old men, were quite mad with joy, and screamed, _Vive le Roi et vivent
les Anglois!_ till they were stopped by absolute exhaustion, or some by
tears of joy. Every house was hung with laurel mixed with the white,
and the lower story covered entirely with old tapestry, old carpets, or
sheets, and paper fleurs-de-lys. In the morning this made the streets
look something like Brokers’-alley certainly, but the effect, when
mixed with the rest of the scene, was not bad.

After passing under another triumphal arch of table-cloths, laurel,
fleurs-de-lys, &c., we reached the cathedral, and a _Te Deum_
succeeded. This was much like the last, only rather more in order, and
the public bodies were more numerous and in their costume. The ten
Judges and the President, in their red robes, like our aldermen, with
small black-and-gold caps. The Judges de Premier Instance, in black
Master-of-Arts gowns, with sky-blue sashes; the Avocats in black gowns
alone; the professors of sciences and arts in their crimson-coloured
Master-of-Arts gowns, and those of belles-lettres in orange; the
Archbishop and clergy in full costume. The music was not very striking,
but many of the old people cried with joy.

About six o’clock the Duke dined with Lord Wellington, and went to
the play in the evening, where the acclamations were renewed with
fresh vigour; the women in the streets caught hold of his coat to kiss
it. Yesterday the Duke had a _grande messe_, and then a full-dress
drawing-room—this in the morning. In the evening the great rooms of the
Capitolium were opened again for music and dancing. The Duke came in
there too soon, when scarcely five hundred people were arrived, but in
another hour the crowd was immense. The dresses of the women were very
splendid, and the variety of orders and uniforms made the scene very
gay. General Villette was there, as well as Clausel, and a number of
French officers. The Duke was just the same as at St. Jean de Luz, and
remembered all his old acquaintance there, myself among the rest.

He not only gave me a gracious nod during the first procession,
but surprised me by coming round behind the chairs of the ladies,
where I was standing, in the music-room, and gave me his hand, and
reminded me of King Joseph’s saddle-cloth, which I had given the
Duke, and which was on his horse, as I observed, when he entered
the town. His affability and good-nature are striking; but he must
acquire more dignity and self-possession, as his figure is against
him in appearance, and he seems shy; in short he must learn the trade
of kingcraft, like any other, and a quiet rational man is just now
the best king the French can have. The great rock to avoid is the
probability of being misled by indiscreet emigrants.

I was, it must be confessed, rather at a loss what to say to the Duke,
but when he talked of the saddle-cloth, I replied, that “Its only
merit, which was as a trophy, now was at an end, as the family of
the Bonapartes had ceased to be objects to triumph over.” This, and
a lame congratulation on what had happened, completed my speech; as,
however, it was as new to me to address royalty as it was to him to
act it, I hope if occasion offers I may improve by practice as well as
his Highness. One circumstance amused me much in all this scene: the
good city of Toulouse covered its streets with sand, and made the air
resound with cries, and every house had two paper lanterns in every
window at night; and they were, in general, I am convinced, sincere in
this, although one might have been induced to think otherwise from the
acts of the authorities and public offices. A set of _garde urbaine_
officers (the new gens-d’armes) ran all the way at the head of the
procession, prompting the cries, and setting them going all the way
we went; and the illuminations were, by special order of the mayor,
from the Bureau d’Illuminations, as usual in the time of Bonaparte’s
system. My intended observation is this—the city loyalty vented itself
in cries, in _Te Deums_, in music, and in farthing candles, and
dancing, shouting, draperies, &c., but the Royal Duke was placed in
the Palais Royale (_ci-devant_ Prefecture), and no provision made for
his table or for his establishment or Bordeaux guard of honour, and our
head-quarters’ Commissary was called upon to feed the animals, &c., of
the guard and followers, and Lord Wellington to entertain the Prince
and invite the principal citizens to meet him.

The old notion of the sign of the Four Alls—“John Bull pays for all,”
seems to be as well known here as elsewhere in the world. There seems
no principle now-a-days more generally diffused or adopted more readily
in every quarter. Our rations are all procured, you must be aware, by
requisitions, through the mayors of the country, &c., to be provided by
the districts, and you would naturally think the same authority could
provide for all French deserters, and for the Royal troops of guards
and establishment; but then who would pay for all these requisitions?
All we have is paid for; and it is _bien plus commode_ to come to our
store ready collected than to form one for these purposes.

An odd incident occurred to me just before the procession on Wednesday.
I was at Lord Wellington’s new hotel, the great inn, the Hotel de
France, endeavouring to find his room, to leave a Court-martial, when
I stumbled on my friend the Dutch aide-de-camp of General Clausel,
who told me he was looking for one of our Marshal’s aides-de-camp in
waiting to introduce his General, who was behind him, and who, on my
turning round, recognized me, as he and his division took me prisoner.
To their great surprise, I told them that there was no chance of
finding an aide-de-camp, but perhaps we might find a serjeant, and
I was on the search. It so happened that there was no one but an
ignorant sentinel. In trying a door or two, we all blundered upon
Lord Wellington, who came himself to the door; so I introduced the
astonished Clausel, and walked off.

My Dutch friend told me that Soult and Suchet would have had about six
aides-de-camp, &c., in the first room, and a general officer in waiting
in the second. I own that I think our great man goes to the opposite
extreme; but he does not like being watched and plagued. Just after
the state _levée_ yesterday, I saw him cross the crowded square in his
blue coat and round hat, almost unnoticed and unknown even to the very
people who half an hour before had been cheering him. In one angle of
Lord Wellington’s hotel lives Madam C——, a Spanish beauty, married into
a French family of rank, who are the proprietors of the hotel, but who
have been obliged to let nearly the whole, reserving this angle. I do
not mean to be scandalous; but this, perhaps, may have decided the
choice of the house.

Lord Wellington to-day had intelligence that Marshal Suchet was on his
way here, and has been with his staff about a dozen miles to meet him
in form. The French Marshal, from some confusion, did not appear, and
Lord Wellington would wait no longer, but returned alone. In our grand
procession to meet the royal Duke on Wednesday a ridiculous accident
happened. A French post carriage with three horses abreast ran away,
and came full drive down upon us, the Frenchmen all bawling, the horses
pulling all ways, and clearing all before them. Our three hundred
warriors were all broken in an instant, and dispersed over the ditches,
and in all directions, until at last one unfortunate horseman ran foul
of the French horses, and the whole came down together. Fortunately
nobody was materially hurt.

_Saturday, Post-day._—As I returned home last night by the Palais Royal
from dinner, I found every one going, without regular invitation, into
the Palais Royal to the Prince, who held a _soirée_; so I entered
likewise, and found him surrounded by dancing as usual, and by Marshals
and Generals only to be outdone at Paris. Suchet had arrived with his
staff. Colonel Canning, who was left behind for him, brought him in
about two hours after Lord Wellington returned. General Lamarque and
several other officers came with him, two Generals, as aides-de-camp,
besides Colonels, &c. The Marshal himself was a strange figure. His
head and cheeks and chin all overgrown with hair, like a wild man of
the woods: and his dress more splendid than the drum-major of one of
our Guards’ bands on a birthday.

The contrast had a singular effect. The uniform was blue, but almost
concealed, and could have stood alone with gold embroidery. Every seam,
edge, and button, before and behind, above and below, was _galloné_
with a sort of oak-leaf pattern about three inches wide, and on his
breast were two gold and silver stars, as large as our Garter star, and
several small orders of different kinds. He would have been rather a
good-looking man if dressed in a more moderate style. Lord Wellington
and several of his Generals, being in their plain uniforms, made the
French General’s extravagance the more striking.

Soult’s aide-de-camp also came in, and a guard was ready, and an hotel
for him, but he did not appear. Generals Lamarque, Clausel, Villette,
and three or four more, and a number of embroidered _Payeurs_ and
_Commissaires Généraux_, _Préfêts_, &c., increased the general glitter;
but nothing looked better than our scarlet. The Prince and Suchet had
much conversation, and seemed more easy and gay than I had seen the
former before with any of his new friends.

Scarcely any Frenchman has worn the Spanish or Portuguese cockade; and
amidst all the cries you never hear a _viva_ for either Spaniards or
Portuguese. They are in consequence very angry and sulky, and I think
a little jealous of us. This you may well imagine, when you learn that
they all along consider that _they_ have accomplished all that has
happened, and that we have assisted a little certainly, but that they
could have done without us. Except those about Lord Wellington, who
do it more out of compliment to him, the Spaniards in general, and a
great number of the Portuguese, will not in consequence wear the white
cockade.

I see no harm in this, for as we fought a whole century to prevent
the two kingdoms of France and Spain from being both under the
Bourbons, it is quite as well now that it happens to be our interest
to fight for the contrary doctrine, that there should be as little
cordiality between them as possible. A Spanish soldier was told the
other day in the street to cry “_Vive le Roi! Vivent les Bourbons!_”
He made no answer. The request was repeated, and he was asked why
he made a difficulty. He was still silent at first, but then rapped
out a favourite Spanish oath, then “_Viva Fernando VII.! Viva Lord
Wellington!_ Los Espanoles care for nothing more;” and nothing more
would he say.

It is remarkable enough, but the fact is that Lord Wellington is very
popular with the common Spanish soldiers, I am told, and with the
country people; but with the generality of officers, regimental in
particular, and with the highest classes in Spain, it is rather the
reverse.

It is curious now to see Lord Wellington play the second fiddle, having
been so long established leader. It will serve to break him in by
degrees for England and peace. He carries it off very well. Most of
our Lieutenant-generals are gone to Paris, or going, and many other
officers. I suppose it will be best for me to remain with the army to
the last, or at least as long as Lord Wellington remains, and then go
straight to London and report my arrival.

At the Capitolium on Thursday, young B——, with whom I was talking, as
we were very hot and tired, persuaded me to sit down with him on the
bottom step of the vacant throne. The Prince and all the grandees were
then in another room, but we were soon routed up by the _garde urbaine_
sentinel, to the mortification and vexation of my young honourable
companion at not being allowed at Toulouse what he was entitled to in
the House of Lords in England. He is well; and dancing away cotillions,
waltzes, &c.

_Later._—We have just had an arrival, and Lord Wellington quits this
place for Paris immediately: I hope, however, that he will return
shortly, as he now intends to do. We all here said that matters would
never be well arranged at Paris without him, and that he would go at
last.

_Head-Quarters, Toulouse, May 2nd, 1814._—Having thanked you for your
letter of the 12th of April, and papers to the same date, I must
proceed on my old subject, Toulouse, and its sights and curiosities,
regretting on your account, as well as my own, that they are not more
interesting.

The great cannon-foundry here was formerly one of the most prominent,
but it has now ceased to work for nearly three or four years. How or
why this could happen, when military works and manufactures seemed
alone to flourish in France during that period, I cannot say. The fact
is, everything remains in a state as if the workmen were only all gone
away to dinner, but in silent desolation, like a scene in Herculaneum,
or Southey’s town under water. Unfinished moulds, guns, &c., and tools
are lying about in all directions. To show how much the whole has been
neglected, even _Egalité_ has been suffered to remain on one entrance
pillar, _Liberté_ on the other, and the word _Impérial_ in the middle.
The fleur-de-lys will, I suppose, find its way there soon by some
accident.

Suchet now commands both armies here. He told the Duke d’Angoulême that
he had sixteen thousand men of his own army at his service. This hero,
to whom the day of the month, yesterday (May-day), reminded me of a
much nearer resemblance than the drum-major, has left us, and is off to
his troops.

There are two public libraries here, in which I have spent the better
part of a morning each, one containing about thirty thousand volumes,
the other about twenty-five thousand. The former has too large a
proportion of ecclesiastical learning; but they both contain some good
editions of classics and good historians, annals, &c., particularly
the smaller library. They are old episcopal and private foundations,
and have neither gained nor lost much by the Revolution, which is
rather extraordinary. There seems to have been no very valuable early
editions or manuscripts—nothing very much worth plundering; and they
say they were too conscientious to take advantage of the times, and
enrich themselves by plunder. The arrangement of the books is not bad.
Firstly, good polyglot and other Bibles of all kinds; then commentaries
on sacred history, &c.; then history in general; then laws of nations,
&c.; then laws in general, essays, &c.; then French voyages, arts,
sciences, classics, and belles lettres. There is an atlas of the Grand
Canal and its vicinity on an immense scale, which might have been
important had we proceeded, though I think no other stand would have
been made until after we had gone beyond the limits of the canal, and
after a junction of Soult with Suchet at Narbonne. Amongst the books
pointed out as of the most interest, were Racine’s Greek editions of
Euripides and Æschylus, containing his name and several notes in his
own handwriting,—a remarkably neat hand. The editions were Stephens’
and Stanley’s. The notes were either short free translations of
passages and sentiments, or memoranda to call attention to particular
passages for future use and application, or they were short remarks of
approbation or disapprobation of scenes, passages, &c. I copied out
nearly the whole, not being very long, and I now enclose them. Will
you oblige me by putting them into my Euripides or somewhere, to be
preserved.

Several of the private houses here of the merchants and nobles are on
a very large scale, and contain very spacious suites of rooms round
the court-yard. The architecture is, in general, very moderate. Most
of the mansions have only the merit of extent; and one or two which
have an attempt at more are in bad taste. The one most remarkable is
particularly so. It has an immense heavy stone cornice, out of all
proportion, and the capitals of all the pillars are a species of false
Corinthian, or rather, Composite, with the upper ornaments, spread
eagles, in most barbarous taste, and in the place of the most beautiful
part of the true pillars of the Composite order.

Toulouse appears to have been for a very considerable time nearly
stationary in size. There is not, as in some of our country towns, and
in some of those in France, the new town as well as the old. The old
brick walls, with occasional towers, remain entire almost all round,
and still form nearly the city boundary, for there is scarcely any
suburbs without the walls. At several of the entrances within there
seems to have been some vacant spaces, and in two or three places an
ornamental sort of crescent or square has been commenced,—one lately,
but the others before the Revolution. They are all unfinished. In
general, however, all within the city walls is covered with building of
some sort or another.

The splendid façade of the Capitolium was raised before the Revolution.
Henry IV. commenced the work, it is said, and his statue remains there.
A very small beginning has been made towards stone façades on one of
the other sides of the Grande Place of the Capital, but in general the
old shabby buildings still remain, and seem likely to do so, for some
time to come.

_May 3rd._—Our Prince is gone to review his new army under Suchet, and
leaves us quiet. Every day carries off some of our higher officers,
and we all expect to move the instant Lord Wellington returns, if not
before. To-morrow, if possible, I go with a party and passport to
see the great basin de Feriol, the main feeder of the Grand Canal.
It is the sight of this country, and therefore, though expecting to
be disappointed, I have agreed to join Dr. Macgregor and a party
to-morrow, and return the next day. It is near Revel, about thirty-two
miles off.

I yesterday attended the Court of Appeal here for the four departments
around—Aude, Tarn, Lot and Garonne, and Arriège. There were ten judges
present: there exist, and may be present, as many as sixteen, and a
quorum of seven is necessary to form a Court. There were, besides the
_Procureur-Général_ and _Advocat-Général_, about twenty-five barristers
in gowns, nearly like ours, but with bonnets instead of wigs. They
were dirty, and mostly old, and looked precisely like a set of
provincial barristers in England. The same habits make the manners and
appearance so similar in nations nearly equally civilized, that, until
the language betrayed the difference, I could have fancied myself in
England again.

The subject in dispute was half an acre of vineyard, and it turned on
the construction of a confused legacy in a will of an old gentleman.
The eagerness with which the contest was maintained reminded me of a
Court of Quarter Sessions in England,—all talking at once, and with
abundance of noise and action, especially just as the ten judges, like
our juries, had laid their heads together to consider, and whilst _le
Procureur-Général_ was summing up the law and argument previously to
the Court. Either the lawyers and judges must be starving, or the
judicial establishment must be very expensive in France now.

There are, besides this Court, others of _Première Instance_ in each
department, and in four departments you have more judges than in
England. Unless some changes are made, the French, in my opinion,
will find their whole government, which is calculated for a larger
empire, in every way much too expensive. This will prevent any great
reduction of ordinary taxation. The King and his court to be paid; the
senate; all the marshals and grand dignitaries, the prefêts, &c. Each
department now has a salary to pay its prefêt nearly as large as that
of an intendant of a whole province before the Revolution. The King
will find abundance of patronage, if this goes on; but a great part of
the national income will be consumed in the management and support of
the different species of rulers. One advantage in this, it is to be
hoped, will be to keep France more quiet in future, as I have otherwise
little faith in the present temper of this changeable race.

_May 7, 1814. Post-day._—At five o’clock on Wednesday morning I went
to Dr. Macgregor’s to breakfast, preparatory to our expedition to St.
Feriol, having obtained our leave and a passport for that purpose. Our
party consisted of Dr. H——, Colonel G——, and P——, General H——, and Mr.
J——, and Mrs. J——. On account of the latter, who was in an interesting
condition, we set out on the canal road towards Castelnaudary, that she
might go in the boat. We rode along the towing-path very pleasantly for
about twenty miles. Finding that Castelnaudary would be so much out of
the way, we then left the canal and rode across through Villefranche
and St. Felix to Revel, about twenty-two miles further. This water
scheme delayed us much, so that we did not reach Revel until seven or
eight at night, and it also lengthened our ride considerably.

The ordinary dinner at twelve, at the lock-house, was however,
entertaining, and partly made up for this; but, in truth, ladies should
learn on these occasions, when in such a state, to stay at home. We
expected a _malheur_ every hour, she was so fatigued.

On Thursday morning, after breakfast, we went three miles to Sorège,
to see the great college or school establishment there, which is about
three miles from Revel. It was formerly attached to a convent, and
a sort of Government military establishment. At the Revolution the
buildings were sold, and the present director and his brother, who
was one of the professors of the old establishment, bought the whole,
and undertook to continue, and, as they say, to improve the plan as a
private specution. There are now about three hundred boys, from eight
to nineteen, or even twenty-one years old. On the present arrangement,
four hundred and forty is the limit. The number, it is said, once
amounted to nearly six or seven hundred. There are now about thirty
Protestant boys. The rest are Catholics. Most of the Spanish boys, once
very numerous, left the school during the late war. This peace, it is
supposed, will bring them back, even in greater numbers. English boys
are also expected to come again, as formerly.

The building is very spacious, and is prettily situated, under the
side of a mountainous tract of country, at the head of a valley. The
accommodation is very ample, and the order and arrangement very great;
though, in my opinion, it is less cleanly than the college at Aire. The
studies are more varied; and the whole is complete in itself; for there
is a priest, a doctor, an Italian professor of mineralogy, anatomy,
a riding-master, and teachers of all kinds. The regular studies for
all the boys are French, Latin, a little Greek, mathematics to some
extent, dancing, swimming, drawing from models and casts, perspective,
drawing from anatomical study, fortification, &c.; and for the upper
boys, riding—for which purpose about sixteen horses are at the disposal
of the riding-master. In addition to this, every boy has his own
bedstead of iron; and all the two upper classes of the three into
which the whole school is divided have separate places to sleep in.
Every boy, at a certain time, either follows in his studies the choice
of his parents, or his own inclination, and may learn Italian, German,
English, Spanish, or any musical instrument; even the pianoforte. The
drawing-school is hung round with the approved productions of the boys,
and is spacious, and so is the riding-school. There is also a theatre,
regularly fitted up, in which the boys recite, and act plays and
perform concerts; asking the neighbours to come and form an audience.
The establishment also contains a small botanical garden, a tolerable
collection of mineralogy, and a piece of water for the purpose of
swimming. The boys were all in uniform, and looked healthy and well. As
they come from all quarters, it is usual to leave them there all the
year round, and this is rather expected and desired. They come clothed
at first, but afterwards everything is found them, and the parents
have nothing to do but to pay _mille francs_, about 45_l._ or 50_l._,
annually, and no bills or extras of any kind are ever sent or charged,
whatever may be learnt by the boys: this is rather dearer than at Aire
or St. Sever, I believe, but not much, when all circumstances are
considered.

We found the schoolmasters consequential and prosy, as they usually
are with us. The Italian, who was more particularly so, was formerly
the professor who managed the Grand Duke of Tuscany’s collection. This
education would, I think, suit many an orphan or natural son destined
for the English army, and with small means. He would join his regiment
at eighteen, with much more useful knowledge than could be obtained for
the same money in England, as to languages, &c., and much information
useful to a military man. He would also come away, with at least one
or two accomplishments probably, by which he might amuse himself in
country-quarters, and be kept out of mischief. It might also answer
for mercantile men, merchants, clerks, &c., though, perhaps, some of
these pursuits would only make them idle. Most of the boys are destined
for merchants or soldiers, I understood. For other professions,
probably, we have as good, or better, and as cheap an education in
Yorkshire, and other places in England. This sort of education accounts
for the general distribution of a certain extent of acquirement which
we see amongst the French officers, and for the advantages they possess
as to the power of self-amusement. When prisoners of war, they have a
smattering of drawing, dancing, singing, music, acting, &c.

We then went to the basin of St. Feriol. On our way I rode up a valley
to see some foundries of copper, which were much talked of; only one
of a number was at work, as times were so bad. I found the copper was
Swedish, and only worked there on account of the facilities of wood and
water to work the bellows and anvil. The work in which the men were
then engaged, was making saucepans and pots, and stewing-pans for the
Toulouse ships, and on a very small scale. I always like to ascertain
that there is nothing to see when a sight is talked of. We went then
over the hill to the basin.

The extent of this basin rather surprised me; but though it was almost
exactly what I expected to find it, I was very glad to have seen it.
The shape of the ground, and course of the stream, were particularly
fortunate and well adapted to the plan, and the great dam or dyke,
which pens back the water, so as to form a small lake, in depth, near
the wall, from fifty to sixty feet, is a noble work. It consists of
three main walls, well _terrassed_ or puddled between each, and with
two large arched vaults, one quite at the bottom, covering the natural
bed of the river; the other higher up, and leading to the _robinets_
or great cocks, which let out the water as required. The river coming
down the valley fills the basin, not being able to find its vent, and
therefore spreading over the ground, and filling all the hollows up
to the dam wall, which is about sixty feet high. The banks, except
the natural dam, are the natural shape of the ground, and there is
no excavation at all. When full, the water as required is let out by
a hatch, and so runs by into the stream, which conducts it, after
about ten miles circuit, to the highest point of the canal, whence
the locks descend both ways to Toulouse, and to the Mediterranean.
It then supplies both. When the basin is low, the next opening is a
sort of hatch or floodgate, lower down in the wall; when lower still,
the water is let off by three great _robinets_ or cocks at the end of
the _voute_, about thirty feet or so below the surface. When these
are opened, the rushing of the water makes a tremendous noise, at a
distance like that of thunder. When it is required to empty or clean
the basin, the river is turned off, and the contents of the basin empty
themselves in the original bed of the stream: the contents of the basin
are, in my opinion, six millions of tons of water. There is another
smaller basin, about ten miles higher up, in the mountains, and another
near the canal, whence the stream enters it.

The whole seems well managed. The canal itself is kept in great order,
like our New River, the banks trimmed, &c.; and in width it exceeds
even our Royal Canal in Ireland, probably by several yards.

With much delay and difficulty, we got Mrs. J—— through these sights,
after much unnecessary alarm and fright in the vaults. We returned
about five to dinner at Revel, where we slept again yesterday. We had
a hot ride home through Caraman and Lentar, about thirty-two miles.
The country round the canal and in the bottoms is rich and fertile,
but it contains little wood. It is like some of our Somersetshire
and Dorsetshire valleys, but more covered with villas and chateaux,
and villages. The road back, by Caraman, is through a much poorer
country, but also like the higher bad parts of Somersetshire, and that
neighbourhood—such as near Chard and the hills round Bath.

The villages seem in a state of decay, and the inhabitants poor, but
the country upon the whole is in much better condition, in point of
cultivation and appearance, than one could suppose after what has
passed in the last twenty years. In one or two out-of-the-way places
we were stared at, and followed like monsters or sights, but were
everywhere well received by the people. At Sorège some French cavalry
was quartered; but they were nearly all gone to the grand review before
the Duke d’Angoulême. I should like to have been there also; but we
understood it would not be liked, and that the Duke was to go without
English altogether: this was quite right. I am told that the review
went off well, and that Soult himself set a good example.

It is strange to think of our carrying off Bonaparte in a frigate; and
his conversation with Augereau is curious after the address of the
latter to his men. King Joseph is gone off and escaped; but no one need
be much afraid of him now.

The style of nearly all the French chateaux is similar; all front and
appearance.

On my return yesterday I dined with Mr. B—— and his French hosts, for I
scarcely know whose dinner it was; I believe a joint effort. The wines
were the patron’s, and very good. He is a man of fortune, a Monsieur de
T——, and speaks English tolerably. The wife is a pleasing woman, and
rather good-looking and young. They were very civil, and she sang and
played in the evening very fairly. At least she had much execution and
dash, if not feeling, in her playing. Like most of our young female
players, she left out all the andantes and slow passages.

The furniture of the two or three rooms in which she lived was very
splendid. Handsome carpets were alone wanting to make her own room in
particular an elegant fine lady’s drawing-room in England. In some
respects, particularly as to the gilding, there was both more show and
taste than generally are seen with us. The pianoforte was particularly
handsome; it was by Erard of Paris, and, though only a small one, cost
a hundred louis d’or. The whole content of her room cost, it is said, a
thousand louis d’or.

In the variety and materials of the ladies’ dresses here, there seems
to be also a very considerable degree of luxury—more perhaps than with
us.

We are now very dull, and as the Prince is still absent, do not
even hear the “_Vive le Roi!_” or “_Vivent les Bourbons!_” &c., as
usual. I was much amused yesterday at seeing pasted up at a country
inn, a halfpenny print of the royal Duke d’Angoulême in his best, on
horseback, and surrounded by a copy of most loyal verses singing his
praises and those of the Bourbons, and the English, in the measure, and
going to the music of the famous Marseillais hymn; in short, a sort of
parody of that song, beginning “_Allons enfans de la Garonne_,” &c.
What changes!




CHAPTER XXVIII.

 Toulouse—Mr. Macarthy’s Library—The Marquess of Buckingham—General
 Hope—Wellington’s Dukedom—The Theatre—A Romantic Story—Feeling towards
 the English—The Duke on the Russian Cavalry.


  Head-Quarters, Toulouse,
  May 11, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——.

The very small number of sights which this town affords being
exhausted, and Lord Wellington being still absent, we are in truth
more dull than we should be in a country town in England. The only
interesting subject of conversation now is, who goes to America, and
who does not? Some of the regiments move to-day towards Bordeaux from
hence for the purpose of embarking upon this new expedition, which I
should think would all end in a mere demonstration. Lord Wellington is
expected here to-morrow, and we shall then know what is to happen; and
head-quarters will, I conclude, move immediately.

I have heard nothing since my last, and seen but one thing worth
mentioning, and that is, Mr. Macarthy’s library, which the old father
and grandfather have been sixty years collecting, and which is now to
be sold on the father’s death for the benefit of the widow and nine
children. This is the library for which the Duke of Devonshire offered
25,000_l._ sterling as it stands; but the bargain was never closed, as
he wished the whole to be embarked at the risk of the owner, and they
wanted to have the money for it as it stands here, to be moved by the
purchaser. The owner now talks of sending it to Paris, and having a
public sale there by auction, thinking that emperors and kings will
then bid against the Duke of Devonshire, Earl Spencer, and others of
our book-loving nobles.

It contains a considerable number of fine copies of “Principes
editiones,” filling one side of a large room all upon vellum. There is
also Cardinal Ximenes’ polyglot edition of the Bible; his own copy—the
only one on vellum; and a number of valuable books and some fine MSS.
Amongst the rest is the first printed edition of the Psalms in 1457, of
which we are told the only other perfect copy is in our king’s (George
the Third’s) library; that Lord Spencer had only an imperfect copy,
and that twelve thousand francs had been already offered for this one
volume! So the world goes! This sum would furnish a handsome set of
all the best French authors, and amusement for life; but many, you
find, prefer a single black-letter volume, which one must go to school
again to learn to read, and which, indeed, looks like a child’s great
black-letter spelling book, or the books among the giant friends of
Gulliver. A single page as a specimen would be as good to me as the
whole, and thus five hundred curiosos would be gratified for a few
guineas a-head; or a lottery would be still better—fifty pages for the
highest prize, and a few lines for every one; no blanks! There would be
another advantage in this, that it would be employment for some worthy
collector for half his life to reassemble all the parts and put the
book together again.

The Marquess of Buckingham has been here, and is now going to Tarbes
and Barege, and then returns to see our great man. We hear the latter
was at the review at Paris in his blue coat and round hat. This is
quite like him, and upon a good principle; the marshals, the public
functionaries, the kings and the emperors, would have outdone anything
he could have put on except this.

I am sorry not to have returned from Revel through Castelnaudary. Some
of the officers did so, and by that means fell in with a division of
the French army. The French officers were very civil, but told the same
story—“If the Emperor had not deserted us, we never would have deserted
him; and the men are of the same opinion; but as it was, there was
nothing else to be done.” Colonels B—— and C—— went over to the second
review at Montauban, where the Duke d’Angoulême reviewed Count Reille’s
corps—two divisions. If I had known this had been permitted, I should
have been very curious to be of the party. The men, it is said, were
well equipped and in high order. The officers in general looked very
shabby and unlike gentlemen.

Suchet was smiling and in high good humour, and very fine as he was
here. Soult was only to be distinguished by a most enormous hat, and by
a surly look, which is described as unpleasantly penetrating, and more
bespeaking talent than amiability. He took little notice of the English
officers, but the aides-de-camp and staff officers, both belonging to
Soult and to the other Generals, did so when they learnt who they were,
and appeared very earnest in their attentions and civilities. They went
there in a carriage, but were splendidly mounted immediately; Colonel
—— on Count Erlar’s led and caparisoned charger.

_Thursday, 12th._—Lord Wellington not having yet returned, and of
course nothing positive being known as to our destination, we have only
those passing reports which the military men call “shaves.”

General Hope is, I fear, likely to suffer long from his wounds. He has
astonished the Generals at Bayonne by making three of them presents
each of an English horse out of his stud. It is an odd circumstance,
but I believe true, that the sort of notice we had of an intended
sortie by the enemy at Bayonne, which was given by a deserter just
before it took place, only did us mischief. The out-picquets were
doubled, and as no picquets could stand the rush of four or five
thousand men, we only lost so many more prisoners by this. The men were
alarmed with the expectation of such an attack. The only fault spoken
of in this business was the abandonment of the church of St. Etienne,
which might and ought to have been maintained. The fifth division were
but just on duty there, and scarcely knew their posts. General Hay met
the men running back from it, and was stopping and leading them on
again, telling them he would show them how to defend the church, when
he was killed. Some of the muskets of our men were found there, broken
by the French, and thrown away unfired. An English officer, with about
twenty men, maintained himself in a house near the church the whole
time, though it was much less defensible than the church.

Our position there, close under the works, it is said, was liable to
such a sortie every night, and some well-informed persons wonder it
did not take place sooner. General Hope’s eager courage led him into a
situation where, I am told, no one could under ordinary circumstances
remain the shortest time without almost a certainty of destruction.
Even as it was, it is said that a party of Guards ought to have carried
him off, as at first only four Frenchmen were near him when his horse
fell, and the Guards then were close by. The French had made the
outworks of the citadel very strong; they must have been stormed first,
which would have cost us about twelve or fifteen thousand men. It
would then have taken sixteen days to establish batteries on the crest
of the glacis, the only possible way of breaching the citadel. The
garrison, who are now excessively bold, and who have demanded rations
for nineteen thousand two hundred men, say they should have even then
stood a storming twice—in the citadel, and again in the town at last.

Making all due allowance for this gasconading, it is quite as well to
have been saved the necessity of taking Bayonne. It would have taken
all our transports about sixteen days to bring up materials for four
days’ open trenches from Passages by land, and we must then, for the
remainder of the time, have trusted to the uncertainty of the water
communication. The object of the French sortie was supposed to be the
destruction of our three stores of fascines and gabions, &c., which
we had been six weeks and more cutting, collecting, and forming, and
for which purpose we had stripped the environs for near five miles
round the town. In that respect we were quite prepared for the whole
siege, and it is remarkable enough that we remained nearly all that
time sufficiently near the French works to form the first parallel,
and that without making works to protect ourselves, because doing so
would only have drawn down a fire which no works could have enabled us
to live under, and there was nothing to be done but to remain as quiet
as possible until the siege began. Had we withdrawn at all, the French
having seen the importance of the ground, which we got as it were
almost by accident, would have made it necessary to begin the siege
by the storming of the works they would soon have made there. Thus we
were obliged to keep what we had got, unless resolved to turn the whole
into blockade. The French engineers admire our bridge very much, and
say it will figure in military history; but their officers in general
in Bayonne have hitherto been very sulky, and we are yet by no means
friends. Very little accommodation is afforded us in any way.

We are infinitely obliged to Bonaparte for having lost his head, and
blundered as he did latterly, and suffered the Allies to enter Paris,
and put an end to the war. Had he succeeded at Paris, or had Soult
and Suchet united succeeded against us here, near the shores of the
Mediterranean, where our next conflict would have been, you would have
found, when a retreat became necessary, and that the French saw that
way out of their difficulties, instead of a return to royalty, that
we should have had the other party, and that a strong one, uppermost,
and a cry the other way, with parties in our rear. Thinking, as we do,
the French army, and a great part of the French nation, quite as much
responsible and to blame as Bonaparte, for a considerable portion of
the misery caused by France (for to effect this they were his willing
agents so long as it was out of France, and only deserted him when he
was in distress, and because his good fortune had left him, and by
no means from principle)—thinking this, their excess of loyalty only
disgusts us. Of course we are glad to promote it, but must despise the
majority of the Bourbon shouters—a few honourable individuals, and a
small party, of course, excepted.

_Friday, 13th May._—Lord Wellington not yet returned, and the late very
warm weather turned to a steady rain. The Paris papers of the 8th,
received this morning, make Lord Wellington ambassador in France, and a
Duke.

I was last night at the play to see _La Reine de Golconde_, an
opera, with some pretty music. I mention this merely on account of
a curious circumstance attending it. A French General, according to
the story, fights for the deposed Queen and restores her. The troops
of this French General and liberator were a part of the grenadier
company of our Scotch _sans culottes_ here in their own costume; and
as they marched past, commanded and headed by the French General in
the full costume of a general officer of Bonaparte’s army, the house
immediately applauded the English heroes. The sensations of the French
officers present must have been strange, and not very agreeable. These
Scotchmen are considered by all the inhabitants (particularly of the
town) as having had the principal share in their defeats in sight of
the town. The mutes, bearers, and others in the procession were all
English soldiers.

We have had no disturbances or quarrels here, and our officers seem all
to have behaved with considerable propriety; in short, the inhabitants
dread our departure, and the return of their own people. They say that
all order ceases, and all security, the moment our side of the line of
demarcation is passed. One furious old gentleman at the _café_ this
morning said publicly, that he thought the only regret was, that the
war had not lasted three months longer, to destroy the remainder of
the French brigands; and that as for Soult, he should have been sent
in here, that the women might cut pieces out of his flesh with their
scissors, and that he might afterwards have been executed publicly for
his conduct to this city.

_Saturday, Post-day._—Lord Wellington returned in the middle of the
night, and, having had a cold, that and the effects of his journey make
him look rather thin. He has been so taken up with business that I only
saw him for a moment. Report says that he leaves us again in a day or
two. I shall, if possible, ask leave, on our arrival at Bordeaux, to be
independent, and find my own way home: yet I believe it would be best
to go home with the army.

_Head-Quarters, Toulouse, May 21, 1814._—Immediately after my last,
Lord Wellington left us for Madrid. Nearly every one has quitted the
army; I mean the great men, generals, &c. We are reduced to a few quiet
parties and have no events to observe upon, and see no strangers to
write about; everything is tame and stupid and the weather growing hot
makes us languid and idle.

Lord Wellington, on his return here, was absolutely overwhelmed with
business, and every department was at work in a sort of confusion and
hurry that has never happened before.

On Sunday, the Duke gave a splendid ball and supper at the Prefêt’s
or Palais Royal, where everything went off much as usual. The ladies
dressed well, and danced admirably; and the supper was not a matter of
mere form with them. Their early dinners, and their greater exertion in
dancing, make them certainly more voracious than our fair ones.

On Monday, the Marquess of Buckingham returned, and was introduced
to his new cousin of Wellington. The latter seemed, I understand,
not a little surprised at being embraced and saluted on the cheek by
his new relative. He had not been in the habit of receiving those
embraces _à la mode Française_, and, I take it, prefers very much the
kind attentions of the fair ones here, with whom he is an universal
favourite.

On Monday the Marquess of Buckingham dined with him, as well as a large
party of French and English. I was of the number, and we all went to a
concert of very moderate music in the evening at the Capitolium. The
Duke at eight the next morning was off for Madrid. He intends to rejoin
us at Bordeaux, and then to return through Paris, and to be in London
about the 10th of June. This is a great deal too much, and I think
almost impossible. These exertions make him look thin and rather worn;
but he was very gay, and in excellent spirits whilst here.

The American party was all settled by him finally, and is all on
the road to Bordeaux, or now there. It will be of about nine or ten
thousand men, I should think, and strong in artillery. Our faithful
six 18-pounders, which have marched all the way from Lisbon since this
day twelvemonth! on roads which never have, I think, or will see such
animals again, were embarked yesterday on the Garonne, for Bordeaux, to
be of the party; and their little grand-children, the mountain guns,
go also. At first the expedition was by no means popular, but is now
tolerably so, and the staff appointments have been of course much in
request. Lord Fitzroy Somerset, who is the great manager of all this,
and prime minister, has been very busy, and we have all the intrigues
of a little court in miniature. Those who have been long here on the
staff, and with high brevet rank, will feel much a return to their
regimental duty and rank, and still more if their fate be half-pay? I
hear of nothing except all this, and the schemes to get provided for.
The regimental officers are those who like this new expedition the
least.

On seeing the Duke of Wellington the last time, I said, I concluded he
would wish me to go down to Bordeaux with the army. He answered, “Oh,
yes, you had better.” We are already almost without Generals. We shall
remain here, it is said, some days yet. The orders, however, are all
given for our movement as soon after we receive official news of the
garrison of Figueras having marched for France as possible. In the mean
time all wounded, &c., are moving now. The cavalry also are to set out
on their way overland to England as soon as the French Government have
finally agreed to that arrangement. I should not at all dislike to
march with this party. The Portuguese troops remain with the British
until the Commissaries can part entirely with the mule transport. They
then separate, taking all the mules and muleteers with them attached
to different regiments for rations, &c., and set out through Spain for
Portugal, a good three months’ trip, the weather growing warmer and
warmer all the way, to the great enjoyment, I conclude, of the natives.
At Almeida the muleteers have been promised to be paid all their
arrears.

The British from hence are to encamp near Bordeaux, ready to be off as
transports arrive. The Spaniards move out of France the first of all,
at the signal of Figueras, to the joy of all parties. The Guards and
troops at Bayonne are likely to be the last, for they are to remain
until all stores, wounded, &c., are clear out of the Adour and St. Jean
de Luz, &c. The people here will be very sorry to lose us, partly from
the loss of the money spent here, and partly from their dread of those
who will succeed us—their own countrymen.

I understand General Clausel was the only one of the French here who
admitted the truth that they were fairly beaten into taking their
King. The others feel it, but will not own it, and are very sulky in
consequence; and in general not civil to our officers. Some of the
French gens-d’armes are expected on Monday in this town to do duty, I
believe, to levy taxes, &c. It is to be hoped that this will not lead
to quarrels with our men.

The continuance of the _Droits réunis_ is very unpopular, and, in my
opinion, the effervescence of loyalty is somewhat subsiding already.
We all expect disturbances also in Spain. I hope the Duke will resign
his command, and have nothing to do with either party. It is said even
the armies are divided, and ours here (Frere’s) is for the Cortes.
What with Spain, Ireland, Norway, America, and perhaps the interior of
France, the world will after all, it is feared, not be in that state of
profound peace which was generally expected.

Yesterday and to-day I have received letters from you of the 3rd and
10th of May, and papers to the latter date, which contain precisely the
same news as those from London through Paris. There seems to be nothing
very important either way.

I have just got the papers relating to a most extraordinary story of a
murder at Lisbon. It is a most complete novel, and would be incredibly
romantic as such. A Commissary named R—— had an English girl (a lady)
who lived with him. Another Commissary named S——, his friend, had long
been living in the same house with him. After a time Mr. R—— conceived
that Mr. S—— was undermining the affections of the lady. He taxes her
with it, she confesses, and says she has promised to live with S——,
but swears nothing improper had ever passed. Mr. R—— persuades her to
give up this scheme, stating how dishonourably S—— had betrayed him,
his friend. He then tells this friend his discovery, and upbraids him.
S—— says that the lady has been faithless to R——, and is the betrayer.
R——, in despair, is going to quit the house, the lady, and the whole
connexion; but he previously repeats to her what Mr. S—— told him.
She solemnly denies it, and then goes out with S——. I should have
mentioned that the three had just before this conversation ridden out
together without speaking, and sat together at dinner without speaking
or eating. The explanation between R—— and the lady then took place,
immediately after which S—— and the lady went out of the house. Three
pistol-shots are heard. R—— goes into the garden, finds his mistress
shot dead. S—— ran by him into the house apparently wounded, his
handkerchief to his head. He forced his way to a table-drawer, took out
a razor, and cut his throat quite across. He still survived both wounds
when the account came away, and deliberately confesses in writing
that by the lady’s desire, by their joint consent and agreement, he
was to kill both; her first, and then himself. This he endeavoured to
accomplish, but in vain as to himself. Mr. R—— declines telling who the
lady is, except in a court of justice, in order to prevent unnecessary
pain to her friends in England.

I have been asked, “What is to be done?” and whether, if the delinquent
is mad, I thought that he must be tried for the murder? It surely was
very unfortunate that the poor man had not been left in the hands of
the Portuguese surgeons and doctors, who pronounced him a dead man, and
his wounds incurable. The skill of an English surgeon has unluckily
enabled this unhappy being to stand the chance of either being hung or
confined for life as a madman for the rest of his days.

_The 22nd, Post-day._—I send you, being dull myself, a part of a
_Gazette de France_, which paper I take in regularly. Some part of the
_Franc parleur_ is well done. The same feelings exist here in the army.
Were I a French officer I should feel in the same way.

We have now rain, and the weather cooler again: hitherto it has not
been ever very unpleasantly hot, though at times above our summer heat,
and with rain and without sun at 69°.

You ask me in your last letter about religion and manners here? The
former seems again much what it was before the Revolution. The churches
are in general well attended, but principally (as the case is all over
the world, I believe,) by your sex in particular of all ages, by the
very old of both sexes, who go there to make their peace; and the very
young who are taken there by their older friends and relations. With
regard to manners, the old French memoirs would still, I think, apply
very tolerably to the description of their present state, except that
the same things are done and said with rather more coarseness perhaps
now than in old times.

Our cavalry have not moved yet, as the approval of the French
Government has not arrived. They are intended to move in two columns,
one up the Paris road, nearly through Cahors, &c.; the other more to
the left, through Angoulême, Poictiers, and to unite at a town on the
Seine.

_Head-Quarters, Toulouse, May 27th, 1814._—My new friends and
acquaintance fall off daily around me, and our party at head-quarters
is continually on the decline.

I am not a little amused with the Toulouse paper of yesterday. We,
the English, have been for these last six weeks praised to the skies,
and treated as, and called the deliverers of Toulouse city and its
inhabitants. Soult’s troops are now expected in here in a few days,
and the gens-d’armes have actually arrived. The Toulouse _Gazette_,
therefore, exhorts the inhabitants to receive with open arms and to
feast, and entertain those brave troops, whose courage and noble
conduct they witnessed on the hills, above this city, when fighting for
the defence of the inhabitants. They also assure the public, that the
statement in an early number of the _Gazette_, that Marshal Soult owed
the safety of his retreat to the clemency of Lord Wellington, under
whose guns the French troops filed off, was all an error and mistake
(as it certainly was), and that the retreat was in fact as secure as
the defence of the heights was noble and courageous. Had we had but
about five thousand more men up, to cross the canal at once, this might
have been another story. The _Gazette_ should have waited until we were
off.

I dined yesterday with a Monsieur Castellan, a gentleman of very good
fortune, and who, I understand, has a good house, pictures, library,
&c., at Paris, and lands in Normandy and elsewhere. He was formerly,
at the commencement of the Revolution, Attorney-general to the
Parliament of Toulouse, and on that account desired to be introduced
to me, and gave us an excellent dinner. In 1781, he was a man who
figured much here, and also in the English papers, on account of his
early resistance to the orders of the Court, and being imprisoned in
consequence. He was followed by all the inhabitants to his prison, and
released in a short time by the triumph of his own party. He seems to
be a good constitutionalist.

He mentioned several curious facts of Bonaparte’s tyranny, such as his
putting persons to death without trial, and without inquiry. Two of
these persons he knew in particular. They were chiefs of La Vendée.
When all the hopes of that party were gone, terms were offered to these
two men. One came in to sign them, when he was instantly shot. The
other, in consequence, remained concealed three years in Normandy. At
last he was told privately, that if he would retire from the country
quietly, a passport should be given to him. He agreed, received his
pass, and made for the coast; but when he arrived near the sea-side two
gens-d’armes shot him.

This made a noise; the Juge de Paix began a _procès verbal_, and the
Préfet was active in endeavouring to apprehend the soldiers. The Judge
and Préfet were not in the secret. Suddenly a senator came from Paris.
The Préfet was suspended from his office, and the Juge de Paix enjoined
at his peril not to stir a step in the business. Monsieur Castellan’s
servant acted as clerk in the _procès verbal_ which had commenced, and
the murder took place close to his estate in Normandy. He therefore, he
said, knew the facts.

Another story, for the truth of which he vouched, and which from
the circumstances appeared to be true, shows a little the state of
Napoleon’s court and their morals. A young cousin of Monsieur de
Castellan was the Emperor’s page—a very good-looking boy. At the
carnival he was dressed as a girl at the play, and one of the grand
chamberlains fell in love with him. The page continued the disguise and
the joke every night during the carnival, and was courted and fêted
with presents by the lover. At last the discovery was made, and the
mortified chamberlain stopped the boy’s promotion in consequence, under
the pretence that the page was ordered not to go to the play.

I wished very much to have had time during my visit to Monsieur
Castellan to look over a very curious collection of original letters
which he had in portfolios, and of which I looked at one or two only.
The most valuable were of the Valois family, and were numerous and
confidential, coming to M. Castellan through a great-uncle, and derived
from an ambassador of the family in Spain. There were several from
Catherine de Medicis, mostly about the marriage of her daughters with
the Spanish royal family, and which (as she had good occasion to do)
she always finished by desiring might be burnt as soon as read.

The eldest daughter was first sent, being intended for the son, Don
Carlos, but Philip the Second took a fancy to her, and though the son
was in love, married her. An intrigue was suspected with the son,
as the daughter was also in love with Don Carlos; the finale was,
as history records and romance writers have improved upon, that Don
Carlos and the lady suffered death. After this, and knowing, as she
must have done, the cause, or at least the reports of all suspected,
Catherine writes, saying that she must forget the mother in the Queen,
and proposes to make up a match between King Philip and her youngest
daughter. The writer desires the person addressed to get at the King’s
mistress and his confessor, and to secure them both as friends to her
plans. The remaining letters were those of eminent men, some from
Rousseau, Voltaire, &c., and appeared to contain nothing particularly
interesting.

A few days since I think I half made a convert of a fat silversmith’s
lady here, of whom I was purchasing some articles. She asked me if we
had a religion in England at all like theirs. I said, “Yes; very like.”
“But,” said she (and that weighed very much with her), “you do not use
these great silver cups, &c., in your country?” To this I replied,
“Indeed we do, and want them much larger than you do in France, for
with us we let every one taste that pleases of the wine, and you only
let the priests.” This rather staggered her, when the sale of the cups
and sacramental plate came into her head.

_May 28th, Saturday, Post-day._—Our cavalry have at last got leave
to pass through France, and will commence their route on the 1st of
June. It is probable that we shall move soon after. I have this moment
received a packet from you, with papers and enclosures to the 16th,
and having your letter now before me, will go through it in answer.
The alarms you mention about the quarrels between the Allies, and
the French, and the army, and the National Guards, seem to have been
principally of English invention. We have heard little of this matter
here, though I have no doubt that the French officers and soldiers are
vexed and mortified, and as the Irish say sometimes, they would easily
“pick a quarrel” just now, when they meet with any occasion. There is
the same feeling here, only hitherto scarcely any officers of the army
have arrived.

I witnessed last Sunday a quarrel between a gend’arme and a
garde-urbaine, about cutting off some acacia blossoms in the public
walk. The latter was disarmed at last, after a scuffle and fight, in
which, from the noise and confusion, you would have supposed several
limbs and lives would have been lost (as would have been the case in
half the time in England), but in which in reality no one seemed to
come out the worse. The gend’arme, however, was very neatly beaten at
last, as two of the garde-urbaine overtook him again, and whilst one
tried to wrest the conquered sword back again, the other cut the belt
of the gend’arme, by which his own sword fell, and in recovering that
he lost the trophy, with which the two lads made off in triumph.

An officer of the French regular army who was here by accident a few
days since, saw the caricature of Bonaparte in a window, the face
made up of “_victimes_,” with the cobwebs, &c., introduced, which I
conclude you have seen. He entered the shop in a rage, and desired the
shopman to take it from the window, threatening to cut him down if he
refused. It has not appeared in the window since, and the man when now
asked for the print by an Englishman or Royalist, says, “They are all
sold.”

The Duke of Wellington’s misfortune from the Cossack charge I have
not heard of here. He came back most highly admiring and praising the
Russian cavalry as in appearance the best in Europe, and saying there
was scarcely a private horse in the regiment he saw for which a short
time ago we should not willingly have given a hundred and fifty or
two hundred guineas in Spain. The draught and artillery horses, also,
though very small, and unlike those of the cavalry, he thought had
great appearance of hardiness and activity. Some of your other stories
concerning us here are really, in my opinion, mere inventions.

By-the-by, what inventions and scandal we shall have now to fill the
newspapers and afford conversation for all our idlers! As soon as peace
is signed, they will have little else but that to live upon; whilst the
politician must pore over all the debates of the multiplied popular
assemblies in modern Europe, which will all be aping our House of
Commons.

Our clergy here were ten days ago praying for rain, and they have not
sued in vain, for we have had it for this week in showers only, and in
the English fashion, not like our mountain and St. Jean de Luz rain.
We have also had tremendous storms of wind, which were not prayed
for; and more than that, a bit of an earthquake, felt principally at
Pau and in that vicinity, but, it is said, by some perceived here. It
is not surprising that old Mother Earth should just at first shake
a little at all that has passed lately; but I hope she will take it
quietly, and be as peaceably inclined as her inhabitants now are.
The recovery of the balance of Europe will be a fine subject for an
essay. This superiority over the ancient associated states of Greece,
which when once upset never could right themselves again, is a matter
of considerable triumph for the moderns, and promises to check for
some time another age of barbarism. I should say that one great cause
of this has been the more general diffusion of knowledge amongst the
middling classes. Public opinion and more fixed principles of the
advantages of independence, have got the better at last of a system of
universal tyranny of the most ingenious and complicated nature, and
extending to every individual, and every hole and corner within its
clutches. I must now seal up for the post.




CHAPTER XXIX.

 Preparations for Departure—Bordeaux—Imposition on the
 English—Greetings from the Women—Mausoleum of Louis XVI.


  Wednesday, June 1, 1814.
  Toulouse.

  MY DEAR M——,

Here we are still, but on the point of moving. The orders are actually
out, and our route fixed. We start on Saturday, the 4th of June, I
suspect on purpose to avoid festivities on that day. On the 10th we
hope to be at Bordeaux: 4th, Isle en Jourdain; 5th, Auch; 6th, Condom;
7th, halt; 8th, Castel Jelous; 9th, Langon; 10th, Bordeaux. This will
be sharp work for loaded mules, and warm for us all, for the weather is
now clearing up, and promises to be hot again.

I am tired of Toulouse, and not sorry to leave it, though the
inhabitants continue to be civil and friendly. So indeed they ought
to be, as they have made no little money out of us, and have been
continually entertained by balls, &c. Since the Duke has been away
we have had three balls given by the Adjutant-general, General Byng,
and by the aides-de-camp. At last I was, by accident, introduced to
a Madame de Vaudreuil. She was it turns out, wife to the son of the
old admiral, our _emigré_ Marquis in England, and your cousin. I was
then introduced to the husband, and we had some conversation on family
matters. He mentioned his nephew, the aide-de-camp in Ireland, and
inquired much after the Hochepieds, &c. To-morrow I am to breakfast
with them, and you shall hear more. He is a little man, but high, and
in repute here.

No events of any consequence have occurred. The only thing at all
worth mentioning which I can recollect is a trait of the conduct of
the French lower officers of Soult’s army. Two of the officers of the
43rd British rode towards Montauban a few days since, out of their own
limits, without a passport. This, though foolish just now, was a venial
offence, and committed by many French, who come in here within our line
of demarcation. On a bridge near the town our two gentlemen were met by
about eight or ten, not gentlemen, but officers of the French garrison
there. The latter immediately attacked the two British officers rudely,
told them that they ought to know better their own limits, and added
at last that if they intended to come again, they advised them to come
with their coats off, sleeves turned up, and swords drawn. One man
actually went so far as to come behind one of our officers to knock his
hat off, that he might get out the white cockade; in short, the two
Englishmen were obliged to yield and return back.

An apology was, it is said, sent in to our General, from the commanding
officer at Montauban, stating that he was sorry for what had happened,
and hoping we would consider it as the act of some _mauvais sujets_
in the lower commissioned ranks of the army, and not the act of, or
sanctioned by, the garrison in general. I believe, however, that it is
intended still to make some remonstrance on the subject.

Dr. Macgregor has returned here, delighted with his trip to Montpelier,
Avignon, Nismes, Valence, &c. He was received most cordially
everywhere, and at some places quite enthusiastically. Almost at every
place, he fell in with fêtes and entertainments in consequence of the
late changes, and the whole country was covered with conscripts and
deserters going home: he thinks he must have seen from ten to fifteen
thousand. Everywhere, he found much jealousy between the military, the
national guards, and the civilians, as is the case here. There were
several quarrels in consequence. At the playhouse at Montpelier the
applause was so violent at a new popular piece called “The Conscript,”
that a French General, who was there with his suite, conceived it a
marked insult to himself and rose to leave the house, but was persuaded
to remain.

The Society of Medicine at Montpelier made the Doctor a member, with
such fine speeches, that even though he only half understood them, they
raised his blushes.

_Friday, June 3rd._—In the midst of the bustle and confusion of my
preparations for the march of to-morrow, I received this day your
letter and papers to the 24th of May. I had just been reading in
to-day’s French paper London news of the same date, so that, even this
late mail, of only nine or ten days from London, brought us nothing
new politically from England. The details, however, and private news
are always interesting. I shall have more occasion for them as I am
going the road on this (the Toulouse) side of the Garonne, instead
of our military route, and shall be nearly, if not quite, alone,
for almost every other person who goes this way intends to travel
post, or ride faster than would suit me this warm weather. This road
is said to be by far the most picturesque, rich, and amusing; and,
having a passport ready, I mean to start at five to-morrow. My route
is through Grisolles, Castel Sarazin, Monteil, Moissac, Agen, Port
St. Marie (where I shall try and see our _emigré_ friend, the Baron
de Trenqueléon), Tomeirs, Reolle; then, if necessary, cross the river
to Langon, but if not, keep the right bank, opposite Bordeaux. I have
sent my baggage and Henry on in the line of march, and only take a
Portuguese _ci-devant_ servant to the Prince of Orange, and now mine,
on a pony, with a small valise, and intend to trust to the inns for
everything. Thus I shall avoid troops, and nearly all places through
which they have passed.

The last detachment of cavalry will leave this to-morrow, to start
to Grisolles and Montauban on Sunday. The Hussars in advance leave
Montauban to-day. The last infantry will move from hence on Sunday; and
the whole infantry from hence will be assembled at Bordeaux (excepting
what may be embarked) by the 17th of June. The last Portuguese will
pass Bayonne about the 23rd; and then the Guards and troops there will
be at liberty to move—not before. The Spaniards are nearly all out of
the country already!

Sir W. W. Wynne has been here these last five or six days, to succeed
the Marquess of Buckingham; they are specimens of what are considered
our greatest peers and commoners. The people here stare at them, and
look strange. The inhabitants are seriously sorry for our departure,
I really believe. We had a sort of farewell party at the Duke’s house
yesterday, given by Colonel C. Campbell, of all the great men here:
we dined, then went to the play, and then to the ball. Some of our
Generals are so pleased that they talk seriously of returning here
after peace is signed, and they have laid by their laurels in England.
Having so many things to do, I must now end this, and leave it to go by
the post, for I shall be away from head-quarters, and the regular post,
perhaps, next mail. Do not be surprised if you do not hear again very
soon. On my arrival at Bordeaux I shall endeavour to write immediately,
and let you know my plans.

_Head-Quarters, Bordeaux, June 13th, 1814._—On Saturday (11th), I sent
you a few hasty lines, I will now try and fill up the interval from
Toulouse here, with an account of my proceedings during that time.

After a tremendous thunder-storm, at six in the morning of the 4th
of June, I started along the rich plain in which Toulouse stands, and
proceeded through Grisolles, and a number of small places, to Castle
Sarazin; but not liking the appearance of the latter, I went on to
Moissac, which is just across the Tarn, at which place the plain
ceases, and the road becomes hilly.

The distance was about forty-five miles to Moissac; the country all
rich and fertile, but much too bare of wood, and the road is tiresome
from its uniformly level character. The river ran the whole way, about
half a mile from the road, and the opposite bank being high, bounded
the view on that side, and formed a picturesque object, though not the
most profitable, for the soil seemed less rich. The flat lands must be
subject to great losses and damage from floods, as there is no fall for
the sudden torrents which descend. The corn in many places had suffered
much this year.

At Grisolles, I passed the last of the cavalry (the Blues) on their
way home. The Life Guards entered Montauban with laurels. The Préfet
immediately told the commanding officer, that he understood his men
were come into the town in a triumphant manner, and seemed much vexed,
until reminded that it was the 4th of June, when he became civil,
and admitted the validity of the reason. On stopping at the village
of Fignan, to give my horses some corn, I was very glad to find the
inhabitants regretting the departure of the Portuguese regiment which
had been quartered there, as they had behaved so well. They told me
the people cried when they crossed the water, and the next day so many
soldiers came back to take another farewell of their new friends, that
the officers were compelled to place a guard to prevent it.

The Tarn at Moissac was wide, and the current very strong. The passage
by the ferry, a troublesome one, backwards and forwards, through
the remains of the ruined buttresses of an old bridge. On landing I
asked for the Commandant or French General. There had been unpleasant
altercations of late near that place and neighbourhood. The officer
of whom I inquired pointed to General Key, the late governor of St.
Sebastian, who happened to be near. I announced myself to him, and was
received civilly by him, and then immediately went to the inn.

The only sights noticeable in the town are a great water-mill in the
river, with about twenty-four pair of mill-stones, and a number of
establishments for purifying wheat and preparing flour. These last
were on a large scale, but without machinery of any ingenuity, and one
steam-engine would have saved them nearly all their labour, which was
great. The country round is famous as a corn country, and Moissac was
once a great place of export for flour and wheat by the canal, &c., of
Toulouse, to Montpelier, and by the Tarn and Garonne to Bordeaux, and
thence to the French islands and foreign settlements. The inhabitants
wished much to begin dealing with the English; but I told them that our
Parliament was about to prevent that taking place.

There is a curious old church at Moissac with many carved grotesque
figures at the entrance. The style is nearly the old English, but in
some places, the early Gothic. The accommodation at the inns is very
good; but the joke of Milord Anglois has commenced, and is increasing
fast. We were all _mon Commandant_ and _mon Général_; and paid
accordingly.

The next day, on leaving Moissac, I ascended a long hill, and continued
on rich high ground above the river, in a country of cultivated,
undulating scenery, with more wood, somewhat resembling Devonshire or
Somersetshire, with the exception of the want of hedges. This continued
about seven miles, when I came down again, having a fine view of the
river, and continued my way along the banks over a rich flat through
several villages and small towns to Agen, about thirty-four miles from
Moissac. The valley was here much narrower and varied than that at
Toulouse, bounded on both sides by gentle hills, cultivated and rich,
as well as apparently populous, along the whole way. The French troops
were in cantonments in every village, and in general looked very sulky.
A few touched their caps to me, as I was in my scarlet uniform; but
most looked sulky and took no notice. I was, however, never insulted.
The cries of the children all the way, and often of the country-women,
and sometimes of the men, of _vivent les Anglois!_ certainly did not
contribute to put their soldiers and officers in better humour. If so
disposed, I could easily, as the Irish say, “have picked a quarrel.”

At Agen all was gaiety and bustle. It was the Sunday before their
great fair; and all was preparing for that, as well as for the service
which was to take place in the great church the next day for Louis
XVI., the Queen, &c. I immediately went to the Commandant of the town.
He was civil, but the numerous officers looked very much disposed to
be impertinent, if occasion should offer. The eager curiosity of the
townspeople to see the English, and to be civil, was very pleasing;
every one seemed anxious to show some attention. Here I fell in with
Dr. M—— and Mr. and Mrs. J——, and after dining together, we went to the
play.

It was a little narrow theatre, but almost new, and very clean and
neat. The performances were not despicable. There was a good-looking
singer, with no bad voice, from Bordeaux. In the character she acted
much happened to be said of her innocence and inexperience. From the
constant joking this gave rise to in the audience, and from some very
prominent feature in her person, I conclude that she had lately been
under the necessity of retiring from Bordeaux, from some little _faux
pas_. And this, I was told afterwards, was the case.

Agen is an old and rather shabby town of about ten or eleven thousand
inhabitants; but the walks and country around it are picturesque.
The next morning I staid until after the ceremony had commenced in
the church, and peeped in, to see what was going on, and whether the
military attended. Many of the latter did so, with crape round their
arms. I was immediately admitted without a ticket; and the old priests,
several of whom had been _émigrés_, and spoke a little English, were
very civil to me. About twenty milliners had made really a very elegant
linen and crape mausoleum for the occasion, nearly twenty feet high.
Four fluted pillars, one at each corner, were made of fine white linen,
the festoons round the base were of black and white crape, urns on the
pillars, and other ornaments of the same. About a hundred and fifty
wax candles were arranged up the steps on every side of the tomb, and
above it were lilies springing fresh from the centre, and the crown, in
elegant crape, suspended above the whole.

About ten o’clock I started again to find out the Baron de Trenqueléon
at Port St. Marie, which was about twelve miles from Agen. On inquiry
at the inn, I found a friend of his son’s who had left him only a few
hours before. I, therefore, determined to cross the river again, in
order to pay him a visit, and to stay there the night. Trenqueléon
Chateau is about five miles from Port St. Marie, on the road thence to
Nerac, on the side of the hills which enclose the valley in which the
Garonne descends. It is old-fashioned, in the style of the Tuileries,
and apparently large. In reality, it does not contain much room, but is
a comfortable place.

Except two higher wings, it is, in fact, only a ground-floor house.
The rooms are lofty, spacious, and decently furnished for a French
house in the country. There is a great square garden in front, like a
wilderness full of weeds, with a square plantation and straight walks.
The roads run about two hundred yards from it on one side, and a small
river navigable for boats on the other, which runs into the Garonne
about four miles below. This would be convenient to export the produce,
if there were a market, which of late had been the case.

I found the old Baron feeble, without the use of his limbs, in a
great chair penned in like a child. He was surrounded by a large
party—his wife, his son, and his son’s wife, daughter to the _maire_
of Agen; an old lady, whom I took for the Baron’s sister; and five
young ladies, who called him “Papa.” One of these was in weeds, and
one about twenty-five or thirty; the rest young. One was a fresh,
ruddy, English-looking girl. All were most attentive and civil. The
old Baron made me repeatedly kiss him, and cried several times as he
conversed with me. He remembered all our friends in England during
his emigration. He was very anxious to know all I could tell him of
my brothers. He asked much after your sister and brother, and the
T—— family. His table was bad, but there was quantity, and a hearty
welcome. I was put into his uncle’s room, our old friend the Bishop
of Montpelier. His family seemed attentive to him, and, except at
meal times, seemed to live around him, some at work, some reading
the papers to him, and some sitting ready to talk, and with no other
occupation. The poor girls must lead a very dull life in the Chateau de
Trenqueléon, for from the state of the Baron’s health they do not go
out to balls or amusements even at Agen.

On the following morning I left Trenqueléon about twelve o’clock, and
crossed the river again at a ferry near Aiguillon, which is a pretty
town, small, but well situated. I got on to Tomeins that night. The
country continues to be the same rich valley the whole way, and is
very populous. Tomeins is a small ill-built town of perhaps about five
thousand inhabitants. There is nothing of interest in it, except a fine
sort of Richmond-terrace view from the public walk overhanging the
river. The women struck us as very pretty, and they were peculiarly
eager about “_les Anglois_” one or two calling out in English, as we
passed near the windows where they were, “How you do? how you do?”
&c., and then running away to hide themselves. And this came from
well-dressed girls in good houses.

On the 8th I proceeded through Marmande de la Reolle, to breakfast; and
then crossing the river again near Langon, I intended to stop at the
pretty village of Barsac, about five miles on this side Langon, where
the good wine of that name comes from. Finding all this part full of
our sixth division, just arrived, I was obliged to push on to Ceron, a
mere post stage and a poor inn.

On the 9th I proceeded to this place (Bordeaux), and arrived by one
o’clock, when my order to proceed to Tarragona (for the trial of Sir J.
Murray) was put into my hands. I found every one in the same hurry and
confusion as when the Duke paid us his last visit at Toulouse.

The country continued nearly the same until we got some way beyond
Barsac; we then began to skirt the Landes, and had only sand and firs,
a sort of Bagshot Heath, but still broken by frequent villages and
chateaux, which are very numerous around Bordeaux.

During my journey I always stopped at some small inn for a feed of corn
in the course of the way, and also during rain, which was frequent and
heavy. I gave the chance passengers their wine to make them talk. A
drunken Frenchman seemed much like an English one, and was sometimes
very entertaining; but the feeling of the soldiers was the most
curious. At one place I found two discharged soldiers going home on
leave; they said that they had been betrayed by their Generals, &c.,
and that the game was up, so they had applied for their discharges,
for they would not fight for the King. They had served seven or eight
years, and now intended to be quiet, though their wounds would not have
prevented their fighting for the Emperor. One had lost a finger only,
the other had received a knock in the leg, which rather made him halt a
little; they had both above sixteen months’ pay due to them, but said
that they concluded, of course, the King would never pay the Emperor’s
debts, and they were satisfied to be discharged without pensions. They
said that nine-tenths of the soldiers of the army would have remained
firm to the Emperor if their Generals had been faithful, and had agreed
in opinion with them; “_mais n’importe—c’est fini_.”

The Trenqueléon party told me, they were for some time in great
uneasiness, for we had no troops near them on the left bank of the
river, and on the right bank only came down to the river Lot. Thus Agen
was the centre of the formation of partisan corps who were to cross the
river near them, and scour the country to annoy us.

In three or four instances they succeeded in this; and the Commissioner
was issuing most violent orders to compel all persons to form their
corps immediately (these if caught by us would be hung), and to teach
the women also, to entice our soldiers into their houses by wine,
&c., to make them prisoners and kill them, and even to instruct their
children to cut the back sinews of the horses in the stables at night,
saying they must do as the Spaniards did by them in Spain.

The Baron’s family said they had different feelings, but would have
been compelled to do much of this had matters gone on. They also talked
with much horror of the state of terror in which they had been kept by
Bonaparte’s agents. One deputy Préfet some time since alarmed them by
quietly telling some of their neighbours (who told them again) that
they were in a terrible scrape, and had been detected corresponding
with the English. They went instantly to the Préfet to know what this
meant, and found it was one of my father’s letters about the Bishop of
Montpelier’s affairs, which had been stopped by the police. My father
was the Bishop’s executor in England. The Préfet afterwards told him
to be easy—“_ce n’étoit rien_.” The Baron seems to have been a popular
character in the neighbourhood.

_12th, later._—A mail goes to-day, and I have a pile of papers a foot
high to arrange by to-morrow. The Duke goes away and leaves the army
the day after, Wednesday the 14th, consequently all is a bustle of
business, balls, dinners, operas, plays, all proceeding at once. My
next will give you an account of this handsome town. I am in quarters
at Monsieur Emerigon’s, a barrister now at Paris, but daily expected
to return. The Duke has written strongly home to put off this intended
Court-martial at Tarragona; all here detest it, and grumble. The worst
is, that we are to remain here in suspense until an answer arrives.

I am writing without my coat, and so are all the Duke’s Secretaries,
&c., on account of the heat. The thermometer shut up in my writing-desk
is at 76°. The sun most ardent when out.




CHAPTER XXX.

 The Opera-house—The Cathedral—The Synagogue—A Jewish Wedding—Strange
 Show-house—Wellington and King Ferdinand.


  Head-quarters, Bordeaux,
  June 16, 1814.

  MY DEAR M——,

As I have no news to communicate, you must be satisfied with the best
account of Bordeaux which the excessive heat permits me to give you.
The Duke is gone for good, and we are left here in a state of dull, and
almost feverish uncertainty. Time slips away fast, however, and my fate
will soon be decided.

Before breakfast I take an hour’s ride to look about the town and
suburbs, and make my observations. The restaurateurs are so hot that I
prefer my own society and a mutton-chop with abundance of vegetables
and fruit, and my bottle of claret or Sauterne, to the incessant
dinners going on in public. My wine I get from the housekeeper of my
landlord, Monsieur Emerigon, the counsellor, as she in his absence
sells his produce for him—his wine, namely Sauterne Emerigon, which is
really very good, his pigeons, his ortolans, his poultry, his cherries,
his vegetables, &c. As he has not yet returned from Paris, I have
also taken possession of his _salle à manger_, and drawing-room, in
addition to my bedroom. I only now want to get into his library. He is
a royalist, and one of the commissioners sent from Bordeaux to Paris.

Bordeaux is a very handsome town, and very superior to Toulouse—as a
city indeed there is no comparison; still in my opinion there was more
_ton_ and fashion at Toulouse. The prosperity of the place was arrested
by the Revolution, when it was in a state of splendid commercial
prosperity, rapidly increasing in magnificence. Toulouse, on the
contrary, I take it, was even then on the decline. Another advantage
Bordeaux has, in addition to its having been laid out, like Bath,
with modern improvement as to the width of the streets, namely, the
convenience of stone quarries close at hand, instead of bricks to form
the buildings, and this with water carriage. It has besides a stone
somewhat similar to Portland stone, a complete Bath stone cut by the
saw and adze like that at Bath; and of course these advantages have not
been neglected by Frenchmen.

The Garonne is a noble river, not very much wider than the Thames at
London Bridge, but it appears deeper, and of more importance; the tide
occasionally reaches up as high as the neighbourhood of Langon. The
quays probably extend nearly two miles, and in general are well-built
and handsome, and the river just now full of shipping. The quays are
inferior to those at Lyons, and the few half-rotten ships on the stocks
in the spacious yard, show strongly the urgent necessity of what the
people did on the late occasion.

The Grand Theatre is a very handsome building, with a colonnade of
twelve pillars in front. The whole height of the building, with its
connexions of taverns, Exeter Change, &c., runs back to the river. In
its front is a square, with two handsome streets branching off right
and left. One has the double row of trees, in the foreign fashion,
in the centre, with paved carriage-roads outside, and is spacious,
ornamental, and useful. At the end of this is the other Theatre, de
la Gaieté, and that leads into a sort of wide avenue street planted
all the way, and nearly a mile long. On one side again of this is
the _ci-devant_ Champ de Mars, or Jardin Publique, a spacious public
planted walk. The town contains several other planted wide streets, and
a handsome Palais-Royal, _ci-devant_ Du Préfet. There is not any one
very handsome square, and upon the whole Brussels is to be preferred;
and it is a town probably nearly of the same size.

The Opera House is handsome in the inside, but dirty, and not well
contrived so as to hold the greatest numbers. It consists of twelve
large Corinthian pillars, which occupy much of the room; and all
the upper boxes are like baskets projecting between them, and only
two deep. The shape of the house is a flat horseshoe, and well
proportioned. The singing tolerably good; and the dancing by no means
despicable. Except perhaps one or two of our best, it is better than at
our London theatres. The dresses are rich and expensive. The reception
of our Duke was very gracious; and it was not a little curious to
hear “God save the King” sung constantly with “_Vive Henri IV.!_”
_A l’Anglois, à l’Anglois!_ was also a popular cry, and produced a
hornpipe tune, always attended with great acclamation, but what the
connexion was I cannot say. Some impudent sailors always called out
for “Rule Britannia,” but French _politesse_ could not go so far. Two
Americans would not pull off their hats one night to “God save the
King,” and were shouldered out of the house in consequence.

The upper boxes are entirely filled with very smartly dressed ladies
of a certain class, whose wardrobes have improved during the last two
months, I have no doubt, as much as that of the similar class of ladies
at Toulouse,—and the last was very visible. The Theatre de la Gaieté
is a sort of Sadler’s Wells, neither more elegant, nor more chaste.
The rope dancing is decidedly good. There is also a Musée here, as
well as at Toulouse, but much inferior. There are not half a dozen
original pictures of any tolerable master. The antique inscriptions
are very uninteresting, to me at least, and there were no antiques
affording pleasure to an artist or amateur. The collection of birds,
serpents, butterflies, minerals, &c., are tolerable, but only of the
second order. The library also appeared smaller and inferior to that at
Toulouse, but there were many more readers, which surprised me.

There is also a deaf and dumb establishment here similar to that at
Paris, and a very civil and apparently very intelligent master. I
stayed there two hours, to have a regular lesson of the principles
of the education illustrated by the female pupils, who were the most
forward. There were about seventy scholars, mainly supported by the
Government. The pupils were not quite so skilful as those at Paris,
but it is always an interesting exhibition. To find out what we were,
the teacher ingeniously made a pupil ask us what nation we were of,
and of what profession, and as all the deaf and dumb pupils rejoiced
in the answer, and seemed much pleased, I determined to keep up our
good character, and gave the damsels a Napoleon, for which I got much
dumb-show thanks in return.

The cathedral, or principal church, of St. André, is a good Gothic
building of about the second class, built by “_vos Messieurs les
Anglais_,” as we are instantly told. It is in one respect unfinished;
for both the north and south fronts are intended to have each two light
Gothic spires on the towers, whereas only one pair is built—the other
has been but just commenced. The pair that exist were some little
time since out of repair, and a part had fallen down. Bonaparte saw
this, and graciously said they must be put in order directly. The
Bourdelois were grateful, thinking he intended to have it done, but he
only ordered it, and a tax on the commune at the same time, to pay for
it. In the same way, as he came from Lyons to Bordeaux, he found the
road bad, and much out of repair: this he also ordered to be repaired
immediately; but an _impôt_ all along the communes on the road, beyond
the expense of the repairs, followed likewise as immediately. The
Préfet’s palace he also ordered to be put in complete order, and it was
just finished in time to receive the Duke d’Angoulême, which was not
quite according to the wishes and intentions of the said Bonaparte.

The Exchange at Bordeaux is a well-contrived handsome building, and the
square in the centre, roofed in with sky-lights, to form a convenient
place for the different walks. The cloisters round are full of shops,
jewellery, maps, &c.

_June 28th._—I have just returned from the synagogue, where I have been
these two hours. There are nearly two thousand Jews at Bordeaux. “It
is no wonder the Christians are well fleeced,” as my French companion
observed, “when there are two thousand persons in the town who impose
it upon themselves as a duty, and cheat for religion’s sake.” The
chapel is a new building, the style of architecture not good, being
a sort of imitation of Saxon, or rather of no particular order, but
the shape of the temple is excellent, the proportions good, and the
whole imposing. A colonnade formed by pillars runs all round, with a
gallery above for the women, who are separated from the men. The altar
at the end, with the ark of the covenant and the books of Moses, &c.
The branch in the centre; round this the reading-desks, with the rows
of lights for the priests, &c. The upper gallery is arched over like
Covent Garden, with a circular roof.

The Jews were very civil. The singing was tolerably good; the singing
boys, about twenty in number, in white surplices and sky-blue silk
sashes and scarfs, and bonnets, had a good effect, mixed with the
old priests in their hoods. The ceremony of producing the books of
Moses and returning them to the ark was the most imposing in point
of solemnity, and was attended by music; but what to me was the most
striking, was when at a certain period in the service called the
Benediction, every parent found immediately his son or grandson, or the
children their parents. In short, after a few moments’ bustle, you saw
every one, whatever his age, imposing his hooded head and hands on his
own offspring, and every generation thus at the same instant receiving
the benediction from his own parent respectively. This was really an
imposing scene.

The most truly Jewish part followed, for by solemn proclamation
every sacred office, namely, the opening of the ark, the drawing the
curtains, carrying the books, putting on the ornaments, reading out
of them when produced, the right of assisting in every part of the
ceremonies, was regularly put up to auction, and sold to the highest
bidder. The biddings were from one franc to three and five, and even
at times up to forty and fifty. As I was informed, these profits were
given to the poor. There was a little spoilt Jew child, about six years
old, for whom its papa had, I conclude, bought the privilege of placing
the silver ornaments on the tops of the wooden rollers of the vellum
Pentateuch, and the little creature seemed much pleased and excessively
proud of his office. On Wednesday next there is to be a wedding, and if
not engaged, it is my intention to be present.

The coffee-houses here, before we came, were very good, and are not
very dear. They are now so hot and crowded, and in such confusion that
I prefer my dinner solo. Being in a great measure fixed by _la carte_
as to prices, I believe we are less imposed upon at the restaurateurs
than anywhere else.

I rode out one day about four miles on the old Bayonne road, to see
a house and garden much talked of here, belonging to a Mons. R——, the
Portuguese Consul, a queer old man, who goes about in a scarlet uniform
like that of our former English Generals, and with a white-feathered
General’s hat. The grounds and gardens are large, and in the first
style of a Paddington tea-garden, with a mixture of Hawkstone nonsense
and Walsh Porter’s sham villages, &c. The house is nothing remarkable,
consisting of a number of rooms by no means good; not a single good
picture, only some bad indecent ones and very free prints. The most
ludicrous part was a regular inscription of “Library” over a door which
led to a little closet with one small set of book-shelves, containing a
dozen or two of great almanacs, and a few odd volumes of all sorts of
books, the whole in number about a hundred.

On the landing-place on the stairs is a negro, carved in wood, holding
a bottle and glass. The flower-garden—which is in the old style, is
tolerable. There are no good statues, but plenty of cut trees in all
shapes, temples, &c., the whole being an endeavour to make poor Nature
as little likely to know herself as possible. There were trees with
the stems in frames and the tops pointed. In the cut promenades in
the woods were tombs and wooden painted figures, of all sorts and
descriptions. There were dogs in their houses, the prodigal son feeding
swine, a mad lady half naked in a cage, &c. In another part of the
garden was a labyrinth, and a windmill with a wooden man looking out of
one window and a woman out of the other, and below these a wooden cow
and some sheep, goats, deer of the same material, grazing.

Strangers are admitted to survey this place on any day. The doors were
opened to about a dozen of us, and we were turned loose, without any
showman, into the house and grounds, and ranged about where we pleased.
On Sunday every one is admitted, and it is said there is much company.
The walks are cool, and it is not surprising that they are frequented.
The whole is one mode out of many of obtaining notoriety. An ingenious
way for preserving the flowers is by an inscription insinuating that
every flower is a transformed female. This would not, I fear, succeed
in England. The poor ladies would have many a pinch and squeeze, and
lose many a limb, if Kensington Gardens were full of such flowers, and
had no other protector.

_Sunday, 19th._—The embarkation of the troops is now going on with
more spirit. The fourth division are, I believe, all on board, if
not sailed, and everything is by degrees moving down towards the
camp at Blanquefort, and the place of embarkation, Pouillac, about
thirty-five miles below this. From the state of uncertainty in which
I remain I shall be one of the last, if I go at all, that is, whether
our Tarragona Court-martial is put an end to. All accounts which have
reached me agree with P——’s. I have thought all along that, with the
help and assistance of Bonaparte himself, who was our best ally,
almost the whole of what has happened has arisen, as it were, from the
peculiar state of the nations of Europe, and from a natural course of
events directed by Providence, and with which the Allies had nothing to
do, except not to prevent it by their blunders or quarrels.

We have various letters from Toulouse, to officers of the army, full of
regret for the loss of their English friends, and by no means satisfied
with the exchange for their own countrymen. The army is vexed at this,
and matters are worse, as they do nothing but grumble and quarrel in
consequence. The reception of the French troops when they entered, it
is said, was very flat and provoking. D’Armagnac, who was supposed to
have saved the town by advising Soult to be off, was sent in first,
with two thousand five hundred men, and he and his officers bowed and
were very anxious to court a cordial greeting; but the dull silence
was scarcely broken, and the French officers could not contain their
vexation and abuse in consequence. There was, I believe, more sincerity
in the professions of the Toulousians towards us, as far as the
majority was concerned, than is usual with Frenchmen, or than we could
reasonably have expected from them.

On the other hand, the accounts from the cavalry, of their treatment in
their march through France, is very different from ours at Toulouse:—in
this they all agree. The officers, trusting to French hospitality, have
left their own beds behind, and having had to bivouac almost as much
as in Spain, they have had a bad time of it. Several letters have come
from Mr. H——, who went with the column through Angoulême and Poictiers.
He has written from both these places. He says, “The inhabitants
profess openly that, as we chose to march through France, they will
try and make us repent of it. They scarcely give any quarters, send
the men leagues about out of the road, and only let the Commissary buy
his provisions on the road. At Angoulême, a town which might quarter
ten thousand men without inconvenience for a short time, they would
only suffer a few officers and the General in the town, and most
of those were quartered at inns. The General and one servant got a
billet at a private house, but he was to pay if he took more in with
him. The incivility is general; the doors were all shut against us.
The playhouse at Angoulême was empty the night it was known that our
officers would be there. Nothing to be had without paying.” This is the
same spirit of vexation as that in the army—a conviction that they have
been beaten, and that this march is a sort of proof and token of it.

_Head-Quarters, Bordeaux, June 26th, 1814._—My life has been every day
the same—a ride early, at work at home all the middle of the day, a
dinner generally solo, and another walk or ride in the evening, or, as
the weather has become cooler again, sometimes the play.

I have spoken to Colonel M—— about your friends who think of a removal
to the south of France, he having many connexions at Toulouse. He is
decidedly of opinion that that should be the place of abode, for a
family of ladies especially; I am rather disposed to be of the same
opinion. Pau, however, which I have not seen, is much recommended.
Supposing they fix on Toulouse, Colonel M—— says, of course, that
the house which they will require for comfort must be large, giving
them four rooms with _lits de maître_, and four beds for _filles de
chambres_, and about four other servants, and three good sitting rooms,
&c. He thinks such a house may be had for about eighteen hundred francs
a-year, that is, about 75_l._ a-year. I can assure them, that in point
of economy, all must depend upon their arrangements being made by some
French friends, and not by an English one. In house-rent, in wine,
in everything, an inhabitant will get articles at one-third of the
price demanded of the English. The French have no ideas of honesty or
moderation towards the English, and not much towards any one in matters
of trade. The extortion, and even the downright frauds committed,
especially on travellers, are quite disgraceful, and every tradesman
assists his neighbour in getting a job, and fleecing the _milords_.
I believe they are like the Jews, and have, from continual practice,
arrived at the same conclusion as the others from religion, namely,
that they are performing a duty when they cheat an Englishman.

There are two Protestant chapels here, and one excellent preacher, in
the style of a London chapel preacher, only extempore; I heard one very
eloquent French sermon delivered by him, with great propriety. The
service, the singing, and other parts of the duty, are but moderately
performed.

The courts of justice are much the same as at Toulouse, and about nine
or ten judges generally attend. I was unfortunately obliged to leave
Toulouse before their criminal sessions with a jury commenced, and on
my arrival here they were over. This takes place only once in three
months, unless something extraordinary or a great press of business
occurs. I attended a case of misdemeanor, a bad assault, in the
criminal court, but that was an appeal only, and being of the class of
_petits delits_, there never is a jury—but a president and five judges.
The same number presides when there is a jury, in more penal trials;
and in certain cases when the jury are divided, as for instance seven
against five, then the judges are called in to vote as jurymen, and the
proportion of votes required by law calculated on the whole numbers.
There was much unnecessary delay and argument in the case I heard. It
was like one of our worst-managed cases of motions for a new trial
on account of deficiency of evidence, which are always of the most
tiresome class.

_Post-day, June 27th._—I have been to the Jew’s wedding. The ceremony
consists principally of singing and drinking, and blessings in Hebrew.
There must be something Jewish, however, as usual, and that is
concerning the ring, which, as soon as it is produced, is shown round
to all the rabbies near, and some elders, &c., and to the sponsors, to
be sure it is really gold, or otherwise the marriage is void, and the
true old clothesman-like way in which they all spied at the ring was
very amusing. Nearly the last ceremony is the bridegroom’s smashing a
wine-glass in a plate on the floor, with an idea that he and his spouse
are then as difficult to separate as it would be to reunite the glass.
The gentleman showed gallantry by exerting all his force, and looking
most fiercely as he broke the glass.

I understand that the Duke of Wellington came back from Madrid with a
much better impression of King Ferdinand than when he went, thinking
that he showed talent, firmness, and character. The manner in which he
received the Duke may have somewhat disposed him to this favourable
judgment. I understand the King immediately treated the Duke as a
grandee of Spain, by shaking hands with him, and putting his hat on,
and that the king declared almost the only two acts of the Cortes,
which he approved of _in toto_, were those which made the Duke
commander of all the Spanish armies, and gave him the estate in the
South.

We have had news from our cavalry from the vicinity of Paris, from
Chartres; all the officers have deserted their regiments to see
Paris—that present wonder of wonders! They have occasionally lately
been better treated, that is, whenever they met with a Royalist patron
at their quarters. H—— says there seems to be two parties everywhere,
and it is a sort of lottery which they fall into the hands of; that,
when he wrote last from Chartres he had been “stuffed to death,” made
to eat three or four meals a-day, and to attend a party given on
purpose for him every evening: this, I conclude, was all a _douce_
violence.

Still no news as to our Tarragona plan. My patron, Monsieur Emerigon,
says, that at Paris the Emperor of Russia individually was the most
popular, except perhaps the English and our Duke; that the Russian
troops were not in such favour; the King of Prussia so-so. Blucher and
his troops better, but the Emperor of Austria the worst of all; and
every one must have observed the marked difference of his reception
from that of the other sovereigns.

I am to-day turned out of my room, which is the dining-room, as my
patron gives a dinner, to which he has asked me. I must not therefore
complain.

We have been paid up a good deal of money at this place, where the
quantity of gold and silver we have circulated is quite incredible.
Every one talks of it, and the piles and piles of empty money-boxes
of all sorts, and from all quarters, fully prove it. At present we
have immense quantities of French money, Napoleons and Louis, gold
and silver, from Paris, whilst, on the other hand, I am told that the
French are here buying up our guineas and Portuguese gold, to turn them
into Louis, as they have begun a new coinage both here and at Paris.




CHAPTER XXXI.

 Country Fêtes—Brawls with the French—The Duke d’Angoulême—Mademoiselle
 Georges—The Actress and the Emperor—French Acting and French
 Audiences—Presentation of a Sword to Lord Dalhousie—Georges’
 Benefit—Departure.


  Head-quarters, Bordeaux, July 4, 1814,
  Post-day.

  MY DEAR M——,

We have still had no instruction how to proceed, and are waiting the
determination in England. In the mean time I am being gradually stewed,
for the heat has again commenced, and is in full operation. My life
is quite retired and monotonous, and affords no incidents. The only
variety that has arisen is, that yesterday I dined at three o’clock
with my patron’s sister, a West Indian elderly single lady, and a
female party. I was the only beau, the brother was engaged; and in the
evening I rode over about three miles to Briges, a village, where they
were keeping an annual fête.

The crowd of country-people dancing and singing was very considerable,
and the road was covered with the lower class, going and returning. The
difference between this and our country fêtes seems to be, that there
was nothing to buy or sell, and but little eating and drinking going
on, the principal occupation being dancing and talking, laughing, and
parading about. It seems impossible to make such a people as the French
very unhappy in any way, however bad their government, except by the
conscription.

Those who are satisfied with salads, sour wine, dancing, and other
amusements entirety depending upon themselves and the meeting of the
two sexes, can only be disappointed and deprived of their happiness
by the removal of one sex altogether. Leave them alone, and they have
nearly all they wish. John Bull, on the contrary, wants many things
more to put him into the same state of joy and satisfaction.

Several of Marshal Soult’s officers have got into Bordeaux of late;
disputes and quarrels have been the consequence, but hitherto they
have been of no great moment. Every opportunity of seeking a row was
eagerly laid hold of by the French—a jostle on the stairs at the
theatre was sufficient. Lord Dalhousie, who is in command here now, has
been obliged to forbid any officer going to the Theatre de la Gaieté
where this was most likely to arise, and to order off every officer
not on duty here to camp. We have here now only the Guards and staff
officers. The inhabitants are all with us, particularly a set of very
fine-looking young men, but a little hot-headed, who compose the Duke
d’Angoulême’s guard of honour. They have been also insulted, and a few
days since paraded with bludgeons to see if this would be repeated
either against themselves or the English, and they determined to resist
either on the spot. No great harm has yet happened. As far as I can
learn, there have been about three fights, but none fatal.

A young Tyrolean, in the pay-office department, having been insulted,
watched and followed the offender home. He then went for his sword,
which we never wear (but the French always do), returned, and insisted
upon instant satisfaction. Upon this the Frenchman’s zeal began to
cool, but it was too late; the Tyrolean insisted upon his going out
into a backyard and fighting directly. He cut him across the face,
and was just about running his sword into his body, when a friend
interfered, and stopped him, saying that “he had done enough.”

Another Frenchman has been horsewhipped by an English officer, who,
when insulted, returned with his sword and whip, and offered the
Frenchman his choice, and as the latter persisted in asking for time,
he chose for him and gave him the whip. All this makes Lord Dalhousie
anxious to get the troops off, and as I hear Lord Keith has promised
plenty of transports, in answer to his pressing letters on the subject,
we expect to be all away in ten days’ time, and some immediately. There
are nearly eighteen thousand men still in France, including the fifth
division at Bayonne, where, by-the-by, the disposition on the part of
the French to be uncivil, sulky, and quarrelsome has been much greater.
On the contrary, the generals and superior officers are very civil,
particularly Marshal Suchet, to the few English officers remaining at
Toulouse, and General Villette, who is here, is also very civil.

_Later._—A ship is just arrived in sixty-four hours from Plymouth,
telling us that fifteen sail of the line, and as many frigates are
close at hand, but no news of our destination.

_Head-Quarters, Bordeaux, July 10th, 1814._—I have now received two
letters and packets of papers from you by the last mail, including
those up to the 28th June. The same mail brought orders for all the
members of the Court-martial appointed for Tarragona to proceed direct
for England, and there report themselves to the Adjutant-general.
Upon this I asked Lord Dalhousie (our present chief) what I was to
do? and was by him desired to remain here to the last and move with
the head-quarters, who remain here till the troops move. This must,
I think, take place in about a week or ten days, unless you cease to
send shipping from England. We shall in three days’ time have only a
brigade of Guards remaining for the city duty. The rest who will not
be already embarked will be at Pouillac in readiness.

We have now got our small share of Royalty also at Bordeaux, as the
Duke d’Angoulême has arrived again, and means to stay a few days
before he goes to join Madame la Duchesse at the Baths at Vichy. He
looks worn, and less calculated than ever for public show, but still
apparently as amiable as before. The Duc de G——, though still, I
believe, in our 10th Hussars, came in with him, as his aide-de-camp.
The Duc de G—— is come back much disgusted with Paris, and even almost
with France and Frenchmen. He says that Paris is a dirty place,
without society and manners, and that he has met with no one to whose
word or whose honour he would fairly trust: that all seemed to be a
system of deception and falsehood, and that unless things mend, and
alter considerably, he should feel almost disposed, in case of any
unfortunate quarrel with England, to renounce France, rejoin his
regiment, and become an Englishman. This, I conclude, is the depression
of first feelings, which, in the case of emigrants, must be very strong
just now. Matters have not quite proceeded to their tastes, and they
must every hour meet with that which must inevitably disgust them.

We have now also at Bordeaux the celebrated Mademoiselle Georges, the
actress from Paris, and Mons. Joami, also from the metropolis. In
spite of the heat, I have been three times to hear them in Voltaire’s
plays, _Merope_, _Phedre_, and _l’Orphelin de la Chine_. The man has
neither much figure nor countenance, and I should place him only as a
second-rate performer, though still very superior to the ordinary set
here in that line. In fact there are no tragic performers here at all;
and the inferiority, beneath mediocrity, with which every other part is
sustained, takes off the interest with which these tragedies would be
otherwise attended.

Mdlle. Georges herself is also in many parts deficient, both in good
taste and in true nature. She is of a large figure, but now fallen to
pieces; and I am rather surprised that the _ci-devant_ Emperor should
have fancied her anywhere except during his Moscow campaign. The story,
however, goes here, that at one of their interviews, Bonaparte was
taken ill, and in her confusion and ignorance Mdlle. Georges rang the
Empress’s bell instead of that for the attendants, and that on the
arrival of Maria Louise there was of course a scene.

Mdlle. Georges’ voice is good, and her countenance would by many be
considered fine. In some parts of her acting I think she is strikingly
great, but generally forced and extravagant. She runs into extremes
from crying to laughing, and from low ghost-like intonations to loud
vulgar screams. Upon the whole, one comes away fatigued from one of
these representations, and not much pleased or affected. And what
convinces me that it really is inferiority in the drama or in the
actress, and not merely the difference of style and manner, or national
feeling as to composition and taste, which causes this, is, that
the French part of the audience never seem affected like an English
audience under the influence of really fine acting. You never hear the
generally suppressed sobs, or see the eyes full of tears all round the
house as with us at an English tragedy, when, for example, Mrs. Siddons
plays, and every one goes away with a serious impression. In the French
auditors you only hear bursts of “_Très beau, très beau! superbe!
magnifique!_” &c., always applied to some extravagant and sudden change
of tone or manner; and now, at this present moment, if there happens to
be a royal sentiment which can be applied, it is encored like a song.
No one seems carried away by feelings which he cannot command; but the
applause is given as it would be to a mountebank for a clever trick.
The distressed heroine or empress spits in her pocket-handkerchief, or
on the stage in the true French style, and certainly not in a manner
to excite admiration or interest, or to impress the spectators very
strongly with ideas of her dignity and elegance.

The first night the Duke d’Angoulême was at the play (on his arrival
here this time), we had verses and songs in his honour, and “_Vive
Henry IV.!_” without end. At last came for once, “God save the King,”
which was received very differently from what it was even when I first
came here; coolly and civilly enough, except by a few; and I believe we
have a few sincere friends here.

As Paris gave a sword to General Sacken, Bordeaux is to give one to
Lord Dalhousie; and I really think the town has (as they certainly
ought to have) some feelings of gratitude towards him for his attention
to everything which can be of service to the city, and in successful
efforts to preserve order, and prevent any mischief being done to the
inhabitants. This sword will be a curious heir-loom in the Dalhousie
family, given to their ancestor by the French civil authorities of
Bordeaux.

As a trait of the natural French feelings of vanity, I may tell you,
that my loyal patron Mons. Emerigon said, not only should we have been
all originally prevented from entering France, had the people been of
one mind with the Emperor and the army, but that all along a single
word of complaint from Louis XVIII. of the conduct of the allied troops
would have been a signal for their entire destruction at any period
since.

I am now told that the fifth division, from Bayonne are also on their
march hither to embark. This will probably cause some little more
delay; but I think in ten days we must be on board ship.

_Head-Quarters, Bordeaux, July 15th, 1814._—Our final departure from
hence appears, at last, to be gradually approaching. The numbers of the
English diminish daily; and though we have for this month past been
talking of the “next week,” I begin to think that another week will
really and truly see us off, and the French army again in possession of
Bordeaux.

The tradesmen of the town will miss us greatly. They have made a
famous time of it these last three months, for the army has in that
time received six months’ pay, and most of it has found its way into
the pockets of the keepers of the restaurateurs, the hotels, &c.
Bordeaux has had its full share of the spoils of the _milords_. Nor
have the inhabitants suffered anything by the army, except the little
inconvenience of giving up a room or two in general as quarters for
the officers, who partly made up even for this by giving their hosts
tickets for the play, taking boxes for the ladies, &c., and making them
presents every now and then. The only persons who have suffered by us
at all in the neighbourhood, are those who have small gardens near
the camp. They certainly have had their vegetables and fruit gathered
gratis, and have generally not even had their share. This evil is,
however, exaggerated, and much of it which really exists, has been done
by the French peasantry and country servants, who, if a soldier takes
six cabbages, immediately take a dozen more themselves, sell them in
the camp, and swear to the owners that the soldiers are the culprits.

Those who have vineyards as well as gardens, have also their full
revenge in the price of their wines, which were immediately doubled, by
the arrival of the troops, and the latter in fact pay dearly for their
vegetables, though they get a good part for nothing. It is fortunate
for the inhabitants that we shall be off before the grapes begin to
ripen, and for our own soldiers likewise. Surrounded by vineyards, the
temptations would be irresistible, and the means of offence almost
boundless; so that the loss to the cultivators of them principal
harvest, and the injury to the soldiers, would be very considerable.

I have bought a violoncello to amuse myself this warm weather, and as
my host, M. Emerigon, plays the violin in very excellent style, we have
frequently music of an evening before he goes to his consultations.

We most of us, nevertheless, begin to find Bordeaux dull,—I do
in particular. My occupation has nearly ceased, except as to
swearing the paymasters, &c., to their accounts, and now and then a
Court-martial,—not enough to give me full employment. The constant
expectation of moving, the uncertainty when I may be wanted, and the
natural indolence arising from the heat, prevent me from voluntarily
engaging in any regular study or pursuit, and even prevent my making
any excursions beyond a league or two on my pony. Shut up in this
town, which, though airy, as to the general breadth of the streets and
openings, is still in fact hot and low, and built in a country like
that round Woolwich or Deptford, I get thin and languid, and shall be
glad to be braced by the sea-air and the cooler climate of England.

_Saturday, 1st._—As yet we have had no packets this week, and being
beyond the usual time, this makes us believe the reports which have
been some days in circulation, that you mean to send no more packets
from England. I have still hopes.

I must tell you a trait completely French, of one of the noble guard of
honour of the Duke d’Angoulême at Bordeaux. I had met him twice in the
family with whom I live: on one of these occasions, at dinner. He dined
here yesterday, and whilst the rest of the party were taking their
coffee, I went to my room to dress, as I dined at Lord Dalhousie’s.
This guardsman slipped up stairs after me. He came bowing into my
room, whilst I was in my shirt, and without any excuse or apology,
immediately began to tell me he had a little favour to ask, and hoped
that I would oblige him, and say nothing of it in the family, for he
would not ask them, and was anxious they should not know anything about
it; and at last said, “Could I just let him have five guineas or so,
for which he would give me a bit of paper.” In short, he added that
he was rather deficient in cash, and I should oblige him infinitely
by the loan, which should be paid when he could. As I fully expected
an application to ask some favour of Lord Dalhousie or the Duke of
Wellington, or something very disagreeable, I felt rather relieved by
the explanation in full. As he was quite a young man, had just got a
commission in the new regiment to be raised in Martinique, and was, I
concluded, of good character, from his connexion with M. Emerigon and
his family, who are held in great esteem, I counted him out his five
guineas (all the time in my shirt), and he went away very happy, saying
that he would go below and leave me a bit of paper, though I told him
there was pen and ink in my room. The paper said that he would send
Mr. —— six guineas to England (a guinea more than I had given him) as
soon as he could. It was signed—_P. de V. De R——, De La Martinique_,
leaving my name a blank, and not inquiring where he should send, so as
to reserve, I presume, enough to satisfy his conscience in not repaying
the money, that he should never know where to send it. His bit of paper
only confirmed me in my notion that I was doing an act of charity, and
not turning Jew or money-lender.

The guard of honour are to-day dismissed, by order of the higher powers
from Paris. In truth, there are quite troops enough in France, without
adding the expense of these gentlemen, with their white feathers a
yard long, who would be of no use except to quarrel with the regular
troops. Only four years since Bonaparte, when at Bordeaux, was attended
everywhere by a guard of honour of the same description. Volunteers
were his only body-guard.

The Prefêt of Bordeaux last night gave a fête to the Duke d’Angoulême.
I went with M. Emerigon. The Duke came a few minutes after eight
o’clock in his carriage and six, dressed, I believe, in the uniform of
a Field-Marshal, with the _cordon-bleu_, &c. He was received by the
Prefêt, attended by Generals Villette, Blagnac, Clement de la Ronciere,
&c., &c., and a number of old and new nobility, all in their best; and
having been, as it were, proclaimed to the company by the Prefêt, the
Duke went about most graciously, talking to every one as usual.

About ten supper was announced, for the Duke has very early habits;
and in about half an hour afterwards he came to the window to see very
pretty fireworks, which were let off in the main street, surrounded
by thousands of people below, and at all the windows. It was a gay
and attractive scene. Soon after eleven the Duke went home, for he
rises at five, and works hard at business, on petitions, &c., and at
four o’clock to-morrow morning is to start for Bayonne. He had been
at two reviews in the course of yesterday, and had both times been in
tolerably severe storms. I fancy he must now and then wish himself
quiet again, as he has been for the last twenty years. I am almost
sure I should. The new barons and nobility seem to make very good
courtiers. Indeed, the duties are all the same; it is only a change in
the cry and the idol, the same worship exists as before. The Prefêt,
Monsieur le Baron de V——, while the fireworks were going on, observed
to all around him (loud enough on purpose for the Duke to hear)—how
fortunate he was to have thought of the fireworks; that the idea had
come into his head, as he observed that every one would see Monseigneur
so well at the window, whilst the fireworks were going off; and then
how plainly we can read the inscriptions—O yes, observe _Vive le Duc
d’Angoulême! Vivent les Bourbons!_ and the fleurs-de-lys—how well they
look in the midst of the fire! He felt quite happy that he had thought
of all this to gratify the people, as it necessarily must do.—Now the
inscriptions were close to us, and in letters a foot long. And note
besides, that this Baron was one of the functionaries who ran away from
Bordeaux, when the Duke came here on the 12th of March, and who would
probably not now hold his situation, if my patron and some others had
not persuaded him to return in good time, and continue in his office to
wait the result. The Duke must see through this, and be disgusted.

The women here are not as well dressed as at Toulouse—not so stylish.
They do not show so much blood and fashion. I believe, however, among
the higher orders, that there is much more morality, and that there
is a greater difference in reality, as well as in outward appearance,
between the ladies in the dress-boxes, and those in the tier above,
than there was at Toulouse.

Shortly after eleven o’clock the few English who were present at the
fête, had nearly all gone home, being chiefly Generals and their
aides-de-camp. I came away, leaving the company waltzing and dancing
away with less spirit and skill than at Toulouse.

I met with some very liberal Catholics here; for instance, a gentleman
said yesterday, before me, that if all the pieces of the true Cross
were collected, they would, when put together, make a cross half a
mile long. A lady in company said to a friend (also before me), that
she did not much trouble the father confessor, and indeed that it was
what she liked the least of any part of her duty. She added that their
religion depended on faith, hope, and charity, and that she understood
(addressing me), ours did so too, but that theirs required a good deal
of hope. Madame Emerigon, with whom I live, has returned home highly
delighted with Paris, but abuses the inhabitants, who, she says, think
only of making money, taking in strangers, provincials and foreigners,
and amusing themselves day and night.

She is a French creole from one of the islands. A little mulatto girl,
about fourteen, always stands behind her chair, laughing at all her
mistress says. The hairdresser is generally seated in one corner of the
room, half the dinner-time, joining in the conversation, and sometimes
adorning Madame, whilst we are taking our wine, and during this time an
idle Paris lad, of the girl’s age, whom Madame seems to have fancied
because he speaks such good French, and not the Patois, is running
about, bustling, but in reality doing little or nothing from morning
till night. Three other female servants, and a nephew of the family,
complete the party on this side of the house, or rather wing.

In an opposite wing, are, first in the upper part, two respectable old
ladies, and their servants; below them _au-premier_, is an old West
Indian gentleman and his two sons, both _ci-devant_ of the Imperial
guard of honour, from Bordeaux, and his two daughters, with servants,
&c. None of these are very elegant, nor, as far as I can judge from
one visit, very well bred. They amused me the whole time with talking
of the superiority of the French troops, and how the Imperial guards
in particular could beat all the Allies if not more than two to one,
as they always had done, to which I only said that I believed the
Imperial Guards had been all withdrawn from the army of Spain, at
least I supposed so, and that I had had, therefore, no opportunity
of judging. One Miss also asked what the English lived upon? as she
understood we ate no bread. Upon which a French visitor, to save me the
trouble of explanation, informed her that we principally lived upon
_des potates_ (which is now the word here for potatoes) and _betraves_,
with which accurate information she seemed quite satisfied. This sort
of conversation, and a few songs quite in the French style, which I do
not at all admire, though one of the demoiselles had a good voice, have
not tempted me to pay another visit.

The other night I went to the benefit of Madame Georges. She acted
Semiramis, in Voltaire’s play, and with considerable success,
particularly when she let Nature have its way. She also acted in the
sentimental farce of _La Belle Fermière_, and really well, if she had
but omitted a miserable song, accompanied by an old violin or two
behind the scenes, all out of tune. The orchestra, as well as every
part of the house, was full—almost every passage crammed near the
openings to the boxes. The play began at seven o’clock, and the company
were all ready by four, and I saw many well-dressed women going to
the play at two and three o’clock, as a box cannot be engaged without
paying almost double price. The Duke was very well received, and as
there was luckily no band, we escaped about five-and-twenty _Vive Henry
IV.!_ which we should otherwise have had.

Mr. Wilberforce should exert himself in getting little essays written
in French, on the Slave Trade, circulated in France, in some degree at
least to enlighten the people. At present, even the more intelligent
and better sort of men seem only to consider the English as playing
the part of Don Quixote in this business, and consider the whole as a
sort of romantic affectation of humanity; whilst many others insinuate
motives not quite so honourable, by stating that, having well supplied
our own islands with slaves, we wish to give up all the other colonies,
with a diminished black population, and in bad condition, and then
to prevent their ever recovering themselves. This is to be done by
the abolition of the Slave Trade; whilst our own islands, in full
prosperity, will be ready to reap the benefit of the distress of their
rivals.

_July 18th._—I have now only time to seal up and to tell you that the
returns of embarkations are just arrived from Pouillac, by which it
appears that all the troops are now actually on board, except the
two brigades of Guards, one of which entered Pouillac to-day to be
prepared, and the other is still here. At present no more shipping is
ready, though more are expected; some say we shall be moving about
to-morrow week, some this day fortnight; but I believe no one knows
anything of the matter.

       *       *       *       *       *

From the following entry in the Diary kept by Mrs. Larpent, it appears
that Mr. F. S. Larpent arrived at his father’s house, at East Sheen, on
the 8th August, 1814.

_8th August, 1814._—“In the evening came Seymour, looking younger than
when he went away, and in excellent health, after having been absent
two years, all but a fortnight. We thanked God sincerely for this great
mercy and happiness.”




APPENDIX.


[Although the annexed letter does not come chronologically within the
scope of Mr. Larpent’s Journal, as there is an anticipatory notice,
towards the close of the second volume, of Sir John Murray’s trial, it
may not inappropriately be inserted here.]

  Paris, January 19th, 1815.

  MY DEAR SIR,

 In regard to Sir John Murray’s trial, I intended to prove the charges
 framed by my directions against him, in consequence of the orders of
 Government, by the production of my Instructions and his Reports, all
 of which are in the Government Offices.

 Sir John Murray contends that one paragraph of my Instructions
 directed him not to risk an action. I think he has mistaken my meaning
 in that paragraph; but whether he has or not, that paragraph did not
 recall the other Instructions for his conduct.

 The object of that paragraph was to prevent the Spanish Generals Elio
 and the Duque del Parque, from taking advantage of Sir John Murray’s
 absence, and the temporary command which they had of the cavalry
 belonging to Sir John Murray’s and Whittingham’s corps, to attack the
 French. There existed a prevailing opinion among the Spanish officers
 that their failures were to be attributed to the want of good cavalry;
 and this paragraph of the Instructions was drawn with the view of
 preventing those officers from attempting to fight a general action
 when circumstances should have placed a small body of good cavalry at
 their disposal, more particularly as all the manœuvres ordered by the
 Instructions had in view to prevent the necessity of a general action.

 I have not by me the Instructions, but, as well as I recollect, this
 meaning of the paragraph is obvious; and it will be particularly
 observed that it comes in after the directions for the formation of
 the Corps Romain in Bohemia with the Duque del Parque and General
 Elio. I think, as I before stated, that this paragraph has nothing to
 say to the question of Sir John Murray’s guilt or innocence of the two
 charges, though it has to that brought against him by the Admiral.

 The Court has, of course, a right to judge of my meaning by the words
 in which it is conveyed, in whatever manner I may now explain it or
 you may explain it for me, as the obvious meaning of those words was
 to be the guide of Sir John Murray’s conduct. I must add also, that
 whatever care I may have taken, it is not improbable that in drawing
 an Instruction for the operations of so many corps, all with separate
 Commanders-in-Chief, I may not in every instance have made use of the
 language which should convey the meaning I had in my mind.

 There is nothing else that occurs to me; but I shall be glad to hear
 from you occasionally during the trial, and receive a copy of the
 evidence when it can be got.

  Believe me,
  Ever yours, most faithfully,
  WELLINGTON.

  _To F. S. Larpent, Esq._
  _&c.     &c._


LONDON: W. CLOWES AND SONS, STAMFORD STREET AND CHARING CROSS.




  Transcriber’s Notes

  pg 65 Changed: that is the best way, I believe, if posible
             to: that is the best way, I believe, if possible

  pg 102 Changed: not to neglect making up her deficiences
              to: not to neglect making up her deficiencies

  pg 125 Changed: the obligation of cuting so much of the corn
              to: the obligation of cutting so much of the corn

  pg 137 Changed: too much for them, end are consequently retiring
              to: too much for them, and are consequently retiring

  pg 144 Changed: round the botton of an insulated hill
              to: round the bottom of an insulated hill

  pg 159 Changed: und and there the first charge of cavalry took place
              to: und and there the first charge of cavalry took place

  pg 208 Changed: prisoners aad deserters say nearly five thousand
              to: prisoners and deserters say nearly five thousand

  pg 308 Changed: given up their lodgings and and have packed up
              to: given up their lodgings and have packed up

  pg 330 Changed: He is a stanch Frenchman
              to: He is a staunch Frenchman

  pg 457 Changed: and thence he was was to post the other
              to: and thence he was to post the other

  pg 458 Changed: every precaution taken for secresy
              to: every precaution taken for secrecy

  pg 471 Changed: probably let the King he proclaimed
              to: probably let the King be proclaimed

  pg 482 Changed: stay here until this mornimg
              to: stay here until this morning

  pg 493 Changed: who were lyng safe on the ground
              to: who were lying safe on the ground

  pg 520 Changed: like our New River, the bands trimmed
              to: like our New River, the banks trimmed

  New original cover art included with this eBook is granted to the
  public domain.





*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PRIVATE JOURNAL OF JUDGE-ADVOCATE LARPENT ***


    

Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will
be renamed.

Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may
do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
license, especially commercial redistribution.


START: FULL LICENSE

THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE

PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK

To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
www.gutenberg.org/license.

Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg™
electronic works

1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.

1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.

1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
you share it without charge with others.

1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
country other than the United States.

1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:

1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
performed, viewed, copied or distributed:

    This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
    other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
    whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
    of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
    at www.gutenberg.org. If you
    are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
    of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
  
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
beginning of this work.

1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.

1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg™ License.

1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.

1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
provided that:

    • You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
        the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
        you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
        to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
        agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
        within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
        legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
        payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
        Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
        Literary Archive Foundation.”
    
    • You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
        you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
        does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
        License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
        copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
        all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
        works.
    
    • You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
        any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
        electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
        receipt of the work.
    
    • You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
        distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
    

1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
forth in Section 3 below.

1.F.

1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
cannot be read by your equipment.

1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.

1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
without further opportunities to fix the problem.

1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.

1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.

1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.

Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™

Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
from people in all walks of life.

Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.

Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.

The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website
and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact

Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation

Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.

The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
visit www.gutenberg.org/donate.

While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.

International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.

Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.

Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works

Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
volunteer support.

Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
edition.

Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org.

This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.